



Produced by Chris Curnow, Harry Lamé and the Online
Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
file was produced from images generously made available
by The Internet Archive)









  +-------------------------------------------------------------------+
  |                        TRANSCRIBER'S NOTES:                       |
  |                                                                   |
  | * Transcription used:                                             |
  |   - italic texts in the original work are represented here between|
  |     underscores, as in _text_;                                    |
  |   - boldface texts in the original work are represented here      |
  |     between equal signs, as in =text=;                            |
  |   - text printed in small capitals in the original work are       |
  |     transcribed in ALL CAPITALS.                                  |
  |                                                                   |
  | * Footnotes have been moved to directly under the paragraph they  |
  |   belong to.                                                      |
  |                                                                   |
  | * Where a line of text was missing from the original work, this is|
  |   indicated by [...].                                             |
  |                                                                   |
  | More Transcriber's Notes may be found at the end of this text.    |
  |                                                                   |
  +-------------------------------------------------------------------+




[Illustration: THE FIRST MAN.]




  THE
  WORLD BEFORE THE DELUGE.

  BY
  _LOUIS FIGUIER_.


  NEWLY EDITED AND REVISED
  BY
  H. W. BRISTOW, F.R.S., F.G.S.,

  _Of the Geological Survey of Great Britain; Hon. Fellow of King’s
  College, London._


  With 235 Illustrations.


  CASSELL, PETTER, & GALPIN,
  LONDON, PARIS, AND NEW YORK.




CONTENTS.


                                                              PAGE

  GENERAL CONSIDERATIONS                                         1
    CONSIDERATION OF FOSSILS                                     4
    CHEMICAL AND NEBULAR HYPOTHESES OF THE GLOBE                15
    MODIFICATIONS OF THE EARTH’S SURFACE                        26
    ERUPTIVE ROCKS                                              30
    PLUTONIC ERUPTIONS                                          31
        Granite                                                 31
        Syenite                                                 34
        Protogine                                               35
        Porphyry                                                37
        Serpentine                                              38
    VOLCANIC ROCKS                                              39
        Trachytic Formations                                    39
        Basaltic Formations                                     44
        Volcanic or Lava Formations                             51
    METAMORPHIC ROCKS                                           71
        General Metamorphism                                    74
  THE BEGINNING                                                 80
  PRIMARY EPOCH                                                 99
    CAMBRIAN PERIOD                                            101
    SILURIAN PERIOD                                            102
        Lower Silurian Period                                  104
        Upper Silurian Period                                  110
    OLD RED SANDSTONE AND DEVONIAN PERIOD                      119
    CARBONIFEROUS PERIOD                                       130
        Carboniferous Limestone                                140
        Coal Measures                                          150
        Formation of Coal                                      159
    PERMIAN PERIOD                                             170
        Permian Rocks                                          177
  SECONDARY EPOCH                                              185
    TRIASSIC, OR NEW RED PERIOD                                185
        New Red Sandstone                                      187
        Muschelkalk                                            188
        Keuper Period                                          199
    RHÆTIC (PENARTH) PERIOD                                    207
      JURASSIC PERIOD                                          211
        Liassic Period                                         211
        Oolitic Sub-Period                                     243
        Lower Oolite Fauna                                     244
        ----   ----  Rocks                                     249
       Middle Oolite                                           255
       Upper Oolite                                            265
    CRETACEOUS PERIOD                                          275
        Lower Cretaceous Period                                286
        Upper Cretaceous Period                                300
  TERTIARY EPOCH                                               312
        Eocene Period                                          315
        Miocene Period                                         336
        Pliocene Period                                        357
  QUATERNARY EPOCH                                             378
    POST-PLIOCENE                                              378
    EUROPEAN DELUGES                                           422
    GLACIAL PERIOD                                             435
    CREATION OF MAN                                            464
    ASIATIC DELUGE                                             480
  EPILOGUE                                                     489
  TABLE AND DIAGRAM OF BRITISH SEDIMENTARY AND FOSSILIFEROUS
  STRATA                                                       493




FULL-PAGE ILLUSTRATIONS.


  FRONTISPIECE--THE FIRST MAN.
                                                              PAGE
       I. De Sancy Peak, Mont Dore                              42
      II. Basaltic Mountain of La Coupe d’Ayzac                 46
     III. Extinct Volcanoes of Le Puy                           52
      IV. Mud Volcano of Turbaco                                62
       V. Great Geyser of Iceland                               66
      VI. The Earth in a gaseous state circulating in space     82
     VII. Condensation and rainfall                             94
    VIII. Ideal Landscape of the Silurian Period               104
      IX. Ideal Landscape of the Devonian Period               121
       X. Ideal view of marine life in the Carboniferous
          Period                                               147
      XI. Ideal view of a marshy forest in the Coal Period     156
     XII. Ideal Landscape of the Permian Period                172
    XIII. Ideal Landscape of the Muschelkalk Period            191
     XIV. Ideal Landscape of the Saliferous or Keuper Period   198
      XV. Ideal Scene of the Lias Period with Ichthyosaurus
          and Plesiosaurus                                     231
     XVI. Ideal Landscape of the Liassic Period                241
    XVII. Ideal Landscape of the Lower Oolite Period           254
   XVIII. Ideal Landscape of the Middle Oolite Period          258
     XIX. Apiocrinites rotundus and Encrinus liliiformis       261
      XX. Ideal Landscape of the Upper Oolite Period           267
     XXI. Ideal Scene of the Lower Cretaceous Period           296
    XXII. Ideal Landscape of the Cretaceous Period             307
   XXIII. Ideal Landscape of the Eocene Period                 328
    XXIV. Ideal Landscape of the Miocene Period                352
     XXV. Ideal Landscape of the Pliocene Period               375
    XXVI. Skeleton of the Mammoth in the St. Petersburg
          Museum                                               394
   XXVII. Skeleton of Megatherium                              403
  XXVIII. Ideal View of the Quaternary Epoch--Europe           416
    XXIX. Ideal Landscape of the Quaternary Epoch--America     419
     XXX. Deluge of the North of Europe                        425
    XXXI. Glaciers of Switzerland                              445
   XXXII. Appearance of Man                                    468
  XXXIII. Asiatic Deluge                                       483
  DIAGRAM AT END--Ideal Section of the Earth’s Crust, showing the
          order of superposition or chronological succession of
          the principal groups of strata.




PREFACE.


The object of “The World before the Deluge” is to trace the progressive
steps by which the earth has reached its present state, from that
condition of chaos when it “was without form and void, and darkness was
upon the face of the deep,” and to describe the various convulsions and
transformations through which it has successively passed. In the words
of the poet--

    “Where rolls the deep, there grew the tree;
       O Earth, what changes hast thou seen!
       There, where the long street roars, hath been
     The silence of the central sea.”

It has been thought desirable that the present edition of the work
should undergo a thorough revision by a practical geologist, a task
which Mr. H. W. Bristow has performed. Mr. Bristow has however confined
himself to such alterations as were necessary to secure accuracy in the
statement of facts, and such additions as were necessary to represent
more precisely the existing state of scientific opinion. Many points
which are more or less inferential and therefore matters of individual
opinion, and especially those on which M. Figuier bases his
speculations, have been left in their original form, in preference to
making modifications which would wholly change the character of the
book. In a work whose purpose is to give the general reader a summarised
account of the results at which science has arrived, and of the method
of reasoning regarding the facts on which these generalisations rest, it
would be out of place, as well as ineffective, to obscure general
statements with those limitations which caution imposes on the
scientific investigator.

In the original work the Author had naturally enough drawn most of his
facts from French localities; in the translation these are mostly
preserved, but others drawn from British Geology have been added, either
from the translator’s own knowledge, or from the works of well-known
British writers. It was considered desirable, for similar reasons, to
enlarge upon the opinions of British geologists, to whom the French work
scarcely does justice, considering the extent to which the science is
indebted to them for its elucidation.

In the original work the chapter on Eruptive Rocks comes at the end of
the work, but, as the work proceeded, so many unexplained allusions to
that chapter were found that it seemed more logical, and more in
accordance with chronological order, if the expression may be used, to
place that chapter at the beginning.

A new edition of the French work having appeared in the early part of
1866, to which the Author contributed a chapter on Metamorphic Rocks, a
translation of it is appended to the chapter on Eruptive Rocks.

A chapter on the Rhætic (or Penarth) beds has been inserted (amongst
much other original matter), the stratigraphical importance of that
series having been recognised since the publication of the First
Edition.

In the present Edition the text has been again thoroughly revised by Mr.
Bristow, and many important additions made, the result of the recent
investigations of himself and his colleagues of the Geological Survey.




  THE
  WORLD BEFORE THE DELUGE.




GENERAL CONSIDERATIONS.


The observer who glances over a rich and fertile plain, watered by
rivers and streams which have, during a long series of ages, pursued the
same uniform and tranquil course; the traveller who contemplates the
walls and monuments of a great city, the first founding of which is lost
in the night of ages, testifying, apparently, to the unchangeableness of
things and places; the naturalist who examines a mountain or other
locality, and finds the hills and valleys and other accidents of the
soil in the very spot and condition in which they are described by
history and tradition--none of these observers would at first suspect
that any serious change had ever occurred to disturb the surface of the
globe. Nevertheless, the earth has not always presented the calm aspect
of stability which it now exhibits; it has had its convulsions, and its
physical revolutions, whose story we are about to trace. The earth, like
the body of an animal, is wasted, as the philosophical Hutton tells us,
at the same time that it is repaired. It has a state of growth and
augmentation; it has another state, which is that of diminution and
decay: it is destroyed in one part to be renewed in another; and the
operations by which the renewal is accomplished are as evident to the
scientific eye as those by which it is destroyed. A thousand causes,
aqueous, igneous, and atmospheric, are continually at work modifying the
external form of the earth, wearing down the older portions of its
surface, and reconstructing newer out of the older; so that in many
parts of the world denudation has taken place to the extent of many
thousand feet. Buried in the depths of the soil, for example, in one of
those vast excavations which the intrepidity of the miner has dug in
search of coal or other minerals, there are numerous phenomena which
strike the mind of the inquirer, and carry their own conclusions with
them. A striking increase of temperature in these subterranean places
is one of the most remarkable of these. It is found that the temperature
of the earth rises one degree for every sixty or seventy feet of descent
from its surface. Again: if the mine be examined vertically, it is found
to consist of a series of layers or beds, sometimes horizontal, but more
frequently inclined, upright, or contorted and undulating--even folded
back upon themselves. Then, instances are numerous where horizontal and
parallel beds have been penetrated, and traversed vertically or
obliquely by veins of ores or minerals totally different in their
appearance and nature from the surrounding rocks. All these undulations
and varying inclinations of strata are indications that some powerful
cause, some violent mechanical action, has intervened to produce them.
Finally, if the interior of the beds be examined more minutely--if,
armed with the miner’s pick and hammer, the rock is carefully broken
up--it is not impossible that the very first efforts at mining may be
rewarded by the discovery of some fossilised organic form no longer
found in the living state. The remains of plants and animals belonging
to the earlier ages of the world, are, in fact, very common; entire
strata are sometimes formed of them; and in some localities the rocks
can scarcely be disturbed without yielding fragments of bones and
shells, or the impressions of fossilised animals and vegetables--the
buried remains of extinct creations.

These bones--these remains of animals or vegetables which the hammer of
the geologist has torn from the rock--belong possibly to some organism
which no longer any where exists: it may not be identical with any
animal or plant living in our times: but it is evident that these
beings, whose remains are now so deeply buried, have not always been so
covered; they once lived on the surface of the earth as plants and
animals do in our days, for their organisation is essentially the same.
The beds in which they now repose must, then, in older times have formed
the surface of the earth; and the presence of these fossils proves that
the earth has suffered great mutations at some former period of its
history.

Geology explains to us the various transformations which the earth has
passed through before it arrived at its present condition. We can
determine, with its help, the comparative epoch to which any beds
belong, as well as the order in which others have been superimposed upon
them. Considering that the stratigraphical crust of the earth with which
the geologist has to deal may be some ten miles thick, and that it has
been deposited in distinct layers in a definite order of succession, the
dates or epochs of each formation may well be approached with hesitation
and caution.

Dr. Hutton, the earliest of our philosophical geologists, eloquently
observes, in his “Theory of the Earth,” that the solid earth is
everywhere wasted at the surface. The summits of the mountains are
necessarily degraded. The solid and weighty materials of these mountains
have everywhere been carried through the valleys by the force of running
water. The soil which is produced in the destruction of the solid earth
is gradually transported by the moving waters, and is as constantly
supplying vegetation with its necessary aid. This drifted soil is at
last deposited upon some coast, where it forms a fertile country. But
the billows of the ocean again agitate the loose material upon the
shore, wearing away the coast with endless repetitions of this act of
power and imparted force; the solid portion of our earth, thus sapped to
its foundations, is carried away into the deep and sunk again at the
bottom of the sea whence it had originated, and from which sooner or
later it will again make its appearance. We are thus led to see a
circulation of destruction and renewal in the matter of which the globe
is formed, and a system of beautiful economy in the works of Nature.
Again, discriminating between the ordinary and scientific observer, the
same writer remarks, that it is not given to common observation to see
the operation of physical causes. The shepherd thinks the mountain on
which he feeds his flock has always been there. The inhabitant of the
valley cultivates the soil as his fathers did before him, and thinks the
soil coeval with the valley or the mountain. But the scientific observer
looks into the chain of physical events, sees the great changes that
have been made, and foresees others that must follow from the continued
operation of like natural causes. For, as Pythagoras taught 2,350 years
ago, “the minerals and the rocks, the islands and the continents, the
rivers and the seas, and all organic Nature, are perpetually changing;
there is nothing stationary on earth.” To note these changes--to
decipher the records of this system of waste and reconstruction, to
trace the physical history of the earth--is the province of GEOLOGY,
which, the latest of all modern sciences, is that which has been
modified most profoundly and most rapidly. In short, resting as it does
on observation, it has been modified and transformed according to every
series of facts recorded; but while many of the facts of geology admit
of easy and obvious demonstration, it is far otherwise with the
inferences which have been based upon them, which are mostly
hypothetical, and in many instances from their very nature incapable of
proof. Its applications are numerous and varied, projecting new and
useful lights upon many other sciences. Here we ask of it the teachings
which serve to explain the origin of the globe--the evidence it
furnishes of the progressive formation of the different rocks and
mineral masses of which the earth is composed--the description and
restoration of the several species of animals and vegetables which have
existed, have died and become extinct, and which form, in the language
of naturalists, the _Fauna_ and _Flora_ of the ancient world.

       *       *       *       *       *

In order to explain the origin of the earth, and the cause of its
various revolutions, modern geologists invoke three orders of facts, or
fundamental considerations:

    I. The hypothesis of the original incandescence of the globe.

    II. The consideration of fossils.

    III. The successive deposition of the sedimentary rocks.

As a corollary to these, the hypothesis of the upheaval of the earth’s
crust follows--upheavals having produced local revolutions. The result
of these upheavals has been to superimpose new materials upon the older
rocks, introducing extraneous rocks called _Eruptive_, beneath, upon,
and amongst preceding deposits, in such a manner as to change their
nature in divers ways. Whence is derived a third class of rocks called
_Metamorphic_ or altered _rocks_, our knowledge of which is of
comparatively recent date.


FOSSILS.

The name of _Fossil_ (from _fossilis_, dug up) is given to all organised
bodies, animal or vegetable, buried naturally in the terrestrial strata,
and more or less petrified, that is, converted into stone. Fossils of
the older formations are remains of organisms which, so far as species
is concerned, are quite extinct; and only those of recent formations
belong to genera living in our days. These fossil remains have neither
the beauty nor the elegance of most living species, being mutilated,
discoloured, and often almost shapeless; they are, therefore,
interesting only in the eyes of the observer who would interrogate them,
and who seeks to reconstruct, with their assistance, the Fauna and Flora
of past ages. Nevertheless, the light they throw upon the past history
of the earth is of the most satisfactory description, and the science of
fossils, or palæontology, is now an important branch of geological
inquiry. Fossil shells, in the more recent deposits, are found scarcely
altered; in some cases only an impression of the external form is
left--sometimes an entire cast of the shell, exterior and interior. In
other cases the shell has left a perfect impression of its form in the
surrounding mud, and has then been dissolved and washed away, leaving
only its mould. This mould, again, has sometimes been filled up by
calcareous spar, silica, or pyrites, and an exact cast of the original
shell has thus been obtained. Petrified wood is also of very common
occurrence.

These remains of an earlier creation had long been known to the curious,
and classed as _freaks of Nature_, for so we find them described in the
works of the ancient philosophers who wrote on natural history, and in
the few treatises on the subject which the Middle Ages have bequeathed
to us. Fossil bones, especially those of elephants, were known to the
ancients, giving rise to all sorts of legends and fabulous histories:
the tradition which attributed to Achilles, to Ajax, and to other heroes
of the Trojan war, a height of twenty feet, is attributable, no doubt,
to the discovery of the bones of elephants near their tombs. In the time
of Pericles we are assured that in the tomb of Ajax a _patella_, or
knee-bone of that hero, was found, which was as large as a dinner-plate.
This was probably only the patella of a fossil elephant.

The uses to which fossils are applied by the geologist are--First, to
ascertain the relative age of the formations in which they occur;
secondly, the conditions under which these were deposited. The age of
the formation is determined by a comparison of the fossils it contains
with others of ascertained date; the conditions under which the rocks
were deposited, whether marine, lacustrine, or terrestrial, are readily
inferred from the nature of the fossils. The great artist, Leonardo da
Vinci, was the first to comprehend the real meaning of fossils, and
Bernard Palissy had the glory of being the first modern writer to
proclaim the true character of the fossilised remains which are met
with, in such numbers, in certain formations, both in France and Italy,
particularly in those of Touraine, where they had come more especially
under his notice. In his work on “Waters and Fountains,” published in
1580, he maintains that the _figured stones_, as fossils were then
called, were the remains of organised beings preserved at the bottom of
the sea. But the existence of marine shells upon the summits of
mountains had already arrested the attention of ancient authors. Witness
Ovid, who in Book XV. of the “Metamorphoses” tells us he had seen land
formed at the expense of the sea, and marine shells lying dead far from
the ocean; and more than that, an ancient anchor had been found on the
very summit of a mountain.

            “Vidi factas ex æquore terras,
    Et procul a pelago conchæ jacuere marinæ,
    Et vetus inventa est in montibus anchora summis.”

Ov., _Met._, Book xv.

The Danish geologist Steno, who published his principal works in Italy
about the middle of the seventeenth century, had deeply studied the
fossil shells discovered in that country. The Italian painter Scilla
produced in 1670 a Latin treatise on the fossils of Calabria, in which
he established the organic nature of fossil shells.

The eighteenth century gave birth to two very opposite theories as to
the origin of our globe--namely, the _Plutonian_ or igneous, and the
_Neptunian_ or aqueous theory. The Italian geologists gave a marked
impulse to the study of fossils, and the name of Vallisneri[1] may be
cited as the author to whom science is indebted for the earliest account
of the marine deposits of Italy, and of the most characteristic organic
remains which they contain. Lazzaro Moro[2] continued the studies of
Vallisneri, and the monk Gemerelli reduced to a complete system the
ideas of these two geologists, endeavouring to explain all the phenomena
as Vallisneri had wished, “without violence, without fiction, without
miracles.” Marselli and Donati both studied in a very scientific manner
the fossil shells of Italy, and in particular those of the Adriatic,
recognising the fact that they affected in their beds a regular and
constant order of superposition.[3]

  [1] Dei corpi marini, &c., 1721.

  [2] Sui crostaccei ed altri corpi marini che sè trovano sui monti,
      1740.

  [3] Consult Lyell’s “Principles of Geology” and the sixth edition of
      the “Elements,” with much new matter, for further information
      relative to the study of fossils during the last two centuries.

In France the celebrated Buffon gave, by his eloquent writings, great
popularity to the notions of the Italian naturalists concerning the
origin of fossil remains. In his admirable “Époques de la Nature” he
sought to prove that the shells found in great quantities buried in the
soil, and even on the tops of mountains, belonged, in reality, to
species not living in our days. But this idea was too novel not to find
objectors: it counted among its adversaries the bold philosopher who
might have been expected to adopt it with most ardour. Voltaire
attacked, with his jesting and biting criticism, the doctrines of the
illustrious innovator. Buffon insisted, reasonably enough, that the
presence of shells on the summit of the Alps was a proof that the sea
had at one time occupied that position. But Voltaire asserted that the
shells found on the Alps and Apennines had been thrown there by pilgrims
returning from Rome. Buffon might have replied to his opponent, by
pointing out whole mountains formed by the accumulation of these shells.
He might have sent him to the Pyrenees, where shells of marine origin
cover immense areas to a height of 6,600 feet above the present
sea-level. But his genius was averse to controversy; and the philosopher
of Ferney himself put an end to a discussion in which, perhaps, he would
not have had the best of the argument. “I have no wish,” he wrote, “to
embroil myself with Monsieur Buffon about shells.”

It was reserved for the genius of George Cuvier to draw from the study
of fossils the most wonderful results: it is the study of these remains,
in short, which, in conjunction with mineralogy, constitutes in these
days positive geology. “It is to fossils,” says the great Cuvier, “that
we owe the discovery of the true theory of the earth; without them we
should not have dreamed, perhaps, that the globe was formed at
successive epochs, and by a series of different operations. They alone,
in short, tell us with certainty that the globe has not always had the
same envelope; we cannot resist the conviction that they must have lived
on the surface of the earth before being buried in its depths. It is
only by analogy that we have extended to the primary formations the
direct conclusions which fossils furnish us with in respect to the
secondary formations; and if we had only unfossiliferous rocks to
examine, no one could maintain that the earth was not formed all at
once.”[4]

  [4] “Ossements Fossiles” (4to), vol. i., p. 29.

The method adopted by Cuvier for the reconstruction and restoration of
the fossil animals found in the plaster-quarries of Montmartre, at the
gates of Paris, has served as a model for all succeeding naturalists;
let us listen, then, to his exposition of the vast problem whose
solution he proposed to himself. “In my work on fossil bones,” he says,
“I propose to ascertain to what animals the osseous fragments belong; it
is seeking to traverse a road on which we have as yet only ventured a
few steps. An antiquary of a new kind, it seemed to me necessary to
learn both to restore these monuments of past revolutions, and to
decipher their meaning. I had to gather and bring together in their
primitive order the fragments of which they are composed; to reconstruct
the ancient beings to which these fragments belonged; to reproduce them
in their proportions and with their characteristics; to compare them,
finally, with others now living on the surface of the globe: an art at
present little known, and which supposes a science scarcely touched upon
as yet, namely, that of the laws which preside over the co-existence of
the forms of the several parts in organised beings. I must, then,
prepare myself for these researches by others, still more extended, upon
existing animals. A general review of actual creation could alone give a
character of demonstration to my account of these ancient inhabitants
of the world; but it ought, at the same time, to give me a great
collection of laws, and of relations not less demonstrable, thus forming
a body of new laws to which the whole animal kingdom could not fail to
find itself subject.”[5]

  [5] “Ossements Fossiles” (4to), vol. i., pp. 1, 2.

“When the sight of a few bones inspired me, more than twenty years ago,
with the idea of applying the general laws of comparative anatomy to the
reconstruction and determination of fossil species; when I began to
perceive that these species were not quite perfectly represented by
those of our days, which resembled them the most--I no longer doubted
that I trod upon a soil filled with spoils more extraordinary than any I
had yet seen, and that I was destined to bring to light entire races
unknown to the present world, and which had been buried for incalculable
ages at great depths in the earth.

“I had not yet given any attention to the published notices of these
bones, by naturalists who made no pretension to the recognition of their
species. To M. Vaurin, however, I owe the first intimation of the
existence of these bones, with which the gypsum-quarries swarm. Some
specimens which he brought me one day struck me with astonishment; I
learned, with all the interest the discovery could inspire me with, that
this industrious and zealous collector had already furnished some of
them to other collectors. Received by these amateurs with politeness, I
found in their collections much to confirm my hopes and heighten my
curiosity. From that time I searched in all the quarries with great care
for other bones, offering such rewards to the workmen as might awaken
their attention. I soon got together more than had ever been previously
collected, and after a few years I had nothing to desire in the shape of
materials. But it was otherwise with their arrangement, and with the
reconstruction of the skeleton, which could alone lead to any just idea
of the species.

“From the first moment of discovery I perceived that, in these remains,
the species were numerous. Soon afterwards I saw that they belonged to
many genera, and that the species of the different genera were nearly
the same size, so that size was likely rather to hinder than aid me.
Mine was the case of a man to whom had been given at random the
mutilated and imperfect remains of some hundreds of skeletons belonging
to twenty sorts of animals; it was necessary that each bone should find
itself alongside that to which it ought to be connected: it was almost
like a small resurrection, and I had not at my disposal the
all-powerful trumpet; but I had the immutable laws prescribed to living
beings as my guide; and at the voice of the anatomist each bone and each
part of a bone took its place. I have not expressions with which to
describe the pleasure I experienced in finding that, as soon as I
discovered the character of a bone, all the consequences of the
character, more or less foreseen, developed themselves in succession:
the feet were found conformable to what the teeth announced; the teeth
to that announced by the feet; the bones of the legs, of the thighs, all
those which ought to reunite these two extreme parts, were found to
agree as I expected; in a word, each species was reproduced, so to
speak, from only one of its elements.”[6]

  [6] “Ossements Fossiles,” vol. iv. (4to), p. 32.

While the Baron Cuvier was thus zealously prosecuting his inquiries in
France, assisted by many eminent fellow-labourers, what was the state of
geological science in the British Islands? About that same time, Dr.
William Smith, better known as “the father of English geology,” was
preparing, unaided, the first geological map of this country. Dr. Smith
was a native of Wiltshire, and a canal engineer in Somersetshire; his
pursuits, therefore, brought him in the midst of these hieroglyphics of
Nature. It was his practice, when travelling professionally, during many
years to consult masons, miners, wagoners, and agriculturists. He
examined the soil; and in the course of his inquiries he came to the
conclusion that the earth was not all of the same age; that the rocks
were arranged in layers, or strata, superimposed on each other in a
certain definite order, and that the strata, when of the same age, could
be identified by means of their organic remains. In 1794 he formed the
plan of his geological map, showing the superposition of the various
beds; for a quarter of a century did he pursue his self-allotted task,
which was at last completed, and in 1801 was published, being the first
attempt to construct a stratigraphical map.

Taking the men in the order of the objects of their investigation,
rather than in chronological order, brings before us the patient and
sagacious investigator to whom we are indebted for our knowledge of the
Silurian system. For many years a vast assemblage of broken and
contorted beds had been observed on the borders of North Wales,
stretching away to the east as far as Worcestershire, and to the south
into Gloucester, now rising into mountains, now sinking into valleys.
The ablest geologists considered them as a mere labyrinth of ruins,
whose order of succession and distinctive organic remains were entirely
unknown, “But a man came,” as M. Esquiros eloquently writes, “who threw
light upon this sublime confusion of elements.” Sir Roderick Impey
Murchison, then a young President of the Geological Society, had his
attention directed, as he himself informs us, to some of these beds on
the banks of the Wye. After seven years of unremitting labour, he was
rewarded by success. He established the fact that these sedimentary
rocks, penetrated here and there by eruptive masses of igneous origin,
formed a unique system, to which he gave the name of _Silurian_, because
the rocks which he considered the most typical of the whole were most
fully developed, charged with peculiar organic remains, in the land of
the ancient Silures, who so bravely opposed the Roman invaders of their
country. Many investigators have followed in Sir Roderick’s steps, but
few men have so nobly earned the honours and fame with which his name is
associated.

The success which attended Sir R. Murchison’s investigations soon
attracted the attention of other geologists. Professor Sedgwick examined
the older slaty strata, and succeeded in proving the position of the
Cambrian rocks to be at the base of the Silurian. Still it was reserved
for Sir William Logan, the Director of the Canadian Geological Survey,
to establish the fact that immense masses of gneissic formation lay at
the base of the Cambrian; and, by subsequent investigations, Sir
Roderick Murchison satisfied himself that this formation was not
confined to Canada, but was identical with the rocks termed by him
Fundamental Gneiss, which exist in enormous masses on the west coast of
Scotland, and which he proved to be the oldest stratified rocks in the
British Isles. Subsequently he demonstrated the existence of these same
Laurentian rocks in Bohemia and Bavaria, far beneath the Silurian rocks
of Barrande.

While Murchison and Sedgwick were prosecuting their inquiries into the
Silurian rocks, Hugh Miller and many others had their attention occupied
with the Old Red Sandstone--the Devonian of Sedgwick and
Murchison--which immediately overlies them. After a youth passed in
wandering among the woods and rocks of his native Cromarty, the day came
when Miller found himself twenty years of age, and, for the time, a
workman in a quarry. A hard fate he thought it at the time, but to him
it was the road to fame and success in life. The quarry in which he
laboured was at the bottom of a bay formed by the mouth of a river
opening to the south, a clear current of water on one side, as he
vividly described it, and a thick wood on the other. In this silent
spot, in the remote Highlands, a curious fossil fish of the Old Red
Sandstone was revealed to him; its appearance struck him with
astonishment; a fellow-workman named a spot where many such monuments of
a former world were scattered about; he visited the place, and became a
geologist and the historian of the “Old Red.” And what strange fantastic
forms did it afterwards fall to his lot to describe! “The figures on a
China vase or Egyptian obelisk,” he says, “differ less from the real
representation of the objects than the fossil fishes of the ‘Old Red’
differ from the living forms which now swim in our seas.”

The _Carboniferous Limestone_, which underlies the coal, the
_Coal-measures_ themselves, the _New Red Sandstone_, the _Lias_, and the
_Chalk_, have in their turn found their historians; but it would be
foreign to our object to dwell further here on these particular branches
of the subject.

Some few of the fossilised beings referred to resemble species still
found living, but the greater part belong to species which have become
altogether extinct. These fossil remains may constitute natural
families, none of the genera of which have survived. Such is the
_Pterodactyle_ among Pterosaurian reptiles; the _Ammonite_ among
Mollusca; the _Ichthyosaurus_ and the _Plesiosaurus_ among the
Enaliosaurian reptiles. At other times there are only extinct genera,
belonging to families of which there are still some genera now living,
as the genus _Palæoniscus_ among fishes. Finally, in Tertiary deposits,
we meet with some extinct species belonging to genera of our existing
fauna: the _Mammoth_, for example, of the youngest Tertiary deposits, is
an extinct species of the genus elephant.

Some fossils are terrestrial, like the gigantic Irish stag, _Cervus
Megaceros_, the snail or _Helix_; fluviatile or lacustrine, like the
_Planorbis_, the _Lymnæa_, the _Physa_, and the _Unio_; marine, or
inhabiting the sea exclusively, as the Cowry (_Cypræa_), and the Oyster,
(_Ostrea_).

Fossils are sometimes preserved in their natural state, or are but very
slightly changed. Such is the state of some of the bones extracted from
the more recent caves; such, also, is the condition of the insects found
enclosed in the fossil resins in which they have been preserved from
decomposition; and certain shells, found in recent and even in old
formations, such as the Jurassic and Cretaceous strata--in some of which
the shells retain their colours, as well as their brilliant pearly
lustre or nacre. At Trouville, in Normandy, in the Kimeridge strata,
magnificent _Ammonites_ are found in the clay and marl, all brilliant
with the colours of mother-of-pearl. In the Cretaceous beds at
Machéroménil, some species of _Ancyloceras_ and _Hamites_ are found
still covered with a nacre, displaying brilliant reflections of blue,
green, and red, and retaining an admirable lustre. At Glos, near
Liseaux, in the Coral Rag, not only the _Ammonites_, but the _Trigoniæ_
and _Aviculæ_ have preserved all their brilliant nacre. Sometimes these
remains are much changed, the organic matter having entirely
disappeared; it sometimes happens also, though rarely, that they become
petrified, that is to say, the external form is preserved, but the
original organic elements have wholly disappeared, and have been
replaced by foreign mineral substances--generally by silica or by
carbonate of lime.

[Illustration: Fig. 1.--Labyrinthodon pachygnathus and footmarks.]

Geology also enables us to draw very important conclusions from certain
fossil remains whose true nature was long misunderstood, and which,
under the name of _coprolites_, had given rise to much controversial
discussion. Coprolites are the petrified excrements of extinct fossil
animals. The study of these singular remains has thrown unexpected light
on the habits and physiological organisation of some of the great
antediluvian animals. Their examination has revealed the scales and
teeth of fishes, thus enabling us to determine the kind of food in which
the animals of the ancient world indulged: for example, the coprolites
of the great marine reptile which bears the name of _Ichthyosaurus_
contain the bones of other animals, together with the remains of the
vertebræ, or of the phalanges (paddle-bones) of other Ichthyosauri;
showing that this animal habitually fed on the flesh of its own species,
as many fishes, especially the more voracious ones, do in our days.

The imprints left upon mud or sand, which time has hardened and
transformed into sandstone, furnish to the geologist another series of
valuable indications. The reptiles of the ancient world, the turtles in
particular, have left upon the sands, which time has transformed into
blocks of stone, impressions which evidently represent the exact moulds
of the feet of those animals. These impressions have, sometimes, been
sufficient for naturalists to determine to what species the animal
belonged which thus left its impress on the wet ground. Some of these
exhibit tracks to which we shall have occasion to refer; others present
traces of the footprints of the great reptile known as the
_Labyrinthodon_ or _Cheirotherium_, whose footmarks slightly resemble
the impression made by the human hand (Fig. 1). Another well-known
impression, which has been left upon the sandstone of Corncockle Moor,
in Dumfriesshire, is supposed to be the impress of the foot of some
great fossil Turtle.

[Illustration: Fig. 2.--Impressions of rain-drops.]

We may be permitted to offer a short remark on this subject. The
historian and antiquary may traverse the battle-fields of the Greeks and
Romans, and search in vain for traces of those conquerors, whose armies
ravaged the world. Time, which has overthrown the monuments of their
victories, has also effaced the marks of their footsteps; and of the
many millions of men whose invasions have spread desolation throughout
Europe, not even a trace of a footprint is left. Those reptiles, on the
other hand, which crawled thousands of ages ago on the surface of our
planet when it was still in its infancy, have impressed on the soil
indelible proofs of their existence. Hannibal and his legions, the
barbarians and their savage hordes, have passed over the land without
leaving a material mark of their passage; while the poor turtle, which
dragged itself along the silent shores of the primitive seas, has
bequeathed to learned posterity the image and impression of a part of
its body. These imprints may be perceived as distinctly on the rocks, as
the traces left on moist sand or in newly-fallen snow by some animal
walking under our own eyes. What grave reflections should be awakened
within us at the sight of these blocks of hardened earth, which thus
carry back our thoughts to the early ages of the world! and how
insignificant seem the discoveries of the archæologist who throws
himself into ecstacies before some piece of Greek or Etruscan pottery,
when compared with these veritable antiquities of the earth!

The palæontologist (from παλαιος “ancient,” οντος “being,” λογος
“discourse”), who occupies himself with the study of animated beings
which have lived on the earth, takes careful account also of the sort of
moulds left by organised bodies in the fine sediment which has enveloped
them after death. Many organic beings have left no trace of their
existence in Nature, except their impressions, which we find perfectly
preserved in the sandstone and limestone, in marl or clay, and in the
coal-measures; and these moulds are sufficient to tell us the kind to
which the living animals belonged. We shall, no doubt, astonish our
readers when we tell them that there are blocks of sandstone with
distinct impressions of drops of rain which had fallen upon sea-shores
of the ancient world. The impressions of these rain-drops, made upon the
sands, were preserved by desiccation; and these same sands, being
transformed by subsequent hardening into solid and coherent sandstones,
their impressions have been thus preserved to the present day. Fig. 2
represents impressions of this kind upon the sandstone of Connecticut
river in America, which have been reproduced from the block itself by
photography. In a depression of the granitic rocks of Massachusetts and
Connecticut, the red sandstone occupies an area of a hundred and fifty
miles in length from north to south, and from five to ten miles in
breadth. “On some shales of the finest texture,” says Sir Charles Lyell,
“impressions of rain-drops may be seen, and casts of them in the
argillaceous sandstones.” The same impressions occur in the recent red
mud of the Bay of Fundy. In addition to these, the undulations left by
the passage of the waters of the sea, over the sands of the primitive
world, are preserved by the same physical agency. Traces of undulations
of this kind have been found in the neighbourhood of Boulogne-sur-Mer,
and elsewhere. Similar phenomena occur in a still more striking manner
in some sandstone-quarries worked at Chalindrey (Haute-Marne). The
strata there present traces of the same kind over a large area, and
along with them impressions of the excrements of marine worms. One may
almost imagine oneself to be standing on the sea-shore while the tide is
ebbing.


CHEMICAL AND NEBULAR HYPOTHESES OF THE GLOBE.

Among the innumerable hypotheses which human ingenuity has framed to
explain the phenomena which surround the globe, the two which have found
most ready acceptance have been termed respectively the CHEMICAL, and
the NEBULAR or mechanical hypothesis. By the first the solid crust is
supposed to have contained abundance of potassium, sodium, calcium,
magnesium, and other metallic elements. The percolating waters, coming
in contact with these substances, produce combinations resulting in the
conversion of the metals into their oxides--potash, soda, lime, and
magnesia--all of which enter largely into the composition of volcanic
rocks. The second hypothesis involves the idea of an original
incandescent mass of vapour, succeeded by a great and still existing
central fire.

This idea of a great central fire is a very ancient hypothesis: admitted
by Descartes, developed by Leibnitz, and advocated by Buffon, it is
supposed to account for many phenomena otherwise inexplicable; and it is
confirmed by a crowd of facts, and adopted, or at least not opposed, by
the leading authorities of the age. Dr. Buckland makes it the basis of
his Bridgewater treatise. Herschel, Hind, Murchison, Lyell, Phillips,
and other leading English astronomers and geologists give a cautious
adhesion to the doctrine. The following are some of the principal
arguments adduced in support of the hypothesis, for, in the nature of
the proofs it admits of, it can be no more.

When we descend into the interior of a mine, it is found that the
temperature rises in an appreciable manner, and that it increases with
the depth below the surface.

The high temperature of the waters in Artesian wells when these are very
deep, testifies to a great heat of the interior of the earth.

The thermal waters which issue from the earth--of which the temperature
sometimes rises to 100° Centigrade and upwards--as, for instance, the
Geysers of Iceland--furnish another proof in support of the hypothesis.

Modern volcanoes are said to be a visible demonstration of the existence
of central heat. The heated gases, the liquid lava, the flames which
escape from their craters, all tend to prove sufficiently that the
interior of the globe has a temperature prodigiously elevated as
compared with that at its surface.

The disengagement of gases and burning vapours through the accidental
fissures in the crust, which accompany earthquakes, still further tends
to establish the existence of a great heat in the interior of the globe.

We have already said that the temperature of the globe increases about
one degree for every sixty or seventy feet of depth beneath its surface.
The correctness of this observation has been verified in a great number
of instances--indeed, to the greatest depth to which man has penetrated,
and been able to make use of the thermometer. Now, as we know exactly
the length of the radius of the terrestrial sphere, it has been
calculated from this progression of temperature, supposing it to be
regular and uniform, that the centre of the globe ought to have at the
present time a mean temperature of 195,000° Centigrade. No matter could
preserve its solid state at this excessive temperature; it follows,
then, that the centre of the globe, and all parts near the centre, must
be in a permanent state of fluidity.

The works of Werner, of Hutton, of Leopold von Buch, of Humboldt, of
Cordier, W. Hopkins, Buckland, and some other English philosophers, have
reduced this hypothesis to a theory, on which has been based, to a
considerable extent, the whole science of modern geology; although,
properly speaking, and in the popular acceptation of the term, that
science only deals with the solid crust of the earth.

The nebular theory thus embraces the whole solar system, and, by
analogy, the universe. It assumes that the SUN was originally a mass of
incandescent matter, that vast body being brought into a state of
evolution by the action of laws to which the Creator, in His divine
wisdom, has subjected all matter. In consequence of its immense
expansion and attenuation, the exterior zone of vapour, expanding beyond
the sphere of attraction, is supposed to have been thrown off by
centrifugal force. This zone of vapour, which may be supposed at one
time to have resembled the rings of Saturn, would in time break up into
several masses, and these masses coalescing into globes, would (by the
greater power of attraction which they would assume as consolidated
bodies) revolve round the sun, and, from mechanical considerations,
would also revolve with a rotary motion on their own axes.

This doctrine is applied to all the planets, and assumes each to have
been in a state of incandescent vapour, with a central incandescent
nucleus. As the cooling went on, each of these bodies may be supposed to
have thrown off similar masses of vapour, which, by the operation of the
same laws, would assume the rotary state, and, as satellites, revolve
round the parent planet. Such, in brief, was the grand conception of
Laplace; and surely it detracts nothing from our notions of the
omnipotence of the Creator that it initiates the creation step by step,
and under the laws to which matter is subjected, rather than by the
direct fiat of the Almighty. The hypothesis assumes that as the vaporous
mass cooled by the radiation of heat into space, the particles of matter
would approximate and solidify.

That the figure of the earth is such as a very large mass of matter in a
state of fluidity would assume from a state of rotation, seems to be
admitted, thus corroborating the speculations of Leibnitz, that the
earth is to be looked on as a heated fluid globe, cooled, and still
cooling at the surface, by radiation of its superfluous heat into space.
Mr. W. Hopkins[7] has put forth some strong but simple reasons in
support of a different theory; although he does not attempt to solve the
problem, but leaves the reader to form his own conclusions. As far as we
have been able to follow his reasoning we gather from it that:--

  [7] See _Phil. Transactions_, 1839-40-42; also, _Quarterly Journal of
      the Geological Society_, vol. viii., p. 56.

If the earth were a fluid mass cooled by radiation, the cooled parts
would, by the laws of circulating fluids, descend towards the centre,
and be replaced on the surface by matter at a higher temperature.

The consolidation of such a mass would, therefore, be accompanied by a
struggle for superiority between pressure and temperature, both of which
would be at their maximum at the centre of the mass.

At the surface, it would be a question of rapidity of cooling, by
radiation, as compared with the internal condition--for comparing which
relations we are without data; but on the result of which depends
whether such a body would most rapidly solidify at the surface by
radiation, or at the centre by pressure.

The effect of the first would be solidification at the surface, followed
by condensation at the centre through pressure. There would thus be two
masses, a spherical fluid nucleus, and a spherical shell or envelope,
with a large zone of semi-fluid, pasty matter between, continually
changing its temperature as its outer or inner surface became converted
to the solid state.

If pressure, on the other hand, gained the victory, the centre would
solidify before the circulation of the heated matter had ceased; and the
solidifying process would proceed through a large portion of the globe,
and even approach the surface before that would become solid. In other
words, solidification would proceed from the centre until the
diminishing power of pressure was balanced by radiation, when the
gradual abstraction of heat would allow the particles to approximate and
become solid.

The terrestrial sphere may thus be a solid indurated mass at the centre,
with a solid stony crust at the surface, and a shifting viscous, but
daily-decreasing, mass between the two; a supposition which the
diminished and diminishing frequency and magnitude of volcanic and other
eruptive convulsions seem to render not improbable.

It is not to be supposed that amongst the various hypotheses of which
the cosmogony of the world has been the object, a literal acceptation of
the scriptural account finds no defenders among men of science. “Why,”
asks one of these writers,[8] after some scornful remarks upon the
geologists and their science--“why an omnipotent Creator should have
called into being a gaseous-granite nebulous world, only to have to cool
it down again, consisting as it does of an endless variety of
substances, should even have been supposed to be originally constituted
of the matter of granite alone, for nothing else was provided by the
theory, nobody can rationally explain. How the earth’s centre now could
be liquid fire with its surface solid and cold and its seas not boiling
caldrons, has never been attempted to be accounted for. How educated
gentlemen, engaged in scientific investigations, ever came to accept
such a monstrously stupid mass of absurdities as deductions of
‘science,’ and put them in comparison with the rational account of the
creation given by Moses, is more difficult to understand than even this
vague theory itself, which it is impossible to describe.

  [8] “Fresh Springs of Truth.” R. Griffin and Co.

“Of the first creation of the chaotic world,” the same writer goes on to
say, “or the material elements, before they were shaped into their
present forms, we can scarce have the most vague conception. All our
experience relates to their existing conditions. But knowing somewhat of
the variety of the constituent elements and their distinct properties,
by which they manifest their existence to us, we cannot conceive of
their creation without presupposing a Divine wisdom, and--if I may say
so, with all reverence, and only to suit our human notions--a Divine
ingenuity,” and he follows for six days the operations as described by
Moses, with a running comment. When light is created, the conception of
the work becomes simpler to our minds. Its least manifestation would
suffice at once to dispel darkness, and yet how marvellous is the light!
In the second day’s work the firmament of heaven is opened; the expanse
of the air between the heavens and the earth, dividing the waters above
from the waters below, is the work recorded as performed. Not till the
third day commence the first geological operations. The waters of the
earth are gathered together into seas, and the dry land is made to
appear. It is now that we can imagine that the formation of the primary
strata commenced, while by some of the internal forces of matter the
earth was elevated and stood above the waters.

Immediately the dry land is raised above and separated from the waters
the fiat goes forth, “Let the earth _bring forth_ grass, and herb and
tree;” vegetable life begins to exist, and the world is first decorated
with its beauteous flora, with all its exquisite variety of forms and
brilliancy of colouring, with which not even Solomon in all his glory
can compare. In like manner, on the sixth day the earth is commanded to
bring forth land-animals--the living creature “after his kind,” cattle
and creeping thing, and beast of the earth, “after his kind;” and last
of all, but on the same day, man is created, and made the chief and
monarch of God’s other living creatures--for that is “man’s place in
Nature.” “Let us now see,” he continues, “how this history came to be
discredited by the opposition of a falsely so-called ‘science’ of
geology, that, while spared by our theologians, has since pulled itself
to pieces. The first step in the false inductions geology made arose
from the rash deduction, that the order in which the fossil remains of
organic being were found deposited in the various strata necessarily
determined the order of their creation; and the next error arose from
blindly rushing to rash conclusions, and hasty generalisation from a
very limited number of facts, and the most imperfect investigations.
There were also (and, indeed, are still) some wild dogmatisms as to the
time necessary to produce certain geologic formations; but the
absurdities of science culminated when it adopted from Laplace the
irrational and unintelligible theory of a _natural_ origin for the world
from a nebula of gaseous granite, intensely hot, and supposed to be
gradually cooled while gyrating senselessly in space.”

In this paper the writer does not attempt to deal with the various
phenomena of volcanoes, earthquakes, hot springs, and other matters
which are usually considered as proofs of great internal heat. Mr. Evan
Hopkins, C.E., F.G.S., is more precise if less eloquent. He shows that,
in tropical countries, plains of gravel may in a day be converted into
lagoons and marshes; that by the fall of an avalanche rivers have been
blocked up, which, bursting their banks, have covered many square miles
of fertile country with several feet of mud, sand, and gravel. “Two
thousand four hundred years ago,” he says, “Nineveh flourished in all
its grandeur, yet it is now buried in oblivion, and its site overwhelmed
with sand. Look at old Tyre, once the queen of cities and mistress of
the sea. She was in all her pride two thousand four hundred and forty
years ago. We now see but a bare rock in the sea, on which fishermen
spread their nets! A thousand years ago, according to Icelandic
histories, Greenland was a fertile land in the south, and supported a
large population. Iceland at that period was covered with forests of
birch and fir, and the inhabitants cultivated barley and other grain. We
may, therefore, conclude, with these facts before us, that there is no
necessity to assign myriads of ages to terrestrial changes, as assumed
by geologists, as they can be accounted for by means of alterations
effected during a few thousand years, for the surface of the earth is
ever changing.

“Grant geological speculators,” Mr. Hopkins continues, “a few millions
of centuries, with a command over the agencies of Nature to be brought
into operation when and how they please, and they think they can form a
world with every variety of rock and vegetation, and even transform a
worm into a man! Yet the wisest of our philosophers would be puzzled if
called upon to explain why fluids become spheres, as dew-drops; why
carbonate of lime acquires in solidifying from a liquid the figure of an
obtuse rhomboihedron, silica of a six-sided prism; and why oxygen and
hydrogen gases produce both _fire_ and _water_. And what do they gain,”
he proceeds to ask, “by carrying back the history of the world to these
myriads of centuries? Do they, by the extension of the period to
infinity, explain how the ‘_Original_’ materials were created? But,” he
adds, “geologists are by no means agreed in their assumed geological
periods! The so-called glacial period has been computed by some to be
equal to about eighty-three thousand years, and by others at even as
much as twelve hundred and eighty millions of years! Were we to ask for
a _demonstrative proof_ of any given deposit being more than four or
five thousand years old, they could not give it. Where is Babylon, the
glory of the kingdoms? Look at Thebes, and behold its colossal columns,
statues, temples, obelisks, and palaces desolated; and yet those great
cities flourished within the last three thousand years. Even Pompeii and
Herculaneum were all but lost to history! What,” he asks after these
brief allusions to the past--“what, as a matter of fact, have geologists
discovered, as regards the great terrestrial changes, more than was
known to Pythagoras and the ancient philosophers who taught, two
thousand three hundred and fifty years ago, ‘that the surface of the
earth was ever changing--solid land converted into sea, sea changed into
dry land, marine shells lying far distant from the deep, valleys
excavated by running water, and floods washing down hills into the
sea?’”

In reference to the argument of the vast antiquity of the earth, founded
on elevation of coasts at a given rate of upheaval, he adduces many
facts to show that upheavals of equal extent have occurred almost within
the memory of man. Two hundred and fifty years ago Sir Francis Drake,
with his fleet, sailed into Albemarle Sound through Roanoke Outlet,
which is now a sand-bank above the reach of the highest tides. Only
seventy years ago it was navigable by vessels drawing twelve feet of
water. The whole American coast, both on the Atlantic and Pacific, have
undergone great changes within the last hundred years. The coast of
South America has, in some places, been upheaved twenty feet in the last
century; in others, a few hundred miles distant, it has been depressed
to an equal extent. A transverse section from Rio Santa Cruz to the base
of the Cordilleras, and another in the Rio <DW64>, in Patagonia, showed
that the whole sedimentary series is of recent origin. Scattered over
the whole at various heights above the sea, from thirteen hundred feet
downwards, are found recent shells of _littoral_ species of the
neighbouring coast--denoting upheavals which might have been effected
during the last three thousand years.

Coming nearer home, he shows that in 1538 the whole coast of Pozzuoli,
near Naples, was raised twenty feet in a single night. Then, with regard
to more compact crystalline or semi-crystalline rocks, no reliable
opinion can be formed on mere inspection. Two blocks of marble may
appear precisely alike, though formed at different periods. A crystal of
carbonate of lime, formed in a few years, would be found quite perfect,
and as compact as a crystal formed during many centuries. Nothing can be
deduced from the process of petrifaction and crystallisation, unless
they enclose relics of a known period. At San Filippo, a solid mass of
limestone thirty feet thick has been formed in about twenty years. A
hard stratum of travertine a foot thick is obtained, from these thermal
springs, in the course of four months. Nor can geologists demonstrate
that the Amiens deposits, in which the flint-implements occur, are more
than three or four thousand years old.

The causes of these changes and mutations are referred by some persons
to floods, or to pre-Adamite convulsions, whereas the cause is in
constant operation; they are due to an invisible and subtle power which
pervades the air, the ocean, and the rocks below--in which all are
wrapped and permeated--which is universally present, namely,
magnetism--a power always in operation, always in a state of activity
and tension. It has an attractive power towards the surface of the
earth, as well as a directive action from pole to pole. “It is, indeed,”
he adds, emphatically, “the _terrestrial gravitation_. Magnetic needles
freely suspended show its meridional or directive polar force, and that
the force converges at two opposite parts, which are bounded by the
Antarctic and Arctic circles.”

This polar force, like a stream, is constantly moving from pole to pole;
and experiment proves that this movement is from the South Pole to the
North. “Hence the various terrestrial substances, solids and fluids,
through which this subtle and universal power permeates, are controlled,
propelled, and modified over the entire surface of our globe, commencing
at the south and dissolving at the north. Thus, all terrestrial matter
moves towards the Arctic region, and finally disappears by dissolution
and absorption, to be renewed again and again in the Antarctic Sea to
the end of time.”

In order to prove that the north polar basin is the receptacle of the
final dissolution of all terrestrial substances, Mr. Hopkins quotes the
Gulf Stream. Bottles, tropical plants, and wrecks cast into the sea in
the South Atlantic, are carried to Greenland in a comparatively short
time. The great _tidal_ waves commence at the fountain-head in the
Antarctic circle, impinge against the south coast of Tierra del Fuego,
New Zealand, and Tasmania, and are then propelled northward in a series
of undulations. The South Atlantic stream, after doubling the Cape of
Good Hope, moves towards the Guinea coast, bends towards the Caribbean
Sea, producing the trade winds; again leaves Florida as the Gulf Stream,
and washes the coasts of Greenland and Norway, and finally reaches the
north polar basin.

Again the great polar force shows itself in the arrangement of the
mineral structure below. In all the primary rocks in every quarter of
the globe where they have been examined, its action is recognised in
giving to the crystalline masses--granites and their laminated
elongations--a polar grain and vertical cleavage. “Had it been possible
to see our globe stripped of its sedimentary deposits and its oceanic
covering, we should see it like a gigantic melon, with a uniform grain
extending from pole to pole.” This structure appears to give polarity to
earthquakes--thermal waters and earthquakes--which are all traceable in
the direction of the polar grain or cleavage from north to south.

In England, for instance, thermal and saline springs are traceable from
Bath, through Cheltenham, to Dudley. In Central France, mineral springs
occur in lines, more or less, north and south. All the known
salt-springs in South America occur in meridional bands. Springs of
chloride of sodium in the Eastern Cordilleras stretch from Pinceima to
the Llanoes de Meta, a distance of 200 miles. The most productive
metalliferous deposits are found in meridional bands. The watery
volcanoes in South America are generally situated along the lines of the
meridional splits and the secondary eruptive pores on the transverse
fractures. The sudden ruptures arising locally from increasing tension
of the polar force, and the rapid expansion of the generated gases,
produce a vibratory jar in the rocky structure below, which being
propagated along the planes of the polar cleavage, gives rise to great
superficial oscillations, and thus causes earthquakes and subterranean
thunder for thousands of miles, from south to north.

In 1797, the district round the volcano of Tunguraqua in Quito, during
one of the great meridional shocks, experienced an undulating movement,
which lasted upwards of four minutes, and this was propagated to the
shores of the Caribbean Sea.

All these movements demonstrated, according to Mr. Hopkins, that the
land as well as the ocean moves from the south pole and north pole, and
that the magnetic power has a tendency to proceed from pole to pole in a
_spiral_ path from south-east to north-west, a movement which produces
an apparent change in the equinoxes, or the outer section of the plane
of the ecliptic with the equator, a phenomenon known to astronomers as
the precession of the equinoxes.

Such is a very brief summary of the arguments by which Mr. Evan Hopkins
maintains the literal correctness of the Mosaic account of the creation,
and attempts to show that all the facts discovered by geologists may
have occurred in the ages included in the Mosaic chronology.

That the mysterious power of terrestrial magnetism can perform all that
he claims for it, we can perhaps admit. But how does this explain the
succession of Silurian, Old Red Sandstone, Carboniferous and other
strata, up to the Tertiary deposits, with their fossils, each differing
in character from those of the preceding series? That these were
successive creations admits of no doubt, and while it is undeniable that
the fiat of the Creator could readily produce all these phenomena, it
may reasonably be asked if it is probable that all these myriads of
organic beings, whose remains serve as records of their existence, were
created only to be immediately destroyed.

Again, does not the author of the “Principles of Terrestrial Physics”
prove too much? He admits that 3,000 years ago the climate of England
was tropical: he does not deny that a subsequent period of intense cold
intervened, 2,550 years ago. He admits historical records, and 2,350
years ago Pythagoras constructed his cosmography of the world, which has
never been seriously impugned; and yet he has no suspicion that
countries so near to his own had changed their climates first from
tropical to glacial, and back again to a temperate zone. It is not
reasonable to believe this parable.

The school of philosophy generally considered to be the most advanced in
modern science has yet another view of cosmogony, of which we venture to
give a brief outline. Space is infinite, says the exponent of this
system,[9] for wherever in imagination we erect a boundary, we are
compelled to think of space as existing beyond it. The starry heavens
proclaim that it is not entirely void; but the question remains, are the
vast regions which surround the stars, and across which light is
propagated, absolutely empty? No. Modern science, while it rejects the
notion of the luminiferous particles of the old philosophy, has cogent
proofs of the existence of a luminiferous ether with definite mechanical
properties. It is infinitely more attenuated, but more solid than gas.
It resembles jelly rather than air, and if not co-extensive with space,
it extends as far as the most distant star the telescope reveals to us;
it is the vehicle of their light in fact; it takes up their molecular
tremors and conveys them with inconceivable rapidity to our organs of
vision. The splendour of the firmament at night is due to this
vibration. If this ether has a boundary, masses of ponderable matter may
exist beyond it, but they could emit no light. Dark suns may burn there,
metals may be heated to fusion in invisible furnaces, planets may be
molten amid intense darkness; for the loss of heat being simply the
abstraction of molecular motion by the ether, where this medium is
absent no cooling could take place.

  [9] Professor Tyndall in _Fortnightly Review_.

This, however, does not concern us; as far as our knowledge of space
extends, we are to conceive of it as the holder of this luminiferous
ether, through which the fixed stars are interspersed at enormous
distances apart. Associated with our planet we have a group of dark
planetary masses revolving at various distances around it, each rotating
on its axis; and, connected with them, their moons. Was space furnished
at once, by the fiat of Omnipotence, with these burning orbs? The man of
science should give no answer to this question: but he has better
materials to guide him than anybody else, and can clearly show that the
present state of things _may_ be derivative. He can perhaps assign
reasons which render it probable that it _is derivative_. The law of
gravitation enunciated by Newton is, that every particle of matter in
the universe attracts every other particle with a force which diminishes
as the square of the distance increases. Under this law a stone falls to
the ground, and heat is produced by the shock; meteors plunge into the
atmosphere and become incandescent; showers of such doubtless fall
incessantly upon the sun, and were it stopped in its orbit, the earth
would rush towards the sun, developing heat in the collision (according
to the calculations of MM. Joule, Mayer, Helmholtz, and Thomson), equal
to the combustion of five thousand worlds of solid coal. In the
attraction of gravity, therefore, acting upon this luminous matter, we
have a source of heat more powerful than could be derived from any
terrestrial combustion.

To the above conception of space we must add that of its being in a
continual state of tremor. The sources of vibration are the ponderable
masses of the universe. Our own planet is an aggregate of solids,
liquids, and gases. On closer examination, these are found to be
composed of still more elementary parts: the water of our rivers is
formed by the union, in definite proportions, of two gases, oxygen and
hydrogen. So, likewise, our chalk hills are formed by a combination of
carbon, oxygen, and calcium; elements which in definite proportions form
chalk. The flint found within that chalk is compounded of oxygen and
silicon, and our ordinary clay is for the most part formed by a union
of silicon, oxygen, and aluminum. By far the greater part of the earthy
crust is thus compounded of a few elementary substances.

Such is Professor Tyndall’s view of the universe, rising incidentally
out of his theory of heat, his main object being to elucidate his theory
of heat and light.


MODIFICATIONS OF THE SURFACE OF THE GLOBE.

As a consequence of the hypothesis of central heat, it is admitted that
our planet has been agitated by a series of local disturbances; that is
to say, by ruptures of its solid crust occurring at more or less distant
intervals. These partial revolutions at the surface are supposed to have
been produced, as we shall have occasion to explain, by upheavals or
depressions of the solid crust, resulting from the fluidity of the
central parts, and by the cooling down of the external crust of the
globe.

Almost all bodies, in passing from a liquid to a solid state, are
diminished in size in the process. In molten metals which resume the
solid state by cooling, this diminution amounts to about a tenth of
their volume; but the decrease in size is not equal throughout the whole
mass. Hence, as a result of the solidification of the internal parts of
the globe, the outer envelope would be too large; and would no longer
fit the inner sphere, which had contracted in cooling. Cracks and
hollows occur under such circumstances, even in small masses, and the
effect of converting such a vast body as the earth from a liquid, or
rather molten condition, to a solid state, may be imagined. As the
interior became solid and concrete by cooling, furrows, corrugations,
and depressions in the external crust of the globe would occur, causing
great inequalities in its surface; producing, in short, what are now
called _chains of mountains_.

At other times, in lieu of furrows and irregularities, the solid crust
has become ruptured, producing fissures and fractures in the outer
envelope, sometimes of immense extent. The liquid substances contained
in the interior of the globe, with or without the action of the gases
they enclose, escape through these openings; and, accumulating on the
surface, become, on cooling and consolidating, _mountains_ of various
heights.

It would also happen, and always from the same cause, namely, from the
internal contraction caused by the unequal cooling of the globe, that
minor fissures would be formed in the earth’s crust; incandescent liquid
matter would be afterwards injected into these fissures, filling them
up, and forming in the rocky crust those long narrow lines of foreign
substances which we call _dykes_.

Finally, it would occasionally happen, that in place of molten matter,
such as granite or metalliferous compounds, escaping through these
fractures and fissures in the globe, actual rivers of boiling water,
abundantly charged with various mineral salts (that is to say, with
silicates, and with calcareous and magnesian compounds), would also
escape, since the elements of water would be abundant in the
incandescent mass. Added to these the chemical and mechanical action of
the atmosphere, of rain, rivers, and the sea, have all a tendency to
destroy the hardest rocks. The mineral salts and other foreign
substances, entering into combination with those already present in the
waters of the sea, and separating at a subsequent period from these
waters, would be thrown down, and thus constitute extensive
deposits--that is to say, _sedimentary formations_. These became, on
consolidation, the _sedimentary rocks_.

The furrows, corrugations, and fractures in the terrestrial crust, which
so changed the aspect of the surface, and for the time displaced the
sea-basins, would be followed by periods of calm. During these periods,
the débris, torn by the movement of the waters from certain points of
the land, would be transported to other parts of the globe by the
oceanic currents. These accumulated heterogeneous materials, when
deposited at a later period, would ultimately constitute
formations--that is, _transported or drifted rocks_.

We have ventured to explain some of the theories by which it is sought
to explain the cosmography of the world. But our readers must understand
that all such speculations are, of necessity, purely hypothetical.

In conformity with the preceding considerations we shall divide the
mineral substances of which the earth is composed into three general
groups, under the following heads:--

1. _Eruptive Rocks._--Crystalline, like the second, but formed at all
geological periods by the irruption or intrusion of the liquid matter
occupying the interior of our globe through all the pre-existing rocks.

2. _Crystalline Rocks._--That portion of the terrestrial crust which was
primarily liquid, owing to the heat of the globe, but which solidified
at the period of its first cooling down; forming the masses known as
Fundamental Gneiss, and Laurentian, &c.

3. _Sedimentary Rocks._--Consisting of various mineral substances
deposited by the water of the sea, such as silica, the carbonates of
lime and magnesia, &c.

The mineral masses which constitute the _sedimentary rocks_ form beds,
or _strata_, having among themselves a constant order of superposition
which indicates their relative age. The mineral structure of these beds,
and the remains of the organised beings they contain, impress on them
characters which enable us to distinguish each bed from that which
precedes and follows it.

It does not follow, however, that all these beds are met with, regularly
superimposed, over the whole surface of the globe; under such
circumstances geology would be a very simple science, only requiring the
use of the eyes. In consequence of the frequent eruptions of granite,
porphyry, serpentine, trachyte, basalt, and lava, these beds are often
broken, cut off, and replaced by others.

_Denudation_ has been another fruitful source of change. Professor
Ramsay[10] shows, in the “Memoirs of the Geological Survey,” that beds
once existed above a great part of the Mendip Hills to the extent of at
least 6,000 feet, which have been removed by the denuding agency of the
sea; while in South Wales and the adjacent country, a series of
Palaeozoic rocks, eleven thousand feet in thickness, has been removed by
the action of water. In fact, every foot of the earth now forming the
dry land is supposed to have been at one time under water--to have
emerged, and to have been again submerged, and subjected to the
destructive action of the ocean. At certain points a whole series of
sedimentary deposits, and often several of them, have been removed by
this cause, known by geologists as _Denudation_. The regular series of
rock formations are, in fact, rarely found in unbroken order. It is only
by combining the collected observations of the geologists of all
countries, that we are enabled to arrange, according to their relative
ages, the several beds composing the solid terrestrial crust as they
occur in the following Table, which proceeds from the surface towards
the centre, in descending order:--

  [10] “Memoirs of the Geological Survey of Great Britain,” vol. i., p.
       297.

ORDER OF STRATIFICATION.

  Quaternary Epoch        Modern Period.

                        { Pliocene Period.
  Tertiary Epoch        { Miocene Period.
                        { Eocene Period.

                        { Cretaceous Rocks.
  Secondary Epoch       { Jurassic Rocks.
                        { Triassic Rocks.

                        { Permian Rocks.
  Primary Epoch         { Carboniferous Rocks.
                        { Devonian Rocks.
                        { Silurian Rocks.

  Metamorphic Series    { Cambrian Rocks.
                        { Fundamental Gneiss, or Laurentian.

Under these heads we propose to examine the successive transformations
to which the earth has been subjected in reaching its present condition;
in other words, we propose, both from an historical and descriptive
point of view, to take a survey of the several _epochs_ which can be
distinguished in the gradual formation of the earth, corresponding with
the formation of the great groups of rocks enumerated in the preceding
table. We shall describe the living creatures which have peopled the
earth at each of these epochs, and which have disappeared, from causes
which we shall also endeavour to trace. We shall describe the plants
belonging to each great phase in the history of the globe. At the same
time, we shall not pass over entirely in silence the rocks deposited by
the waters, or thrown up by eruption during these periods; we propose,
also, to give a summary of the mineralogical characters and of the
fossils characteristic of, or peculiar to each formation. What we
propose, in short, is to give a history of the formation of the globe,
and a description of the principal rocks which actually compose it; and
to take also a rapid glance at the several generations of animals and
plants which have succeeded and replaced each other on the earth, from
the very beginning of organic life up to the time of man’s appearance.




ERUPTIVE ROCKS.


Nothing is more difficult than to write a chronological history of the
revolutions and changes to which the earth has been subjected during the
ages which preceded the historic times. The phenomena which have
concurred to fashion its enormous mass, and to give to it its present
form and structure, are so numerous, so varied, and sometimes so nearly
simultaneous in their action, that the records defy the powers of
observation to separate them. The deposition of the sedimentary rocks
has been subject to interruption during all ages of the world. Violent
igneous eruptions have penetrated the sedimentary beds, elevating them
in some places, depressing them in others, and in all cases disturbing
their order of superposition, and ejecting masses of crystalline rocks
from the incandescent centre to the surface. Amidst these perturbations,
sometimes stretching over a vast extent of country, anything like a
rigorous chronological record becomes impossible, for the phenomena are
so continuous and complex that it is no longer possible to distinguish
the fundamental from the accidental and secondary causes.

In order to render the subject somewhat clearer, the great facts
relative to the progressive formation of the terrestrial globe are
divided into epochs, during which the sedimentary rocks were formed in
due order in the seas of the ancient world, the mud and sand in which
were deposited day by day. Again, even where the line of demarcation is
clearest between one formation and another, it must not be supposed
there is any sharply defined line of separation between them. On the
contrary, one system gradually merges into that which succeeds it. The
rocks and fossils of the one gradually disappear, to be succeeded by
those of the overlying series in the regular order of succession. The
newly-made strata became the cemetery of the myriads of beings which
lived and died in the bosom of the ocean. The rocks thus deposited were
called _Neptunian_ by the older geologists.

But while the seas of each epoch were thus building up, grain by grain,
and bed by bed, the new formation out of the ruins of the older, other
influences were at work, sometimes, to all appearance, impeding
sometimes advancing, the great work. The _Plutonic rocks_--the _igneous
or eruptive rocks_ of modern geology, as we have seen above, were the
great disturbing agents, and these disturbances occur in every age of
the earth’s history. We shall have occasion to speak of these eruptive
formations while describing the phenomena of the several epochs. But it
is thought that the narrative will be made clearer and more instructive
by grouping this class of phenomena into one chapter, which we place at
the commencement, inasmuch as the constant reference to the eruptive
rocks will thus be rendered more intelligible. To these are now added
the section “Metamorphic Rocks,” from the fifth edition of the French
work.

The rocks which issued from the centre of the earth in a state of fusion
are found associated or interstratified with masses of every epoch, more
especially with those of the more ancient strata. The formations which
these rocks have originated possess great interest; first, because they
enter into the composition of the terrestrial crust; secondly, because
they have impressed on its surface, in the course of their eruption,
some of the characteristics of its configuration and structure; finally,
because, by their means, the metals which are the objects of human
industry have been brought nearer to the surface. According to the order
of their appearance, or as nearly so as can be ascertained, we shall
class the eruptive rocks in two groups:--

I. The _Volcanic Rocks_, of comparatively recent origin, which have
given rise to a succession of trachytes, basalts, and modern lavas.
These, being of looser texture, are presumed to have cooled more rapidly
than the Plutonic rocks, and at or near the surface.

II. The _Plutonic Rocks_, of older date, which are exemplified in the
various kinds of granites, the syenites, the protogines, porphyries, &c.
These differ from the volcanic rocks in their more compact crystalline
structure, in the absence of tufa, as well as of pores and cavities;
from which it is inferred that they were formed at considerable depths
in the earth, and that they have cooled and crystallised slowly under
great pressure.


PLUTONIC ERUPTIONS.

The great eruptions of _ancient granite_ are supposed to have occurred
during the primary epoch, and chiefly in the carboniferous period. They
present themselves sometimes in considerable masses, for the earth’s
crust being still thin and permeable, it was prepared as it were for
absorbing the granite masses. In consequence of its weak cohesion, the
primitive crust of the globe would be rent and penetrated in all
directions, as represented in the following section of Cape Wrath, in
Sutherlandshire, in which the veins of granite ramify in a very
irregular manner across the gneiss and hornblende-schist, there
associated with it. (Fig. 3.)

[Illustration: Fig. 3.--Veins of granite traversing the gneiss of Cape
Wrath.]

Granite, when it is sound, furnishes a fine building-stone, but we must
not suppose that it deserves that character of extreme hardness with
which the poets have gratuitously gifted it. Its granular texture
renders it unfit for road-stone, where it gets crushed too quickly to
dust. With his hammer the geologist easily shapes his specimens; and in
the Russian War, at the bombardment of Bomarsund, the shot from our
ships demonstrated that ramparts of granite could be as easily
demolished as those constructed of limestone.

The component minerals of granite are felspar, quartz, and mica, in
varying proportions; felspar being generally the predominant ingredient,
and quartz more plentiful than mica--the whole being united into a
confusedly granular or crystalline mass. Occasionally it passes
insensibly from fine to coarse-grained granite, and the finer grained is
even sometimes found embedded in the more coarsely granular variety:
sometimes it assumes a porphyritic texture. Porphyritic granite is a
variety of granite, the components of which--quartz, felspar, and
mica--are set in a non-crystallised paste, uniting the mass in a manner
which will be familiar to many of our readers who may have seen the
granite of the Land’s End, in Cornwall. Alongside these orthoclase
crystals, quartz is implanted, usually in grains of irregular shape,
more rarely crystallised, and seldom in the form of perfect crystals. To
these ingredients are added thin scales or small hexagonal plates and
crystals of white, brown, black, or greenish- mica. Finally, the
name of _quartziferous porphyry_ is reserved for those varieties which
present crystals of quartz; the other varieties are simply called
_porphyritic granite_. _True_ porphyry presents a paste essentially
composed of compact felspar, in which the crystals of orthoclase--that
is, felspar with a potash base--are abundantly disseminated, and
sometimes with great regularity.

Granite is supposed to have been “formed at considerable depths in the
earth, where it has cooled and crystallised slowly under great pressure,
where the contained gases could not expand.”[11] “The influence,” says
Lyell, “of subterranean heat may extend downwards from the crater of
every active volcano to a great depth below, perhaps several miles or
leagues, and the effects which are produced deep in the bowels of the
earth may, or rather must, be distinct; so that volcanic and plutonic
rocks, each different in texture, and sometimes even in composition, may
originate simultaneously, the one at the surface, the other far beneath
it.” Other views, however, of its origin are not unknown to science:
Professor Ramsay and some other geologists consider granite to be
metamorphic. “For my own part,” says the Professor, “I believe that in
one sense it is an igneous rock; that is to say, that it has been
completely fused. But in another sense it is a metamorphic rock, partly
because it is impossible in many cases to draw any definite line between
gneiss and granite, for they pass into each other by insensible
gradations; and granite frequently _occupies the space that ought to be
filled with gneiss_, were it not that the gneiss has been entirely
fused. I believe therefore that granite and its allies are simply the
effect of the extreme of metamorphism, brought about by great heat with
presence of water. In other words, when the metamorphism has been so
great that all traces of the semi-crystalline laminated structure have
disappeared, a more perfect crystallisation has taken place.”[12] It is
obvious that the very result on which the Professor founds his theory,
namely, the difficulty “in many cases,” of drawing a line between the
granite and the gneiss, would be produced by the sudden injection of the
fluid minerals into gneiss, composed of the same materials. Moreover, it
is only in some cases that the difficulty exists; in many others the
line of separation is definable enough.[13]

  [11] Lyell’s “Elements of Geology,” p. 694.

  [12] “Physical Geology and Geography of Great Britain,” by A. C.
       Ramsay, p. 38, 2nd ed.

  [13] At the same time it may be safely assumed (as Professor Ramsay
       believes to be the case) that granite in most cases is a
       metamorphic rock; yet are there many instances in which it may
       with greater truth be considered as a true plutonic rock.

The granitic rock called _Syenite_, in which a part of the mica is
replaced by hornblende or amphibole, has to all appearance been erupted
to the surface subsequently to the granite, and very often alongside of
it. Thus the two extremities of the Vosges, towards Belfort and
Strasburg, are eminently syenitic, while the intermediate part, towards
Colmar, is as markedly granitic. In the Lyonnais, the southern region is
granitic; the northern region, from Arbresle, is in great part syenitic.
Syenite also makes its appearance in the Limousin.

Syenite, into which rose- felspar often enters, forms a
beautiful rock, because the green or nearly black hornblende heightens,
by contrast, the effect of its colour. This rock is a valuable adjunct
for architectural ornament; it is that out of which the ancient
Egyptians shaped many of their monumental columns, sphinxes, and
sarcophagi; the most perfect type of it is found in Egypt, not far from
the city of Syene, from which it derives its name. The obelisk of Luxor
now in Paris, several of the Egyptian obelisks in Rome, and the
celebrated sphinxes, of which copies may be seen in front of the
Egyptian Court at the Crystal Palace, the pedestal of the statue of
Peter the Great at St. Petersburg, and the facing of the sub-basement of
the column in the Place Vendôme in Paris, are of this stone, of which
there are quarries in the neighbourhood of Plancher-les-Mines in the
Vosges.

Syenite disintegrates more readily than granite, and it contains
indurated nodular concretions, which often remain in the form of large
spherical balls, in the midst of the débris resulting from
disintegration of the mass. It remains to be added that syenitic masses
are often very variable as regards their composition; the hornblende is
sometimes wanting, in which case we can only recognise an ancient
granite. In other instances the hornblende predominates to such a
degree, that a large or small-grained _diorite_, or greenstone, results.
The geologist should be prepared to observe these transitions, which are
apt to lead him into error if passed over without being noticed.

_Protogine_ is a talcose granite, composed of felspar, quartz, and talc
or _chlorite_, or decomposed mica, which take the place of the usual
mica. Excessively variable in its texture, protogine passes from the
most perfect granitic aspect to that of a porphyry, in such a manner as
to present continual subjects of uncertainty, rendering it very
difficult to determine its geological age. Nevertheless, it is supposed
to have come to the surface before and during the coal-period; in short,
at Creusot, protogine covers the coal-fields so completely, that it is
necessary to sink the pits through the protogine, in order to penetrate
to the coal, and the rock has so manifestly acted on the coal-measure
strata, as to have contorted and metamorphosed them. Something analogous
to this manifests itself near Mont Blanc, where the colossal mass which
predominates in that chain, and the peaks which belong to it, consist of
protogine. But as no such action can be perceived in the overlying rocks
of the Triassic period, it may be assumed that at the time of the
deposition of the New Red Sandstone the protoginous eruptions had
ceased.

It is necessary to add, however, that if the protogine rises in such
bold pinnacles round Mont Blanc, the circumstance only applies to the
more elevated parts of the mountain, and is influenced by the excessive
rigour of the seasons, which demolishes and continually wears away all
the parts of the rock which have been decomposed by atmospheric agency.
Where protogine occurs in milder climates--around Creusot, and at
Pierre-sur-Autre, in the Forez chain, for instance--the mountains show
none of the scarped and bristling peaks exhibited in the chain of Mont
Blanc. Only single isolated masses occasionally form _rocking-stones_,
so called because, resting with a convex base upon a pedestal also
convex, but in a contrary way, it is easy to move these naturally
balanced blocks, although from their vast size it would require very
considerable force to displace them. This tendency to fashion themselves
into rounded or ellipsoidal forms belongs, also, to other granitic
rocks, and even to some of the variegated sandstones. The rocking-stones
have often given rise to legends and popular myths.

The great eruptions of granite, protogine, and porphyry took place,
according to M. Fournet, during the carboniferous period, for
porphyritic pebbles are found in the conglomerates of the Coal-measure
period. “The granite of Dartmoor, in Devonshire,” says Lyell,[14] “was
formerly supposed to be one of the most ancient of the plutonic rocks,
but it is now ascertained to be posterior in date to the culm-measures
of that county, which from their position, and as containing true
coal-plants, are regarded by Professor Sedgwick and Sir R. Murchison as
members of the true Carboniferous series. This granite, like the
syenitic granite of Christiana, has broken through the stratified
formations without much changing their strike. Hence, on the north-west
side of Dartmoor, the successive members of the Culm-measures abut
against the granite, and become metamorphic as they approach. The
granite of Cornwall is probably of the same date, and therefore as
modern as the Carboniferous strata, if not newer.”

  [14] “Elements of Geology,” p. 716, 6th edition.

The _ancient granites_ show themselves in France in the Vosges, in
Auvergne, at Espinouse in Languedoc, at Plan-de-la-Tour in Provence, in
the chain of the Cévennes, at Mont Pilat near Lyons, and in the southern
part of the Lyonnaise chain. They rarely impart boldness or grandeur to
the landscape, as might be expected from their crystallised texture and
hardness; for having been exposed to the effects of atmospheric changes
from the earliest times of the earth’s consolidation, the rocks have
become greatly worn away and rounded in the outlines of their masses. It
is only when recent dislocations have broken them up that they assume a
picturesque character.

The Christiania granite alluded to above was at one time thought to have
belonged to the Silurian period. But, in 1813, Von Buch announced that
the strata in question consisted of limestones containing orthoceratites
and trilobites; the shales and limestone being only penetrated by
granite-veins, and altered for a considerable distance from the point of
contact.[15] The same granite is found to penetrate the ancient gneiss
of the country on which the fossiliferous beds rest--unconformably, as
the geologists say; that is, they rest on the edges of the gneiss, from
which other stratified deposits had been washed away, leaving the gneiss
denuded before the sedimentary beds were deposited. “Between the origin,
therefore, of the gneiss and the granite,”[16] says Lyell, “there
intervened, first, the period when the strata of gneiss were denuded;
secondly, the period of the deposition of the Silurian deposits. Yet
the granite produced after this long interval is often so intimately
blended with the ancient gneiss at the point of the junction, that it is
impossible to draw any other than an arbitrary line of separation
between them; and where this is not the case, tortuous veins of granite
pass freely through gneiss, ending sometimes in threads, as if the older
rock had offered no resistance to their passage.” From this example Sir
Charles concludes that it is impossible to conjecture whether certain
granites, which send veins into gneiss and other metamorphic rocks, have
been so injected while the gneiss was scarcely solidified, or at some
time during the Secondary or Tertiary period. As it is, no single mass
of granite can be pointed out more ancient than the oldest known
fossiliferous deposits; no Lower Cambrian stratum is known to rest
immediately on granite; no pebbles of granite are found in the
conglomerates of the Lower Cambrian. On the contrary, granite is usually
found, as in the case of Dartmoor, in immediate contact with primary
formations, with every sign of elevation subsequent to their deposition.
Porphyritic pebbles are found in the Coal-measures; porpyhries continue
during the Triassic period; since, in some parts of Germany, veins of
porphyry are found traversing the New Red Sandstone, or _grès bigarré_
of French geologists. Syenites have especially reacted upon the Silurian
deposits and other old sedimentary rocks, up to those of the Lower
Carboniferous period.

  [15] “Elements of Geology,” p. 717.

  [16] Ibid, p. 718.

The term porphyry is usually applied to a rock with a paste or base of
compact felspar, in which felspathic crystals of various sizes assume
their natural form. The variety of their mineralogical characters, the
admirable polish which can be given to them, and which renders them
eminently useful for ornamentation, give to the porphyries an artistic
and industrial importance, which would be greatly enhanced if the
difficulty of working such a hard material did not render the price so
high.

The porphyries possess various degrees of hardness and compactness. When
a fine dark-red colour--which contrasts well with the white of the
felspar--is combined with hardness, a magnificent stone is the result,
susceptible of taking a polish, and fit for any kind of ornamental work;
for the decoration of buildings, for the construction of vases, columns,
&c. The red Egyptian porphyry, called _Rosso antico_, was particularly
sought after by the ancients, who made sepulchres, baths, and obelisks
of it. The grandest known mass of this kind of porphyry is the Obelisk
of Sextus V. at Rome. In the Museum of the Louvre, in Paris, some
magnificent basins and statues, made of the same stone, may also be
seen.

In spite of its compact texture porphyry disintegrates, like other
rocks, when exposed to air and water. One of the sphinxes transported
from Egypt to Paris, being accidentally placed under a gutter of the
Louvre, soon began to exhibit signs of exfoliation, notwithstanding it
had remained sound for ages under the climate of Egypt. In this country,
and even in France, where the climate is much drier, the porphyries
frequently decompose so as to become scarcely recognisable. They crop
out in various parts of France, but are only abundant in the
north-eastern part of the central plateau, and in some parts of the
south. They form mountains of a conical form, presenting, nearly always,
considerable depressions on their flanks. In the Vosges they attain a
height of from three to four thousand feet.

The _Serpentine_ rocks are a sort of compact _talc_, which owe their
soapy texture and greasy feel to silicate of magnesia. Their softness
permits of their being turned in a lathe and fashioned into vessels of
various forms. Even stoves are constructed of this substance, which
bears heat well. The serpentine quarried on the banks of Lake Como,
which bears the name of pierre ollaire, or pot-stone, is excellently
adapted for this purpose. Serpentine shows itself in the Vosges, in the
Limousin, in the Lyonnais, and in the Var; it occupies an immense tract
in the Alps, as well as in the Apennines. Mona marble is an example of
serpentine; and the Lizard Point, Cornwall, is a mass of it. A portion
of the stratified rocks of Tuscany, and also those of the Island of
Elba, have been upheaved and overturned by eruptions of it.

As for the British Islands, plutonic rocks are extensively developed in
Scotland, where the Cambrian and Silurian rocks, often of gneissic
character--associated here and there with great bosses of granite and
syenite--form by far the greater part of the region known as the
Highlands. In the Isle of Arran a circular mass of coarse-grained
granite protrudes through the schists of the northern part of the
island; while, in the southern part, a finer-grained granite and veins
of porphyry and coarse-grained granite have broken through the
stratified rocks.[17] In Devonshire and Cornwall there are four great
bosses of granite; in the southern parts of Cornwall the mineral axis is
defined by a line drawn through the centre of the several bosses from
south-west to north-east; but in the north of Cornwall, and extending
into Devonshire, it strikes nearly east and west. The great granite
mass in Cornwall lies on the moors north of St. Austell, and indicates
the existence of more than one disturbing force. “There was an elevating
force,” says Professor Sedgwick,[18] “protruding from the St. Austell
granite; and, if I interpret the phenomena correctly, there was a
contemporaneous elevating force acting from the south; and between these
two forces, the beds, now spread over the surface from the St. Austell
granite to the Dodman and Narehead, were broken, contorted, and placed
in their present disturbed position. Some great disturbing forces,” he
observes, “have modified the symmetry of this part of Cornwall,
affecting,” he believes, “the whole transverse section of the country
from the headlands near Fowey to those south of Padstow.” This great
granite-axis was upheaved in a line commencing at the west end of
Cornwall, rising through the slate-rocks of the older Devonian group,
continuing in association with them as far as the boss north of St.
Austell, producing much confusion in the stratified masses; the
granite-mass between St. Clear and Camelford rose between the deposition
of the Petherwin and that of the Plymouth group; lastly, the Dartmoor
granite rose, partially moving the adjacent slates in such a manner that
its north end abuts against and tilts up the base of the Culm-trough,
mineralising the great Culm-limestone, while on the south it does the
same to the base of the Plymouth slates. These facts prove that the
granite of Dartmoor, which was formerly thought to be the most ancient
of the Plutonic rocks, is of a date subsequent to the Culm-measures of
Devonshire, which are now regarded as forming part of the true
carboniferous series.

  [17] “Geology of the Island of Arran,” by Andrew C. Ramsay. “Geology
       of Arran and Clydesdale,” by James Bryce.

  [18] See _Quarterly Journal of Geological Society_, vol. viii., pp. 9
       and 10.


VOLCANIC ROCKS.

Considered as a whole, the volcanic rocks may be grouped into three
distinct formations, which we shall notice in the following order, which
is that of their relative antiquity, namely:--1. _Trachytic_; 2.
_Basaltic_; 3. _Volcanic or Lava formations_.

[Illustration: Fig. 4.--A peak of the Cantal chain.]


TRACHYTIC FORMATIONS.

_Trachyte_ (derived from τραχυς, rough), having a coarse, cellular
appearance, and a rough and gritty feel, belongs to the class of
volcanic rocks. The eruptions of trachyte seem to have commenced towards
the middle of the Tertiary period, and to have continued up to its
close. The trachytes present considerable analogy in their composition
to the felspathic porphyries, but their mineralogical characters are
different. Their texture is porous; they form a white, grey, black,
sometimes yellowish matrix, in which, as a rule, felspar predominates,
together with disseminated crystals of felspar, some hornblende or
augite, and dark- mica. In its external appearance trachyte is
very variable. It forms the three most elevated mountain ranges of
Central France; the groups of Cantal and Mont Dore, and the chain of the
Velay (Puy-de-Dôme).[19]

  [19] For full information in reference to the rocks and geology of
       this part of France, the reader is referred to the masterly work
       on “The Geology and Extinct Volcanoes of Central France,” by G.
       Poulett Scrope, 2nd edition, 1858.

[Illustration: I.--Peak of Sancy in the Mont Dore group, Auvergne.]

The igneous group of Cantal may be described as a series of lofty
summits, ranged around a large cavity, which was at one period probably
a volcanic crater, the circular base of which occupies an area of nearly
fifteen leagues in diameter. The strictly trachytic portion of the group
rises in the centre, and is composed of high mountains, throwing off
spurs, which gradually decrease in height, and terminate in plateaux
more or less inclined. These central mountains attain a height varying
between 4,500 and 5,500 feet above the level of the sea. A scaly or
schistose variety of trachyte, called _phonolite_, or clinkstone (from
the ringing metallic sound it emits when struck with the hammer), with
an unusual proportion of felspar, or, according to Gmelin, composed of
felspar and zeolite, forms the steep trachytic escarpments at the
centre, which enclose the principal valleys; their abrupt peaks giving a
remarkably picturesque appearance to the landscape. In the engraving on
p. 40 (Fig. 4) the slaty, laminated character of the clinkstone is well
represented in one of the phonolitic peaks of the Cantal group. The
group at Mont Dore consists of seven or eight rocky summits, occupying a
circuit of about five leagues in diameter. The massive trachytic rock,
of which this mountainous mass is chiefly formed, has an average
thickness of 1,200 to 2,600 feet; comprehending over that range
prodigious layers of scoriæ, pumiceous conglomerates, and detritus,
interstratified with beds of trachyte and basalt, bearing the signs of
an igneous origin, tufa forming the base; and between them occur layers
of lignite, or imperfectly mineralised woody fibre, the whole being
superimposed on a primitive plateau of about 3,250 feet in height.
Scored and furrowed out by deep valleys, the viscous mass was gradually
upheaved, until in the needle-like Pic de Sancy (PLATE I.), a pyramidal
rock of porphyritic trachyte, which is the loftiest point of Mont Dore,
it attains the height of 6,258 feet. The Pic de Sancy, represented on
page 40 (Fig. 4), gives an excellent idea of the general appearance of
the trachytic mountains of Mont Dore.

Upon the same plateau with Mont Dore, and about seven miles north of its
last <DW72>s, the trachytic formation is repeated in four rounded
domes--those of Puy-de-Dôme, Sarcouï, Clierzou, and Le Grand Suchet. The
Puy-de-Dôme, one of the most remarkable volcanic domes in Auvergne,
presents another fine and very striking example of an eruptive trachytic
rock. The rock here assumes a peculiar mineral character, which has
caused the name of _domite_ to be given to it.

The chain of the Velay forms a zone, composed of independent plateaux
and peaks, which forms upon the horizon a long and strangely
intersected ridge. The bareness of the mountains, their forms--pointed
or rounded, sometimes terminating in scarped plateaux--give to the whole
landscape an appearance at once picturesque and characteristic. The peak
of Le Mezen, which rises 5,820 feet above the sea, forms the culminating
point of the chain. The phonolites of which it consists have been
erupted from fissures which present themselves at a great number of
points, ranging from north-north-west to south-south-east.

On the banks of the Rhine and in Hungary the trachytic formation
presents itself in features identical with those which indicate it in
France. In America it is principally represented by some immense cones,
superposed in the chain of the Andes; the colossal Chimborazo being one
of those trachytic cones.

[Illustration: II.--Mountain and basaltic crater of La Coupe d’Ayzac, in
the Vivarais.]

[Illustration: Fig. 5.--Theoretical view of a basaltic plateau.]

[Illustration: Fig. 6.--Basalt in prismatic columns.]


BASALTIC FORMATIONS.

Basaltic eruptions seem to have occurred during the Secondary and
Tertiary periods. Basalt, according to Dr. Daubeny,[20] in its more
strict sense, “is composed of an intimate mixture of augite with a
zeolitic mineral, which appears to have been formed out of labradorite
(felspar of Labrador), by the addition of water--the presence of water
being in all _zeolites_ the cause of that bubbling-up under the
blow-pipe to which they owe their appellation.” M. Delesse and other
mineralogists are of opinion that the idea of augite being the
prevailing mineral in basalt, must be abandoned; and that although its
presence gives the rock its distinctive character, as compared with
trachytic and most other trap rocks, still the principal element in
their composition is felspar. Basalt, a lava consisting essentially of
augite, labradorite (or nepheline) and magnetic iron-ore is the rock
which predominates in this formation. It contains a smaller quantity of
silica than the trachyte, and a larger proportion of lime and magnesia.
Hence, independent of the iron in its composition, it is heavier in
proportion, as it contains more or less silica. Some varieties of basalt
contain very large quantities of olivine, a mineral of an olive-green
colour, with a chemical composition differing but slightly from
serpentine. Both basalts and trachyte contain more soda and less silica
in their composition than granites; some of the basalts are highly
fusible, the alkaline matter and lime in their composition acting as a
flux to the silica. There are examples of basalt existing in
well-defined flows, which still adhere to craters visible at the present
day, and with regard to the igneous origin of which there can be no
doubt. One of the most striking examples of a basaltic cone is furnished
by the mountain or crater of La Coupe d’Ayzac, in the Vivarais, in the
south of France. PLATE II., on the opposite page, gives an accurate
representation of this curious basaltic flow. The remnants of the stream
of liquefied basalt which once flowed down the flank of the hill may
still be seen adhering in vast masses to the granite rocks on both sides
of a narrow valley where the river Volant has cut across the lava and
left a pavement or causeway, forming an assemblage of upright prismatic
columns, fitted together with geometrical symmetry; the whole resting on
a base of gneiss. Basaltic eruptions sometimes form a plateau, as
represented in Fig. 5, where the process of formation is shown
theoretically and in a manner which renders further explanation
unnecessary. Many of these basaltic table-lands form plateaux of very
considerable extent and thickness; others form fragments of the same,
more or less dislocated; others, again, present themselves in isolated
knolls, far removed from similar formations. In short, basaltic rocks
present themselves in veins or <DW18>s, more or less, in most countries,
of which Central France and the banks of the Rhine offer many striking
examples. These veins present very evident proofs that the matter has
been introduced from below, and in a manner which could only result from
injection from the interior to the exterior of the earth. Such are the
proofs presented by the basaltic veins of Villeneuve-de-Berg, which
terminate in slender filaments, sometimes bifurcated, which gradually
lose themselves in the rock which they traverse. In several parts of the
north of Ireland, chalk-formations with flints are traversed by basaltic
<DW18>s, the chalk being converted into granular marble near the basalt,
the change sometimes extending eight or ten feet from the wall of the
<DW18>, and being greatest near the surface of contact. In the Island of
Rathlin, the walls of basalt traverse the chalk in three veins or <DW18>s;
the central one a foot thick, that on the right twenty feet, and on the
left thirty-three feet thick, and all, according to Buckland and
Conybeare, within the breadth of ninety feet.

  [20] “Volcanoes,” 2nd ed.

[Illustration: Fig. 7.--Basaltic Causeway, on the banks of the river
Volant, in the Ardèche.]

One of the most striking characteristics of basalt is the prismatic and
columnar structure which it often assumes; the lava being homogeneous
and of very fine grain, the laws which determine the direction of the
fissures or divisional planes consolidated from a molten to a solid
state, become here very manifest--these are always at right angles to
the surfaces of the rock through which the heat of the fused mass
escaped. The basaltic rocks have been at all times remarkable for this
picturesque arrangement of their parts. They usually present columns of
regular prisms, having generally six, often five, and sometimes four,
seven, or even three sides, whose disposition is always perpendicular to
the cooling surfaces. These are often divided transversely, as in Fig.
6, at nearly equal distances, like the joints of a wall, composed of
regularly arranged, equal-sided pieces adhering together, and frequently
extending over a more or less considerable space. The name of Giant’s
Causeway has been given, from time immemorial, to these curious columnar
structures of basalt. In France, in the Vivarais and in the Velay, there
are many such basaltic causeways. That of which Fig. 7 is a sketch lies
on the banks of the river Volant, where it flows into the Ardèche.
Ireland has always been celebrated for its Giant’s Causeway, which
extends over the whole of the northern part of Antrim, covering all the
pre-existing strata of Chalk, Greensand, and Permian formations; the
prismatic columns extend for miles along the cliffs, projecting into the
sea at the point specially designated the Giant’s Causeway.

These columnar formations vary considerably in length and diameter.
McCulloch mentions some in Skye, which “are about four hundred feet
high; others in Morven not exceeding an inch (vol. ii. p. 137). In
diameter those of Ailsa Craig measure nine feet, and those of Morven an
inch or less.” Fingal’s Cave, in the Isle of Staffa, is renowned among
basaltic rocks, although it was scarcely known on the mainland a century
ago, when Sir Joseph Banks heard of it accidentally, and was the first
to visit and describe it. Fingal’s Cave has been hollowed out, by the
sea, through a gallery of immense prismatic columns of trap, which are
continually beaten by the waves. The columns are usually upright, but
sometimes they are curved and slightly inclined. Fig. 8 is a view of the
basaltic grotto of Staffa.

Grottoes are sometimes formed by basaltic eruptions on land, followed by
their separation into regular columns. The Grotto of Cheeses, at
Bertrich-Baden, between Trèves and Coblentz, is a remarkable example of
this kind, being so called because its columns are formed of round, and
usually flattened, stones placed one above the other in such a manner as
to resemble a pile of cheeses.

[Illustration: Fig. 8.--Basaltic cavern of Staffa--exterior.]

If we consider that in basalt-flows the lower part is compact, and often
divided into prismatic columns, while the upper part is porous,
cellular, scoriaceous, and irregularly divided--that the points of
separation on which they rest are small beds presenting fragments of the
porous stony concretions known under the name of _Lapilli_--that the
lower portions of these masses present a multitude of points which
penetrate the rocks on which they repose, thereby denoting that some
fluid matter had moulded itself into its crevices--that the neighbouring
rocks are often calcined to a considerable thickness, and the included
vegetable remains carbonised--no doubt can exist as to the igneous
origin of basaltic rocks. When it reached the surface through certain
openings, the fluid basalt spread itself, flowing, as it were, over the
horizontal surface of the ground; for if it had flowed upon inclined
surfaces it could not have preserved the uniform surface and constant
thickness which it generally exhibits.

[Illustration: III.--Extinct volcanoes forming the Puy-de-Dôme Chain.]


VOLCANIC OR LAVA FORMATIONS.

The _lava_ formations comprehend both extinct and active volcanoes. “The
term,” says Lyell, “has a somewhat vague signification, having been
applied to all melted matter observed to flow in streams from volcanic
vents. When this matter consolidates in the open air, the upper part is
usually scoriaceous, and the mass becomes more and more stony as we
descend, or in proportion as it has consolidated more slowly and under
greater pressure.”[21]

  [21] “Elements of Geology,” p. 596.

The formation of extinct volcanoes is represented in France by the
volcanoes situated in the ancient provinces of Auvergne, Velay, and the
Vivarais, but principally by nearly seventy volcanic cones of various
sizes and of the height of from 500 to 1,000 feet, composed of loose
scoriæ, lava, and pozzuolana, arranged upon a granitic table-land, about
twelve miles wide, which overlooks the town of Clermont-Ferrand, and
which seem to have been produced along a longitudinal fracture in the
earth’s crust, running in a direction from north to south. It is a range
of volcanic hills, the “chain of _Puys_” nearly twenty miles in length,
by two in breadth. By its cellular and porous structure, which is also
granular and crystalline, the felspathic or pyroxenic lava which flowed
from these volcanoes is readily distinguishable from the analogous lavas
which belong to the basaltic or trachytic formations. Their surface is
irregular, and bristles with asperities, formed by heaped-up angular
blocks.

The volcanoes of the chain of _Puys_, represented on opposite page (PL.
III.) are so perfectly preserved, their lava is so frequently superposed
on sheets of basalt, and presents a composition and texture so distinct,
that there is no difficulty in establishing the fact that they are
posterior to the basaltic formation, and of very recent age.
Nevertheless, they do not appear to belong to the historic ages, for no
tradition attests their eruption. Lyell places these eruptions in the
Lower Miocene period, and their greatest activity in the Upper Miocene
and Pliocene eras. “Extinct quadrupeds of those eras,” he says,
“belonging to the genera mastodon, rhinoceros, and others, were buried
in ashes and beds of alluvial sand and gravel, which owe their
preservation to overspreading sheets of lava.”[22]

  [22] Ibid, p. 677.

[Illustration: Fig. 9.--Section of a volcano in action.]

All volcanic phenomena can be explained by the theory we have already
indicated, of fractures in the solid crust of the globe resulting from
its cooling. The various phenomena which existing volcanoes present to
us are, as Humboldt has said, “the result of every action exercised by
the interior of a planet on its external crust.”[23] We designate as
volcanoes all conduits which establish a permanent communication between
the interior of the earth and its surface--a conduit which gives passage
at intervals to eruptions of _lava_, and in Fig. 9 we have represented,
in an ideal section, the geological mode of action of volcanic
eruptions. The volcanoes on the surface of the globe, known to be in an
occasional state of activity, number about three hundred, and these may
be divided into two classes: the _isolated_ or _central_, and the
_linear_ or those volcanoes which belong to a _series_.[24]

  [23] “Cosmos,” vol. i., p. 25. Bohn.

  [24] “Cosmos,” vol. i., p. 237.

The first are active volcanoes, around which there may be established
many secondary active mouths of eruption, always in connection with some
principal crater. The second are disposed like the chimneys of furnaces,
along fissures extending over considerable distances. Twenty, thirty,
and even a greater number of volcanic cones may rise above one such rent
in the earth’s crust, the direction of which will be indicated by their
linear course. The Peak of Teneriffe is an instance of a central
volcano; the long rampart-like chain of the Andes, presents, from the
south of Chili to the north-west coast of America, one of the grandest
instances of a continental volcanic chain; the remarkable range of
volcanoes in the province of Quito belong to the latter class. Darwin
relates that on the 19th of March, 1835, the attention of a sentry was
called to something like a large star which gradually increased in size
till about three o’clock, when it presented a very magnificent
spectacle. “By the aid of a glass, dark objects, in constant succession,
were seen in the midst of a great glare of red light, to be thrown up
and to fall down. The light was sufficient to cast on the water a long
bright reflection--it was the volcano of Osorno in action.” Mr. Darwin
was afterwards assured that Aconcagua, in Chili, 480 miles to the north,
was in action on the same night, and that the great eruption of
Coseguina (2,700 miles north of Aconcagua), accompanied by an earthquake
felt over 1,000 miles, also occurred within six hours of this same time;
and yet Coseguina had been dormant for six-and-twenty years, and
Aconcagua most rarely shows any signs of action.[25] It is also stated
by Professor Dove that in the year 1835 the ashes discharged from the
mountain of Coseguina were carried 700 miles, and that the roaring noise
of the eruption was heard at San Salvador, a distance of 1,000 miles.

  [25] Darwin’s “Journal,” p. 291, 2nd edition.

In the sea the _series_ of volcanoes show themselves in groups of
islands disposed in longitudinal series.

Among these may be ranged the volcanic series of Sunda, which, according
to the accounts of the matter ejected and the violence of the eruptions,
seem to be among the most remarkable on the globe; the series of the
Moluccas and of the Philippines; those of Japan; of the Marianne
Islands; of Chili; of the double series of volcanic summits near Quito,
those of the Antilles, Guatemala, and Mexico.

Among the central, or isolated volcanoes, we may class those of the
Lipari Islands, which have _Stromboli_, in permanent activity, for
their centre; _Etna_, _Vesuvius_, the volcanoes of the _Azores_, of the
_Canaries_, of the _Cape de Verde_, of the _Galapagos_ Islands, the
_Sandwich_ Islands, the _Marquesas_, the _Society_ Islands, the
_Friendly_ Islands, _Bourbon_, and, finally, _Ararat_.

[Illustration: Fig. 10.--Existing crater of Vesuvius.]

The mouths of volcanic chimneys are, almost always, situated near the
summit of a more or less isolated conical mountain; they usually consist
of an opening in the form of a funnel, which is called the _crater_, and
which descends into the interior of the volcanic chimney. But in the
course of ages the crater becomes extended and enlarged, until, in some
of the older volcanoes, it has attained almost incredible dimensions. In
1822 the crater of Vesuvius was 2,000 feet deep, and of a very
considerable circumference. The crater of Kilauea, in the Sandwich
Islands group, is an immense chasm 1,000 feet deep, with an outer
circle no less than from two to three miles in diameter, in which lava
is usually seen, Mr. Dana tells us, to boil up at the bottom of a lake,
the level of which varies continually according to the active or
quiescent state of the volcano. The cone which supports these craters,
and which is designated the _cone of ejection_, is composed for the most
part of lava or _scoriæ_, the products of eruption. Many volcanoes
consist only of a _cone of scoriæ_. Such is that of Barren Isle, in the
Bay of Bengal. Others, on the contrary, present a very small cone,
notwithstanding the considerable height of the volcanic chain. As an
example we may mention the new crater of Vesuvius, which was produced in
1829 within the former crater (Fig. 10).

[Illustration: Fig. 11.--Fissures near Locarno.]

The frequency and intensity of the eruptions bear no relation to the
dimensions of the volcanic mountain. The eruption of a volcano is
usually announced by a subterranean noise, accompanied by shocks,
quivering of the ground, and sometimes by actual earthquakes. The noise,
which usually proceeds from a great depth, makes itself heard, sometimes
over a great extent of country, and resembles a well-sustained fire of
artillery, accompanied by the rattle of musketry. Sometimes it is like
the heavy rolling of subterranean thunder. Fissures are frequently
produced during the eruptions, extending over a considerable radius, as
represented in the woodcut on page 57 of the fissures of Locarno (Fig.
11), where they present a singular appearance; the clefts radiating from
a centre in all directions, not unlike the starred fracture in a cracked
pane of glass. The eruption begins with a strong shock, which shakes the
whole interior of the mountain; masses of heated vapour and fluids begin
to ascend, revealing themselves in some cases by the melting of the snow
upon the flanks of the cone of ejection; while simultaneously with the
final shock, which overcomes the last resistance opposed by the solid
crust of the ground, a considerable body of gas, and more especially of
steam, escapes from the mouth of the crater.

The steam, it is important to remark, is essentially the cause of the
terrible mechanical effects which accompany volcanic eruptions.
Granitic, porphyritic, trachytic, and sometimes even basaltic matters,
have reached the surface without producing any of those violent
explosions or ejections of rocks and stones which accompany modern
volcanic eruptions; the older granites, porphyries, trachytes, and
basalts were discharged without violence, because steam did not
accompany those melted rocks--a sufficient proof of the comparative calm
which attended the ancient as compared with modern eruptions. Well
established by scientific observations, this is a fact which enables us
to explain the cause of the tremendous mechanical effects attending
modern volcanic eruptions, contrasted with the more tranquil eruptions
of earlier times.

During the first moments of a volcanic eruption, the accumulated masses
of stones and ashes, which fill the crater, are shot up into the sky by
the suddenly and powerfully developed elasticity of the steam. This
steam, which has been disengaged by the heat of the fluid lava, assumes
the form of great rounded bubbles, which are evolved into the air to a
great height above the crater, where they expand as they rise, in clouds
of dazzling whiteness, assuming that appearance which Pliny the Younger
compared to a stone pine rising over Vesuvius. The masses of clouds
finally condense and follow the direction of the wind.

These volcanic clouds are grey or black, according to the quantity of
_ashes_, that is, of pulverulent matter or dust, mixed with watery
vapour, which they convey. In some eruptions it has been observed that
these clouds, on descending to the surface of the soil, spread around an
odour of hydrochloric or sulphuric acid, and traces of both these acids
are found in the rain which proceeds from the condensation of these
clouds.

The fleecy clouds of vapour which issue from the volcanoes are streaked
with lightning, followed by continuous peals of thunder; in condensing,
they discharge disastrous showers, which sweep the sides of the
mountain. Many eruptions, known as _mud volcanoes_, and _watery
volcanoes_, are nothing more than these heavy rains, carrying down with
them showers of ashes, stones, and scoriæ, more or less mixed with
water.

Passing on to the phenomena of which the crater is the scene at the time
of an eruption, it is stated that at first there is an incessant rise
and fall of the lava which fills the interior of the crater. This double
movement is often interrupted by violent explosions of gas. The crater
of Kilauea, in the Island of Hawaii, contains a lake of molten matter
1,600 feet broad, which is subject to such a double movement of
elevation and depression. Each of the vaporous bubbles as it issues from
the crater presses the molten lava upwards, till it rises and bursts
with great force at the surface. A portion of the lava, half-cooled and
reduced to scoriæ, is thus projected upwards, and the several fragments
are hurled violently in all directions, like those of a shell at the
moment when it bursts.

The greater number of the fragments being thrown vertically into the
air, fall back into the crater again. Many accumulating on the edge of
the opening add more and more to the height of the cone of eruption. The
lighter and smaller fragments, as well as the fine ashes, are drawn
upwards by the spiral vapours, and sometimes transported by the winds
over almost incredible distances.

In 1794 the ashes from Vesuvius were carried as far as the extremity of
Calabria. In 1812 the volcanic ashes of Saint Vincent, in the Antilles,
were carried eastward as far as Barbadoes, spreading such obscurity over
the island, that, in open day, passengers could not see their way.
Finally, some of the masses of molten lava are shot singly into the air
during an eruption with a rapid rotatory motion, which causes them to
assume the rounded shape in which they are known by the name of
_volcanic bombs_.

We have already remarked that the lava, which in a fluid state fills the
crater and the internal vent or chimney of the volcano, is forced
upwards by gaseous fluids, and by the steam which has been generated
from the water, entangled with the lava. In some cases the mechanical
force of this vapour is so great as to drive the lava over the edge of
the crater, when it forms a fiery torrent, spreading over the sides of
the mountain. This only happens in the case of volcanoes of
inconsiderable height; in lofty volcanoes it is not unusual for the lava
thus to force an outlet for itself near the base of the mountain,
through which the fiery stream discharges itself over the surrounding
country. In such circumstances the lava cools somewhat rapidly; it
becomes hard and presents a scoriaceous crust on the surface, while the
vapour escapes in jets of steam through the interstices. But under this
superficial crust the lava retains its fluid state, cooling slowly in
the interior of the mass, while the thickening stream moves sluggishly
along, impeded in its progress by the fragments of rock which this
burning river drives before it.

The rate at which a current of lava moves along depends upon its mass,
upon its degree of fluidity, and upon the inclination of the ground. It
has been stated that certain streams of lava have traversed more than
3,000 yards in an hour; but the rate at which they travel is usually
much less, a man on foot being often able to outstrip them. These
streams, also, vary greatly in dimensions. The most considerable stream
of lava from Etna had, in some parts, a thickness of nearly 120 feet,
with a breadth of a geographical mile and a half. The largest
lava-stream which has been recorded issued from the Skaptár Jokul, in
Iceland, in 1783. It formed two currents, whose extremities were twenty
leagues apart, and which from time to time presented a breadth of from
seven to fifteen miles and a thickness of 650 feet.

A peculiar effect, and which only simulates volcanic activity, is
observable in localities where _mud volcanoes_ exist. Volcanoes of this
class are for the most part conical hills of low elevation, with a
hollow or depression at the centre, from which they discharge the mud
which is forced upwards by gas and steam. The temperature of the ejected
matter is only slightly elevated. The mud, generally of a greyish
colour, with the odour of petroleum, is subject to the same alternating
movements which have been already ascribed to the fluid lava of
volcanoes, properly so called. The gases which force out this liquid
mud, mixed with salts, gypsum, naphtha, sulphur, sometimes even of
ammonia, are usually carburetted hydrogen and carbonic acid. Everything
leads to the conclusion that these compounds proceed, at least in great
part, from the reaction produced between the various elements of the
subsoil under the influence of infiltrating water between bituminous
marls, complex carbonates, and probably carbonic acid, derived from
acidulated springs. M. Fournet saw in Languedoc, near Roujan, traces of
some of these formations; and not far from that neighbourhood is the
bituminous spring of Gabian.

[Illustration: IV.--Mud volcano at Turbaco, South America.]

Mud volcanoes, or _salses_, exist in rather numerous localities. Several
are found in the neighbourhood of Modena. There are some in Sicily,
between Aragona and Girgenti. Pallas observed them in the Crimea--in the
peninsula of Kertch, and in the Isle of Tamàn. Von Humboldt has
described and figured a group of them in the province of Cartagena, in
South America. Finally, they have been observed in the Island of
Trinidad and in Hindostan. In 1797 an eruption of mud ejected from
Tunguragua, in Quito, filled a valley 1,000 feet wide to a depth of 600
feet. On the opposite page is represented the mud volcano of Turbaco, in
the province of Cartagena (PLATE IV.), which is described and figured by
Von Humboldt in his “Voyage to the Equatorial Regions of America.”

In certain countries we find small hillocks of argillaceous formation,
resulting from ancient discharges of mud volcanoes, from which all
disengagement of gas, water, and mud has long ceased. Sometimes,
however, the phenomenon returns and resumes its interrupted course with
great violence. Slight shocks of earthquakes are then felt; blocks of
dried earth are projected from the ancient crater, and new waves of mud
flow over its edge, and spread over the neighbouring ground.

To return to ordinary volcanoes, that is to say, those which eject lava.
At the end of a lava-flow, when the violence of the volcanic action
begins to subside, the discharge from the crater is confined to the
disengagement of vaporous gases, mixed with steam, which make their
escape in more or less abundance through a multitude of fissures in the
ground.

The great number of volcanoes which have thus become extinct form what
are called _solfataras_. The sulphuretted hydrogen, which is given out
through the fissures in the ground, is decomposed by contact with the
air, water being formed by the action of the oxygen of the atmosphere,
and sulphur deposited in considerable quantities on the walls of the
crater, and in the cracks of the ground. Such is the geological source
of the sulphur which is collected at Pozzuoli, near Naples, and in many
other similar regions--a substance which plays a most important part in
the industrial occupations of the world. It is, in fact, from sulphur
extracted from the ground about the mouths of extinct volcanoes, that is
to say from the products of _solfataras_, that sulphuric acid is
frequently made--sulphuric acid being the fundamental agent, one of the
most powerful elements, of the manufacturing productions of both worlds.

The last phase of volcanic activity is the disengagement of carbonic
acid gas without any increase of temperature. In places where these
continued emanations of carbonic acid gas manifest themselves, the
existence of ancient volcanoes may be recognised, of which these
discharges are the closing phenomenon. This is seen in a most remarkable
manner in Auvergne, where there are a multitude of acidulated springs,
that is to say, springs charged with carbonic acid. During the time when
he was opening the mines of Pontgibaud, M. Fournet had to contend with
emanations which sometimes exhibited themselves with explosive power.
Jets of water were thrown to great heights in the galleries, roaring
with the noise of steam when escaping from the boiler of a locomotive
engine. The water which filled an abandoned mine-shaft was, on two
separate occasions, upheaved with great violence--half emptying the
pit--while vast volumes of the gas overspread the whole valley,
suffocating a horse and a flock of geese. The miners were compelled to
fly in all haste at the moment when the gas burst forth, holding
themselves as upright as possible, to avoid plunging their heads into
the carbonic acid gas, which, from its low specific gravity, was now
filling the lower parts of the galleries. It represented on a small
scale the effect of the _Grotto del Cane_, which excites such surprise
among the ignorant near Naples; passing, also, for one of the marvels of
Nature all over the world. M. Fournet states that all the minute
fissures of the metalliferous gneiss near Clermont are quite saturated
with free carbonic acid gas, which rises plentifully from the soil
there, as well as in many parts of the surrounding country. The
components of the gneiss, with the exception of the quartz, are softened
by it; and fresh combinations of the acid with lime, iron, and manganese
are continually taking place. In short, long after volcanoes have become
extinct, hot springs, charged with mineral ingredients, continue to flow
in the same area.

The same facts as those of the _Grotto del Cane_ manifest themselves
with even greater intensity in Java, in the so-called Valley of Poison,
which is an object of terror to the natives. In this celebrated valley
the ground is said to be covered with skeletons and carcases of tigers,
goats, stags, birds, and even of human beings; for asphyxia or
suffocation, it seems, strikes all living things which venture into this
desolate place. In the same island a stream of sulphurous water, as
white as milk, issues from the crater of Mount Idienne, on the east
coast; and on one occasion, as cited by Nozet in the _Journal de
Géologie_, a great body of hot water, charged with sulphuric acid, was
discharged from the same volcano, inundating and destroying all the
vegetation of a large tract of country by its noxious fumes and
poisonous properties.

[Illustration: V.--Great Geyser of Iceland.]

It is known that the alkaline waters of Plombières, in the Vosges, have
a temperature of 160° Fahr. For 2,000 years, according to Daubrée,
through beds of concrete, of lime, brick, and sandstone, these hot
waters have percolated until they have originated calcareous spar,
aragonite, and fluor spar, together with siliceous minerals, such as
opal, which are found filling the interstices of the bricks and mortar.
From these and other similar statements, “we are led,” says Sir Charles
Lyell,[26] “to infer that when in the bowels of the earth there are
large volumes of molten matter, containing heated water and various
acids, under enormous pressure, these subterraneous fluid masses will
gradually part with their heat by the escape of steam and various gases
through fissures producing hot springs, or by the passage of the same
through the pores of the overlying and injected rocks.” “Although,” he
adds,[27] “we can only study the phenomena as exhibited at the surface,
it is clear that the gaseous fluids must have made their way through the
whole thickness of the porous or fissured rocks, which intervene between
the subterraneous reservoirs of gas and the external air. The extent,
therefore, of the earth’s crust which the vapours have permeated, and
are now permeating, may be thousands of fathoms in thickness, and their
heating and modifying influence may be spread throughout the whole of
this solid mass.”

  [26] “Elements of Geology,” p. 732.

  [27] Ibid, p. 733.

The fountains of boiling water, known under the name of _Geysers_, are
another emanation connected with ancient craters. They are either
continuous or intermittent. In Iceland we find great numbers of these
gushing springs--in fact, the island is one entire mass of eruptive
rock. Nearly all the volcanoes are situated upon a broad band of
trachyte, which traverses the island from south-west to north-east. It
is traversed by immense fissures, and covered with masses of lava, such
as no other country presents. The volcanic action, in short, goes on
with such energy that certain paroxysms of Mount Hecla have lasted for
six years without interruption. But the Great Geyser, represented on the
opposite page (PLATE V.), is, perhaps, even more an object of curiosity.
This water-volcano projects a column of boiling water, eight yards in
diameter, charged with silica, to the height, it has been said, of about
150 feet, depositing vast quantities of silica as it cools after
reaching the earth.

       *       *       *       *       *

The volcanoes in actual activity are, as we have said, very numerous,
being more than 200 in number, scattered over the whole surface of the
globe, but mostly occurring in tropical regions. The island of Java
alone contains about fifty, which have been mapped and described by Dr.
Junghahn. Those best known are Vesuvius, near Naples; Etna, in Sicily;
and Stromboli, in the Lipari Islands. A rapid sketch of a few of these
may interest the reader.

Vesuvius is of all volcanoes that which has been most closely studied;
it is, so to speak, the classical volcano. Few persons are ignorant of
the fact that it opened--after a period of quiescence extending beyond
the memory of living man--in the year 79 of our era. This eruption cost
the elder Pliny his life, who fell a sacrifice to his desire to witness
one of the most imposing of natural phenomena. After many mutations the
present crater of Vesuvius consists of a cone, surrounded on the side
opposite the sea by a semicircular crest, composed of pumiceous matter,
foreign to Vesuvius properly speaking, for we believe that Mount
Vesuvius was originally the mountain to which the name of _Somma_ is now
given. The cone which now bears the name of Vesuvius was probably formed
during the celebrated eruption of 79, which buried under its showers of
pumiceous ashes the cities of Pompeii and Herculaneum. This cone
terminates in a crater, the shape of which has undergone many changes,
and which has, since its origin, thrown out eruptions of a varied
character, together with streams of lava. In our days the eruptions of
Vesuvius have only been separated by intervals of a few years.

The Lipari Isles contain the volcano of Stromboli, which is continually
in a state of ignition, and forms the natural lighthouse of the
Tyrrhenian Sea; such it was when Homer mentioned it, such it was before
old Homer’s time, and such it still appears in our days. Its eruptions
are incessant. The crater whence they issue is not situated on the
summit of the cone, but upon one of its sides, at nearly two-thirds of
its height. It is in part filled with fluid lava, which is continually
subjected to alternate elevation and depression--a movement provoked by
the ebullition and ascension of bubbles of steam which rise to the
surface, projecting upwards a tall column of ashes. During the night
these clouds of vapour shine with a magnificent red reflection, which
lights up the whole isle and the surrounding sea with a lurid glow.

Situated on the eastern coast of Sicily, Etna appears, at the first
glance, to have a much more simple structure than Vesuvius. Its <DW72>s
are less steep, more uniform on all sides; its vast base nearly
represents the form of a buckler. The lower portion of Etna, or the
cultivated region of the mountain, has an inclination of about three
degrees. The middle, or forest region, is steeper, and has an
inclination of about eight degrees. The mountain terminates in a cone
of an elliptical form of thirty-two degrees of inclination, which bears
in the middle, above a nearly horizontal terrace, the cone of eruption
with its circular crater. The crater is 10,874 feet high. It gives out
no lava, but only vomits forth gas and vapour, the streams of lava
issuing from sixteen smaller cones which have been formed on the <DW72>s
of the mountain. The observer may, by looking at the summit, convince
himself that these cones are disposed in rays, and are based upon clefts
or fissures which converge towards the crater as towards a centre.

But the most extraordinary display of volcanic phenomena occurs in the
Pacific Ocean, in the Sandwich Islands, and in Java. Mauna Loa and Mauna
Kea, in Hawaii, are huge flattened cones, 14,000 feet high. According to
Mr. Dana, these lofty, featureless hills sometimes throw out successive
streams of lava, not very far below their summits, often two miles in
breadth and six-and-twenty in length; and that not from one vent, but in
every direction, from the apex of the cone down <DW72>s varying from four
to eight degrees of inclination. The lateral crater of Kilauea, on the
flank of Mauna Loa, is from 3,000 to 4,000 feet above the level of the
sea--an immense chasm 1,000 feet deep, with an outer circuit two to
three miles in diameter. At the bottom lava is seen to boil up in a
molten lake, the level of which rises or falls according to the active
or quiescent state of the volcano; but in place of overflowing, the
column of melted rock, when the pressure becomes excessive, forces a
passage through subterranean communications leading to the sea. One of
these outbursts, which took place at an ancient wooded crater six miles
east of Kilauea, was observed by Mr. Coan, a missionary, in June, 1840.
Another indication of the subterranean progress of the lava took place a
mile or two beyond this, in which the fiery flood spread itself over
fifty acres of land, and then found its way underground for several
miles further, to reappear at the bottom of a second ancient wooded
crater which it partly filled up.[28]

  [28] Lyell’s “Elements of Geology,” p. 617.

The volcanic mountains of Java constitute the highest peaks of a
mountain-range running through the island from east to west, on which
Dr. Junghahn described and mapped forty-six conical eminences, ranging
from 4,000 to 11,000 feet high. At the top of many of the loftiest of
these Dr. Junghahn found the active cones and craters of small size, and
surrounded by a plain of ashes and sand, which he calls the “old crater
wall,” sometimes exceeding 1,000 feet in vertical height, and many of
the semicircular walls enclosing large cavities or _calderas_, four
geographical miles in diameter. From the highest parts of many of these
hollows rivers flow, which, in the course of ages, have cut out deep
valleys in the mountain’s side.[29]

  [29] Lyell’s “Elements of Geology,” p. 620.

To this rapid sketch of actually existing volcanic phenomena we may add
a brief notice of submarine volcanoes. If these are known to us only in
small numbers, the circumstance is explained by the fact that their
appearance above the bosom of the sea is almost invariably followed by a
more or less complete disappearance; at the same time such very striking
and visible phenomena afford a sufficient proof of the continued
persistence of volcanic action beneath the bed of the sea-basin. At
various times islands have suddenly appeared, amid the ocean, at points
where the navigator had not before noticed them. In this manner we have
witnessed the island called Graham’s, Ferdinanda, or Julia, which
suddenly appeared off the south-west coast Sicily in 1831, and was swept
away by the waves two months afterwards.[30] At several periods also,
and notably in 1811, new islands were formed in the Azores, which raised
themselves above the waves by repeated efforts all round the islands,
and at many other points.

  [30] Ibid, p. 620.

The island which appeared in 1796 ten leagues from the northern point of
Unalaska, one of the Aleutian group of islands, is specially remarkable.
We first see a column of smoke issuing from the bosom of the ocean,
afterwards a black point appears, from which bundles of fiery sparks
seem to rise over the surface of the sea. During the many months that
these phenomena continue, the island increases in breadth and in height.
Finally smoke only is seen; at the end of four years, even this last
trace of volcanic convulsion altogether ceases. The island continued,
nevertheless, to enlarge and to increase in height, and in 1806 it
formed a cone, surmounted by four other smaller ones.

In the space comprised between the isles of Santorin, Tharasia, and
Aspronisi, in the Mediterranean, there arose, 160 years before our era,
the island of _Hyera_, which was enlarged by the upheaval of islets on
its margin during the years 19, 726, and 1427. Again, in 1773,
Micra-Kameni, and in 1707, Nea-Kameni, made their appearance. These
islands increased in size successively in 1709, in 1711, in 1712.
According to ancient writers, Santorin, Tharasia, and Aspronisi, made
their appearance many ages before the Christian era, at the termination
of earthquakes of great violence.


METAMORPHIC ROCKS.

The rocks composing the terrestrial crust have not always remained in
their original state. They have frequently undergone changes which have
altogether modified their properties, physical and chemical.

When they present these characteristics, we term them _Metamorphic
Rocks_. The phenomena which belong to this subject are at once important
and new, and have lately much attracted the attention of geologists. We
shall best enlighten our readers on the metamorphism of rocks, if we
treat of it under the heads of _special_ and _general_ metamorphism.

When a mass of eruptive rock penetrates the terrestrial crust it
subjects the rocks through which it passes to a special metamorphism--to
the effects of _heat_ produced by _contact_. Such effects may almost
always be observed near the margin of masses of eruptive rock, and they
are attributable either to the communicated heat of the eruptive rock
itself, or to the disengagement of gases, of steam, or of mineral and
thermal waters, which have accompanied its eruption. The effects vary
not only with the rock ejected, but even with the nature of the rock
surrounding it.

In the case of volcanic lava ejected in a molten state, for instance,
the modifications it effects on the surrounding rock are very
characteristic. Its structure becomes prismatic, full of cracks, often
cellular and scoriaceous. Wood and other combustibles touched by the
lava are consumed or partially carbonised. Limestone assumes a granular
and crystalline texture. Siliceous rocks are transformed, not only into
quartz like glass, but they also combine with various bases, and yield
vitreous and cellular silicates. It is nearly the same with argillaceous
rocks, which adhere together, and frequently take the colour of red
bricks.

The surrounding rock is frequently impregnated with specular iron-ore,
and penetrated with hydrochloric or sulphuric acid, and by divers salts
formed from these acids.

At a certain distance from the place of contact with the lava, the
action of water aided by heat produces silica, carbonate of lime,
aragonite, zeolite, and various other minerals.

From immediate contact with the lava, then, the metamorphic rocks denote
the action of a very strong heat. They bear evident traces of
calcination, of softening, and even of fusion. When they present
themselves as hydrosilicates and carbonates, the silica and associated
minerals are most frequently at some distance from the points of
contact; and the formation of these minerals is probably due to the
combination of water and heat, although this last ceases to be the
principal agent.

The hydrated volcanic rocks, such as the basalts and trappean rocks in
general, continue to produce effects of metamorphism, in which heat
operates, although its influence is inconsiderable, water being much the
more powerful agent. The metamorphosis which is observable in the
structure and mineralogical composition of neighbouring rocks is as
follows:--The structure of separation becomes fragmentary, columnar, or
many-sided, and even prismatic. It becomes especially prismatic in
combustibles, in sandstones, in argillaceous formations, in felspathic
rocks, and even in limestones. Prisms are formed perpendicular to the
surface of contact, their length sometimes exceeding six feet. Most
commonly they still contain water or volatile matter. These characters
may be observed at the junction of the basalts which has been ejected
upon the argillaceous strata near Clermont in Auvergne, at Polignac, and
in the neighbourhood of Le Puy-en-Velay.

If the vein of Basalt or Trap has traversed a bed of coal or of lignite,
we find the combustible strongly _metamorphosed_ at the point of
contact. Sometimes it becomes cellular and is changed into _coke_. This
is especially the case in the coal-basin of Brassac. But more frequently
the coal has lost all, or part of, its bituminous and volatile
matter--it has been metamorphosed into anthracite--as an example we may
quote the lignite of Mont Meisner.

Again, in some exceptional cases, the combustible may even be changed
into graphite near to its junction with Trap. This is observed at the
coal-mine of New Cumnock in Ayrshire.

When near its junction with a _trappean_ rock, a combustible has been
metamorphosed into _coke_ or anthracite, it is also frequently
impregnated by hydrated oxide of iron, by clay, foliated carbonate of
lime, iron pyrites, and by various mineral veins. It may happen that the
combustible has been reduced to a pulverulent state, in which case it is
unfit for use. Such is the case in a coal-mine at Newcastle, where the
coal lies within thirty yards of a <DW18> of Trap.

When Basalt and Trap have been ejected through limestone rock, the
latter becomes more or less altered. Near the points of contact, the
metamorphism which they have undergone is revealed by the change of
colour and aspect, which is exhibited all around the vein, often also by
the development of a crystalline structure. Limestone becomes granular
and saccharoid--it is changed into marble. The most remarkable instance
of this metamorphism is the Carrara marble, a non-fossiliferous
limestone of the Oolite series, which has been altered and the fossils
destroyed; so that the marble of these celebrated quarries, once
supposed to have been formed before the creation of organic beings, is
now shown to be an altered limestone of the Oolitic period, and the
underlying crystalline schists are sandstones and shales of secondary
age modified by plutonic action.

The action of basalt upon limestone is observable at Villeneuve de Berg,
in Auvergne; but still more in the neighbourhood of Belfast, where we
may see the Chalk changed into saccharoid limestone near to its contact
with the Trap. Sometimes the metamorphism extends many feet from the
point of contact; nay, more than that, some zeolites and other minerals
seem to be developed in the crystallised limestone.

When sandstone is found in contact with trappean rock, it presents
unequivocal traces of metamorphism; it loses its reddish colour and
becomes white, grey, green, or black; parallel veins may be detected
which give it a jaspideous structure; it separates into prisms
perpendicular to the walls of the injected veins, when it assumes a
brilliant and vitreous lustre. Sometimes it is even also found
penetrated by zeolites, a family of minerals which melt before the
blowpipe with considerable ebullition. The mottled sandstones of
Germany, which are traversed by veins of basalt, often exhibit
metamorphism, particularly at Wildenstern, in Würtemberg.

Argillaceous rocks, like all others, are subject to metamorphism when
they come in contact with eruptive trappean rocks. In these
circumstances they change colour and assume a varied or prismatic
structure; at the same time their hardness increases, and they become
lithoidal or stony in structure. They may also become cellular--form
zeolites in their cavities with foliated carbonate of lime, as well as
minerals which commonly occur in amygdaloid. Sometimes even the fissures
are coated by the metallic minerals, and the other minerals which
accompany them in their metalliferous beds. Generally they lose a part
of their water and of their carbonic acid. In other circumstances they
combine with oxide of iron and the alkalies. This has been asserted, for
example, at Essey, in the department of the Meurthe, where a very
argillaceous sandstone is found, charged with jasper porcellanite, near
to the junction of the rock with a vein of basalt.

Hitherto we have spoken only of the metamorphosis the result of volcanic
action. A few words will suffice to acquaint the reader with the
metamorphism exercised by the porphyries and granites. By contact with
granite, we find coal changed into anthracite or graphite. It is
important to note, however, that coal has seldom been metamorphosed into
coke. As to the limestone, it is sometimes, as we have seen, transformed
into marble; we even find in its interior divers minerals, notably
silicates with a calcareous base, such as garnets, pyroxene, hornblende,
&c. The sandstones and clay-slates have alike been altered.

The surrounding deposit and the eruptive rock are both frequently
impregnated with quartz, carbonate of lime, sulphate of baryta,
fluorides, and, in a word, with the whole tribe of metalliferous
minerals, which present themselves, besides, with the characteristics
which are common to them in the veins.


GENERAL METAMORPHISM.

Sedimentary rocks sometimes exhibit all the symptoms of metamorphism
where there is no evidence of direct eruptive action, and that upon a
scale much grander than in the case of special metamorphism. It is
observable over whole regions, in which it has modified and altered
simultaneously all the surrounding rocks. This state of things is called
general, or normal, metamorphism. The fundamental gneiss, which covers
such a vast extent of country, is the most striking instance known of
general metamorphism. It was first described by Sir W. E. Logan,
Director of the Canadian Geological Survey, who estimates its thickness
at 30,000 feet. The Laurentian Gneiss is a term which is used by
geologists to designate those metamorphic rocks which are known to be
older than the Cambrian system. They are parts of the old pre-Cambrian
continents which lie at the base of the great American continent,
Scandinavia, the Hebrides, &c.; and which are largely developed on the
west coast of Scotland. In order to give the reader some idea of this
metamorphism, we shall endeavour to trace its effects in rocks of the
same nature, indicating the characters successively presented by the
rocks according to the intensity of the metamorphism to which they have
been subjected.

Combustibles, which have a special composition, totally different from
all other rocks, are obviously the first objects of examination. When we
descend in the series of sedimentary deposits, the combustibles are
observed completely to change their characters. From the _peat_ which is
the product of our own epoch, we pass to _lignite_, to _coal_, to
_anthracite_, and even to _graphite_; and find that their density
increases, varying up to at least double. Hydrogen, nitrogen, and,
above all, oxygen, diminish rapidly. Volatile and bituminous matters
decrease, while carbon undergoes a proportionate increase.

This metamorphism of the combustible minerals, which takes place in
deposits of different ages, may also be observed even in the same bed.
For instance, in the coal formations of America, which extend to the
west of the Alleghany mountains, the Coal-measures contain a certain
proportion of volatile matter, which goes on diminishing in proportion
as we approach the granite rocks; this proportion rises to fifty per
cent. upon the Ohio, but it falls to forty upon the Manon-Gahela, and
even to sixteen in the Alleghanies. Finally, in the regions where the
strata have been most disturbed, in Pennsylvania and Massachusetts, the
coal has been metamorphosed into anthracite and even into graphite or
plumbago.

Limestone is one of the rocks upon which we can most easily follow the
effects of general metamorphism. When it has not been modified, it is
usually found in sedimentary rocks in the state of compact limestone, of
coarse limestone, or of earthy limestone such as chalk. But let us
consider it in the mountains, especially in mountains which are at the
same time granitic, such as the Pyrenees, the Vosges, and the Alps. We
shall then see its characters completely modified. In the long and deep
valleys of the Alps, for example, we can follow the alterations of the
limestone for many leagues, the beds losing more and more their
regularity in proportion as we approach the central chain, until they
lose themselves in solitary pinnacles and projections enclosed in
crystalline schists or granitic rocks. Towards the upper regions of the
Alps the limestone divides itself into pseudo-regular fragments, it is
more strongly cemented, more compact, more sonorous; its colour becomes
paler, and it passes from black to grey by the gradual disappearance of
organic and bituminous matter with which it has been impregnated, at the
same time its crystalline structure increases in a manner scarcely
perceptible. It may even be observed to be metamorphosed into an
aggregate of microscopic crystals, and finally to pass into a white
saccharoid limestone.

This metamorphism is produced without any decomposition of the
limestone; it has rather been softened and half melted by the heat, that
is, rendered plastic, so to speak, for we find in it fossils still
recognisable, and among these, notably, some Ammonites and Belemnites,
the presence of which enables us to state that it is the greyish-black
Jurassic limestone, which has been transformed into white saccharoid or
granular limestone. If the limestone subjected to this transformation
were perfectly pure, it would simply take a crystalline structure; but
it is generally mixed with sand and various argillaceous matters, which
have been deposited along with it, matters which go to form new
minerals. These new minerals, however, are not disseminated by chance;
they develop themselves in the direction of the lamination, so to speak,
of the limestone, and in its fissures, in such a manner that they
present themselves in nodules, seams, and sometimes in veins.

Among the principal minerals of the saccharoid limestone we may mention
graphite, quartz, some very varied silicates, such as andalusite,
disthene, serpentine, talc, garnet, augite, hornblende, epidote,
chlorite, the micas, the felspars; finally, spinel, corundum, phosphate
of lime, oxide of iron and oligiste, iron pyrites, &c. Besides these,
various minerals in veins figure among those which exist more commonly
in the saccharoid limestone.

When metamorphic limestone is sufficiently pure, it is employed as
statuary marble. Such is the geological origin of Carrara marble, which
is quarried in the Apuan Alps on a great scale; such, also, was the
marble of Paros and Antiparos, still so celebrated for its purity. On
examination, however, with the lens the Carrara marble exhibits blackish
veins and spangles of graphite; the finest blocks, also, frequently
contain nodules of ironstone, which are lined with perfectly limpid
crystals of quartz. These accidental defects are very annoying to the
sculptor, for they are very minute, and nothing on the exterior of the
block betrays their existence. In the marble of Paros, even when it is
strongly translucent, specks of mica are often found. In the ancient
quarries the nodules are so numerous as to have hindered their being
worked, up even to the present time.

When the mica which occurs in granular limestone takes a green colour
and forms veins, it constitutes the Cipoline marble, which is found in
Corsica, and in the Val Godemar in the Alps. Some white marbles are
quarried in France, chiefly at Loubie, at Sost, at Saint-Béat in the
Pyrenees, and at Chippal in the Vosges. In our country, and especially
in Ireland, there are numerous quarries of marble, veined and 
of every hue, but none of a purity suitable for the finest statuary
purposes. All these marbles are only metamorphosed limestones.

The white marbles employed almost all over the world are those of
Carrara. They result from the metamorphism of limestone of the Lias.
They have not been penetrated by the eruptive rocks, but they have been
subjected upon a great scale to a general metamorphism, to which their
crystalline structure may be attributed.

It is easily understood that the calcareous strata have not undergone
such an energetic metamorphism without the beds of sandstone and clay,
associated with them, having also undergone some modification of the
same kind. The siliceous beds accompanying the saccharoid limestone
have, in short, a character of their own. They are formed of small
grains of transparent quartz more or less cemented one to the other in a
manner strongly resembling those of the saccharoid limestone. Between
these grains are usually developed some lamellæ of mica of brilliant and
silky lustre, of which the colour is white, red, or green; in a word, it
has produced a _quartzite_. Some veins of quartz frequently traverse
this quartzite in all directions. Independent of the mica, it may
contain, besides, the different minerals already mentioned as occurring
in the limestone, and particularly silicates--such as disthene,
andalusite, staurotide, garnet, and hornblende.

The argillaceous beds present a series of metamorphisms analogous to the
preceding. We can follow them readily through all their gradations when
we direct our attention towards such granitic masses as those which
constitute the Alps, Pyrenees, the Bretagne Mountains, or our own
Grampians. The schists may perhaps be considered the first step towards
the metamorphism of certain argillaceous rocks; in fact, the schists are
not susceptible of mixing with water like clay; they become stony, and
acquire a much greater density, but their chief characteristic is a
foliated structure.

Experiment proves that when we subject a substance to a great pressure a
foliated structure is produced in a direction perpendicular to that in
which the pressure is exercised. Everything leads us, therefore, to
believe that pressure is the principal cause of the schistous texture,
and of the foliation of clay-slates, the most characteristic variety of
which is the roofing-slate which is quarried so extensively in North
Wales, in Cumberland, and various parts of Scotland in the British
Islands; in the Ardennes; and in the neighbourhood of Angers, in France.

In some localities the slate becomes siliceous and is charged with
crystals of felspar. Nevertheless, it still presents itself in parallel
beds, and contains the same fossil remains still in a recognisable
state. For example, in the neighbourhood of Thann, in the Vosges,
certain vegetable imprints are perfectly preserved in the metamorphic
schist, and in their midst are developed some crystals of felspar.

Mica-schist, which is formed of layers of quartz and mica, is found
habitually associated with rocks which have taken a crystalline
structure, proceeding evidently from an energetic metamorphism of beds
originally argillaceous. Chiastolite, disthene, staurotide, hornblende,
and other minerals are found in it. Mica-schists occur extensively in
Brittany, in the Vosges, in the Pyrenees. In all cases, as we approach
the masses of granite, in these regions, the crystalline structure
becomes more and more marked.

In describing the various facts relating to the metamorphism of rocks,
we have said little of the causes which have produced it. The causes
are, indeed, in the region of hypothesis, and somewhat mysterious.

In what concerns special metamorphism, the cause is supposed to admit of
easy explanation--it is heat. When a rock is ejected from the interior
of the earth in a state of igneous fusion, we comprehend readily enough
that the strata, which it traverses, should sustain alterations due to
the influence of heat, and varying with its intensity. This is clear
enough in the case of _lava_. On the other hand, as water always exists
in the interior of the earth’s crust, and as this water must be at a
very high temperature in the neighbourhood of volcanic fires, it
contributes, no doubt, largely to the metamorphism. If the rocks have
not been ejected in a state of fusion, it is evidently water, with the
different mineral substances it holds in solution, which is the chief
actor in the special metamorphism which is produced.

In general metamorphism, water appears still to be the principal agent.
As it is infiltered through the various beds it will modify their
composition, either by dissolving certain substances, or by introducing
into the metalliferous deposits certain new substances, such as may be
seen forming, even under our eyes, in mineral springs. This has tended
to render the sedimentary deposits plastic, and has permitted the
development of that crystalline structure, which is one of the principal
characteristics of metamorphic rocks. This action has been seconded by
other causes, notably by heat and pressure, which would have an immense
increase of power and energy when metamorphism takes place at a great
depth beneath the surface. Dr. Holl, in an able paper descriptive of the
geology of the Malvern Hills, read before the Geological Society in
February, 1865, adopts this hypothesis as explanatory of the vast
phenomena which are there displayed. After describing the position of
this interesting and strangely-mingled range of rocks, he adds: “These
metamorphic rocks are for the most part highly inclined, and often in a
position nearly vertical. Their disturbance and metamorphism, their
being traversed by granitic veins, and still later their invasion by
trap-<DW18>s and their subsequent elevation above the sea-level, were all
events which must have occupied no inconsiderable period, even of
geological time. I presume,” he adds, “that it will not be maintained
in the present day that the metamorphism of rocks over areas of any but
very moderate extent is due to the intrusion of veins and erupted
masses. The insufficiency of such agency becomes the more obvious when
we consider the slight effects produced by even tolerably extensive
outbursts, such as the Dartmoor granite; while in the case of the
Malverns there is an absence of any local cause whatever. The more
probable explanation in the case of these larger areas is, that they
were faulted down, or otherwise depressed, so as to be brought within
the influence of the earth’s internal heat, and this is the more likely
as they belong to an epoch when the crust is believed to have been
thinner.” When it is considered that, according to the doctrine of
modern geology, the Laurentian rocks, or their equivalents, lie at the
base of all the sedimentary deposits; that this, like other systems of
stratified rocks, was deposited in the form of sand, mud, and clay, to
the thickness of 30,000 feet; and that over an area embracing
Scandinavia, the Hebrides, great part of Scotland, and England as far
south as the Malverns, besides a large proportion of the American
continent, with certain forms of animal life, as recent investigations
demonstrate--can the mind of man realise any other cause by which this
vast extent of metamorphism could have been produced?

Electric and galvanic currents, circulating in the stratified crust, are
not to be overlooked. The experiments of Mr. R. W. Fox and Mr. Robert
Hunt suggest that, in passing long-continued galvanic currents through
masses of moistened clay, there is a tendency to produce cleavage and a
semi-crystalline arrangement of the particles of matter.[31]

  [31] Report of the Royal Cornwall Polytechnic Society for 1837. Robert
       Hunt, in “Memoirs of the Geological Survey of Great Britain,”
       vol. i., p. 433.




THE BEGINNING.


The theory which has been developed, and which considers the earth as an
extinct sun, as a star cooled down from its original heated condition,
as a nebula, or luminous cloud, which has passed from the gaseous to the
solid state--this fine conception, which unites so brilliantly the
kindred sciences of astronomy and geology, belongs to the French
mathematician, Laplace, the immortal author of the “Mécanique Céleste.”

The hypothesis of Laplace assigns to the sun, and to all bodies which
gravitate in what Descartes calls his _tourbillon_, a common origin. “In
the primitive state in which we must suppose the sun to be,” he says,
“it resembles one of those nebulæ which the telescope reveals to us,
consisting of a more or less brilliant central _nucleus_, surrounded by
luminous clouds, which clouds, condensing at the surface, become
transformed into a star.”

It has been calculated that the centre of the earth has a temperature of
about 195,000° Cent., a degree of heat which surpasses all that the
imagination can conceive. We can have no difficulty in admitting that,
at a heat so excessive, all the substances which now enter into the
composition of the globe would be reduced to the state of gas or vapour.
Our planet, then, must have been originally an aggregation of aëriform
fluids--a mass of matter entirely gaseous; and if we reflect that
substances in their gaseous state occupy a volume eighteen hundred times
larger than when solid, we shall have some conception of the enormous
volume of this gaseous mass. It would be as large as the sun, which is
fourteen hundred thousand times larger than the terrestrial sphere. In
Fig. 12 we have attempted to give an idea of the vast difference of
volume between the earth in its present solid state and in its primitive
gaseous condition. One of the globes, A, represents the former, B the
latter. It is simply a comparison of size, which is made the more
strikingly apparent by means of these geometrical figures--one the
twentieth part of an inch in diameter, the other two inches and three
quarters.

[Illustration: VI.--The Earth circulating in space in the state of a
gaseous star.]

[Illustration: Fig. 12.--Comparative volume of the earth in the gaseous
and solid state.]

At this excessive temperature the gaseous mass, which we have described,
would shine in space as the sun does at the present day; and with the
same brilliancy as that with which, to our eyes, the fixed stars and
planets shine in the serenity of night, as represented on the opposite
page (PLATE VI.). Circulating round the sun in obedience to the laws of
universal gravitation, this incandescent gaseous mass was necessarily
regulated by the laws which govern other material substances. As it got
cooler it gradually transferred part of its warmth to the glacial
regions of the inter-planetary spaces, in the midst of which it traced
the line of its flaming orbit. Consequent on its continual cooling (but
at the end of a period of time of which it would be impossible, even
approximately, to fix the duration), the star, originally gaseous, would
attain a liquid state. It would then be considerably diminished in
volume.

The laws of mechanics teach us that liquid bodies, when in a state of
rotation, assume a spherical form; it is one of the laws of their being,
emanating from the Creator, and is due to the force of attraction. Thus
the Earth takes the spheroidal form, belonging to it, in common with the
greater number of the celestial bodies.

The Earth is subject to two distinct movements; namely, a movement of
translation round the sun, and a movement of rotation on its own
axis--the latter a uniform movement, which produces the regular
alternations of days and nights. Mechanics have also established the
fact, which is confirmed by experiment, that a fluid mass in motion
produces (as the result of the variation of the centrifugal force on its
different diameters), a swelling towards the equatorial diameter of the
sphere, and a flattening at the poles or extremities of its axis. It is
in consequence of this law, that the Earth, when it was in a liquid
state, became swollen at the equator, and depressed at its two poles;
and that it has passed from its primitive spherical form to the
spheroidal--that is, has become flattened at each of its polar
extremities, and has assumed its present shape of an oblate spheroid.

This bulging at the equator and flattening towards the poles afford the
most direct proofs, that can be adduced, of the original liquid state of
our planet. A solid and non-elastic sphere--a stone ball, for
example--might turn for ages upon its axis, and its form would sustain
no change; but a fluid ball, or one of a pasty consistence, would swell
out towards the middle, and, in the same proportion, become flattened at
the extremities of its axis. It was upon this principle, namely, by
admitting the primitive fluidity of the globe, that Newton announced _à
priori_ the bulging of the globe at the equator and its flattening at
the poles; and he even calculated the amount of this depression. The
actual measurement, both of this expansion and flattening, by
Maupertuis, Clairaut, Camus, and Lemonnier, in 1736, proved how exact
the calculations of the great geometrican were. Those gentlemen,
together with the Abbé Outhier, were sent into Lapland by the Academy of
Sciences; the Swedish astronomer, Celsius, accompanied them, and
furnished them with the best instruments for measuring and surveying. At
the same time the Academy sent Bouguer and Condamine to the equatorial
regions of South America. The measurements taken in both these regions
established the existence of the equatorial expansion and the polar
depression, as Newton had estimated it to be in his calculations.

It does not follow, as a consequence of the partial cooling down of the
terrestrial mass, that all the gaseous substances composing it should
pass into a liquid state; some of these might remain in the state of gas
or vapour, and form round the terrestrial spheroid an outer envelope or
_atmosphere_ (from the Greek words ατμος, _vapour_, and σφαιρα,
_sphere_). But we should form a very inexact idea of the atmosphere
which surrounded the globe, at this remote period, if we compared it
with that which surrounds it now. The extent of the gaseous matter which
enveloped the primitive earth must have been immense; it doubtless
extended to the moon. It included, in short, in the state of vapour, the
enormous body of water which, as such, now constitutes our existing
seas, added to all the other substances which preserve their gaseous
state at the temperature then exhibited by the incandescent earth; and
it is certainly no exaggeration to place this temperature at 2,000°
Centigrade. The atmosphere would participate in this temperature; and
acted on by such excessive heat, the pressure that it would exert on the
Earth would be infinitely greater than that which it exercises at the
present time. To the gases which form the component parts of the present
atmospheric air--namely, nitrogen, oxygen, and carbonic acid--to
enormous masses of watery vapour, must be added vast quantities of
mineral substances, metallic or earthy, reduced to a gaseous state, and
maintained in that state by the temperature of this gigantic furnace.
The metals, the chlorides--metallic, alkaline, and earthy--sulphur, the
sulphides, and even the silicates of alumina and lime; all, at this
temperature, would exist in a vaporous form in the atmosphere
surrounding the primitive globe.

It is to be inferred that, under these circumstances, the different
substances composing this atmosphere would be ranged round the globe in
the order of their respective densities; the first layer--that nearest
to the surface of the globe--being formed of the heavier vapours, such
as those of the metals, of iron, platinum, and copper, mixed doubtless
with clouds of fine metallic dust produced by the partial condensation
of their vapours. This first and heaviest zone, and the thickest also,
would be quite opaque, although the surface of the earth was still at a
red heat. Above it would come the more vaporisable substances, such as
the metallic and alkaline chlorides, particularly the chloride of sodium
or common salt, sulphur and phosphorus, with all the volatile
combinations of these substances. The upper zone would contain matter
still more easily converted into vapour, such as water (steam), together
with others naturally gaseous, as oxygen, nitrogen, and carbonic acid.
This order of superposition, however, would not always be preserved. In
spite of their differences of density, these three atmospheric layers
would often become mixed, producing formidable storms and violent
ebullitions; frequently throwing down, rending, upheaving, and
confounding these incandescent zones.

As to the globe itself, without being so much agitated as its hot and
shifting atmosphere, it would be no less subject to perpetual tempests,
occasioned by the thousand chemical actions which took place in its
molten mass. On the other hand, the electricity resulting from these
powerful chemical actions, operating on such a vast scale, would induce
frightful electric detonations, thunder adding to the horror of this
primitive scene, which no imagination, no human pencil could trace, and
which constitutes that gloomy and disastrous chaos of which the
legendary history of every ancient race has transmitted the tradition.
In this manner would our globe circulate in space, carrying in its train
the flaming streaks of its multiple atmosphere, unfitted, as yet, for
living beings, and impenetrable to the rays of the sun, around which it
described its vast orbit.

The temperature of the planetary regions is infinitely low; according to
Laplace it cannot be estimated at less than 100° below zero. The glacial
regions traversed in its course by the incandescent globe would
necessarily cool it, at first superficially, when it would assume a
pasty consistence. It must not be forgotten that the earth, on account
of its liquid state, would be obedient in all its mass to the action of
flux and reflux, which proceeds from the attraction of the sun and moon,
but to which the sea alone is now subject. This action, to which all its
liquid and movable particles were subject, would singularly accelerate
the commencement of the solidification of the terrestrial mass. It would
thus gradually assume that sort of consistence which iron attains, when
it is first withdrawn from the furnace, in the process of puddling.

As the earth cooled, beds of concrete substances would necessarily be
formed, which, floating at first in isolated masses on the surface of
the semi-fluid matter, would in course of time come together,
consolidate, and form continuous banks; just as we see with the ice of
the present Polar Seas, which, when brought in contact by the agitation
of the waves, coalesces and forms icebergs, more or less movable. By
extending this phenomenon to the whole surface of the globe, the
solidification of its entire surface would be produced. A solid, but
still thin and fragile crust, would thus envelop the whole earth,
enclosing entirely its still fluid interior. The entire consolidation
would necessarily be a much slower process--one which, according to the
received hypothesis, is very far from being completed at the present
time; for it is estimated that the actual thickness of the earth’s crust
does not exceed thirty miles, while the mean radius or distance from the
centre of the terrestrial sphere, approaches 4,000 miles, the mean
diameter being 7,912·409 miles; so that the portion of our planet,
supposed to be solidified, represents only a very small fraction of its
total mass.

[Illustration: Fig. 13.--Relative volumes of the solid crust and liquid
mass of the globe.]

We say thirty miles, for such is the ordinary estimated thickness of the
earth’s crust, usually admitted by savants; and the following is the
process by which this result has been obtained.

We know that the temperature of the earth increases one degree
Centigrade for every hundred feet of descent. This result has been
borne out by a great number of measurements, made in many of the mines
of France, in the tin mines of Cornwall, in the mines of the Erzgeberge,
of the Ural, of Scotland, and, above all, in the soundings effected in
the Artesian wells of Grenelle and Passy, near Paris, of St. André de
Iregny, and at a great number of other points.

The greatest depth to which miners have hitherto penetrated is about 973
yards, which has been reached in a boring executed in Monderf, in the
Grand Duchy of Luxembourg. At Neusalzwerk, near Minden, in Prussia,
another boring has been carried to the depth of 760 yards. In the
coal-mines of Monkwearmouth the pits have been sunk 525 yards, and at
Dukinfield 717 yards. The mean of the thermometic observations made, at
all these points, leads to the conclusion that the temperature increases
about one degree Fahrenheit for every sixty feet (English) of descent
after the first hundred.

In admitting that this law of temperature exists for all depths of the
earth’s crust, we arrive at the conclusion that, at a depth of from
twenty-five to thirty-five miles--which is only about five times the
height of the highest mountains--the most refractory matter would be in
a state of fusion. According to M. Mitscherlich, the flame of hydrogen,
burning in free air, acquires a temperature of 1,560° Centigrade. In
this flame platinum would be in a state of fusion. Granite melts at a
lower temperature than soft iron, that is at about 1,300°; while silver
melts at 1,023°. In imagining an increase of temperature equal to one
degree for every hundred feet of descent, the temperature at twenty-five
miles will be 1,420° C. or 2,925° F.; thirty miles below the surface
there will be a probable temperature of 1,584° C. or 3,630° F.; it
follows, if these arguments be admitted, and the calculation correct,
that the thickness of the solid crust of the globe does not much exceed
thirty miles.

This result, which gives to the terrestrial crust a thickness equal to
1/190 of the earth’s diameter, has nothing, it is true, of absolute
certainty.

Prof. W. Hopkins, F.R.S., an eminent mathematician, has much insisted
upon the fact, that the conductibility of granite rocks, for heat, is
much greater than that of sedimentary rocks; and he argues that in the
lower stratum of the earth the temperature increases much more slowly
than it does nearer the surface. This consideration has led Mr. Hopkins
to estimate the probable thickness of the earth’s solid crust at a
minimum of 200 miles.

In support of this estimate Mr. Hopkins puts forward another argument,
based upon the precession of the equinoxes. We know that the terrestrial
axis, instead of always preserving the same direction in space,
revolves in a cone round the pole of the ecliptic. Our globe, it is
calculated, will accomplish its revolution in about 25,000 years. In
about this period it will return to its original position. This
balancing, which has been compared to that of a top when about to cease
spinning, produces the movement known as the _precession of the
equinoxes_. It is due to the attraction which the sun and moon exercise
upon the swelling equatorial of the globe. This attraction would act
very differently upon a globe entirely solid, and upon one with a liquid
interior, covered by a comparatively thin crust. Mr. Hopkins subjected
this curious problem to mathematical analysis, and he calculated that
the precession of the equinoxes, observed by astronomers, could only be
explained by admitting that the solid shell of the earth could not be
less than from about 800 to 1,000 miles in thickness.

In his researches on the _rigidity of the earth_, Sir William Thomson
finds that the phenomena of precession and nutation require that the
earth, if not solid to the core, must be nearly so; and that no
continuous liquid vesicle at all approaching 6,000 miles in diameter can
possibly exist in the earth’s interior, without rendering the phenomena
in question very sensibly different from what they are.

The calculations of Mr. Hennessey are in direct opposition to those of
Sir William Thomson, and show that the earth’s crust cannot be less than
eighteen miles, or more than 600 miles in thickness.

Admitting, for the present, that the terrestrial crust is only thirty
miles in thickness, we can express in a familiar, but very intelligible
fashion, the actual relation between the dimensions of the liquid
nucleus and the solid crust of the earth. If we imagine the earth to be
an orange, a tolerably thick sheet of paper applied to its surface will
then represent, approximately, the thickness of the solid crust which
now envelopes the globe. Fig. 13 will enable us to appreciate this fact
still more correctly. The terrestrial sphere having a mean diameter of
7,912 miles, or a mean radius of 3,956 miles, and a solid crust about
thirty miles thick, which is 1/260 of the diameter, or 1/130 of the
radius, the engraving may be presumed to represent these proportions
with sufficient accuracy.

To determine, even approximately, the time such a vast body would take
in cooling, so as to permit of the formation of a solid crust, or to fix
the duration of the transformations which we are describing, would be an
impossible task.

[Illustration: Fig. 14.--Formation of primitive granitic mountains.]

The first terrestrial crust formed, as indicated, would be incapable of
resisting the waves of the ocean of internal fire, which would be
depressed and raised up at its daily flux and reflux in obedience to
the attraction of the sun and moon. Who can trace, even in imagination,
the fearful rendings, the gigantic inundations, which would result from
these movements! Who would dare to paint the sublime horrors of these
first mysterious convulsions of the globe! Amid torrents of molten
matter, mixed with gases, upheaving and piercing the scarcely
consolidated crust, large crevices would be opened, and through these
gaping cracks waves of liquid granite would be ejected, and then left to
cool and consolidate on the surface. Fig. 14 represents the formation of
a primitive granitic mountain, by the eruption of the internal granitic
matter which forces its way to the surface through a fracture in the
crust. In some of these mountains, Ben Nevis for example, three
different stages of the eruption can be traced. “Ben Nevis, now the
undoubted monarch of the Scottish mountains,” says Nicol, “shows well
the diverse age and relations of igneous rocks. The Great Moor from
Inverlochy and Fort William to the foot of the hill is gneiss. Breaking
through, and partly resting on the gneiss is granite, forming the lower
two-thirds of the mountain up to the small tarn on the shoulder of the
hill. Higher still is the huge prism of porphyry, rising steep and
rugged all around.” In this manner would the first mountains be formed.
In this way, also, might some metallic veins be ejected through the
smaller openings, true injections of eruptive matter produced from the
interior of the globe, traversing the primitive rocks and constituting
the precious depository of metals, such as copper, zinc, antimony, and
lead. Fig. 15 represents the internal structure of some of these
metallic veins. In this case the fracture is only a fissure in the rock,
which soon became filled with injected matter, often of different kinds,
which in crystallising would completely fill the hollow of this cleft,
or crack; but sometimes forming cavities or geodes as a result of the
contraction of the mass.

[Illustration: Fig. 15.--Metallic veins.]

But some eruptions of granitic and other substances, ejected from the
interior, never reach the surface at all. In such cases the clefts and
crevices--longitudinal or oblique--are filled, but the fissures in the
crust do not themselves extend to the surface. Fig. 16 represents an
eruption of granite through a mass of sedimentary rock--the granite
ejected from the centre fills all the clefts and fractures, but it has
not been sufficiently powerful to force its way to the surface.

[Illustration: Fig. 16.--Eruption of granite.]

On the surface of the earth, then, which would be at first smooth and
unbroken, there were formed, from the very beginning, swelling
eminences, hollows, foldings, corrugations, and crevices, which would
materially alter its original aspect; its arid and burning surface
bristled with rugged protuberances, or was traversed by enormous
fissures and cracks. Nevertheless, as the globe continued to cool, a
time arrived when its temperature became insufficient to maintain, in a
state of vapour, the vast masses of water which floated in the
atmosphere. These vapours would pass into the liquid state, and then the
first rain fell upon the earth. Let us here remark that these were
veritable rains of boiling water; for in consequence of the very
considerable pressure of the atmosphere, water would be condensed and
become liquid at a temperature much above 100° Centigrade (212° Fahr.)

[Illustration: VII.--Condensation and rainfall on the primitive globe.]

The first drop of water, which fell upon the still heated terrestrial
sphere, marked a new period in its evolution--a period the mechanical
and chemical effects of which it is important to analyse. The contact of
the condensed water with the consolidated surface of the globe opens up
a series of modifications of which science may undertake the examination
with a degree of confidence, or at least with more positive elements of
appreciation than any we possess for the period of chaos; some of the
features of which we have attempted to represent, leaving of necessity
much to the imagination, and for the reader to interpret after his own
fashion.

The first water which fell, in the liquid state, upon the slightly
cooled surface of the earth would be rapidly converted into steam by the
elevation of its temperature. Thus, rendered much lighter than the
surrounding atmosphere, these vapours would rise to the utmost limits of
the atmosphere, where they would become condensed afresh, in consequence
of their radiation towards the glacial regions of space; condensing
again, they would re-descend to the earth in a liquid state, to
re-ascend as vapour and fall in a state of condensation. But all these
changes, in the physical condition of the water, could only be
maintained by withdrawing a very considerable amount of heat from the
surface of the globe, whose cooling would be greatly hastened by these
continual alternations of heat and cold; its heat would thus become
gradually dissipated and lost in the regions of celestial space.

This phenomenon extending itself by degrees to the whole mass of watery
vapour existing in the atmosphere, the waters covered the earth in
increasing quantities; and as the conversion of all liquids into vapour
is provocative of a notable disengagement of electricity, a vast
quantity of electric fluid necessarily resulted from the conversion of
such large masses of water into vapour. Bursts of thunder, and bright
flashes of lightning were the necessary accompaniments of this
extraordinary struggle of the elements--a state of things which M.
Maurando has attempted to represent on the opposite page (PLATE VII.).

How long did this struggle for supremacy between fire and water, with
the incessant noise of thunder, continue? All that can be said in reply
is, that a time came when water was triumphant. After having covered
vast areas on the surface of the earth, it finally occupied and entirely
covered the whole surface; for there is good reason to believe that at a
certain epoch, at the commencement, so to speak, of its evolution; the
earth was covered by water over its whole extent. The ocean was
universal. From this moment our globe entered on a regular series of
revolutions, interrupted only by the outbreaks of the internal fires
which were concealed beneath its still imperfectly consolidated crust.

“At the early periods in which the materials of the ancient crystalline
schists were accumulated, it cannot be doubted that the chemical
processes which generated silicates were much more active than in more
recent times. The heat of the earth’s crust was probably then far
greater than at present, while a high temperature prevailed at
comparatively small depths, and thermal waters abounded. A denser
atmosphere, charged with carbonic acid gas, must also have contributed
to maintain, at the earth’s surface, a greater degree of heat, though
one not incompatible with the existence of organic life.

“These conditions must have favoured many chemical processes, which in
later times have nearly ceased to operate. Hence we find that
subsequently to the eozoic times, silicated rocks of clearly marked
chemical origin are comparatively rare.”[32]

  [32] “Address to the American Association for the Advancement of
       Science,” by Thomas Sterry Hunt, LL.D., p. 56. 1871.

In order to comprehend the complex action, now mechanical, now chemical,
which the waters, still in a heated state, exercised on the solid crust,
let us consider what were the components of this crust. The rocks which
formed its first _stratum_--the framework of the earth, the foundation
upon which all others repose--may be presumed to have been a compound
which, in varying proportions, forms granite and gneiss, and has
latterly been designated by geologists Laurentian.

What is this gneiss, this granite, speaking of it with reference to its
mineralogical character? It is a combination of silicates, with a base
of alumina, potash, soda, and sometimes lime--_quartz_, _felspar_, and
_mica_ form, by their simple aggregation, _granite_--it is thus a
ternary combination, or composed of three minerals.

_Quartz_, the most abundant of all minerals, is silica more or less pure
and often crystallised. _Felspar_ is a crystalline or crystallised
mineral, composed of _silicate_ of alumina, potash, soda, or lime;
potash-felspar is called _orthoclase_, soda-felspar _albite_,
lime-felspar _anorthite_. _Mica_ is a silicate of alumina and potash,
containing magnesia and oxide of iron; it takes its name from the Latin
_micare_, to shine or glitter.

_Granite_ (from the Italian _grano_, being granular in its structure)
is, then, a compound rock, formed of felspar, quartz, and mica, and the
three constituent minerals are more or less crystalline. _Gneiss_ is a
schistose variety of granite, and composed of the same minerals; the
only difference between the two rocks (whatever may be their difference
of origin) being that the constituent minerals, instead of being
confusedly aggregated, as in granite, assume a foliated texture in
gneiss. This foliated structure leads sometimes to gneiss being called
_stratified granite_. “The term gneiss originated with the Freiberg
miners, who from ancient times have used it to designate the rock in
which their veins of silver-ore were found.”[33]

  [33] Cotta’s “Rocks Classified and Described,” by P. H. Lawrence, p.
       232.

The felspar, which enters into the composition of granite, is a mineral
that is easily decomposed by water, either cold or boiling, or by the
water of springs rich in carbonic acid. The chemical action of carbonic
acid and water, and the action (at once chemical and mechanical) of the
hot water in the primitive seas, powerfully modified the granitic rocks
which lay beneath them. The warm rains which fell upon the
mountain-peaks and granitic pinnacles, the torrents of rain which fell
upon the <DW72>s or in the valleys, dissolved the several alkaline
silicates which constitute felspar and mica, and swept them away to form
elsewhere strata of clay and sand; thus were the first modifications in
the primitive rocks produced by the united action of air and water, and
thus were the first sedimentary rocks deposited from the oceanic waters.

The argillaceous deposits produced by this decomposition of the
felspathic and micaceous rocks would participate in the still heated
temperature of the globe--would be again subjected to long continued
heat; and when they became cool again, they would assume, by a kind of
semi-crystallisation, that parallel structure which is called foliation.
All foliated rocks, then, are metamorphic, and the result of a
metamorphic action to which sedimentary strata (and even some eruptive
rocks) have been subjected subsequently to their deposition and
consolidation, and which has produced a re-arrangement of their
component mineral particles, and frequently, if not always, of their
chemical elements also.

In this manner would the first beds of crystalline _schist_, such as
mica-schist, be formed, probably out of sandy and clayey muds, or
arenaceous and argillaceous shales.

At the end of this first phase of its existence, the terrestrial globe
was, then, covered, over nearly its whole surface, with hot and muddy
water, forming extensive but shallow seas. A few islands, raising their
granitic peaks here and there, would form a sort of archipelago,
surrounded by seas filled with earthy matter in suspension. During a
long series of ages the solid crust of the globe went on increasing in
thickness, as the process of solidification of the underlying liquid
matter nearest to the surface proceeded. This state of tranquillity
could not last long. The solid portion of the globe had not yet attained
sufficient consistency to resist the pressure of the gases and boiling
liquids which it covered and compressed with its elastic crust. The
waves of this internal sea triumphed, more than once, over the feeble
resistances which were opposed to it, making enormous dislocations and
breaches in the ground--immense upheavals of the solid crust raising the
beds of the seas far above their previous levels--and thus mountains
arose out of the ocean, not now exclusively granitic, but composed,
besides, of those schistose rocks which have been deposited under water,
after long suspension in the muddy seas.

On the other hand the Earth, as it continued to cool, would also
contract; and this process of contraction, as we have already explained,
was another cause of dislocation at the surface, producing either
considerable ruptures or simple fissures in the continuity of the crust.
These fissures would be filled, at a subsequent period, by jets of the
molten matter occupying the interior of the globe--by _eruptive
granite_, that is to say--or by various mineral compounds; they also
opened a passage to those torrents of heated water charged with mineral
salts, with silica, the bicarbonates of lime and magnesia, which,
mingling with the waters of the vast primitive ocean, were deposited at
the bottom of the seas, thus helping to increase the mass of the mineral
substances composing the solid portion of the globe.

These eruptions of granitic or metallic matter--these vast discharges of
mineral waters through the fractured surface--would be of frequent
occurrence during the primitive epoch we are contemplating. It should
not, therefore, be a matter for surprise to find the more ancient rocks
almost always fractured, reduced in dimensions by faults and
contortions, and often traversed by veins containing metals or their
oxides, such as the oxides of copper and tin; or their sulphides, such
as those of lead, of antimony, or of iron--which are now the object of
the miner’s art.




PRIMARY EPOCH.


After the terrible tempests of the primitive period--after these great
disturbances of the mineral kingdom--Nature would seem to have gathered
herself together, in sublime silence, in order to proceed to the grand
mystery of the creation of living beings.

During the primitive epoch the temperature of the earth was too high to
admit the appearance of life on its surface. The darkness of thickest
night shrouded this cradle of the world; the atmosphere probably was so
charged with vapours of various kinds, that the sun’s rays were
powerless to pierce its opacity. Upon this heated surface, and in this
perpetual night, organic life could not manifest itself. No plant, no
animal, then, could exist upon the silent earth. In the seas of this
epoch, therefore, only unfossiliferous strata were deposited.

Nevertheless, our planet continued to be subjected to a gradual
refrigeration on the one hand, and, on the other, continuous rains were
purifying its atmosphere. From this time, then, the sun’s rays, being
less obscured, could reach its surface, and, under their beneficent
influence, life was not slow in disclosing itself. “Without light,” said
the illustrious Lavoisier, “Nature was without life; it was dead and
inanimate. A benevolent God, in bestowing light, has spread on the
surface of the earth organisation, sentiment, and thought.” We begin,
accordingly, to see upon the earth--the temperature of which was nearly
that of our equatorial zone--a few plants and a few animals make their
appearance. These first generations of life will be replaced by others
of a higher organisation, until at the last stage of the creation, man,
endowed with the supreme attribute which we call intelligence, will
appear upon the earth. “The word _progress_, which we think peculiar to
humanity, and even to modern times,” said Albert Gaudry, in a lecture on
the animals of the ancient world, delivered in 1863, “was pronounced by
the Deity on the day when he created the first living organism.”

Did plants precede animals? We know not; but such would appear to have
been the order of creation. It is certain that in the sediment of the
oldest seas, and in the vestiges which remain to us of the earliest ages
of organic life on the globe, that is to say, in the argillaceous
schists, we find both plants and animals of advanced organisation. But,
on the other hand, during the greater part of the primary
epoch--especially during the Carboniferous age--the plants are
particularly numerous, and terrestrial animals scarcely show themselves;
this would lead us to the conclusion that plants preceded animals. It
may be remarked, besides, that from their cellular nature, and their
looser tissues composed of elements readily affected by the air, the
first plants could be easily destroyed without leaving any material
vestiges; from which it may be concluded, that, in those primitive
times, an immense number of plants existed, no traces of which now
remain to us.

We have stated that, during the earlier ages of our globe, the waters
covered a great part of its surface; and it is in them that we find the
first appearance of life. When the waters had become sufficiently cool
to allow of the existence of organised beings, creation was developed,
and advanced with great energy; for it manifested itself by the
appearance of numerous and very different species of animals and plants.

One of the most ancient groups of organic remains are the Brachiopoda, a
group of Mollusca, particularly typified by the genus Lingula, a species
of which still exist in the present seas; the Trilobites (Fig. 17), a
family of Crustaceans, especially characteristic of this period; then
come Productas, Terebratulæ, and Orthoceratites--other genera of
Mollusca. The Corals, which appeared at an early period, seem to have
lived in all ages, and survive to the present day.

[Illustration: Fig. 17.--Paradoxides Bohemicus--Bohemia.]

Contemporaneously with these animals, plants of inferior organisation
have left their impressions upon the schists; these are Algæ (aquatic
plants, Fig. 28). As the continents enlarged, plants of a higher type
made their appearance--the Equisetaceæ, herbaceous Ferns, and other
plants. These we shall have occasion to specify when noticing the
periods which constitute the Primary Epoch, and which consists of the
following periods: the Carboniferous, the Old Red Sandstone, and
Devonian, the Silurian, and the Cambrian.


CAMBRIAN PERIOD.

The researches of geologists have discovered but scanty traces of
organic remains in the rocks which form the base of this system in
England. _Arenicolites_, or worm-tracks and burrows, have been found in
Shropshire, by Mr. Salter, to occur in countless numbers through a mile
of thickness in the Longmynd rocks; and others were discovered by the
late Dr. Kinahan in Wicklow. In Ireland, in the picturesque tract of
Bray Head, on the south and east coasts of Dublin, we find, in slaty
beds of the same age as the Longmynd rocks, a peculiar zoophyte, which
has been named by Edward Forbes _Oldhamia_, after its discoverer, Dr.
Oldham, Superintendent of the Geological Survey of India. This fossil
represents one of the earliest inhabitants of the ocean, which then
covered the greater part of the British Isles. “In the hard, purplish,
and schistose rocks of Bray Head,” says Dr. Kinahan,[34] “as well as
other parts of Ireland which are recognised as Cambrian rocks, markings
of a very peculiar character are found. They occur in masses, and are
recognised as hydrozoic animal assemblages. They have regularity of
form, abundant, but not universal, occurrence in beds, and permanence of
character even when the beds are at a distance from each other, and
dissimilar in chemical and physical character.” In the course of his
investigations, Dr. Kinahan discovered at least four species of
Oldhamia, which he has described and figured.

  [34] Trans. Roy. Irish Acad., vol. xxiii., p. 556.

The Cambrian rocks consist of the Llanberis slates of Llanberis and
Penrhyn in North Wales, which, with their associated sandy strata,
attain a thickness of about 3,000 feet, and the Barmouth and Harlech
Sandstones. In the Longmynd hills of Shropshire these last beds attain a
thickness of 6,000 feet; and in some parts of Merionethshire they are of
still greater thickness.

Neither in North Wales, nor in the Longmynd, do the Cambrian rocks
afford any indications of life, except annelide-tracks and burrows. From
this circumstance, together with general absence of Mollusca in these
strata, and the sudden appearance of numerous shells and trilobites in
the succeeding Lingula Flags, a change of conditions seems to have
ensued at the close of the Cambrian period.

Believing that the red colour of rocks is frequently connected with
their deposition in inland waters, Professor Ramsay conceives it to be
possible, that the absence of marine mollusca in the Cambrian rocks may
be due to the same cause that produced their absence in the Old Red
Sandstone, and that the presence of sun-cracks and rain-pittings in the
Longmynd beds is a corroboration of this suggestion.[35]

  [35] “On the Red Rocks of England,” by A. C. Ramsay. _Quart. Jour.
       Geol. Soc._, vol. xxvii., p. 250.


THE SILURIAN PERIOD.

The next period of the Primary Epoch is the _Silurian_, a system of
rocks universal in extent, overspreading the whole earth more or less
completely, and covering up the rocks of older age. The term “Silurian”
was given by the illustrious Murchison to the epoch which now occupies
our attention, because the system of rocks formed by the marine
sediments, during the period in question, form large tracts of country
in Shropshire and Wales, a region formerly peopled by the _Silures_, a
Celtic race who fought gloriously against the Romans, under Caractacus
or Caradoc, the British king of those tracts. The reader may find the
nomenclature strange, as applied to the vast range of rocks which it
represents in all parts of the Old and New World, but it indicates, with
sufficient exactness, the particular region in our own country in which
the system typically prevails--reasons which led to the term being
adopted, even at a time when its vast geographical extent was not
suspected.

On this subject, and on the principles which have guided geologists in
their classification of rocks, Professor Sedgwick remarks in one of his
papers in the _Quarterly Journal of the Geological Society_: “In every
country,” he says,[36] “which is not made out by reference to a
pre-existing type, our first labour is that of determining the physical
groups, and establishing their relations by natural sections. The labour
next in order is the determination of the fossils found in the
successive physical groups; and, as a matter of fact, the natural groups
of fossils are generally found to be nearly co-ordinate with the
physical groups--each successive group resulting from certain conditions
which have modified the distribution of organic types. In the third
place comes the collective arrangement of the groups into systems, or
groups of a higher order. The establishment of the Silurian system is an
admirable example of this whole process. The groups called Caradoc,
Wenlock, Ludlow, &c., were physical groups determined by good natural
sections. The successive groups of fossils were determined by the
sections; and the sections, as the representatives of physical groups,
were hardly at all modified by any consideration of the fossils, for
these two distinct views of the natural history of such groups led to
co-ordinate results. Then followed the collective view of the whole
series, and the establishment of a nomenclature. Not only the whole
series (considered as a distinct system), but every subordinate group
was defined by a geographical name, referring us to a local type within
the limits of Siluria; in this respect adopting the principle of
grouping and nomenclature applied by W. Smith to our secondary rocks. At
the same time, the older slate rocks of Wales (inferior to the system of
Siluria), were called _Cambrian_, and soon afterwards the next great
collective group of rocks (superior to the system of Siluria) was called
_Devonian_. In this way was established a perfect congruity of language.
It was geographical in principle, and it represented the actual
development of all our older rocks, which gave to it its true value and
meaning.” The period, then, for the purposes of scientific description,
may be divided into three sub-periods--the Upper and Lower Silurian, and
the Cambrian.

  [36] _Quart. Jour. Geol. Soc_., vol. iii., p. 159.

[Illustration: VIII.--Ideal Landscape of the Silurian Period.]

[Illustration: Fig. 18.--Back of Asaphus caudatus (Dudley, Mus. Stokes),
with the eyes well preserved. (Buckland.)]

[Illustration: Fig. 19.--_a_, Side view of the left eye of the above,
magnified, (Buckland.) _b_, Magnified view of a portion of the eye of
Calymene macrophthalmus. (Hœninghaus.)]

The characteristics of the Silurian period, of which we give an ideal
view opposite (PLATE VIII.), are supposed to have been shallow seas of
great extent, with barren submarine reefs and isolated rocks rising here
and there out of the water, covered with Algæ, and frequented by various
Mollusca and articulated animals. The earliest traces of vegetation
belong to the _Thallogens_, flowerless plants of the class Algæ (Fig.
28), without leaves or stems, which are found among the Lower Silurian
rocks. To these succeed other plants, according to Dr. Hooker, belonging
to the Lycopodiaceæ (Fig. 28), the seeds of which are found sparingly in
the Upper Ludlow beds. Among animals, the _Orthoceratites_ led a
predacious life in the Silurian seas. Their organisation indicates that
they preyed upon other animals, pursuing them into the deepest abysses,
and strangling them in the embrace of their long arms. The _Trilobites_,
a remarkable group of Crustacea, possessing simple and reticulated
compound eyes, also highly characterise this period (Figs. 17 to 20);
presenting at one period or other of their existence 1,677 species, 224
of which are met with in Great Britain and Ireland, as we are taught by
the “Thesaurus Siluricus.”[37] Add to this a sun, struggling to
penetrate the dense atmosphere of the primitive world, and yielding a
dim and imperfect light to the first created beings as they left the
hand of the Creator, organisms often rudimentary, but at other times
sufficiently advanced to indicate a progress towards more perfect
creations. Such is the picture which the artist has attempted to
portray.

  [37] “The Flora and Fauna of the Silurian Period,” by John T. Bigsby,
       M.A., F.G.S. 4to, 1868.

The elaborate and highly valuable “Thesaurus Siluricus” contains the
names of 8,997 species of fossil remains, but it probably does not tell
us of one-tenth part of the Silurian life still lying buried in rocks of
that age in various parts of the world. A rich field is here offered to
the geological explorer.[38]

  [38] Ibid, p. vi.


LOWER SILURIAN.

The Silurian rocks have been estimated by Sir Roderick Murchison to
occupy, altogether, an area of about 7,600 square miles in England and
Wales, 18,420 square miles in Scotland, and nearly 7,000 square miles in
Ireland. Thus, as regards the British Isles, the Silurian rocks rise to
the surface over nearly 33,000 square miles.

The Silurian rocks have been traced from Cumberland to the Land’s End,
at the southern extremity of England. They lie at the base of the
southern Highlands of Scotland, from the North Channel to the North Sea,
and they range along the entire western coast of that country. In a
westerly direction they extended to the sea, where the mountains of
Wales--the Alps of the great chain--would stand out in bold relief, some
of them facing the sea, others in detached groups; some clothed with a
stunted vegetation, others naked and desolate; all of them wild and
picturesque. But an interest surpassing all others belongs to these
mountains. They are amongst the most ancient sedimentary rocks which
exist on our globe, a page of the book in which is written the history
of the antiquities of Great Britain--in fine, of the world.

[Illustration: Fig. 20. Ogygia Guettardi. Natural size.]

In Shropshire and Wales three zones of Silurian life have been
established. In rocks of three different ages _Graptolites_ have left
the trace of their existence. Another fossil characteristic of these
ancient rocks is the _Lingula_. This shell is horny or slightly
calcareous, which has probably been one cause of its preservation. The
family to which the Lingula belongs is so abundant in the rocks of the
Welsh mountains, that Sir R. Murchison has used it to designate a
geological era. These Lingula-flags mark the beginning of the first
Silurian strata.

In the Lower Llandovery beds, which mark the close of the period, other
fossils present themselves, thus greatly augmenting the forms of life in
the Lower Silurian rocks. These are cœlenterata, articulata, and
mollusca. They mark, however, only a very ephemeral passage over the
globe, and soon disappear altogether.

The vertebrated animals are only represented by rare Fishes, and it is
only on reaching the Upper Ludlow rocks, and specially in those beds
which pass upward into the Old Red Sandstone, that the remains have been
found of fishes--the most ancient beings of their class.

The class of Crustaceans, of which the lobster, shrimp, and the crab of
our days are the representatives, was that which predominated in this
epoch of animal life. Their forms were most singular, and different from
those of all existing Crustaceans. They consisted mainly of the
_Trilobites_, a family which became entirely extinct at the close of the
Carboniferous epoch, but in whose nicely-jointed shell the armourer of
the middle ages might have found all his contrivances anticipated, with
not a few besides which he has failed to discover. The head presents, in
general, the form of an oval buckler; the body is composed of a series
of articulations, or rings, as represented in Fig. 20; the anterior
portion carrying the eyes, which in some are reticulated, like those of
many insects (Figs. 18 and 19); the mouth was placed forward and beneath
the head. Many of these Crustaceans could roll themselves into balls,
like the wood-louse (Figs. 23 and 25). They swam on their backs.

[Illustration: Fig. 21.--Lituites cornu-arietis. One-third natural
size.]

[Illustration: Fig. 22.--Hemicosmites pyriformis. One-third natural
size.]

During the middle and later Silurian ages, whole rocks were formed
almost exclusively of their remains; during the Devonian period they
seem to have gradually died out, almost disappearing in the
Carboniferous age, and being only represented by one doubtful species in
the Permian rocks of North America. The Trilobites are unique as a
family, marking with certainty the rocks in which they occur; “and yet,”
says Hugh Miller, “how admirably do they exhibit the articulated type of
being, and illustrate that unity of design which pervades all Nature,
amid its endless diversity!” Among other beings which have left their
traces in the Silurian strata is _Nereites Cambriensis_, a species of
annelide, whose articulations are very distinctly marked in the ancient
rocks.

Besides the Trilobites, many orders of Mollusca were numerously
represented in the Silurian seas. As Sir R. Murchison has observed, no
zoological feature in the Upper Silurian rocks is more striking than the
great increase and profusion of Cephalopods, many of them of great size,
which appear in strata of the age immediately antecedent to the dawn of
vertebrated life. Among the Cephalopods we have _Gyroceras_ and
_Lituites cornu-arietis_ (Fig. 21), whose living representatives are the
Nautilus and Cuttlefish of every sea. The genus _Bellerophon_ (Figs. 54
and 56), with many others, represented the Gasteropods, and like the
living carinaria sailed freely over the sea by means of its fleshy
parts. The Gasteropods, with the Lamellibranchs, of which the Oyster is
a living type, and the Brachiopods, whose congeners may still be
detected in the _Terebratula_ of our Highland lochs and bays, and the
_Lingulæ_ of the southern hemisphere, were all then represented. The
Lamellibranchiata are without a head, and almost entirely destitute of
power of locomotion. Among the Echinodermata we may cite the
_Hemiscosmites_, of which _H. pyriformis_ (Fig. 22) may be considered an
example.

The rocks of the Lower Silurian age in France are found in Languedoc, in
the environs of Neffiez and of Bédarrieux. They occupy, also, great part
of Brittany. They occur in Bohemia, also in Spain, Russia, and in the
New World. Limestones, sandstones, and schists (slates of Angers) form
the chief part of this series. The Cambrian slates are largely
represented in Canada and the United States.

                          LOWER SILURIAN GROUP.

  Formation.          Prevailing Rocks.           Thickness.    Fossils.

  Lower      { Hard sandstones, conglomerates,    { 600 to } Pentamerus lens.
  Llandovery { and flaggy shaly beds              { 1,000  }

             { Shelly sandstones, shales, and     }         { Brachiopods;
             { slaty beds, with grits, con-       }         { Lamellibranchs;
  Caradoc or { glomerates, and occasional         } 12,000  { Pteropods;
  Bala       { calcareous bands (Bala lime-       }         { Cystideans;
             { stone)                             }         { Graptolites;
             {                                    }         { Trilobites.

             { Dark-grey flagstones, occasionally }
  Llandeilo  { calcareous sandstones,             }
  Flags      { with black slates, containing      }         { Trilobites
             { Graptolites                        }  1,000  { (Fig. 36);
             {                                    }    to   { Graptolites;
                                                  }  1,500  { Heteropods;
  Lower      { Dark-grey and ferruginous          }         { large
  Llandeilo  { slates, sandy shales, and bluish   }         { Cephalopods.
  Tremadoc   { flags, with occasional beds        }
  Slates     { of pisolitic iron-ore              }

                                                            { Trilobites
             { Black and dark shaly, grey         }         { (Olenus,
             { and brown slaty flagstones         }         { Conocoryphe,
  Lingula    { and sandstones, with siliceous     }  6,000  { Paradoxides,
  Flags      { grits and quartzites               }         { Fig. 17);
             {                                    }         { Brachiopods;
             {                                    }         { Cystideans.

                          CAMBRIAN GROUP.

             { Llanberis slates, with sandy       }  3,000    Annelides.
  Cambrian   { strata                             }
             { Harlech grits                         6,000    Oldhamia.

                          LAURENTIAN GROUP.

  Upper      { Stratified, highly-crystalline,    } 12,060    Eozoon.
  Laurentian { and felspathic rocks               }

  Lower      { Gneiss, quartzite, hornblende      } 18,000    None.
  Laurentian { and mica-schists                   }

                          UPPER SILURIAN PERIOD.

                          UPPER SILURIAN GROUP.
                   Lithological Characters.       Thickness.  Fossils.

             { Passage Beds, Tile-stones, and     }         { Sea-weeds,
             { Downton sandstones, at the         }    80   { Lingulæ,
             { base of the bone-bed               }         { Mollusca.
             {                                              {
             { Micaceous, yellowish and           }   700   { Crustacea and
  Ludlow     { grey, sandy mudstone               }         { Fish-remains.
  Rocks      {                                              {
             { Argillaceous (Aymestry) limestone  }    50   { Crinoids.
             {                                              {
             { Argillaceous Shale with impure     }  1000   { Mollusca of
             { limestones                         }         { many genera.

             { Argillaceous or semi-crystalline   }         { Mollusca of
             { limestone                          }         { many genera.
             {                                    }         {
             { Argillaceous shales, in places     }         { Echinodermata;
  Wenlock    { slaty                              }  3000   { Actinozoa;
  Rocks      {                                    }         { Trilobites.
             { Woolhope Limestone and             }         {
             { occasional bands of argillaceous   }         { Graptolites.
             { nodules                            }         {

  Upper      { Grey and yellowish sandstones      }         { Pentamerus
  Llandovery { (occasionally conglomerates)       }   800   { oblongus,
  Rocks      { with bands of                      }         { Rhynchonella,
             { limestone                          }         { Orthides, &c.

Among the fossils of this period may be remarked a number of Trilobites,
which then attained their greatest development. Among others, _Calymene
Blumenbachii_ (Fig. 23), some _Cephalopoda_, and _Brachiopoda_, among
which last may be named _Pentamerus Knightii_, _Orthis_, &c., and some
Corals, as _Halysites catenularius_ (Fig. 26), or the chain coral.

[Illustration: Fig. 23.--Calymene Blumenbachii partially rolled up.]

The Trilobites, we have already said, were able to coil themselves into
a ball, like the wood-louse, doubtless as a means of defence. In Fig.
23, one of these creatures, _Calymene Blumenbachii_, is represented in
that form, coiled upon itself. (See also _Illænus Barriensis_, Fig. 25.)

Crustaceans of a very strange form, and in no respects resembling the
Trilobites, have been met with in the Silurian rocks of England and
America--the _Pterygotus_ (Fig. 27) and the _Eurypterus_, (Fig. 24).
They are supposed to have been the inhabitants of fresh water. They were
called “Seraphim” by the Scotch quarrymen, from the winged form and
feather-like ornamentation upon the thoracic appendage, the part most
usually met with. Agassiz figured them in his work on the ‘Fossil
Fishes of the Old Red Sandstone,’ but, subsequently recognising their
crustacean character, removed them from the Class of Fishes, and placed
them with the _Pœcilipod Crustacea_. The _Eurypteridæ_ and _Pterygoti_
in England almost exclusively belong to the passage beds--the Downton
sandstone and the Upper Ludlow rocks.

[Illustration: Fig. 24.--Eurypterus remipes. Natural size.]

Among the marine plants which have been found in the rocks corresponding
with this sub-period are some species of Algæ, and others belonging to
the Lycopodiaceæ, which become still more abundant in the Old Red
Sandstone and Carboniferous Periods. Fig. 28 represents some examples of
the impressions they have left.

The seas were, evidently, abundantly inhabited at the end of the Upper
Silurian period, for naturalists have examined nearly 1,500 species
belonging to these beds, and the number of British species, classified
and arranged for public inspection in our museums cannot be much short
of that number.

[Illustration: Fig. 25.--Illænus Barriensis.--Dudley, Walsall.]

Towards the close of the Upper Silurian sub-period, the argillaceous
beds pass upwards into more sandy and shore-like deposits, in which the
most ancient known fossil Fishes occur, and then usher us into the first
great ichthyic period of the Old Red Sandstone, or Devonian, so well
marked by its fossil fishes in Britain, Russia, and North America. The
so-called fish-bones have been the subject of considerable doubt.
Between the Upper Ludlow rocks opposite Downton Castle and the next
overlying stratum, there occurs a thin bed of soft earthy shale, and
fine, soft, yellowish greenstone, immediately overlying the Ludlow rock:
just below this a remarkable fish-deposit occurs, called the Ludlow
bone-bed, because the bones of animals are found in this stratum in
great quantities. Old Drayton treats these bones as a great marvel:--

                    “With strange and sundry tales
    Of all their wondrous things; and not the least in Wales,
    Of that prodigious spring (him neighbouring as he past),
    That little fishes’ bones continually doth cast.”


POLYOLBION.

Above the yellow beds, or Downton sandstone, as they are called, organic
remains are extensively diffused through the argillaceous strata, which
have yielded fragments of fishes’ bones (being the earliest trace yet
found of vertebrate life), with seeds and land-plants, the latter
clearly indicating the neighbourhood of land, and the poverty of
numbers and the small size of the shells, a change of condition in the
nature of the waters in which they lived. “It was the central part
only,” says Sir R. Murchison, “of this band, or a ginger-bread-
layer of a thickness of three or four inches, and dwindling away to a
quarter of an inch, exhibiting, when my attention was first directed to
it, a matted mass of bony fragments, for the most part of small size and
of very peculiar character. Some of the fragments of fish are of a
mahogany hue, but others of so brilliant a black that when first
discovered they conveyed the impression that the bed was a heap of
broken beetles.”[39]

  [39] “Siluria,” p. 148.

[Illustration: Fig. 26.--Halysites catenularius.]

[Illustration: Fig. 27.--Pterygotus bilobatus.]

The fragments thus discovered were, after examination on the spot,
supposed to be those of fishes, but, upon further investigation, many of
them were found to belong to Crustaceans. The ichthyic nature of some of
them is, however, now well established.

[Illustration: Fig. 28.--Plants of the Palæozoic Epoch.--1 and 2, Algæ;
3 and 4, Lycopods.]

Silurian Rocks are found in France in the departments of La Manche,
Calvados, and of the Sarthe, and in Languedoc the Silurian formation has
occupied the attention of Messrs. Graff and Fournet, who have traced
along the base of the Espinouse, the green, primordial chlorite-schists,
surmounted by clay-slates, which become more and more pure as the
distance from the masses of granite and gneiss increases, and the valley
of the Jour is approached. Upon these last the Silurian system rests,
sinking towards the plain under Secondary and Tertiary formations. In
Great Britain, Silurian strata are found enormously developed in the
West and South Highlands of Scotland, on the western <DW72>s of the
Pennine chain and the mountains of Wales, and in the adjoining counties
of Shropshire--their most typical region--and Worcestershire. In Spain;
in Germany (on the banks of the Rhine); in Bohemia--where, also, they
are largely developed, especially in the neighbourhood of Prague--in
Sweden, where they compose the entire island of Gothland; in Norway; in
Russia, especially in the Ural Mountains; and in America, in the
neighbourhood of New York, and half way across the continent--in all
these countries they are more or less developed.

We may add, as a general characteristic of the Silurian system as a
whole, that of all formations it is the most disturbed. In the countries
where it prevails, it only appears as fragments which have escaped
destruction amid the numerous changes that have affected it during the
earlier ages of the world. The beds, originally horizontal, are turned
up, contorted, folded over, and sometimes become even vertical, as in
the slates of Angers, Llanberis, and Ireleth. D’Orbigny found the
Silurian beds with their fossils in the American Andes, at the height of
16,000 feet above the level of the sea. What vast upheavals must have
been necessary to elevate these fossils to such a height!

In the Silurian period the sea still occupied the earth almost entirely;
it covered the greater part of Europe: all the area comprised between
Spain and the Ural was under water. In France only two islands had
emerged from the primordial ocean. One of them was formed of the
granitic rocks of what are now Brittany and La Vendée; the other
constituted the great central plateau, and consisted of the same rocks.
The northern parts of Norway, Sweden, and of Russian Lapland formed a
vast continental surface. In America the emerged lands were more
extensive. In North America an island extended over eighteen degrees of
latitude, in the part now called New Britain. In South America, in the
Pacific, Chili formed one elongated island. Upon the Atlantic, a portion
of Brazil, to the extent of twenty degrees of latitude, was raised above
water. Finally, in the equatorial regions, Guiana formed a later island
in the vast ocean which still covered most other parts of the New World.

There is, perhaps, no scene of greater geological confusion than that
presented by the western flanks of the Pennine chain. A line drawn
longitudinally from about three degrees west of Greenwich, would include
on its western side Cross Fell, in Cumberland, and the greater part of
the Silurian rocks belonging to the Cambrian system, in which the
Cambrian and Lower Silurian rocks are now well determined; while the
upper series are so metamorphosed by eruptive granite and the effects of
denudation, as to be scarcely recognisable. “With the rare exception of
a seaweed and a zoophyte,” says the author of ‘Siluria,’ “not a trace of
a fossil has been detected in the thousands of feet of strata, with
interpolated igneous matter, which intervene between the slates of
Skiddaw and the Coniston limestone, with its overlying flags; at that
zone only do we begin to find anything like a fauna: here, judging from
its fossils, we find representations of the Caradoc and Bala rocks.”
This much-disturbed district Professor Sedgwick, after several years
devoted to its study, has attempted to reconstruct, the following being
a brief summary of his arguments. The region consists of:--

I. Beds of mudstone and sandstone, deposited in an ancient sea,
apparently without the calcareous matter necessary to the existence of
shells and corals, and with numerous traces of organic forms of Silurian
age--these were the elements of the Skiddaw slates.

II. Plutonic rocks were, for many ages, poured out among the aqueous
sedimentary deposits; the beds were broken up and re-cemented--plutonic
silt and other finely comminuted matter were deposited along with the
igneous rocks: the process was again and again repeated, till a deep sea
was filled up with a formation many thousands of feet thick by the
materials forming the middle Cambrian rocks.

III. A period of comparative repose followed. Beds of shells and bands
of coral were formed upon the more ancient rocks, interrupted with beds
of sand and mud; processes many times repeated: and thus, in a long
succession of ages, were the deposits of the upper series completed.

IV. Towards the end of the period, mountain-masses and eruptive rocks
were pushed up through the older deposits. After many revolutions, all
the divisions of the slate-series were upheaved and contorted by
movements which did not affect the newer formations.

V. The conglomerates of the Old Red Sandstone were now spread out by the
beating of an ancient surf, continued through many ages, against the
upheaved and broken slates.

VI. Another period of comparative repose followed: the coral-reefs of
the mountain limestone, and the whole carboniferous series, were formed,
but not without any oscillations between the land and sea-levels.

VII. An age of disruption and violence succeeded, marked by the
discordant position of the rocks, and by the conglomerate of the New Red
Sandstone. At the beginning of this period the great north and south
“Craven fault,” which rent off the eastern calcareous mountains from the
old slates, was formed. Soon afterwards the disruption of the great
“Pennine fault,” which ranges from the foot of Stanmore to the coast of
North Cumberland, occurred, lifting up the terrace of Cross Fell above
the plain of the Eden. About the same time some of the north and south
fissures, which now form the valleys leading into Morecambe Bay, may
have been formed.

VIII. The more tranquil period of the New Red Sandstone now dawns, but
here our facts fail us on the skirts of the Lake Mountains.

IX. Thousands of ages rolled away during the Secondary and Tertiary
periods, in which we can trace no movement. But the powers of Nature are
never still: during this age of apparent repose many a fissure may have
started into an open chasm, many a valley been scooped out upon the
lines of “fault.”

X. Close to the historic times we have evidence of new disruptions and
violence, and of vast changes of level between land and sea. Ancient
valleys probably opened out anew or extended, and fresh ones formed in
the changes of the oceanic level. Cracks among the strata may now have
become open fissures, vertical escarpments formed by unequal elevations
along the lines of fault; and subsidence may have given rise to many of
the tarns and lakes of the district.

Such is the picture which one of our most eminent geologists gives as
the probable process by which this region has attained its present
appearance, after he had devoted years of study and observation to its
peculiarities; and his description of one spot applies in its general
scope to the whole district. At the close of the Silurian period our
island was probably an archipelago, ranging over ten degrees of
latitude, like many of the island groups now found in the great Pacific
Ocean; the old gneissic hills of the western coast of Scotland,
culminating in the granite range of Ben Nevis, and stretching to the
southern Grampians, forming the nucleus of one island group; the south
Highlands of Scotland, ranging from the Lammermoor hills, another; the
Pennine chain and the Malvern hills, the third, and most easterly group;
the Shropshire and Welsh mountains, a fourth; and Devon and Cornwall
stretching far to the south and west. The basis of the calculation
being, that every spot of this island lying now at a lower elevation
than 800 feet above the sea, was under water at the close of the
Silurian period, except in those instances where depression by
subsidence has since occurred.

There is, however, another element to be considered, which cannot be
better stated than in the picturesque language of M. Esquiros, an
eminent French writer, who has given much attention to British geology.
“The Silurian mountains,” he says, “ruins in themselves, contain other
ruins. In the bosom of the Longmynd rocks, geologists discover
conglomerates of rounded stones which bear no resemblance to any rocks
now near them. These stones consequently prove the existence of rocks
more ancient still; they are fragments of other mountains, of other
shores, perhaps even of continents, broken up, destroyed, and crumbled
by earlier seas. There is, then, little hope of one discovering the
origin of life on the globe, since this page of the Genesis of the facts
has been torn. For some years geologists loved to rest their eyes, in
this long night of ages, upon an ideal limit beyond which plants and
animals would begin to appear. Now, this line of demarcation between the
rocks which are without vestiges of organised beings, and those which
contain fossils, is nearly effaced among the surrounding ruins. On the
horizon of the primitive world we see vaguely indicated a series of
other worlds which have altogether disappeared; perhaps it is necessary
to resign ourselves to the fact that the dawn of life is lost in this
silent epoch, where age succeeds age, till they are clothed in the garb
of eternity. The river of creation is like the Nile, which, as Bossuet
says, hides its head--a figure of speech which time has falsified--but
the endless speculations opened up by these and similar considerations
led Lyell to say, ‘Here I am almost prepared to believe in the ancient
existence of the Atlantis of Plato.’”

[Illustration: Fig. 29.--Ischadites Kœnigii. Upper Ludlow Rocks.]

    NOTE.--For accurate representations of the typical fossils of
    the Palæozoic strata of Britain, the reader may consult, with
    advantage, the carefully executed “Figures of Characteristic
    British Fossils,” by W. H. Baily, F.G.S. (Van Voorst).


OLD RED SANDSTONE AND DEVONIAN PERIOD.

Another great period in the Earth’s history opens on us--the Devonian or
“Old Red Sandstone,” so called, because the formation is very clearly
displayed over a great extent of country in the county of Devon. The
name was first proposed by Murchison and Sedgwick, in 1837, for these
strata, which had previously been referred to the “transition” or
Silurian series.

The circumstances which marked the passage of the uppermost Silurian
rocks into Old Red Sandstone seem to have been:--First, a shallowing of
the sea, followed by a gradual alteration in the physical geography of
the district, so that the area became changed into a series of mingled
fresh and brackish lagoons, which, finally, by continued terrestrial
changes, were converted into a great fresh-water lake; or, if we take
the whole of Britain and lands beyond, into a series of lakes.[40]

  [40] “On the Red Rocks of England,” by A. C. Ramsay. _Quart. Jour.
       Geol. Soc._, vol. xxvii., p. 243.

Mr. Godwin Austen has, also, stated his opinion that the Old Red
Sandstone, as distinct from the Devonian rocks, was of lacustrine
origin.

The absence of marine shells helps to this conclusion, and the nearest
living analogues of some of the fishes are found in the fresh water of
Africa and North America. Even the occurrence in the Devonian rocks of
Devonshire and Russia of some Old Red Sandstone fishes along with marine
shells, merely proves that some of them were fitted to live in either
fresh or salt water, like various existing fishes. At the present day
animals that are commonly supposed to be essentially marine, are
occasionally found inhabiting fresh water, as is the case in some of the
lakes of Sweden, where it is said marine crustacea are found. Mr.
Alexander Murray also states that in the inland fresh-water lakes of
Newfoundland seals are common, living there without even visiting the
sea. And the same is the case in Lake Baikal, in Central Asia.

The red colour of the Old Red Sandstone of England and Scotland, and the
total absence of fossils, except in the very uppermost beds, are
considered by Professor Ramsay to indicate that the strata were
deposited in inland waters. These fossils are terrestrial ferns,
_Adiantites_ (Pecopteris) _Hibernicus_, and a fresh-water shell, _Anodon
Jukesii_, together with the fish _Glyptolepis_.[41]

  [41] “On the Red Rocks of England,” by A. C. Ramsay. _Quart. Jour.
       Geol. Soc._, vol. xxvii., p. 247.

The rocks deposited during the Devonian period exhibit some species of
animals and plants of a much more complex organisation than those which
had previously made their appearance. We have seen, during the Silurian
epoch, organisms appearing of very simple type; namely, zoophytes,
articulated and molluscous animals, with algæ and lycopods, among
plants. We shall see, as the globe grows older, that organisation
becomes more complex. Vertebrated animals, represented by numerous
Fishes, succeed Zoophytes, Trilobites, and Molluscs. Soon afterwards
Reptiles appear, then Birds and Mammals; until the time comes when man,
His supreme and last work, issues from the hands of the Creator, to be
king of all the earth--man, who has for the sign of his superiority,
intelligence--that celestial gift, the emanation from God.

Vast inland seas, or lakes covered with a few islets, form the ideal of
the Old Red Sandstone period. Upon the rocks of these islets the
mollusca and articulata of the period exhibit themselves, as represented
on the opposite page (PLATE IX.). Stranded on the shore we see
armour-coated Fishes of strange forms. A group of plants
(_Asterophyllites_) covers one of the islets, associated with plants
nearly herbaceous, resembling mosses, though the true mosses did not
appear till a much later period. _Encrinites_ and _Lituites_ occupy the
rocks in the foreground of the left hand.

The vegetation is still simple in its development, for forest-trees seem
altogether wanting. The Asterophyllites, with tall and slender stems,
rise singly to a considerable height. Cryptogams, of which our mushrooms
convey some idea, would form the chief part of this primitive
vegetation; but in consequence of the softness of their tissues, their
want of consistence, and the absence of much woody fibre, these earlier
plants have come down to us only in a fragmentary state.

[Illustration: IX.--Ideal Landscape of the Devonian Period.]

The plants belonging to the Devonian period differ much from the
vegetation of the present day. They resembled both mosses and lycopods,
which are flowerless cryptogamic plants of a low organisation. The
Lycopods are herbaceous plants, playing only a secondary part in the
vegetation of the globe; but in the earlier ages of organic creation
they were the predominant forms in the vegetable kingdom, both as to
individual size and the number and variety of their species.

[Illustration: Fig. 30.--Plants of the Devonian Epoch. 1. Algæ. 2.
Zostera. 3. Psilophyton, natural size.]

In the woodcut (Fig. 30) we have represented three species of aquatic
plants belonging to the Devonian period; they are--1, _Fucoids_ (or
_Algæ_); 2, _Zostera_; 3, _Psilophyton_. The Fucoid closely resembles
its modern ally; but with the first indications of terrestrial
vegetation we pass from the _Thallogens_, to which the _Algæ_ belong
(plants of simple organisation, without flower or stem), to the
_Acrogens_, which throw out their leaves and branches at the extremity,
and bear in the axils of their leaves minute circular cases, which form
the receptacles of their spore-like seeds. “If we stand,” says Hugh
Miller, “on the outer edge of one of those iron-bound shores of the
Western Highlands, where rock and skerries are crowned with sea-weeds;
the long cylindrical lines of _chorda-filum_, many feet in length, lying
aslant in the tideway; long shaggy bunches of _Fucus serratus_ and _F.
nodosus_ drooping from the sides of the rock; the flat ledges bristling
with the stiff cartilaginous many-cleft fronds of at least two species
of _Chondrus_; now, in the thickly-spread Fucoids of this Highland scene
we have a not very improbable representation of the Thallogenous
vegetation. If we add to this rocky tract, so rich in Fucoids, a
submarine meadow of pale shelly sand, covered by a deep-green swathe of
_Zosteræ_, with jointed root and slim flowers, unfurnished with petals,
it would be more representative still.”

Let us now take a glance at the animals belonging to this period.

The class of Fishes seem to have held the first rank and importance in
the Old Red Sandstone _fauna_; but their structure was very different
from that of existing fishes: they were provided with a sort of cuirass,
and from the nature of the scales were called _Ganoid_ fishes. Numerous
fragments of these curious fishes are now found in geological
collections; they are of strange forms, some being completely covered
with a cuirass of many pieces, and others furnished with wing-like
pectoral fins, as in _Pterichthys_.

Let any one picture to himself the surprise he would feel should he, on
taking his first lesson in geology, and on first breaking a stone--a
pebble, for instance, exhibiting every external sign of a water-worn
surface--find, to appropriate Archdeacon Paley’s illustration, a watch,
or any other delicate piece of mechanism, in its centre. Now, this,
thirty years ago, is exactly the kind of surprise that Hugh Miller
experienced in the sandstone quarry opened in a lofty wall of cliff
overhanging the northern shore of the Moray Frith. He had picked up a
nodular mass of blue Lias-limestone, which he laid open by a stroke of
the hammer, when, behold! an exquisitely shaped Ammonite was displayed
before him. It is not surprising that henceforth the half-mason,
half-sailor, and poet, became a geologist. He sought for information,
and found it; he found that the rocks among which he laboured swarmed
with the relics of a former age. He pursued his investigations, and
found, while working in this zone of strata all around the coast, that a
certain class of fossils abounded; but that in a higher zone these
familiar forms disappeared, and others made their appearance.

He read and learned that in other lands--lands of more recent
formation--strange forms of animal life had been discovered; forms which
in their turn had disappeared, to be succeeded by others, more in
accordance with beings now living. He came to know that he was
surrounded, in his native mountains, by the sedimentary deposits of
other ages; he became alive to the fact that these grand mountain ranges
had been built up grain by grain in the bed of the ocean, and the
mountains had been subsequently raised to their present level by the
upheaval of one part of its bed, or by the subsidence of another. The
young geologist now ceased to wonder that each bed, or series of beds,
should contain in its bosom records of its own epoch; it seemed to him
as if it had been the object of the Creator to furnish the inquirer with
records of His wisdom and power, which could not be misinterpreted.

[Illustration: Fig. 31.--Fishes of the Devonian Epoch. 1. Coccosteus,
one-third natural size. 2. Pterichthys, one-fourth natural size. 3.
Cephalaspis, one-fourth natural size.]

Among the Fishes of Old Red Sandstone, the _Coccosteus_ (Fig. 31, No. 1)
was only partially cased in a defensive armour; the upper part of the
body down to the fins was defended by scales. _Pterichthys_ (No. 2), a
strange form, with a very small head, furnished with two powerful
paddles, or arms, like wings, and a mouth placed far behind the nose,
was entirely covered with scales. The _Cephalaspis_ (No. 3), which has a
considerable outward resemblance to some fishes of the present time, was
nevertheless mail-clad, only on the anterior part of the body.

Other fishes were provided with no such cuirass, properly so called, but
were protected by strong resisting scales, enveloping the whole body.
Such were the _Acanthodes_ (1), the _Climatius_ (2), and the
_Diplacanthus_ (3), represented in Fig. 32.

[Illustration: Fig. 32.--Fishes of the Devonian epoch. 1. Acanthodes. 2.
Climatius. 3. Diplacanthus.]

Among the organic beings of the Devonian rocks we find worm-like
animals, such as the _Annelides_, protected by an external shell, and
which at the present day are probably represented by the _Serpulæ_.
Among Crustaceans the _Trilobites_ are still somewhat numerous,
especially in the middle rocks of the period. We also find there many
different groups of Mollusca, of which the _Brachiopoda_ form more than
one-half. We may say of this period that it is the reign of
Brachiopoda; in it they assumed extraordinary forms, and the number of
their species was very great. Among the most curious we may instance the
enormous _Stringocephalus Burtini_, _Davidsonia Verneuilli_, _Uncites
gryphus_, and _Calceola Sandalina_, shells of singular and fantastic
shape, differing entirely from all known forms. Amongst the most
characteristic of these Mollusca, _Atrypa reticularis_ (Fig. 33) holds
the first rank, with _Spirifera concentrica_, _Leptæna Murchisoni_, and
_Productus subaculeatus_. Among the Cephalopoda we have _Clymenia
Sedgwickii_ (Fig. 34), including the _Goniatites_, illustrating the
Ammonites, which so distinctly characterise the Secondary epoch, but
which were only foreshadowed in the Devonian period.

[Illustration: Fig. 33.--Atrypa reticularis.]

[Illustration: Fig. 34.--Clymenia Sedgwickii.]

Among the Radiata of this epoch, the order Crinoidea are abundantly
represented. We give as an example _Cupressocrinus crassus_ (Fig. 35).
The Encrinites, under which name the whole of these animals are
sometimes included, lived attached to rocky places and in deep water, as
they now do in the Caribbean sea.

The Encrinites, as we have seen, were represented during the Silurian
period in a simple genus, _Hemicosmites_, but they greatly increased in
numbers in the seas of the Devonian period. They diminish in numbers, as
we retire from that geological age; until those forms, which were so
numerous and varied in the earliest seas, are now only represented by
two genera.

[Illustration: Fig. 35.--Cupressocrinus crassus.]

The Old Red Sandstone rocks are composed of schists, sandstone, and
limestones. The line of demarcation between the Silurian rocks and those
which succeed them may be followed, in many places, by the eye; but, on
a closer examination, the exact limits of the two systems become more
difficult to fix. The beds of the one system pass into the other by a
gradual passage, for Nature rarely admits of violent contrasts, and
shows few sudden transitions. By-and-by, however, the change becomes
very decided, and the contrast between the dark grey masses at the base
and the superincumbent yellow and red rocks become sufficiently
striking. In fact, the uppermost beds of the Silurian rocks are the
passage-beds of the overlying system, consisting of flagstones,
occasionally reddish, and called in some districts “tile-stones.” Over
these lie the Old Red Sandstone conglomerate, the Caithness flags, and
the great superincumbent mass which forms the upper portion of the
system. Though less abrupt than the eruptive and Silurian mountains, the
Old Red Sandstone scenery is, nevertheless, distinguished by its
imposing outline, assuming bold and lofty escarpments in the Vans of
Brecon, in Grongar Hill, near Caermarthen, and in the Black Mountain of
Monmouthshire, in the centre of a landscape which, wood, rock, and river
combine to render perfect. But it is in the north of Scotland where this
rock assumes its grandest aspect, wrapping its mantle round the loftiest
mountains, and rising out of the sea in rugged and fantastic masses, as
far north as the Orkneys. In Devon and Cornwall, where the rocks are of
a calcareous, and sometimes schistose or slaty character, they are
sufficiently extensive to have given a name to the series, which is
recognised all over the world.

In Herefordshire, Worcestershire, Shropshire, Gloucestershire, and South
Wales, the Old Red Sandstone is largely developed, and sometimes attains
the thickness of from 8,000 to 10,000 feet, divided into: 1.
Conglomerate; 2. Brown stone, with _Eurypterus_; 3. Marl and cornstones,
with irregular courses of concrete limestone, in which are spines of
Fishes and remains of _Cephalaspis_ and _Pteraspis_; 4. Thin
olive- shales and sandstone, intercalated with beds of red marl,
containing _Cephalaspis_ and _Auchenaspis_. In Scotland, south of the
Grampians, a yellow sandstone occupies the base of the system;
conglomerate, red shales, sandstone and cornstones, containing
_Holoptychius_ and _Cephalaspis_, and the Arbroath paving-stone,
containing what Agassiz recognised as a huge Crustacean.

[Illustration: Fig. 36.--Trinucleus Lloydii. (Llandeilo Flags.)]

Some of the phenomena connected with the older rocks of Devonshire are
difficult to unravel. The Devonian, it is now understood, is the
equivalent, in another area, of the Old Red Sandstone, and in Cornwall
and Devonshire lie directly on the Silurian strata, while elsewhere the
fossils of the Upper Silurian are almost identical with those in the
Devonian beds. The late Professor Jukes, with some other geologists, was
of opinion that the Devonian rocks of Devonshire only represented the
Old Red Sandstone of Scotland and South Wales in part; the Upper
Devonian rocks lying between the acknowledged Old Red Sandstone and the
Culm-measures being the representatives of the lower carboniferous rocks
of Ireland.

Mr. Etheridge, on the other hand, in an elaborate memoir upon the same
subject, has endeavoured to prove that the Devonian and Old Red
Sandstone, though contemporaneous in point of time, were deposited in
different areas and under widely different conditions--the one strictly
marine, the other altogether fresh-water--or, perhaps, partly
fresh-water and partly estuarine. This supposition is strongly supported
by his researches into the mollusca of the Devonian system, and also by
the fish-remains of the Devonian and Old Red Sandstone of Scotland and
the West of England and Wales.[42] The difficulty of drawing a
sharply-defined line of demarcation between different systems is
sufficient to dispel the idea which has sometimes been entertained that
special _faunæ_ were created and annihilated in the mass at the close of
each epoch. There was no close: each epoch disappears or merges into
that which succeeds it, and with it the animals belonging to it, much as
we have seen them disappear from our own fauna almost within recent
times.

  [42] For fuller details on this subject, see J. B. Jukes’ “Manual of
       Geology,” 3rd ed., p. 762. Also, R. Etheridge, _Quart. Journ.
       Geol. Soc._, vol. 23, p. 251.


CARBONIFEROUS PERIOD.

In the history of our globe the Carboniferous period succeeds to the
Devonian. It is in the formations of this latter epoch that we find the
fossil fuel which has done so much to enrich and civilise the world in
our own age. This period divides itself into two great sub-periods: 1.
The _Coal-measures_; and 2. The _Carboniferous Limestone_. The first, a
period which gave rise to the great deposits of coal; the second, to
most important marine deposits, most frequently underlying the
coal-fields in England, Belgium, France, and America.

The limestone-mountains which form the base of the whole system, attain
in places, according to Professor Phillips, a thickness of 2,500 feet.
They are of marine origin, as is apparent by the multitude of fossils
they contain of Zoophytes, Radiata, Cephalopoda, and Fishes. But the
chief characteristic of this epoch is its strictly terrestrial
flora--remains of plants now become as common as they were rare in all
previous formations, announcing a great increase of dry land. In older
geological times the present site of our island was covered by a sea of
unlimited extent; we now approach a time when it was a forest, or,
rather, an innumerable group of islands, and marshes covered with
forests, which spread over the surface of the clusters of islands which
thickly studded the sea of the period.

The monuments of this era of profuse vegetation reveal themselves in the
precious Coal-measures of England and Scotland. These give us some idea
of the rich verdure which covered the surface of the earth, newly risen
from the bosom of its parent waves. It was the paradise of terrestrial
vegetation. The grand _Sigillaria_, the _Stigmaria_, and other fern-like
plants, were especially typical of this age, and formed the woods, which
were left to grow undisturbed; for as yet no living Mammals seem to have
appeared; everything indicates a uniformly warm, humid temperature, the
only climate in which the gigantic ferns of the Coal-measures could have
attained their magnitude. In Fig. 37 the reader has a restoration of the
arborescent and herbaceous Ferns of the period. Conifers have been
found of this period with concentric rings, but these rings are more
slightly marked than in existing trees of the same family, from which
it is reasonable to assume that the seasonal changes were less marked
than they are with us.

[Illustration: Fig. 37.--Ferns restored. 1 and 2. Arborescent Ferns. 3
and 4. Herbaceous Ferns.]

Everything announces that the time occupied in the deposition of the
Carboniferous Limestone was one of vast duration. Professor Phillips
calculates that, at the ordinary rate of progress, it would require
122,400 years to produce only sixty feet of coal. Geologists believe,
moreover, that the upper coal-measures, where bed has been deposited
upon bed, for ages upon ages, were accumulated under conditions of
comparative tranquillity, but that the end of this period was marked by
violent convulsions--by ruptures of the terrestrial crust, when the
carboniferous rocks were upturned, contorted, dislocated by faults, and
subsequently partially denuded, and thus appear now in depressions or
basin-shaped concavities; and that upon this deranged and disturbed
foundation a fourth geological system, called Permian, was constructed.

The fundamental character of the period we are about to study is the
immense development of a vegetation which then covered much of the
globe. The great thickness of the rocks which now represent the period
in question, the variety of changes which are observed in these rocks
wherever they are met with, lead to the conclusion that this phase in
the Earth’s history involved a long succession of time.

Coal, as we shall find, is composed of the mineralised remains of the
vegetation which flourished in remote ages of the world. Buried under an
enormous thickness of rocks, it has been preserved to our days, after
being modified in its inward nature and external aspect. Having lost a
portion of its elementary constituents, it has become transformed into a
species of carbon, impregnated with those bituminous substances which
are the ordinary products of the slow decomposition of vegetable matter.

Thus, coal, which supplies our manufactures and our furnaces, which is
the fundamental agent of our productive and economic industry--the coal
which warms our houses and furnishes the gas which lights our streets
and dwellings--is the substance of the plants which formed the forests,
the vegetation, and the marshes of the ancient world, at a period too
distant for human chronology to calculate with anything like precision.
We shall not say--with some persons, who believe that all in Nature was
made with reference to man, and who thus form a very imperfect idea of
the vast immensity of creation--that the vegetables of the ancient world
have lived and multiplied only, some day, to prepare for man the agents
of his economic and industrial occupations. We shall rather direct the
attention of our young readers to the powers of modern science, which
can thus, after such a prodigious interval of time, trace the precise
origin, and state with the utmost exactness, the genera and species of
plants, of which there are now no identical representatives existing on
the face of the earth.

Let us pause for a moment, and consider the general characters which
belonged to our planet during the Carboniferous period. Heat--though not
necessarily excessive heat--and extreme humidity were then the
attributes of its atmosphere. The modern allies of the species which
formed its vegetation are now only found under the burning latitudes of
the tropics; and the enormous dimensions in which we find them in the
fossil state prove, on the other hand, that the atmosphere was saturated
with moisture. Dr. Livingstone tells us that continual rains, added to
intense heat, are the climatic characteristic of Equatorial Africa,
where the vigorous and tufted vegetation flourishes which is so
delightful to the eye.

It is a remarkable circumstance that conditions of equable and warm
climate, combined with humidity, do not seem to have been limited to any
one part of the globe, but the temperature of the whole globe seems to
have been nearly the same in very different latitudes. From the
Equatorial regions up to Melville Island, in the Arctic Ocean, where in
our days eternal frost prevails--from Spitzbergen to the centre of
Africa, the carboniferous flora is identically the same. When nearly the
same plants are found in Greenland and Guinea; when the same species,
now extinct, are met with of equal development at the equator as at the
pole, we cannot but admit that at this epoch the temperature of the
globe was nearly alike everywhere. What we now call _climate_ was
unknown in these geological times. There seems to have been then only
one climate over the whole globe. It was at a subsequent period, that
is, in later Tertiary times, that the cold began to make itself felt at
the terrestrial poles. Whence, then, proceeded this general superficial
warmth, which we now regard with so much surprise? It was a consequence
of the greater or nearer influence of the interior heat of the globe.
The earth was still so hot in itself, that the heat which reached it
from the sun may have been inappreciable.

Another hypothesis, which has been advanced with much less certainty
than the preceding, relates to the chemical composition of the air
during the Carboniferous period. Seeing the enormous mass of vegetation
which then covered the globe, and extended from one pole to the other;
considering, also, the great proportion of carbon and hydrogen which
exists in the bituminous matter of coal, it has been thought, and not
without reason, that the atmosphere of the period might be richer in
carbonic acid than the atmosphere of the present day. It has even been
thought that the small number of (especially air-breathing) animals,
which then lived, might be accounted for by the presence of a greater
proportion of carbonic acid gas in the atmosphere than is the case in
our own times. This, however, is pure assumption, totally deficient in
proof. Nothing proves that the atmosphere of the period in question was
richer in carbonic acid than is the case now. Since we are only able,
then, to offer vague conjectures on this subject, we cannot profess with
any confidence to entertain the opinion that the atmospheric air of the
Carboniferous period contained more carbonic acid gas than that which we
now breathe. What we can remark, with certainty, as a striking
characteristic of the vegetation of the globe during this phase of its
history, was the prodigious development which it assumed. The Ferns,
which in our days and in our climate, are most commonly only small
perennial plants, in the Carboniferous age sometimes presented
themselves under lofty and even magnificent forms.

Every one knows those marsh-plants with hollow, channelled, and
articulated cylindrical stems; whose joints are furnished with a
membranous, denticulated sheath, and which bear the vulgar name of
“mare’s-tail;” their fructification forming a sort of catkin composed of
many rings of scales, carrying on their lower surface sacs full of
_spores_ or seeds. These humble _Equiseta_ were represented during the
Coal-period by herbaceous trees from twenty to thirty feet high and four
to six inches in diameter. Their trunks, channelled longitudinally, and
divided transversely by lines of articulation, have been preserved to
us: they bear the name of _Calamites_. The engraving (Fig. 38)
represents one of these gigantic mare’s-tails, or Calamites, of the
Coal-period, restored under the directions of M. Eugene Deslongchamps.
It is represented with its fronds of leaves, and its organs of
fructification. They seem to have grown by means of an underground stem,
while new buds issued from the ground at intervals, as represented in
the engraving.

The _Lycopods_ of our age are humble plants, scarcely a yard in height,
and most commonly creepers; but the Lycopodiaceæ of the ancient world
were trees of eighty or ninety feet in height. It was the
_Lepidodendrons_ which filled the forests. Their leaves were sometimes
twenty inches long, and their trunks a yard in diameter. Such are the
dimensions of some specimens of _Lepidodendron carinatum_ which have
been found. Another Lycopod of this period, the _Lomatophloyos
crassicaule_, attained dimensions still more colossal. The _Sigillarias_
sometimes exceeded 100 feet in height. Herbaceous Ferns were also
exceedingly abundant, and grew beneath the shade of these gigantic
trees. It was the combination of these lofty trees with such shrubs (if
we may so call them), which formed the forests of the Carboniferous
period. The trunks of two of the gigantic trees, which flourished in the
forests of the Carboniferous period, are represented in Figs. 39 and 40,
reduced respectively to one-fifth and one-tenth the natural size.

[Illustration: Fig. 38.--Calamite restored. Thirty to forty feet high.]

What could be more surprising than the aspect of this exuberant
vegetation!--these immense Sigillarias, which reigned over the forest!
these Lepidodendrons, with flexible and slender stems! these
Lomatophloyos, which present themselves as _herbaceous_ trees of
gigantic height, furnished with verdant leaflets! these Calamites, forty
feet high! these elegant arborescent Ferns, with airy foliage, as
finely cut as the most delicate lace! Nothing at the present day can
convey to us an idea of the prodigious and immense extent of
never-changing verdure which clothed the earth, from pole to pole, under
the high temperature which everywhere prevailed over the whole
terrestrial globe. In the depths of these inextricable forests parasitic
plants were suspended from the trunks of the great trees, in tufts or
garlands, like the wild vines of our tropical forests. They were nearly
all pretty, fern-like plants--_Sphenopteris_, _Hymenophyllites_, &c.;
they attached themselves to the stems of the great trees, like the
orchids and _Bromeliaceæ_ of our times.

[Illustration: Fig. 39.--Trunk of Calamites. One-fifth natural size.]

[Illustration: Fig. 40.--Trunk of Sigillaria. One-tenth natural size.]

The margin of the waters would also be covered with various plants with
light and whorled leaves, belonging, perhaps, to the Dicotyledons;
_Annularia fertilis_, _Sphenophyllites_, and _Asterophyllites_.

How this vegetation, so imposing, both on account of the dimensions of
the individual trees and the immense space which they occupied, so
splendid in its aspect, and yet so simple in its organisation, must have
differed from that which now embellishes the earth and charms our eyes!
It certainly possessed the advantage of size and rapid growth; but how
poor it was in species--how uniform in appearance! No flowers yet
adorned the foliage or varied the tints of the forests. Eternal verdure
clothed the branches of the Ferns, the Lycopods, and Equiseta, which
composed to a great extent the vegetation of the age. The forests
presented an innumerable collection of individuals, but very few
species, and all belonging to the lower types of vegetation. No fruit
appeared fit for nourishment; none would seem to have been on the
branches. Suffice it to say that few terrestrial animals seem to have
existed yet; animal life was apparently almost wholly confined to the
sea, while the vegetable kingdom occupied the land, which at a later
period was more thickly inhabited by air-breathing animals. Probably a
few winged insects (some coleoptera, orthoptera, and neuroptera) gave
animation to the air while exhibiting their variegated colours; and it
was not impossible but that many pulmoniferous mollusca (such as
land-snails) lived at the same time.

But, we might ask, for what eyes, for whose thoughts, for whose wants,
did the solitary forests grow? For whom these majestic and extensive
shades? For whom these sublime sights? What mysterious beings
contemplated these marvels? A question which cannot be solved, and one
before which we are overwhelmed, and our powerless reason is silent; its
solution rests with Him who said, “Before the world was, I am!”

The vegetation which covered the numerous islands of the Carboniferous
sea consisted, then, of Ferns, of Equisetaceæ, of Lycopodiaceæ, and
dicotyledonous Gymnosperms. The Annularia and Sigillariæ belong to
families of the last-named class, which are now completely extinct.

The _Annulariæ_ were small plants which floated on the surface of
fresh-water lakes and ponds; their leaves were verticillate, that is,
arranged in a great number of whorls, at each articulation of the stem
with the branches. The _Sigillariæ_ were, on the contrary, great trees,
consisting of a simple trunk, surmounted with a bunch or panicle of
slender drooping leaves, with the bark often channelled, and displaying
impressions or scars of the old leaves, which, from their resemblance to
a seal, _sigillum_, gave origin to their name. Fig. 41 represents the
bark of one of these Sigillariæ, which is often met with in coal-mines.

The _Stigmariæ_ (Fig. 42), according to palæontologists, were roots of
Sigillariæ, with a subterranean fructification; all that is known of
them is the long roots which carry the reproductive organs, and in some
cases are as much as sixteen feet long. These were suspected by
Brongniart, on botanical grounds, to be the roots of Sigillaria, and
recent discoveries have confirmed this impression. Sir Charles Lyell, in
company with Dr. Dawson, examined several erect _Sigillariæ_ in the
sea-cliffs of the South Joggins in Nova Scotia, and found that from the
lower extremities of the trunk they sent out _Stigmariæ_ as roots, which
divided into four parts, and these again threw out eight continuations,
each of which again divided into pairs. Twenty-one specimens of
Sigillaria have been described by Dr. Dawson from the Coal-measures of
Nova Scotia; but the differences in the markings in different parts of
the same tree are so great, that Dr. Dawson regards the greater part of
the recognised species of _Sigillariæ_ as merely provisional.[43]

  [43] _Quart. Jour. Geol. Soc._, vol. xxii., p. 129.

[Illustration: Fig. 41.--Sigillaria lævigata. One-third natural size.]

[Illustration: Fig. 42.--Stigmaria. One-tenth natural size.]

Two other gigantic trees grew in the forests of this period: these were
_Lepidodendron carinatum_ and _Lomatophloyos crassicaule_, both
belonging to the family of Lycopodiaceæ, which now includes only very
small species. The trunk of the Lomatophloyos threw out numerous
branches, which terminated in thick tufts of linear and fleshy leaves.

The _Lepidodendrons_, of which there are about forty known species, have
cylindrical bifurcated branches; that is, the branches were evolved in
pairs, or were _dichotomous_ to the top. The extremities of the branches
were terminated by a fructification in the form of a cone, formed of
linear scales, to which the name of _Lepidostrobus_ (Fig. 45) has been
given. Nevertheless, many of these branches were sterile, and terminated
simply in fronds (elongated leaves). In many of the coal-fields fossil
cones have been found, to which this name has been given by earlier
palæontologists. They sometimes form the nucleus of nodular,
concretionary balls of clay-ironstone, and are well preserved, having a
conical axis, surrounded by scales compactly imbricated. The opinion of
Brongniart is now generally adopted, that they are the fruit of the
Lepidodendron. At Coalbrookdale, and elsewhere, these have been found as
terminal tips of a branch of a well-characterised Lepidodendron. Both
Hooker and Brongniart place them with the Lycopods, having cones with
similar spores and sporangia, like that family. Most of them were large
trees. One tree of _L. Sternbergii_, nearly fifty feet long, was found
in the Jarrow Colliery, near Newcastle, lying in the shale parallel to
the plane of stratification. Fragments of others found in the same shale
indicated, by the size of the rhomboidal scars which covered them, a
still greater size. Lepidodendron Sternbergii (Fig. 43) is represented
as it is found beneath the shales in the collieries of Swina, in
Bohemia. Fig. 46 represents a portion of a branch of _L. elegans_
furnished with leaves. M. Eugene Deslongchamps has drawn the restoration
of the Lepidodendron Sternbergii, represented in Fig. 47, which is shown
entire in Fig. 44, with its stem, its branches, fronds, and organs of
fructification. The Ferns composed a great part of the vegetation of the
Coal-measure period.

[Illustration: Fig. 43.--Lepidodendron Sternbergii.]

[Illustration: Fig. 44.--Lepidodendron Sternbergii restored. Forty feet
high.]

The Ferns differ chiefly in some of the details of the leaf.
_Pecopteris_, for instance (Fig. 48), have the leaves once, twice, or
thrice pinnatifid with the leaflets adhering either by their whole base
or by the centre only; the midrib running through to the point.
_Neuropteris_ (Fig. 49) has leaves divided like Pecopteris, but the
midrib does not reach the apex of the leaflets, but divides right and
left into veins. _Odontopteris_ (Fig. 51) has pinnatifid leaves, like
the last, but its leaflets adhere by their whole base to the stalk.
_Lonchopteris_ (Fig. 50) has the leaves several times pinnatifid, the
leaflets more or less united to one another, and the veins reticulated.
Among the most numerous species of forms of the Coal-measure period was
_Sphenopteris artemisiæfolia_ (Fig. 52), of which a magnified leaf is
represented. Sphenopteris has twice or thrice pinnatifid leaves, the
leaflets narrow at the base, and the veins generally arranged as if they
radiated from the base; the leaflets are frequently wedge-shaped.

[Illustration: Fig. 45.--Lepidostrobus variabilis.]

[Illustration: Fig. 46.--Lepidodendron elegans.]


CARBONIFEROUS LIMESTONE. (SUB-PERIOD.)

The seas of this epoch included an immense number of Zoophytes, nearly
400 species of Mollusca, and a few Crustaceans and Fishes. Among the
Fishes, _Psammodus_ and _Coccosteus_, whose massive teeth inserted in
the palate were suitable for grinding; and the _Holoptychius_ and
_Megalichthys_, are the most important. The Mollusca are chiefly
Brachiopods of great size. The Productæ attained here exceptional
development, _Producta Martini_ (Fig. 53), _P. semi-reticulata_ and _P.
gigantea_, being the most remarkable. Spirifers, also, were equally
abundant, as _Spirifera trigonalis_ and _S. glabra_. In _Terebratula
hastata_ the  bands, which adorned the shell of the living
animal, have been preserved to us. The _Bellerophon_, whose convoluted
shell in some respects resembles the Nautilus of our present seas, but
without its chambered shell, were then represented by many species,
among others by _Bellerophon costatus_ (Fig. 54), and _B. hiulcus_ (Fig.
56). Again, among the Cephalopods, we find the _Orthoceras_ (Fig. 57),
which resembled a straight Nautilus; and Goniatites (_Goniatites
evolutus_, Fig. 55), a chambered shell allied to the Ammonite, which
appeared in great numbers during the Secondary epoch.

[Illustration: Fig. 47.--Lepidodendron Sternbergii.]

Crustaceans are rare in the Carboniferous Limestone strata; the genus
Phillipsia is the last of the Trilobites, all of which became extinct at
the close of this period. As to the Zoophytes, they consist chiefly of
Crinoids and Corals. The Crinoids were represented by the genera
_Platycrinus_ and _Cyathocrinus_. We also have in these rocks many
Polyzoa.

[Illustration: Fig. 48.--Pecopteris lonchitica, a little magnified.]

[Illustration: Fig. 49.--Neuropteris gigantea.]

[Illustration: Fig. 50.--Lonchopteris Bricii.]

[Illustration: Fig. 51.--Odontopteris Brardii.]

[Illustration: Fig. 52.--Sphenopteris artemisiæfolia, magnified.]

Among the corals of the period, we may include the genera
_Lithostrotion_ and _Lonsdalea_, of which _Lithostrotion basaltiforme_
(Fig. 58), and _Lonsdalea floriformis_ (Fig. 59), are respectively the
representatives, with _Amplexus coralloïdes_. Among the Polyzoa are the
genera _Fenestrella_ and _Polypora_. Lastly, to these we may add a group
of animals which will play a very important part and become abundantly
represented in the beds of later geological periods, but which already
abounded in the seas of the Carboniferous period. We speak of the
_Foraminifera_ (Fig. 60), microscopic animals, which clustered either in
one body, or divided into segments, and covered with a calcareous,
many-chambered shell, as in Fig. 60, _Fusulina cylindrica_. These little
creatures, which, during the Jurassic and Cretaceous periods, formed
enormous banks and entire masses of rock, began to make their
appearance in the period which now engages our attention.

[Illustration: Fig. 53.--Producta Martini. One-third nat. size.]

[Illustration: Fig. 54.--Bellerophon costatus. Half nat. size.]

[Illustration: Fig. 55.--Goniatites evolutus. Nat. size.]

[Illustration: Fig. 56.--Bellerophon hiulcus.]

[Illustration: Fig. 57.--Orthoceras laterale.]

[Illustration: Fig. 58.--Lithostrotion basaltiforme.]

[Illustration: Fig. 59.--Lonsdalea floriformis.]

The plate opposite (PLATE X.) is a representation of an ideal aquarium,
in which some of the more prominent species, which inhabited the seas
during the period of the Carboniferous Limestone, are represented. On
the right is a tribe of corals, with reflections of dazzling white: the
species represented are, nearest the edge, the _Lasmocyathus_, the
_Chætetes_, and the _Ptylopora_. The Mollusc which occupies the
extremity of the elongated and conical tube in the shape of a sabre is
an _Aploceras_. It seems to prepare the way for the Ammonite; for if
this elongated shell were coiled round itself it would resemble the
Ammonite and Nautilus. In the centre of the foreground we have
_Bellerophon hiulcus_ (Fig. 56), the _Nautilus Koninckii_, and a
_Producta_, with the numerous spines which surround the shell. (See Fig.
62.)

[Illustration: Fig. 60.--Foraminifera of the Mountain Limestone, forming
the centre of an oolitic grain. Power 120.]

[Illustration: Fig. 61.--Foraminifera of the Chalk, obtained by brushing
it in water. Power 120.]

On the left are other corals: the _Cyathophyllum_ with straight
cylindrical stems; some Encrinites (_Cyathocrinus_ and _Platycrinus_)
wound round the trunk of a tree, or with their flexible stem floating in
the water. Some Fishes, _Amblypterus_, move about amongst these
creatures, the greater number of which are immovably attached, like
plants, to the rock on which they grow.

[Illustration: X.--Ideal view of marine life in the Carboniferous
Period.]

In addition, this engraving shows us a series of islets, rising out
of a tranquil sea. One of these is occupied by a forest, in which a
distant view is presented of the general forms of the grand vegetation
of the period.

       *       *       *       *       *

It is of importance to know the rocks formed by marine deposits during
the era of the Carboniferous Limestone, inasmuch as they include coal,
though in much smaller quantities than in the succeeding sub-period of
the true coal-deposit. They consist essentially of a compact limestone,
of a greyish-blue, and even black colour. The blow of the hammer causes
them to exhale a somewhat fetid odour, which is owing to decomposed
organic matter--the modified substance of the molluscs and zoophytes--of
which it is to so great an extent composed, and whose remains are still
easily recognised.

[Illustration: Fig. 62.--Producta horrida. Half natural size.]

In the north of England, and many other parts of the British Islands,
the Carboniferous Limestone forms, as we have seen, lofty
mountain-masses, to which the term _Mountain Limestone_ is sometimes
applied.

In Derbyshire the formation constitutes rugged, lofty, and
fantastically-shaped mountains, whose summits mingle with the clouds,
while its picturesque character appears here, as well as farther north,
in the _dales_ or valleys, where rich meadows, through which the
mountain streams force their way, seem to be closed abruptly by masses
of rock, rising above them like the grey ruins of some ancient tower;
while the mountain bases are pierced with caverns, and their sides
covered with mosses and ferns, for the growth of which the limestone is
particularly favourable.

The formation is _metalliferous_, and yields rich veins of lead-ore in
Derbyshire, Cumberland, and other counties of Great Britain. The rock is
found in Russia, in the north of France, and in Belgium, where it
furnishes the common marbles, known as Flanders marble (_Marbre de
Flandres_ and _M. de petit granit_). These marbles are also quarried in
other localities, such as Regneville (La Manche), either for the
manufacture of lime or for ornamental stonework; one of the varieties
quarried at Regneville, being black, with large yellow veins, is very
pretty.

In France, the _Carboniferous Limestone_, with its sandstones and
conglomerates, schists and limestones, is largely developed in the
Vosges, in the Lyonnais, and in Languedoc, often in contact with
syenites and porphyries, and other igneous rocks, by which it has been
penetrated and disturbed, and even _metamorphosed_ in many ways, by
reason of the various kinds of rocks of which it is composed. In the
United States the Carboniferous Limestone formation occupies a somewhat
grand position in the rear of the Alleghanies. It is also found forming
considerable ranges in our Australian colonies.

In consequence of their age, as compared with the Secondary and Tertiary
limestones, the Carboniferous rocks are generally more marked and varied
in character. The valley of the Meuse, from Namur to Chockier, above
Liège, is cut out of this formation; and many of our readers will
remember with delight the picturesque character of the scenery,
especially that of the left bank of the celebrated river in question.


COAL MEASURES. (SUB-PERIOD.)

This terrestrial period is characterised, in a remarkable manner, by the
abundance and strangeness of the vegetation which then covered the
islands and continents of the whole globe. Upon all points of the earth,
as we have said, this flora presented a striking uniformity. In
comparing it with the vegetation of the present day, the learned French
botanist, M. Brongniart, who has given particular attention to the flora
of the Coal-measures, has arrived at the conclusion that it presented
considerable analogy with that of the islands of the equatorial and
torrid zone, in which a maritime climate and elevated temperature exist
in the highest degree. It is believed that islands were very numerous at
this period; that, in short, the dry land formed a sort of vast
archipelago upon the general ocean, of no great depth, the islands being
connected together and formed into continents as they gradually emerged
from the ocean.

This flora, then, consists of great trees, and also of many smaller
plants, which would form a close, thick turf, or sod, when partially
buried in marshes of almost unlimited extent. M. Brongniart indicates,
as characterising the period, 500 species of plants belonging to
families which we have already seen making their first appearance in the
Devonian period, but which now attain a prodigious development. The
ordinary dicotyledons and monocotyledons--that is, plants having seeds
with two lobes in germinating, and plants having one seed-lobe--are
almost entirely absent; the cryptogamic, or flowerless plants,
predominate; especially Ferns, Lycopodiaceæ and Equisetaceæ--but of
forms insulated and actually extinct in these same families. A few
dicotyledonous gymnosperms, or naked-seed plants forming genera of
Conifers, have completely disappeared, not only from the present flora,
but since the close of the period under consideration, there being no
trace of them in the succeeding Permian flora. Such is a general view of
the features most characteristic of the Coal period, and of the Primary
epoch in general. It differs, altogether and absolutely, from that of
the present day; the climatic condition of these remote ages of the
globe, however, enables us to comprehend the characteristics which
distinguish its vegetation. A damp atmosphere, of an equable rather than
an intense heat like that of the tropics, a soft light veiled by
permanent fogs, were favourable to the growth of this peculiar
vegetation, of which we search in vain for anything strictly analogous
in our own days. The nearest approach to the climate and vegetation
proper to the geological period which now occupies our attention, would
probably be found in certain islands, or on the littoral of the Pacific
Ocean--the island of Chloë, for example, where it rains during 300 days
in the year, and where the light of the sun is shut out by perpetual
fogs; where arborescent Ferns form forests, beneath whose shade grow
herbaceous Ferns, which rise three feet and upwards above a marshy soil;
which gives shelter also to a mass of cryptogamic plants, greatly
resembling, in its main features, the flora of the Coal-measures. This
flora was, as we have said, uniform and poor in its botanic genera,
compared to the abundance and variety of the flora of the present time;
but the few families of plants, which existed then, included many more
species than are now produced in the same countries. The fossil Ferns of
the coal-series in Europe, for instance, comprehend about 300 species,
while all Europe now only produces fifty. The gymnosperms, which now
muster only twenty-five species in Europe, then numbered more than 120.

It will simplify the classification of the flora of the Carboniferous
epoch if we give a tabular arrangement adopted by the best
authorities:--

      Dr. Lindley.        Brongniart.

    I. Thallogens { Cryptogamous Amphigens,  }   Lichens, Sea-weeds, Fungi.
                  {   or Cellular Cryptogams }

   II. Acrogens     Cryptogamous Acrogens      { Club-mosses, Equiseta, Ferns,
                                               { Lycopods, Lepidodendra.

  III. Gymnogens    Dicotyledonous Gymnosperms   Conifers and Cycads.

                                               { Compositæ, Leguminosæ, Umbel-
   IV. Exogens      Dicotyledonous Angiosperms { liferæ, Cruciferæ, Heaths.
                                               { All European except Conifers.

    V. Endogens     Monocotyledons             { Palms, Lilies, Aloes, Rushes,
                                               { Grasses.

Calamites are among the most abundant fossil plants of the Carboniferous
period, and occur also in the Devonian. They are preserved as striated,
jointed, cylindrical, or compressed stems, with fluted channels or
furrows at their sides, and sometimes surrounded by a bituminous
coating, the remains of a cortical integument. They were originally
hollow, but the cavity is usually filled up with a substance into which
they themselves have been converted. They were divided into joints or
segments, and when broken across at their articulations they show a
number of striæ, originating in the furrows of the sides, and turning
inwards towards the centre of the stem. It is not known whether this
structure was connected with an imperfect diaphragm stretched across the
hollow of the stem at each joint, or merely represented the ends of
woody plates of which the solid part of the stem is composed. Their
extremities have been discovered to taper gradually to a point, as
represented in _C. cannæformis_ (Fig. 64), or to end abruptly, the
intervals becoming shorter and smaller. The obtuse point is now found to
be the root. Calamites are regarded as Equisetaceous plants; later
botanists consider that they belong to an extinct family of plants.
_Sigillariæ_ are the most abundant of all plants in the coal formation,
and were those principally concerned in the accumulation of the mineral
fuel of the Coal-measures. Not a mine is opened, nor a heap of shale
thrown out, but there occur fragments of its stem, marked externally
with small rounded impressions, and in the centre slight tubercles, with
a quincuncial arrangement. From the tubercles arise long ribbon-shaped
bodies, which have been traced in some instances to the length of twenty
feet.

[Illustration: Fig. 63.--Sphenophyllum restored.]

In the family of the Sigillarias we have already presented the bark of
_S. lævigata_, at page 138; on page 157 we give a drawing of the bark of
_S. reniformis_, one-third the natural size (Fig. 65).

In the family of the Asterophyllites, the leaf of _A. foliosa_ (Fig.
66); and the foliage of _Annularia orifolia_ (Fig. 67) are remarkable.
In addition to these, we present, in Fig. 63, a restoration of one of
these Asterophyllites, the _Sphenophyllum_, after M. Eugene
Deslongchamps. This herbaceous tree, like the Calamites, would present
the appearance of an immense asparagus, twenty-five to thirty feet high.
It is represented here with its branches and _fronds_, which bear some
resemblance to the leaves of the ginkgo. The bud, as represented in the
figure, is terminal, and not axillary, as in some of the Calamites.

[Illustration: Fig. 64.--Calamites cannæformis. One-third natural size.]

If, during the Coal-period, the vegetable kingdom had reached its
maximum, the animal kingdom, on the contrary, was poorly represented.
Some remains have been found, both in America and Germany, consisting of
portions of the skeleton and the impressions of the footsteps of a
Reptile, which has received the name of Archegosaurus. In Fig. 68 is
represented the head and neck of _Archegosaurus minor_, found in 1847 in
the coal-basin of Saarbruck between Strasbourg and Trèves. Among the
animals of this period we find a few Fishes, analogous to those of the
Devonian formation. These are the _Holoptychius_ and _Megalichthys_,
having jaw-bones armed with enormous teeth. Scales of _Pygopterus_
have been found in the Northumberland Coal-shale at Newsham Colliery,
and also in the Staffordshire Coal-shale. Some winged insects would
probably join this slender group of living beings. It may then be said
with truth that the immense forests and marshy plains, crowded with
trees, shrubs, and herbaceous plants, which formed on the innumerable
isles of the period a thick and tufted sward, were almost destitute of
animals.

[Illustration: XI.--Ideal view of a marshy forest of the Coal Period.]

[Illustration: Fig. 65.--Sigillaria reniformis.]

[Illustration: Fig. 66.--Asterophyllites foliosa.]

On the opposite page (PL. XI.) M. Riou has attempted, under the
directions of M. Deslongchamps, to reproduce the aspect of Nature during
the period. A marsh and forest of the Coal-period are here represented,
with a short and thick vegetation, a sort of grass composed of
herbaceous Fern and mare’s-tail. Several trees of forest-height raise
their heads above this lacustrine vegetation.

On the left are seen the naked trunk of a _Lepidodendron_ and a
_Sigillaria_, an arborescent Fern rising between the two trunks. At the
foot of these great trees an herbaceous Fern and a _Stigmaria_ appear,
whose long ramification of roots, provided with reproductive spores,
extend to the water. On the right is the naked trunk of another
_Sigillaria_, a tree whose foliage is altogether unknown, a
_Sphenophyllum_, and a _Conifer_. It is difficult to describe with
precision the species of this last family, the impressions of which are,
nevertheless, very abundant in the Coal-measures.

[Illustration: Fig. 67.--Annularia orifolia.]

[Illustration: Fig. 68.--Head and neck of Archegosaurus minor.]

In front of this group we see two trunks broken and overthrown. These
are a _Lepidodendron_ and _Sigillaria_, mingling with a heap of
vegetable débris in course of decomposition, from which a rich humus
will be formed, upon which new generations of plants will soon develop
themselves. Some herbaceous Ferns and buds of _Calamites_ rise out of
the waters of the marsh.

A few Fishes belonging to the period swim on the surface of the water,
and the aquatic reptile _Archegosaurus_ shows its long and pointed
head--the only part of the animal which has hitherto been discovered
(Fig. 68). A _Stigmaria_ extends its roots into the water, and the
pretty _Asterophyllites_, with its finely-cut stems, rises above it in
the foreground.

A forest, composed of _Lepidodendra_ and _Calamites_, forms the
background to the picture.


FORMATION OF BEDS OF COAL.

Coal, as we have said, is only the result of a partial decomposition of
the plants which covered the earth during a geological period of immense
duration. No one, now, has any doubt that this is its origin. In
coal-mines it is not unusual to find fragments of the very plants whose
trunks and leaves characterise the Coal-measures, or Carboniferous era.
Immense trunks of trees have also been met with in the middle of a seam
of coal. In the coal-mines of Treuil,[44] at St. Etienne, for instance,
vertical trunks of fossil trees, resembling bamboos or large Equiseta,
are not only mixed with the coal, but stand erect, traversing the
overlying beds of micaceous sandstone in the manner represented in the
engraving, which has been reproduced from a drawing by M. Ad. Brongniart
(Fig. 69).

  [44] “Elements of Geology,” p. 480.

In England it is the same; entire trees are found lying across the
coal-beds. Sir Charles Lyell tells us[45] that in Parkfield Colliery,
South Staffordshire, there was discovered in 1854, upon a surface of
about a quarter of an acre, a bed of coal which has furnished as many as
seventy-three stumps of trees with their roots attached, some of the
former measuring more than eight feet in circumference; their roots
formed part of a seam of coal ten inches thick, resting on a layer of
clay two inches thick, under which was a second forest resting on a band
of coal from two to five feet thick. Underneath this, again, was a third
forest, with large stumps of _Lepidodendra_, _Calamites_, and other
trees.[46]

  [45] Ibid, p. 479.

  [46] Ibid, p. 479.

In the lofty cliffs of the South Joggins, in the Bay of Fundy, in Nova
Scotia, Sir Charles Lyell found in one portion of the coal-field 1,500
feet thick, as many as sixty-eight different surfaces, presenting
evident traces of as many old soils of forests, where the trunks of the
trees were still furnished with roots.[47]

  [47] Ibid, p. 483.

We will endeavour to establish here the true geological origin of coal,
in order that no doubt may exist in the minds of our readers on a
subject of such importance. In order to explain the presence of coal in
the depths of the earth, there are only two possible hypotheses. This
vegetable débris may either result from the burying of plants brought
from afar and transported by river or maritime currents, forming immense
rafts, which may have grounded in different places and been covered
subsequently by sedimentary deposits; or the trees may have grown on the
spot where they perished, and where they are now found. Let us examine
each of these theories.

[Illustration: Fig. 69.--Treuil coal-mine, at St. Etienne.]

Can the coal-beds result from the transport by water, and burial
underground, of immense rafts formed of the trunks of trees? The
hypothesis has against it the enormous height which must be conceded to
the raft, in order to form coal-seams as thick as some of those which
are worked in our collieries. If we take into consideration the specific
gravity of wood, and the amount of carbon it contains, we find that the
coal-deposits can only be about seven-hundredths of the volume of the
original wood and other vegetable materials from which they are formed.
If we take into account, besides, the numerous voids necessarily arising
from the loose packing of the materials forming the supposed raft, as
compared with the compactness of coal, this may fairly be reduced to
five-hundredths. A bed of coal, for instance, sixteen feet thick, would
have required a raft 310 feet high for its formation. These
accumulations of wood could never have arranged themselves with
sufficient regularity to form those well-stratified coal-beds,
maintaining a uniform thickness over many miles, and that are seen in
most coal-fields to lie one above another in succession, separated by
beds of sandstone or shale. And even admitting the possibility of a slow
and gradual accumulation of vegetable débris, like that which reaches
the mouth of a river, would not the plants in that case be buried in
great quantities of mud and earth? Now, in most of our coal-beds the
proportion of earthy matter does not exceed fifteen per cent. of the
entire mass. If we bear in mind, finally, the remarkable parallelism
existing in the stratification of the coal-formation, and the state of
preservation in which the impressions of the most delicate vegetable
forms are discovered, it will, we think, be proved to demonstration,
that those coal-seams have been formed in perfect tranquillity. We are,
then, forced to the conclusion that coal results from the mineralisation
of plants which has taken place on the spot; that is to say, in the very
place where the plants lived and died.

It was suggested long ago by Bakewell, from the occurrence of the same
peculiar kind of fireclay under each bed of coal, that it was the soil
proper for the production of those plants from which coal has been
formed.[48]

  [48] “Introduction to Geology,” by Robert Bakewell, 5th ed., p. 179.
       1838.

It has, also, been pointed out by Sir William Logan, as the result of
his observations in the South Wales coal-field, and afterwards by Sir
Henry De la Beche, and subsequently confirmed by the observations of Sir
Charles Lyell in America, that not only in this country, but in the
coal-fields of Nova Scotia, the United States, &c., every layer of true
coal is co-extensive with and invariably underlaid by a marked stratum
of arenaceous clay of greater or less thickness, which, from its
position relatively to the coal has been long known to coal-miners,
among other terms, by the name of _under-clay_.

The clay-beds, “which vary in thickness from a few inches to more than
ten feet, are penetrated in all directions by a confused and tangled
collection of the roots and leaves, as they may be, of the _Stigmaria
ficoides_, these being frequently traceable to the main stem
(_Sigillaria_), which varies in diameter from about two inches to half a
foot. The main stems are noticed as occurring nearer the top than the
bottom of the bed, as usually of considerable length, the leaves or
roots radiating from them in a tortuous irregular course to considerable
distances, and as so mingled with the under-clay that it is not possible
to cut out a cubic foot of it which does not contain portions of the
plant.” (Logan “On the Characters of the Beds of Clay immediately below
the Coal-seams of South Wales,” Geol. Transactions, Second Series, vol.
vi., pp. 491-2. An account of these beds had previously been published
by Mr. Logan in the Annual Report of the Royal Institution of South
Wales for 1839.)

From the circumstance of the main stem of the Sigillaria, of which the
_Stigmaria ficoides_ have been traced to be merely a continuation, it
was inferred by the above-mentioned authors, and has subsequently been
generally recognised as probably the truth, that the roots found in the
underclay are merely those of the plant (_Sigillaria_), the stem of
which is met with in the overlying coal-beds--in fact, that the
_Stigmaria ficoides_ is only the root of the _Sigillaria_, and not a
distinct plant, as was once supposed to be the case.

This being granted, it is a natural inference to suppose that the
present indurated under-clay is only another condition of that soft,
silty soil, or of that finely levigated muddy sediment--most likely of
still and shallow water--in which the vegetation grew, the remains of
which were afterwards carbonised and converted into coal.[49]

  [49] For the opinions respecting the _Stigmaria ficoides_, see a
       Memoir on “The Formation of the Rocks in South Wales and
       South-Western England,” by Sir Henry T. De la Beche, F.R.S., in
       the “Memoirs of the Geological Survey of Great Britain,” vol. i.,
       p. 149.

In order thoroughly to comprehend the phenomena of the transformation
into coal of the forests and of the herbaceous plants which filled the
marshes and swamps of the ancient world, there is another consideration
to be presented. During the coal-period, the terrestrial crust was
subjected to alternate movements of elevation and depression of the
internal liquid mass, under the impulse of the solar and lunar
attractions to which they would be subject, as our seas are now, giving
rise to a sort of subterranean tide, operating at intervals, more or
less widely apart, upon the weaker parts of the crust, and producing
considerable subsidences of the ground. It might, perhaps, happen that,
in consequence of a subsidence produced in such a manner, the vegetation
of the coal-period would be submerged, and the shrubs and plants which
covered the surface of the earth would finally become buried under
water. After this submergence new forests sprung up in the same place.
Owing to another submergence, the second forests were depressed in their
turn, and again covered by water. It is probably by a series of
repetitions of this double phenomenon--this submergence of whole regions
of forest, and the development upon the same site of new growths of
vegetation--that the enormous accumulations of semi-decomposed plants,
which constitute the Coal-measures, have been formed in a long series of
ages.

But, has coal been produced from the larger plants only--for example,
from the great forest-trees of the period, such as the Lepidodendra,
Sigillariæ, Calamites, and Sphenophylla? That is scarcely probable, for
many coal-deposits contain no vestiges of the great trees of the period,
but only of Ferns and other herbaceous plants of small size. It is,
therefore, presumable that the larger vegetation has been almost
unconnected with the formation of coal, or, at least, that it has played
a minor part in its production. In all probability there existed in the
coal-period, as at the present time, two distinct kinds of vegetation:
one formed of lofty forest-trees, growing on the higher grounds; the
other, herbaceous and aquatic plants, growing on marshy plains. It is
the latter kind of vegetation, probably, which has mostly furnished the
material for the coal; in the same way that marsh-plants have, during
historic times and up to the present day, supplied our existing peat,
which may be regarded as a sort of contemporaneous incipient coal.

To what modification has the vegetation of the ancient world been
subjected to attain that carbonised state, which constitutes coal? The
submerged plants would, at first, be a light, spongy mass, in all
respects resembling the peat-moss of our moors and marshes. While under
water, and afterwards, when covered with sediment, these vegetable
masses underwent a partial decomposition--a moist, putrefactive
fermentation, accompanied by the production of much carburetted hydrogen
and carbonic acid gas. In this way, the hydrogen escaping in the form of
carburetted hydrogen, and the oxygen in the form of carbonic acid gas,
the carbon became more concentrated, and coal was ultimately formed.
This emission of carburetted hydrogen gas would, probably, continue
after the peat-beds were buried beneath the strata which were deposited
and accumulated upon them. The mere weight and pressure of the
superincumbent mass, continued at an increasing ratio during a long
series of ages, have given to the coal its density and compact state.

The heat emanating from the interior of the globe would, also, exercise
a great influence upon the final result. It is to these two causes--that
is to say, to pressure and to the central heat--that we may attribute
the differences which exist in the mineral characters of various kinds
of coal. The inferior beds are _drier_ and more compact than the upper
ones; or less bituminous, because their mineralisation has been
completed under the influence of a higher temperature, and at the same
time under a greater pressure.

An experiment, attempted for the first time in 1833, at Sain-Bel,
afterwards repeated by M. Cagniard de la Tour, and completed at
Saint-Etienne by M. Baroulier in 1858, fully demonstrates the process by
which coal was formed. These gentlemen succeeded in producing a very
compact coal artificially, by subjecting wood and other vegetable
substances to the double influence of heat and pressure combined.

The apparatus employed for this experiment by M. Baroulier, at
Saint-Etienne, allowed the exposure of the strongly compressed vegetable
matter enveloped in moist clay, to the influence of a long-continued
temperature of from 200° to 300° Centigrade. This apparatus, without
being absolutely closed, offered obstacles to the escape of gases or
vapours in such a manner that the decomposition of the organic matters
took place in the medium saturated with moisture, and under a pressure
which prevented the escape of the elements of which it was composed. By
placing in these conditions the sawdust of various kinds of wood,
products were obtained which resembled in many respects, sometimes
brilliant shining coal, and at others a dull coal. These differences,
moreover, varied with the conditions of the experiment and the nature of
the wood employed; thus explaining the striped appearance of coal when
composed alternately of shining and dull veins.

When the stems and leaves of ferns are compressed between beds of clay
or pozzuolana, they are decomposed by the pressure only, and form on
these blocks a carbonaceous layer, and impressions bearing a close
resemblance to those which blocks of coal frequently exhibit. These
last-mentioned experiments, which were first made by Dr. Tyndall, leave
no room for doubt that coal has been formed from the plants of the
ancient world.

Passing from these speculations to the Coal-measures:--

This formation is composed of a succession of beds, of various
thicknesses, consisting of sandstones or gritstones, of clays and
shales, sometimes so bituminous as to be inflammable--and passing, in
short, into an imperfect kind of _coal_. These rocks are interstratified
with each other in such a manner that they may consist of many
alterations. Carbonate of protoxide of iron (clay-ironstone) may also
be considered a constituent of this formation; its extensive
dissemination in connection with coal in some parts of Great Britain has
been of immense advantage to the ironworks of this country, in many
parts of which blast-furnaces for the manufacture of iron rise by
hundreds alongside of the coal-pits from which they are fed. In France,
as is frequently the case in England, this argillaceous iron-ore only
occurs in nodules or lenticular masses, much interrupted; so that it
becomes necessary in that country, as in this, to find other ores of
iron to supply the wants of the foundries. Fig. 70 gives an idea of the
ordinary arrangement of the coal-beds, one of which is seen
interstratified between two parallel and nearly horizontal beds of
argillaceous shale, containing nodules of clay iron-ore--a disposition
very common in English collieries. The coal-basin of Aveyron, in France,
presents an analogous mode of occurrence.

[Illustration: Fig. 70.--Stratification of coal-beds.]

The frequent presence of carbonate of iron in the coal-measures is a
most fortunate circumstance for mining industry. When the miner finds,
in the same spot, the ore of iron and the fuel required for smelting it,
arrangements for working them can be established under the most
favourable conditions. Such is the case in the coal-fields of Great
Britain, and also in France to a less extent--that is to say, only at
Saint-Etienne and Alais.

The extent of the Coal-measures, in various parts of the world, may be
briefly and approximately stated as follows:--

ESTIMATED AREA OF THE COAL-MEASURES OF THE WORLD.

                                                         Square Miles.

  United States                                220,166 }    420,166
        „       Lignites and inferior Coals    200,000 }
  British Possessions in North America                        2,200
  Great Britain                                               3,000
  France                                                      2,000
  Belgium                                                       468
  Rhenish Prussia and Saarbrück                               1,550
  Westphalia                                                    400
  Bohemia                                                       620
  Saxony                                                         66
  The Asturias, in Spain                                        310
  Russia                                                     11,000
  Islands of the Pacific and Indian Ocean                   Unknown.

The American continent, then, contains much more extensive coal-fields
than Europe; it possesses very nearly two square miles of coal-fields
for every five miles of its surface; but it must be added that these
immense fields of coal have not, hitherto, been productive in proportion
to their extent. The following Table represents the annual produce of
the collieries of America and Europe:--

                                           Tons.

  British Islands        (in 1870)      110,431,192
  United States                          14,593,659
  Belgium                (in 1870)       13,697,118
  France                 (in 1864)       10,000,000
    „                    (in 1866)       11,807,142
  Prussia                (in 1864)       21,197,266
  Nassau                 (in 1864)        2,345,459
  Netherlands            (in 1864)           24,815
  Austria                (in 1864)        4,589,014
  Spain                                     500,000

We thus see that the United States holds a secondary place as a
coal-producing country; raising one-eleventh part of the out-put of the
whole of Europe, and about one-eighth part of the quantity produced by
Great Britain.

The Coal-measures of England and Scotland cover a large area; and
attempts have been made to estimate the quantity of fuel they contain.
The estimate made by the Royal Commission on the coal in the United
Kingdom may be considered as the nearest; and, in this Report, lately
published, it is stated that in the ascertained coal-fields of the
United Kingdom there is an aggregate quantity of 146,480,000,000 tons of
coal, which may be reasonably expected to be available for use. In the
coal-field of South Wales, ascertained by actual measurement to attain
the extraordinary thickness of 11,000 feet of Coal-measures, there are
100 different seams of coal, affording an aggregate thickness of 120
feet, mostly in thin beds, but varying from six inches to more than ten
feet. Professor J. Phillips estimates the thickness of the coal-bearing
strata of the north of England at 3,000 feet; but these, in common with
all other coal-fields, contain, along with many beds of the mineral in a
more or less pure state, interstratified beds of sandstones, shales, and
limestone; the real coal-seams, to the number of twenty or thirty, not
exceeding sixty feet in thickness in the aggregate. The Scottish
Coal-measures have a thickness of 3,000 feet, with similar
intercalations of other carboniferous rocks.

[Illustration: Fig. 71.--Contortions of Coal-beds.]

[Illustration: Fig. 72.--Cycas circinalis (living form).]

The coal-basin of Belgium and of the north of France forms a nearly
continuous zone from Liége, Namur, Charleroi, and Mons, to Valenciennes,
Douai, and Béthune. The beds of coal there are from fifty to one hundred
and ten in number, and their thickness varies from ten inches to six
feet. Some coal-fields which are situated beneath the Secondary
formations of the centre and south of France possess beds fewer in
number, but individually thicker and less regularly stratified. The two
basins of the Saône-et-Loire, the principal mines of which are at
Creuzot, Blanzy, Montchanin, and Epinac, only contain ten beds; but some
of these (as at Montchanin) attain 30, 100, and even 130 feet in
thickness. The coal-basin of the Loire is that which contains the
greatest total thickness of coal-beds: the seams there are twenty-five
in number. After those of the North--of the Saône-et-Loire and of the
Loire--the principal basins in France are those of the Allier, where
very important beds are worked at Commentry and Bezenet; the basin of
Brassac, which commences at the confluence of the Allier and the
Alagnon; the basin of the Aveyron, known by the collieries of
Decazeville and Aubin; the basin of the Gard, and of Grand’-Combe.
Besides these principal basins, there are a great many others of
scarcely less importance, which yield annually to France from six to
seven million tons of coal.

The seams of coal are rarely found in the horizontal position in which
their original formation took place. They have been since much crumpled
and distorted, forced into basin-shaped cavities, with minor
undulations, and affected by numerous flexures and other disturbances.
They are frequently found broken up and distorted by faults, and even
folded back on themselves into zigzag forms, as represented in the
engraving (Fig. 71, p. 167), which is a mode of occurrence common in all
the Coal-measures of Somersetshire and in the basins of Belgium and the
north of France. Vertical pits, sunk on coal which has been subjected to
this kind of contortion and disturbance, sometimes traverse the same
beds many times.


PERMIAN PERIOD.

The name “Permian” was proposed by Sir Roderick I. Murchison, in the
year 1841, for certain deposits which are now known to terminate upwards
the great primeval or Palæozoic Series.[50]

  [50] See “Siluria,” p. 14. _Philosophical Mag._, 3rd series, vol.
       xix., p. 419.

This natural group consists, in descending order, in Germany, of the
Zechstein, the Kupfer-schiefer, Roth-liegende, &c. In England it is
usually divided into Magnesian Limestone or Zechstein, with subordinate
Marl-slate or Kupfer-schiefer, and Rothliegende. The chief calcareous
member of this group of strata is termed in Germany the “Zechstein,” in
England the “Magnesian Limestone;” but, as magnesian limestones have
been produced at many geological periods, and as the German Zechstein is
only a part of a group, the other members of which are known as
“Kupfer-schiefer” (“copper-slate”), “Roth-todt-liegende” (the “Lower New
Red” of English geologists), &c., it was manifest that a single name for
the whole was much needed. Finding, in his examination of Russia in
Europe, that this group was a great and united physical series of marls,
limestones, sandstones, and conglomerates, occupying a region much
larger than France, and of which the Government of Perm formed a central
part, Sir Roderick proposed that the name of Permian, now in general
use, should be thereto applied.

Extended researches have shown, from the character of its embedded
organic remains, that it is closely allied to, but distinct from, the
carboniferous strata below it, and is entirely distinct from the
overlying Trias, or New Red Sandstone, which forms the base of the great
series of the Secondary rocks.

Geology is, however, not only indebted to Sir Roderick Murchison for
this classification and nomenclature, but also to him, in conjunction
with Professor Sedgwick, for the name “_Devonian_,” as an equivalent to
“Old Red Sandstone;” whilst every geologist knows that Sir R. Murchison
is the sole author of the SILURIAN SYSTEM.

[Illustration: XII.--Ideal landscape of the Permian Period.]

The Permian rocks have of late years assumed great interest,
particularly in England, in consequence of the evidence their correct
determination affords with regard to the probable extent, beneath them,
of the coal-bearing strata which they overlie and conceal; thus tending
to throw a light upon the duration of our coal-fields, one of the most
important questions of the day in connection with our industrial
resources and national prosperity.

On the opposite page an ideal view of the earth during the Permian
period is represented (PL. XII.). In the background, on the right, is
seen a series of syenitic and porphyritic domes, recently thrown up;
while a mass of steam and vapour rises in columns from the midst of the
sea, resulting from the heat given out by the porphyries and syenites.
Having attained a certain height in the cooler atmosphere, the columns
of steam become condensed and fall in torrents of rain. The evaporation
of water in such vast masses being necessarily accompanied by an
enormous disengagement of electricity, this imposing scene of the
primitive world is illuminated by brilliant flashes of lightning,
accompanied by reverberating peals of thunder. In the foreground, on the
right, rise groups of Tree-ferns, Lepidodendra, and Walchias, of the
preceding period. On the sea-shore, and left exposed by the retiring
tide, are Molluscs and Zoophytes peculiar to the period, such as
_Producta_, _Spirifera_, and _Encrinites_; pretty plants--the
_Asterophyllites_--which we have noticed in our description of the
Carboniferous age, are growing at the water’s edge, not far from the
shore.

During the Permian period the species of plants and animals were nearly
the same as those already described as belonging to the Carboniferous
period. Footprints of reptilian animals have been found in the Permian
beds near Kenilworth, in the red sandstones of that age in the Vale of
Eden, and in the sandstones of Corncockle Moor, and other parts of
Dumfriesshire. These footprints, together with the occurrence of
current-markings or ripplings, sun-cracks, and the pittings of
rain-drops impressed on the surfaces of the beds, indicate that they
were made upon damp surfaces, which afterwards became dried by the sun
before the flooded waters covered them with fresh deposits of sediment,
in the way that now happens during variations of the seasons in many
salt lakes.[51] M. Ad. Brongniart has described the forms of the Permian
flora as being intermediate between those of the Carboniferous period
and of that which succeeds it.

  [51] A. C. Ramsay, “On the Red Rocks of England.” _Quart. Jour. Geol.
       Soc._, vol. xxvii., p. 246.

Although the Permian flora indicates a climate similar to that which
prevailed during the Carboniferous period, it has been pointed out by
Professor Ramsay, as long ago as 1855, that the Permian breccia of
Shropshire, Worcestershire, &c., affords strong proofs of being the
result of direct glacial action, and of the consequent existence at the
period of glaciers and icebergs.

That such a state of things is not inconsistent with the prevalence of a
moist, equable, and temperate climate, necessary for the preservation of
a luxuriant flora like that of the period in question, is shown in New
Zealand; where, with a climate and vegetation approximating to those of
the Carboniferous period, there are also glaciers at the present day in
the southern island.

Professor King has published a valuable memoir on the Permian fossils of
England, in the Proceedings of the Palæontographical Society, in which
the following Table is given (in descending order) of the Permian system
of the North of England, as compared with that of Thuringia:--

    NORTH OF ENGLAND.           THURINGIA.             MINERAL CHARACTER.

  1. Crystalline, earthy,   }
  compact, and oolitic      } 1. Stinkstein            1. Oolitic limestones.
  limestones                }

  2. Brecciated and pseudo- } 2. Rauchwacke            2. Conglomerates.
  brecciated limestones     }

  3. Fossiliferous          { 3. Upper Zechstein, or } 3. Marlstones.
  limestone                 { Dolomit-Zechstein      }

  4. Compact limestone        4. Lower Zechstein       4. Magnesian limestones.

  5. Marl-slate             { 5. Mergel-Schiefer or  } 5. Red and green grits
                            { Kupferschiefer         } with copper-ore.

                                                     { 6. White limestone with
  6. Lower sandstones, and }  6. Todteliegende       { gypsum and white
  sands of various colours }                         { salt.

At the base of the system lies a band of _lower sandstone_ (No. 6) of
various colours, separating the Magnesian Limestone from the coal in
Yorkshire and Durham; sometimes associated with red marl and gypsum, but
with the same obscure relations in all these beds which usually attend
the close of one series and the commencement of another; the imbedded
plants being, in some cases, stated to be identical with those of the
Carboniferous series. In Thuringia the _Rothliegende_, or _red-lyer_, a
great deposit of red sandstone and conglomerate, associated with
porphyry, basaltic trap, and amygdaloid, lies at the base of the system.
Among the fossils of this age are the silicified trunks of Tree-ferns
(_Psaronius_), the bark of which is surrounded by dense masses of
air-roots, which often double or quadruple the diameter of the original
stem; in this respect bearing a strong resemblance to the living
arborescent ferns of New Zealand.

The marl-slate (No. 5) consists of hard calcareous shales,
marl-slates, and thin-bedded limestone, the whole nearly thirty
feet thick in Durham, and yielding many fine specimens of Ganoid and
Placoid fishes--_Palæoniscus_, _Pygopterus_, _Cœlacanthus_, and
_Platysomus_--genera which all belong to the Carboniferous system, and
which Professor King thinks probably lived at no great distance from the
shore; but the Permian species of the marl-slate of England are
identical with those of the copper-slate of Thuringia. Agassiz was the
first to point out a remarkable peculiarity in the forms of the fishes
which lived before and after this period. In most living fishes the
trunk seems to terminate in the middle of the root of the tail, whose
free margin is “homocercal” (even-tail), that is, either rounded, or, if
forked, divided into two equal lobes. In Palæoniscus, and most Palæozoic
fishes, the axis of the body is continued into the upper lobe of the
tail, which is thus rendered unsymmetrical, as in the living sharks and
sturgeons. The latter form, which Agassiz termed “heterocercal”
(unequal-tail) is only in a very general way distinctive of Palæozoic
fishes, since this asymmetry exists, though in a minor degree, in many
living genera besides those just mentioned. The compact limestone (No.
4) is rich in Polyzoa. The fossiliferous limestone (No. 3), Mr. King
considers, is a deep-water formation, from the numerous Polyzoa which it
contains. One of these, _Fenestella retiformis_, found in the Permian
rocks of England and Germany, sometimes measures eight inches in width.

Many species of Mollusca, and especially Brachiopoda, appear in the
Permian seas of this age, _Spirifera_ and _Producta_ being the most
characteristic.

Other shells now occur, which have not been observed in strata newer
than the Permian. _Strophalosia_ (Fig. 73) is abundantly represented in
the Permian rocks of Germany, Russia, and England, and much more
sparingly in the yellow magnesian limestone, accompanied by _Spirifera
undulata_, &c. _S. Schlotheimii_ is widely disseminated both in England,
Germany, and Russia, with _Lingula Credneri_, and other Palæozoic
Brachiopoda. Here also we note the first appearance of the Oyster, but
still in small numbers. _Fenestella_ represents the Polyzoa. _Schizodus_
has been found by Mr. Binney in the Upper Red Permian Marls of
Manchester; but no shells of any kind have hitherto been met with in the
Rothliegende of Lancashire, or in the Vale of Eden.

The brecciated limestone (No. 2) and the concretionary masses (No. 1)
overlying it (although Professor King has attempted to separate them)
are considered by Professor Sedgwick as different forms of the same
rock. They contain no foreign elements, but seem to be composed of
fragments of the underlying limestone, No. 3. Some of the angular masses
at Tynemouth cliff are two feet in diameter, and none of them are
water-worn.

[Illustration: Fig. 73.--Strophalosia Morrisiana.]

[Illustration: Fig. 74.--Cyrtoceras depressum.]

[Illustration: Fig. 75.--Walchia Schlotheimii.]

The crystalline or concretionary limestone (No. 1) formation is seen
upon the coast of Durham and Yorkshire, between the Wear and the Tees;
and Mr. King thinks that the character of the shells and the absence of
corals indicate a deposit formed in shallow water.

The plants also found in some of the Permian strata indicate the
neighbourhood of land. These are land species, and chiefly of genera
common in the Coal-measures. Fragments of supposed coniferous wood
(generally silicified) are occasionally met with in the Permian red beds
of many parts of England.

Among the Ferns characteristic of the period may be mentioned
_Sphenopteris dichotoma_ and _S. Artemisiæfolia_; _Pecopteris
lonchitica_ and _Neuropteris gigantea_, figured on pp. 143, 144. “If we
are,” says Lyell, “to draw a line between the Secondary and Primary
fossiliferous strata, it must be run through the middle of what was once
called the ‘New Red.’ The inferior half of this group will rank as
Primary or Palæozoic, while its upper member will form the base of the
Secondary or Mesozoic series.”[52] Among the _Equiseta_ of the Permian
formation of Saxony, Colonel Von Gutbier found _Calamites gigas_ and
sixty species of fossil plants, most of them Ferns, forty of which have
not been found elsewhere. Among these are several species of _Walchia_,
a genus of Conifers, of which an example is given in Fig. 75.

  [52] “Elements of Geology,” p. 456.

[Illustration: Fig. 76.--Trigonocarpum Nöggerathii.]

In their stems, leaves, and cones, they bear some resemblance to the
_Araucarias_, which have been introduced from North America into our
pleasure-grounds during the last half-century.

Among the genera enumerated by Colonel Von Gutbier are some fruits
called _Cardiocarpon_, and _Asterophyllites_ and _Annularia_, so
characteristic of the Carboniferous age. The Lepidodendron is also
common to the Permian rocks of Saxony, Russia, and Thuringia; also the
_Nöggerathia_, a family of large trees, intermediate between Cycads
(Fig. 72) and the Conifers. The fruit of one of these is represented in
Fig 76.

PERMIAN ROCKS.--We now give a sketch of the physiognomy of the earth in
Permian times. Of what do the beds consist? What is the extent, and what
is the mineralogical constitution of the rocks deposited in the seas of
the period? The Permian formation consists of three members, which are
in descending order--

1. Upper Permian sandstone, or Grès des Vosges; 2. Magnesian Limestone,
or Zechstein; 3. Lower Red Sandstone, Marl-slate or Kupferschiefer, and
Rothliegende.

The _grès des Vosges_, usually of a red colour, and from 300 to 450 feet
thick, composes all the southern part of the Vosges Mountains, where it
forms frequent level summits, which are evidences of an ancient plain
that has been acted on by running water. It only contains a few
vegetable remains.

The _Magnesian Limestone_, Pierre de mine, or Zechstein, so called in
consequence of the numerous metalliferous deposits met with in its
diverse beds, presents in France only a few insignificant fragments; but
in Germany and England it attains the thickness of 450 feet. It is
composed of a diversified mass of Magnesian Limestone, generally of a
yellow colour, but sometimes red and brown, and bituminous clay, the
last black and fetid. The subordinate rocks consist of marl, gypsum, and
inflammable bituminous schists. The beds of marl slate are remarkable
for the numbers of peculiar fossil fishes which they contain; and from
the occurrence of small proportions of argentiferous grey copper-ore,
met with in the bituminous shales which are worked in the district of
Mansfeld, in Thuringia--the latter are called _Kupferschiefer_ in
Germany.

The _Lower Red Sandstone_, which attains a thickness of from 300 to 600
feet, is found over great part of Germany, in the Vosges, and in
England. Its fossil remains are few and rare; they include silicified
trunks of Conifers, some impressions of Ferns, and Calamites.

In England the Permian strata, to a great extent, consist of red
sandstones and marls; and the Magnesian Limestone of the northern
counties is also, though to a less degree, associated with red marls.

In Lancashire thin beds of Magnesian Limestone are interstratified with
red marls in the upper Permian strata, beneath which there are soft Red
Sandstones, estimated by Mr. Hull to be about 1,500 feet thick. These
are supposed to represent the Rothliegende, and no shells of any kind
have been found in them. The upper Permian beds, however, contain a few
Magnesian Limestone species, such as _Gervillia antiqua_, _Pleurophorus
costatus_, _Schizodus obscurus_, and some others, but all small and
dwarfed.

The coal-fields of North and South Staffordshire, Tamworth, Coalbrook
Dale, and of the Forest of Wyre, are partly bordered by Permian rocks,
which lie unconformably on the Coal-measures; as is the case, also, in
the immediate neighbourhood of Manchester, where they skirt the borders
of the main coal-field, and consist of the Lower Red Sandstone, resting
unconformably on different parts of the Coal-measures, and overlaid by
the pebble-beds of the Trias.

At Stockport the Permian strata are stated by Mr. Hull to be more than
1,500 feet thick.

In Yorkshire, Nottinghamshire, and Derbyshire, the Permian strata are
stated by Mr. Aveline to be divided into two chief groups: the
Roth-liegende, of no great thickness, and the Magnesian Limestone
series; the latter being the largest and most important member of the
Permian series in the northern counties of England. The Magnesian
Limestone consists there of two great bands, separated by marls and
sandstone, and quarried for building and for lime. In Derbyshire and
Yorkshire the magnesian limestone, under the name of Dolomite, forms an
excellent building-stone, which has been used in the construction of the
Houses of Parliament.

In the midland counties and on the borders of Wales, the Permian section
is different from that of Nottinghamshire and the North of England. The
Magnesian Limestones are absent, and the rocks consist principally of
dark-red marl, brown and red sandstones, and calcareous conglomerates
and breccias, which are almost entirely unfossiliferous. In
Warwickshire, where they rest conformably on the Coal-measures, they
occupy a very considerable tract of country, and are of very great
thickness, being estimated by Mr. Howell to be 2,000 feet thick.

In the east of England the Magnesian Limestone contains a numerous
marine fauna, but much restricted when compared with that of the
Carboniferous period. The shells of the former are all small and dwarfed
in size when compared with their congeners of Carboniferous times, when
such there are, and in this respect, and the small number of genera,
they resemble the living mollusca of the still less numerous fauna of
the Caspian Sea.

Besides the poverty and small size of the mollusca, the later strata of
the true Magnesian Limestone seem to afford strong indications that they
may have been deposited in a great inland salt-lake subject to
evaporation.

The absence of fossils in much of the formation may be partly accounted
for by its deposition in great measure from solution, and the
uncongenial nature of the waters of a salt-lake may account for the
poverty-stricken character of the whole molluscan fauna.

The red colouring-matter of the Permian sandstones and marls is
considered, by Professor Ramsay, to be due to carbonate of iron
introduced into the waters, and afterwards precipitated as peroxide
through the oxidising action of the air and the escape of the carbonic
acid which held it in solution. This circumstance of the red colour of
the Permian beds affords an indication that the red Permian strata were
deposited in inland waters unconnected with the main ocean, which waters
may have been salt or fresh as the case may be.

“The Magnesian Limestone series of the east of England may, possibly,
have been connected directly with an open sea at the commencement of the
deposition of these strata, whatever its subsequent history may have
been; for the fish of the marl strata have generically strong affinities
with those of Carboniferous age, some of which were truly marine, while
others certainly penetrated shallow lagoons bordered by peaty
flats.”[53]

  [53] “On the Red Rocks of England,” by A. C. Ramsay. _Quart. Jour.
       Geol. Soc._, vol. xxvii., p. 246.

There is indisputable evidence that the Permian ocean covered an immense
area of the globe. In the Permian period this ocean extended from
Ireland to the Ural mountains, and probably to Spitzbergen, with its
northern boundary defined by the Carboniferous, Devonian, Silurian, and
Igneous regions of Scotland, Scandinavia, and Northern Russia; and its
southern boundaries apparently stretching far into the south of Europe
(King). The chain of the Vosges, stretching across Rhenish Bavaria, the
Grand Duchy of Baden, as far as Saxony and Silesia, would be under
water. They would communicate with the ocean, which covered all the
midland and western counties of England and part of Russia. In other
parts of Europe the continent has varied very little since the preceding
Devonian and Carboniferous ages. In France the central plateaux would
form a great island, which extended towards the south, probably as far
as the foot of the Pyrenees; another island would consist of the mass of
Brittany. In Russia the continent would have extended itself
considerably towards the east; finally, it is probable that, at the end
of the Carboniferous period, the Belgian continent would stretch from
the Departments of the Pas-de-Calais and Du Nord, in France, and would
extend up to and beyond the Rhine.

In England, the Silurian archipelago, now filled up and occupied by
deposits of the Devonian and Carboniferous systems, would be covered
with carboniferous vegetation; dry land would now extend, almost without
interruption, from Cape Wrath to the Land’s End; but, on its eastern
shore, the great mass of the region now lying less than three degrees
west of Greenwich would, in a general sense, be under water, or form
islands rising out of the sea. Alphonse Esquiros thus eloquently closes
the chapter of his work in which he treats of this formation in England:
“We have seen seas, vast watery deserts, become populated; we have seen
the birth of the first land and its increase; ages succeeding each
other, and Nature in its progress advancing among ruins; the ancient
inhabitants of the sea, or at least their spoils, have been raised to
the summit of lofty mountains. In the midst of these vast cemeteries of
the primitive world we have met with the remains of millions of beings;
entire species sacrificed to the development of life. Here terminates
the first mass of facts constituting the infancy of the British Islands.
But great changes are still to produce themselves on this portion of the
earth’s surface.”

Having thus described the _Primary Epoch_, it may be useful, before
entering on what is termed by geologists the _Secondary Epoch_, to
glance backwards at the facts which we have had under consideration.

In this Primary period plants and animals appear for the first time
upon the surface of the cooling globe. We have said that the seas of the
epoch were then dominated by the fishes known as _Ganoids_ (from γανος,
_glitter_), from the brilliant polish of the enamelled scales which
covered their bodies, sometimes in a very complicated and fantastic
manner; the _Trilobites_ are curious Crustaceans, which appear and
altogether disappear in the Primary epoch; an immense quantity of
Mollusca, Cephalopoda, and Brachiopoda; the _Encrinites_, animals of
curious organisation, which form some of the most graceful ornaments of
our Palæontological collections.

[Illustration: Fig. 77.--Lithostrotion. (Fossil Coral.)]

But, among all these beings, those which prevailed--those which were
truly the kings of the organic world--were the Fishes, and, above all,
the _Ganoids_, which have left no animated being behind them of similar
organisation. Furnished with a sort of defensive armour, they seem to
have received from Nature this means of protection to ensure their
existence, and permit them to triumph over all the influences which
threatened them with destruction in the seas of the ancient world.

[Illustration: Fig. 78.--Rhyncholites, upper, side, and internal views.
1, Side view (Muschelkalk of Luneville); 2, Upper view (same locality);
3, Upper view (Lias of Lyme Regis); 4, Calcareous point of an under
mandible, internal view, from Luneville. (Buckland.)]

In the Primary epoch the living creation was in its infancy. No Mammals
then roamed the forests; no bird had yet displayed its wings. Without
Mammals, therefore, there was no maternal instinct; none of the soft
affections which are, with animals, as it were, the precursors of
intelligence. Without birds, also, there could be no songs in the air.
Fishes, Mollusca, and Crustacea silently ploughed their way in the
depths of the sea, and the immovable Crinoid lived there. On the land we
only find a few marsh-frequenting Reptiles, of small size--forerunners
of those monstrous Saurians which make their appearance in the Secondary
epoch.

The vegetation of the Primary epoch is chiefly of inferior organisation.
With a few plants of a higher order, that is to say, Dicotyledons,
Calamites, Sigillarias, it was the Cryptogamia (also several species of
Ferns, the Lepidodendra, Lycopodiaceæ, and the Equisetaceæ, and some
doubtfully allied forms, termed Nöggerathia), then at their maximum of
development, which formed the great mass of the vegetation.

Let us also consider, in this short analysis, that during the epoch
under consideration, what we call _climate_ may not have existed. The
same animals and the same plants then lived in the polar regions as at
the equator. Since we find, in the Primary formations of the icy regions
of Spitzbergen and Melville Islands, nearly the same fossils which we
meet with in these same rocks in the torrid zone, we must conclude that
the temperature at this epoch was uniform all over the globe, and that
the heat of the earth itself was sufficiently high to render
inappreciable the calorific influence of the sun.

During this same period the progressive cooling of the earth occasioned
frequent ruptures and dislocations of the ground; the terrestrial crust,
in opening, afforded a passage for the rocks called _igneous_, such as
granite, afterwards to the porphyries and syenites, which poured slowly
through these immense fissures, and formed mountains of granite and
porphyry, or simple clefts, which subsequently became filled with oxides
and metallic sulphides, forming what are now designated metallic veins.
The great mountain-range of Ben Nevis offers a striking example of the
first of these phenomena; through the granite base a distinct natural
section can be traced of porphyry ejected through the granite, and of
syenite through the porphyry. These geological commotions (which
occasioned, not over the whole extent of the earth, but only in certain
places, great movements of the surface) would appear to have been more
frequent at the close of the Primary epoch; during the interval which
forms the passage between the Primary and Secondary epochs; that is to
say, between the Permian and the Triassic periods. The phenomena of
eruptions, and the character of the rocks called eruptive, are treated
of in a former chapter.

[Illustration: Fig. 79. _a_, Pentacrinites Briareus, reduced; _b_, the
same from the Lias of Lyme Regis; natural size.]

The convulsions and disturbances by which the surface of the earth was
agitated did not extend, let it be noted, over the whole of its
circumference; the effects were partial and local. It would, then, be
wrong to affirm, as is asserted by many modern geologists, that the
dislocations of the crust and the agitations of the surface of the
globe extended to both hemispheres, resulting in the destruction of all
living creatures. The Fauna and Flora of the Permian period did not
differ essentially from the Fauna and Flora of the Coal-measures, which
shows that no general revolution occurred to disturb the entire globe
between these two epochs. Here, then, as in all analogous cases, it is
unnecessary to recur to any general cataclysm to explain the passage
from one epoch to another. Have we not, almost in our our own day, seen
certain species of animals die out and disappear, without the least
geological revolution? Without speaking of the Beaver, which abounded
two centuries ago on the banks of the Rhône, and in the Cévennes, which
still lived at Paris in the little river Bièvre in the middle ages, its
existence being now unknown in these latitudes, although it is still
found in America and other countries, we could cite many examples of
animals which have become extinct in times by no means remote from our
own. Such are the _Dinornis_ and the _Epyornis_, colossal birds of New
Zealand and Madagascar, and the _Dodo_, which lived in the Isle of
France in 1626. _Ursus spelæus_, _Cervus Megaceros_, _Bos primigenius_,
are species of Bear, Deer, and Ox which were contemporary with man, but
have now become extinct. In France we no longer know the gigantic
wood-stag, figured by the Romans on their monuments, and which they had
brought from England for the fine quality of its flesh. The Erymanthean
boar, so widely dispersed during the ancient historical period, no
longer exists among our living races, any more than the Crocodiles
_lacunosus_ and _laciniatus_ found by Geoffroy St.-Hilaire in the
catacombs of ancient Egypt. Many races of animals figured in the mosaics
of Palestrina, engraved and painted along with species now actually
existing, are no longer found living in our days any more than are the
Lions with curly manes, which formerly existed in Syria, and perhaps
even in Thessaly and the northern parts of Greece. From what happens in
our own time, we may infer what has taken place in times antecedent to
the appearance of man; and the idea of successive cataclysms of the
globe, must be restrained within bounds. Must we imagine a series of
geological revolutions to account for the disappearance of animals which
have evidently become extinct in a natural way? What has come to pass in
our days, it is reasonable to conclude, may have taken place in the
times anterior to the appearance of man.

[Illustration: Fig. 80.--Terebellaria ramosissima. (Recent Coral.)]




SECONDARY EPOCH.


During the _Primary Epoch_ our globe would appear to have been chiefly
appropriated to beings which lived in the waters--above all, to the
Crustaceans and Fishes; during the _Secondary Epoch_ Reptiles seem to
have been its prevailing inhabitants. Animals of this class assumed
astonishing dimensions, and would seem to have multiplied in a most
singular manner; they were, apparently, the kings of the earth. At the
same time, however, that the animal kingdom thus developed itself, the
vegetation lost much of its importance.

Geologists have agreed among themselves to divide the Secondary epoch
into three periods: 1, the _Cretaceous_; 2, the _Jurassic_; 3, the
_Triassic_--a division which it is convenient to adopt.


THE TRIASSIC, OR NEW RED PERIOD.

This period has received the name of Triassic because the rocks of which
it is composed, which are more fully developed in Germany than either in
England or France, were called the Trias (or Triple Group), by German
writers, from its division into three groups, as follows, in descending
order:--

        ENGLAND.                  FRANCE.                 GERMANY.

  Saliferous and gypseous } Marnes irisées            Keuper. 1,000 feet.
  shales and sandstone    }

  Wanting                 { Muschelkalk or Calcaire } Muschelkalk. 600 feet.
                          { coquillier              }

  Sandstone and quartzose } Grès bigarré              Bunter-Sandstein.
  conglomerate            }                           1,500 ft.

The following has been shown by Mr. Ed. Hull to be the general
succession of the Triassic formation in the midland and north-western
counties of England, where it attains its greatest vertical development,
thinning away in the direction of the mouth of the Thames:--

                                                  Foreign Equivalents.
                                                  --------------------
    / NEW RED MARL.   Red and grey shales and     Keuper.      Marnes
    |                 marls, sometimes micaceous,              irisées.
    |                 with beds of rock-salt
    |                 and gypsum, containing
    |                 _Estheria_ and _Fora-
    |                 minifera_ (Chellaston).
    |
    | LOWER KEUPER    Thinly-laminated mica-      Letten
    | SANDSTONE.      ceous sandstones and        Kohle (?)       „
  T |                 marls (waterstones);
  R |                 passing downwards into
  I |                 white, brown, or reddish
  A |                 sandstone, with a
  S |                 base of calcareous con-
  S |                 glomerate or breccia.
  I |
  C<  Wanting in      ...                         Muschelkalk. Calcaire
    | England.                                                 coquillier.
  S |
  E | UPPER MOTTLED   Soft, bright-red and     \
  R | SANDSTONE.      variegated sandstone     |
  I |                 (without pebbles).       |
  E |                                          |
  S | PEBBLE BEDS.    Harder reddish-brown     |  Bunter       Grès bigarré,
  . |                 sandstones with quartz-  |  Sandstein.   or Grès des
    |                 ose pebbles, passing      >              Vosges (in
    |                 into conglomerate;       |               part).
    |                 with a base of calca-    |
    |                 reous breccia.           |
    |                                          |
    | LOWER MOTTLED   Soft bright-red and      |
    | SANDSTONE.      variegated sandstone     |
    \                 (without pebbles).       /

  P / UPPER PERMIAN.  Red marls, with thin-       Zechstein.
  E |                 bedded fossiliferous
  R |                 limestones (Manchester).
  M |
  I |               / Red and variegated sand- \
  A |               | stone (Collyhurst, Man-  |
  N |               | chester) represented by  |
   <                | [...].                   |
  S |               |                          |
  E | LOWER        <  Reddish-brown and purple  > Rothe-todte- Grès des
  R |               | sandstones and           |  liegende.    Vosges (in
  I |               | marls, with calcareous   |               part).
  E |               | conglomerates and        |
  S |               | trappoid breccia.        |
  . \               \ (Central counties).      /


NEW RED SANDSTONE.

In this new phase of the revolutions of the globe, the animated beings
on its surface differ much from those which belonged to the Primary
epoch. The curious Crustaceans which we have described under the name of
_Trilobites_ have disappeared; the molluscous Cephalopods and
Brachiopods are here few in number, as are the Ganoid and Placoid
Fishes, whose existence also seems to have terminated during this
period, and vegetation has undergone analogous changes. The cryptogamic
plants, which reached their maximum in the Primary epoch, become now
less numerous, while the Conifers experienced a certain extension. Some
kinds of terrestrial animals have disappeared, but they are replaced by
genera as numerous as new. For the first time the Turtle appears in the
bosom of the sea, and on the borders of lakes. The Saurian reptiles
acquire a great development; they prepare the way for those enormous
Saurians, which appear in the following period, whose skeletons present
such vast proportions, and such a strange aspect, as to strike with
astonishment all who contemplate their gigantic, and, so to speak,
awe-inspiring remains.

The _Variegated Sandstone_, or Bunter, contains many vegetable, but few
animal, remains, although we constantly find imprints of the footsteps
of the Labyrinthodon.

The lowest Bunter formation shows itself in France, in the Pyrenees,
around the central plateau in the Var, and upon both flanks of the
Vosges mountains. It is represented in south-western and central
Germany, in Belgium, in Switzerland, in Sardinia, in Spain, in Poland,
in the Tyrol, in Bohemia, in Moravia, and in Russia. M. D’Orbigny
states, from his own observation, that it covers vast surfaces in the
mountainous regions of Bolivia, in South America. It is recognised in
the United States, in Columbia, in the Great Antilles, and in Mexico.

The Bunter in France is reduced to the variegated sandstone, except
around the Vosges, in the Var, and the Black Forest, where it is
accompanied by the Muschelkalk. In Germany it furnishes building-stone
of excellent quality; many great edifices, in particular the cathedrals,
so much admired on the Rhine--such, for example, as those of Strasbourg
and Fribourg--are constructed of this stone, the sombre tints of which
singularly relieve the grandeur and majesty of the Gothic architecture.
Whole cities in Germany are built of the brownish-red stones drawn from
its mottled sandstone quarries. In England, in Scotland, and in Ireland
this formation extends from north to south through the whole length of
the country. “This old land,” says Professor Ramsay,[54] “consisted in
great part of what we now know as Wales, and the adjacent counties of
Hereford, Monmouth, and Shropshire; of part of Devon and Cornwall,
Cumberland, the Pennine chain, and all the mountainous parts of
Scotland. Around old Wales, and part of Cumberland, and probably all
round and over great part of Devon and Cornwall, the New Red Sandstone
was deposited. Part, at least, of this oldest of the Secondary rocks was
formed of the material of the older Palæozoic strata, that had then
risen above the surface of the water. The New Red Sandstone series
consists in its lower members of beds of red sandstone and conglomerate,
more than 1,000 feet thick, and above them are placed red and green
marls, chiefly red, which in Germany are called the Keuper strata, and
in England the New Red Marl. These formations range from the mouth of
the Mersey, round the borders of Wales, to the estuary of the Severn,
eastwards into Warwickshire, and thence northwards into Yorkshire and
Northumberland, along the eastern border of the Magnesian Limestone.
They also form the bottom of the valley of the Eden, and skirt
Cumberland on the west; in the centre of England the unequal hardness of
its sub-divisions sometimes giving rise to minor escarpments,
overlooking plains and undulating grounds of softer strata.”

  [54] “The Physical Geography and Geology of Great Britain,” 2nd ed.,
       p. 60.

“Different members of the group rest in England, in some region or
other,” says Lyell, “on almost every principal member of the Palæozoic
series, on Cambrian, Silurian, Devonian, Carboniferous, and Permian
rocks; and there is evidence everywhere of disturbance, contortion,
partial upheaval into land, and vast denudations which the older rocks
underwent before and during the deposition of the successive strata of
the New Red Sandstone group.” (“Elements of Geology,” p. 439.)

The _Muschelkalk_ consists of beds of compact limestone, often greyish,
sometimes black, alternating with marl and clay, and commonly containing
such numbers of shells that the name of shelly limestone (_Muschelkalk_)
has been given to the formation by the Germans. The beds are sometimes
magnesian, especially in the lower strata, which contain deposits of
gypsum and rock-salt.

The seas of this sub-period, which is named after the innumerable masses
of shells inclosed in the rocks which it represents, included, besides
great numbers of Mollusca, Saurian Reptiles of twelve different genera,
some Turtles, and six new genera of Fishes clothed with a cuirass. Let
us pause at the Mollusca which peopled the Triassic seas.

[Illustration: Fig. 81.--Ceratites nodosus. (Muschelkalk.)]

Among the shells characteristic of the Muschelkalk period, we mention
_Natica Gaillardoti_, _Rostellaria antiqua_, _Lima striata_, _Avicula
socialis_, _Terebratula vulgaris_, _Turbonilla dubia_, _Myophoria
vulgaris_, _Nautilus hexagonalis_, and _Ceratites nodosus_. The
_Ceratites_, of which a species is here represented (Fig. 81), form a
genus closely allied to the _Ammonites_, which seem to have played such
an important part in the ancient seas, but which have no existence in
those of our era, either in species or even in genus. This Ceratite is
found in the Muschelkalk of Germany, a formation which has no equivalent
in England, but which is a compact greyish limestone underlying the
saliferous rocks in Germany, and including beds of dolomite with gypsum
and rock-salt.

The _Mytilus_ or _Mussel_, which properly belonged to this age, are
acephalous (or headless) Molluscs with elongated triangular shells, of
which there are many species found in our existing seas. _Lima_,
_Myophoria_, _Posidonia_, and _Avicula_, are acephalous Molluscs of the
same period. The two genera _Natica_ and _Rostellaria_ belong to the
Gasteropoda, and are abundant in the Muschelkalk in France, Germany, and
Poland.

Among the Echinoderms belonging to this period may be mentioned
_Encrinus moniliformis_ and _E. liliiformis_, or _lily encrinite_ (Fig.
82), whose remains, constituting in some localities whole beds of rock,
show the slow progress with which this zoophyte formed beds of limestone
in the clear seas of the period. To these may be added, among the
Mollusca, _Avicula subcostata_ and _Myophoria vulgaris_.

In the Muschelkalk are found the skull and teeth of _Placodus gigas_, a
reptile which was originally placed by Agassiz among the class of
Fishes; but more perfect specimens have satisfied Professor Owen that it
was a Saurian Reptile.

It may be added, that the presence of a few genera, peculiar to the
Primary epoch, which entirely disappeared during the sub-period, and
the appearance for the first time of some other animals peculiar to the
Jurassic period, give to the Muschelkalk fauna the appearance of being
one of passage from one period to the other.

[Illustration: Fig. 82.--Encrinus liliiformis.]

The seas, then, contained a few Reptiles, probably inhabitants of the
banks of rivers, as _Phytosaurus_, _Capitosaurus_, &c., and sundry
Fishes, as _Sphœrodus_ and _Pycnodus_. In this sub-period we shall say
nothing of the Land-Turtles, which for the first time now appear; but,
we should note, that at the Bunter period a gigantic Reptile appears, on
which the opinions of geologists were for a long while at variance. In
the argillaceous rocks of the Muschelkalk period imprints of the foot of
some animal were discovered in the sandstones of Storeton Hill, in
Cheshire, and in the New Red Sandstone of parts of Warwickshire, as well
as in Thuringia, and Hesseburg in Saxony, which very much resembled the
impression that might be made in soft clay by the outstretched fingers
and thumb of a human hand. These traces were made by a species of
Reptile furnished with four feet, the two fore-feet being much broader
than the hinder two. The head, pelvis, and scapula only of this
strange-looking animal have been found, but these are considered to have
belonged to a gigantic air-breathing reptile closely connected with the
Batrachians. It is thought that the head was not naked, but protected by
a bony cushion; that its jaws were armed with conical teeth, of great
strength and of a complicated structure. This curious and
uncouth-looking creature, of which the woodcut Fig. 83 is a restoration,
has been named the _Cheirotherium_, or _Labyrinthodon_, from the
complicated arrangement of the cementing layer of the teeth. (See also
Fig. 1, p. 12.)

Another Reptile of great dimensions--which would seem to have been
intended to prepare the way for the appearance of the enormous Saurians
which present themselves in the Jurassic period--was the _Nothosaurus_,
a species of marine Crocodile, of which a restoration has been attempted
in PLATE XIII. opposite.

[Illustration: XIII.--Ideal Landscape of the Muschelkalk Sub-period.]

It has been supposed, from certain impressions which appear in the
Keuper sandstones of the Connecticut river in North America, that
Birds made their appearance in the period which now occupies us; the
flags on which these occur by thousands show the tracks of an animal of
great size (some 20 inches long and 4½ feet apart), presenting the
impression of three toes, like some of the Struthionidæ or Ostriches,
accompanied by raindrops. No remains of the skeletons of birds have been
met with in rocks of this period, and the footprints in question are all
that can be alleged in support of the hypothesis.

[Illustration: Fig. 83.--Labyrinthodon restored. One-twentieth natural
size.]

M. Ad. Brongniart places the commencement of dicotyledonous gymnosperm
plants in this age. The characteristics of this Flora consist in
numerous Ferns, constituting genera now extinct, such as _Anomopteris_
and _Crematopteris_. The true _Equiseta_ are rare in it. The Calamites,
or, rather, the _Calamodendra_, abound. The gymnosperms are represented
by the genera _Conifer_, _Voltzia_, and _Haidingera_, of which both
species and individuals are very numerous in the formation of this
period.

Among the species of plants which characterise this formation, we may
mention _Neuropteris elegans_, _Calamites arenaceus_, _Voltzia
heterophylla_, _Haidingera speciosa_. The _Haidingera_, belonging to the
tribe of _Abietinæ_, were plants with large leaves, analogous to those
of our _Damara_, growing close together, and nearly imbricated, as in
the _Araucaria_. Their fruit, which are cones with rounded scales, are
imbricated, and have only a single seed, thus bearing out the strong
resemblance which has been traced between these fossil plants, and the
Damara.

The _Voltzias_ (Fig. 84), which seem to have formed the greater part of
the forests were a genus of Cupressinaceæ, now extinct, which are well
characterised among the fossil Conifers of the period. The alternate
spiral leaves, forming five to eight rows sessile, that is, sitting
close to the branch and drooping, have much in them analogous to the
_Cryptomerias_. Their fruit was an oblong cone with scales, loosely
imbricated, cuneiform or wedge-shaped, and, commonly, composed of from
three to five obtuse lobes. In Fig. 84 we have a part of the stem, a
branch with leaves and cone. In his “Botanic Geography,” M. Lecoq thus
describes the vegetation of the ancient world in the first period of the
Triassic age: “While the variegated sandstone and mottled clays were
being slowly deposited in regular beds by the waters, magnificent Ferns
still exhibited their light and elegantly-carved leaves. Divers
_Protopteris_ and majestic _Neuropteris_ associated themselves in
extensive forests, where vegetated also the _Crematopteris typica_ of
Schimper, the _Anomopteris Mongeotii_ of Brongniart, and the pretty
_Trichomanites myriophyllum_ (Göppert). The Conifers of this epoch
attain a very considerable development, and would form graceful forests
of green trees. Elegant monocotyledons, representing the forms of
tropical countries, seem to show themselves for the first time, the
_Yuccites Vogesiacus_ of Schimper constituted groups at once thickly
serried and of great extent.

“A family, hitherto doubtful, appears under the elegant form of
_Nilssonia Hogardi_, Schimp.; _Ctenis Hogardi_, Brongn. It is still seen
in the _Zamites Vogesiacus_, Schimp.; and the group of the Cycads
sharing at once in the organisation of the Conifers and the elegance of
the Palms, now decorate the earth, which reveals in these new forms its
vast fecundity. (See Fig. 72, p. 168.)

[Illustration: Fig. 84.--Branch and cone of Voltzia restored.]

“Of the herbaceous plants which formed the undergrowth of the forests,
or which luxuriated in its cool marshes, the most remarkable is the
_Ætheophyllum speciosum_, Schimp. Their organisation approximates to
the Lycopodiaceæ and Thyphaceæ, the _Ætheophyllum stipulare_, Brongn.,
and the curious _Schizoneura paradoxa_, Schimp. Thus we can trace the
commencement of the reign of the Dicotyledons with naked seeds, which
afterwards become so widely disseminated, in a few Angiosperms, composed
principally of two families, the Conifers and Cycadeaceæ, still
represented in the existing vegetation. The former, very abundant at
first, associated themselves with the cellular Cryptogams, which still
abound, although they are decreasing, then with the Cycadeaceæ, which
present themselves slowly, but will soon be observed to take a large
part in the brilliant harmonies of the vegetable kingdom.”

The engraving at page 191 (PLATE XIII.) gives an idealised picture of
the plants and animals of the period. The reader must imagine himself
transported to the shores of the Muschelkalk sea at a moment when its
waves are agitated by a violent but passing storm. The reflux of the
tide exposes some of the aquatic animals of the period. Some fine
Encrinites are seen, with their long flexible stems, and a few Mytili
and Terebratulæ. The Reptile which occupies the rocks, and prepares to
throw itself on its prey, is the _Nothosaurus_. Not far from it are
other reptiles, its congeners, but of a smaller species. Upon the dune
on the shore is a fine group of the trees of the period, that is, of
_Haidingeras_, with large trunks, with drooping branches and foliage, of
which the cedars of our own age give some idea. The elegant _Voltzias_
are seen in the second plane of this curtain of verdure. The Reptiles
which lived in these primitive forests, and which would give to it so
strange a character, are represented by the _Labyrinthodon_, which
descends towards the sea on the right, leaving upon the sandy shore
those curious tracks which have been so wonderfully preserved to our
days.

The footprints of the reptilian animals of this period prove that they
walked over moist surfaces; and, if these surfaces had been simply left
by a retiring tide, they would generally have been obliterated by the
returning flood, in the same manner that is seen every day on our own
sandy shores. It seems more likely that the surfaces, on which fossil
footprints are now found, were left bare by the summer evaporation of a
lake; that these surfaces were afterwards dried by the sun, and the
footprints hardened, so as to ensure their preservation, before the
rising waters brought by flooded muddy rivers again submerged the low
flat shores and deposited new layers of salt, just as they do at the
present day round the Dead Sea and the Salt Lake of Utah.

[Illustration: XIV.--Ideal Landscape of the Keuper Sub-period.]


KEUPER SUB-PERIOD.

The formation which characterises the Keuper, or saliferous period, is
of moderate extent, and derives the latter name from the salt deposits
it contains.

These rocks consist of a vast number of argillaceous and marly beds,
variously , but chiefly red, with tints of yellow and green.
These are the colours which gave the name of _variegatea_ (Poikilitic)
to the series. The beds of red marl often alternate with sandstones,
which are also variegated in colour. As subordinate rocks, we find in
this formation some deposits of a poor pyritic coal and of gypsum. But
what especially characterises the formation are the important deposits
of rock-salt which are included in it. The saliferous beds, often
twenty-five to forty feet thick, alternate with beds of clay, the whole
attaining a thickness of 160 yards. In Germany in Würtemberg, in France
at Vic, at Dieuze, and at Château-Salins, the rock-salt of the
saliferous formation has become an important branch of industry. In the
Jura, salt is extracted from the water charged with chlorides, which
issues from this formation.

Some of these deposits are situated at great depths, and cannot be
reached without very considerable labour. The salt-mines of Wieliczka,
in Poland, for example, can be procured on the surface, or by galleries
of little depth, because the deposit belongs to the Tertiary period; but
the deposits of salt, in the Triassic age, lie so much deeper, as to be
only approachable by a regular process of mining by galleries, and the
ordinary mode of reaching the salt is by digging pits, which are
afterwards filled with water. This water, charged with the salt, is then
pumped up into troughs, where it is evaporated, and the crystallised
mineral obtained.

What is the origin of the great deposits of marine salt which occur in
this formation, and which always alternate with thin beds of clay or
marl? We can only attribute them to the evaporation of vast quantities
of sea-water introduced into depressions, cavities, or gulfs, which the
sandy dunes afterwards separated from the great open sea. In PLATE XIV.
an attempt is made to represent the natural fact, which must have been
of frequent recurrence during the saliferous period, to form the
considerable masses of rock-salt which are now found in the rocks of the
period. On the right is the sea, with a dune of considerable extent,
separating it from a tranquil basin of smooth water. At intervals, and
from various causes, the sea, clearing the dune, enters and fills the
basin. We may even suppose that a gulf exists here which, at one time,
communicated with the sea; the winds having raised this sandy dune, the
gulf becomes transformed, by degrees, into a basin or back-water, closed
on all sides. However that may be, it is pretty certain that if the
waters of the sea were once shut up in this basin, with an argillaceous
bottom and without any opening, evaporation from the effects of solar
heat would take place, and a bed of salt would be the result of this
evaporation, mixed with other mineral salts which accompany chloride of
sodium in sea-water, such as sulphate of magnesia, chloride of
potassium, &c. This bed of salt, left by the evaporation of the water,
would soon receive an argillaceous covering from the clay and silt
suspended in the muddy water of the basin, thus forming a first
alternation of salt and of clay or marl. The sea making fresh breaches
across the barriers, the same process took place with a similar result,
until the basin was filled up. By the regular and tranquil repetition of
this phenomenon, continued during a long succession of ages, this
abundant deposit of rock-salt has been formed, which occupies so
important a position in the Secondary rocks.

There is in the delta of the Indus a singular region, called the Runn of
Cutch, which extends over an area of 7,000 square miles, which is
neither land nor sea, but is under water during the monsoons, and in the
dry season is incrusted, here and there, with salt about an inch thick,
the result of evaporation. Dry land has been largely increased here,
during the present century, by subsidence of the waters and upheavals by
earthquakes. “That successive layers of salt may have been thrown down
one upon the other on many thousand square miles, in such a region, is
undeniable,” says Lyell. “The supply of brine from the ocean is as
inexhaustible as the supply of heat from the sun. The only assumption
required to enable us to explain the great thickness of salt in such an
area, is the continuance for an indefinite period of a subsidence, the
country preserving all the time a general approach to horizontally.” The
observations of Mr. Darwin on the atolls of the Pacific, prove that such
a continuous subsidence is probable. Hugh Miller, after ably discussing
various spots of earth where, as in the Runn of Cutch, evaporation and
deposit take place, adds: “If we suppose that, instead of a barrier of
lava, sand-bars were raised by the surf on a flat arenaceous coast,
during a slow and equable sinking of the surface, the waters of the
outer gulf might occasionally topple over the bar and supply a fresh
brine when the first stock had been exhausted by evaporation.”

Professor Ramsay has pointed out that both the sandstones and marls of
the Triassic epoch were formed in lakes. In the latter part of this
epoch, he is of opinion, that the Keuper marls of the British Isles were
deposited in a large lake, or lakes, which were fresh or brackish at
first, but afterwards salt and without outlets to the sea; and that the
same was occasionally the case with regard to other portions of northern
Europe and its adjoining seas.

By the silting up of such lakes with sediment, and the gradual
evaporation of their waters under favourable conditions, such as
increased heat and diminished rainfall--where the lakes might cease to
have an outflow into the sea and the loss of water by evaporation would
exceed the amount flowing into them--the salt or salts contained in
solution would, by degrees, become concentrated and finally
precipitated. In this way the great deposits of rock-salt and gypsum,
common in the Keuper formation, may be accounted for.

Subsequently, by increase of rainfall or decrease of heat, and sinking
of the district, the waters became comparatively less salt again; and a
recurrence of such conditions lasted until the close of the Keuper
period, when a partial influx of the sea took place, and the Rhætic beds
of England were deposited.

The red colour of the New Red Sandstones and marls is caused by peroxide
of iron, which may also have been carried into the lakes in solution, as
a carbonate, and afterwards converted into peroxide by contact with air,
and precipitated as a thin pellicle upon the sedimentary grains of sandy
mud, of which the Triassic beds more or less consist. Professor Ramsay
further considers that all the red- strata of England, including
the Permian, Old Red Sandstone, and even the Old Cambrian formation,
were deposited in lakes or inland waters.[55]

  [55] A. C. Ramsay, _Quart. Jour. Geol. Soc._, vol. 27, p. 191.

       *       *       *       *       *

There is little to be said of the animals which belong to the Saliferous
period. They are nearly the same as those of the Muschelkalk, &c.

Among the most abundant of the shells belonging to the upper Trias, in
all the countries where it has been examined, are the _Avicula,
Cardium_, and _Pecten_, one of which is given in Fig. 85. Foraminifera
are numerous in the Keuper marls. The remains of land-plants, and the
peculiarities of some of the reptiles of the Keuper period, tend to
confirm the opinion of Professor Ramsay, that the strata were deposited
in inland salt-lakes.

In the Keuper period the islands and continents presented few
mountains; they were intersected here and there by large lakes, with
flat and uniform banks. The vegetation on their shores was very
abundant, and we possess its remains in great numbers. The Keuper Flora
was very analogous to those of the Lias and Oolite, and consisted of
Ferns, Equisetaceæ, Cycads, Conifers, and a few plants, which M. Ad.
Brongniart classes among the dubious monocotyledons. Among the Ferns may
be quoted many species of _Sphenopteris_ or _Pecopteris_. Among them,
_Pecopteris Stuttgartiensis_, a tree with channelled trunk, which rises
to a considerable height without throwing out branches, and terminates
in a crown of leaves finely cut and with long petioles; the _Equisetites
columnaris_, a great Equisetum analogous to the horse-tails of our age,
but of infinitely larger dimensions, its long fluted trunk, surmounted
by an elongated fructification, towering over all the other trees of the
marshy soil.

[Illustration: Fig. 85.--Pecten orbicularis.]

The _Pterophyllum Jägeri_ and _P. Münsteri_ represented the Cycads, the
_Taxodites Münsterianus_ represented the Conifers, and, finally, the
trunk of the Calamites was covered with a creeping plant, having
elliptical leaves, with a re-curving nervature borne upon its long
petioles, and the fruit disposed in bunches; this is the _Preissleria
antiqua_, a doubtful monocotyledon, according to Brongniart, but M.
Unger places it in the family of _Smilax_, of which it will thus be the
earliest representative. The same botanist classes with the canes a
marsh-plant very common in this period, the _Palæoxyris Münsteri_, which
Brongniart classes with the _Preissleria_ among his doubtful
Monocotyledons.

The vegetation of the latter part of the Triassic period is thus
characterised by Lecoq, in his “Botanical Geography”: “The cellular
_Cryptogameæ_ predominate in this as they do in the Carboniferous epoch,
but the species have changed, and many of the genera also are different;
the _Cladephlebis_, the _Sphenopteris_, the _Coniopteris_, and
_Pecopteris_ predominate over the others in the number of species. The
Equisetaceæ are more developed than in any other formation. One of the
finest species, the _Calamites arenaceus_ of Brongniart, must have
formed great forests. The fluted trunks resemble immense columns,
terminating at the summit in leafy branches, disposed in graceful
verticillated tufts, foreshadowing the elegant forms of _Equisetum
sylvaticum_. Growing alongside of these were a curious Equisetum and
singular Equisetites, a species of which last, _E. columnaris_, raised
its herbaceous stem, with its sterile articulations, to a great height.

“What a singular aspect these ancient rocks would present, if we add to
them the forest-trees _Pterophyllum_ and the _Zamites_ of the fine
family of Cycadeaceæ, and the Conifers, which seem to have made their
appearance in the humid soil at the same time!

“It is during this epoch, while yet under the reign of the
dicotyledonous angiosperms, that we discover the first true
monocotyledons. The _Preissleria antiqua_, with its long petals,
drooping and creeping round the old trunks, its bunches of
bright- berries like the _Smilax_ of our own age, to which
family it appears to have belonged. Besides, the Triassic marshes gave
birth to tufts of _Palæoxyris Münsteri_, a cane-like species of the
Gramineæ, which, in all probability, cheered the otherwise gloomy shore.

“During this long period the earth preserved its primitive vegetation;
new forms are slowly introduced, and they multiply slowly. But if our
present types of vegetation are deficient in these distant epochs, we
ought to recognise also that the plants which in our days represent the
vegetation of the primitive world are often shorn of their grandeur. Our
Equisetaceæ and Lycopodiaceæ are but poor representatives of the
Lepidodendrons; the Calamites and Asterophyllites had already run their
race before the epoch of which we write.”

The principal features of Triassic vegetation are represented in PLATE
XIV., page 198. On the cliff, on the left of the ideal landscape, the
graceful stems and lofty trees are groups of _Calamites arenaceus_;
below are the great “horse-tails” of the epoch, _Equisetum columnare_, a
slender tapering species, of soft and pulpy consistence, which, rising
erect, would give a peculiar physiognomy to the solitary shore.

The Keuper formation presents itself in Europe at many points, and it
is not difficult to trace its course. In France it appears in the
department of the Indre, of the Cher, of the Allier, of the Nièvre, of
the Saône-et-Loire; upon the western <DW72>s of the Jura its outliers
crop out near Poligny and Salins, upon the western <DW72>s of the Vosges;
in the Doubs it shows itself; then it skirts the Muschelkalk area in the
Haute-Marne; in the Vosges it assumes large proportions in the Meurthe
at Luneville and Dieuze; in the Moselle it extends northward to
Bouzonville; and on the Rhine to the east of Luxembourg as far as
Dockendorf. Some traces of it show themselves upon the eastern <DW72>s of
the Vosges, on the lower Rhine.

It appears again in Switzerland and in Germany, in the canton of Basle,
in Argovia, in the Grand Duchy of Würtemberg, in the Tyrol, and in
Austria, where it gives its name to the city of Salzburg.

In the British Islands the Keuper formation commences in the eastern
parts of Devonshire, and a band, more or less regular, extends into
Somersetshire, through Gloucestershire, Worcestershire, Warwick,
Leicestershire, Nottinghamshire, to the banks of the Tees, in Yorkshire,
with a bed, independent of all the others in Cheshire, which extends
into Lancashire. “At Nantwich, in the upper Trias of Cheshire,” Sir
Charles Lyell states, “two beds of salt, in great part unmixed with
earthy matter, attain the thickness of 90 or 100 feet. The upper surface
of the highest bed is very uneven, forming cones and irregular figures.
Between the two masses there intervenes a bed of indurated clay
traversed by veins of salt. The highest bed thins off towards the
south-west, losing fifteen feet of its thickness in the course of a
mile, according to Mr. Ormerod. The horizontal extent of these beds is
not exactly known, but the area containing saliferous clay and
sandstones is supposed to exceed 150 miles in diameter, while the total
thickness of the Trias in the same region is estimated by Mr. Ormerod at
1,700 feet. Ripple-marked sandstones and the footprints of animals are
observed at so many levels, that we may safely assume the whole area to
have undergone a slow and gradual depression during the formation of the
New Red Sandstone.”

Not to mention the importance of salt as a source of health, it is in
Great Britain, and, indeed, all over the world where the saliferous
rocks exist, a most important branch of industry. The quantity of the
mineral produced in England, from all sources, is between 5,000 and
6,000 tons annually, and the population engaged in producing the
mineral, from sources supposed to be inexhaustible, is upwards of
12,000.

The lower Keuper sandstones, which lie at the base of the series of red
marls, frequently give rise to springs, and are in consequence called
“water-stones,” in Lancashire and Cheshire.

[Illustration: Fig. 86.--Productus Martini.]

[Illustration: Fig. 87.--Patella vulgata.

(Living.)]

If the Keuper formation is poor in organic remains in France, it is by
no means so on the other side of the Alps. In the Tyrol, and in the
remarkable beds of Saint Cassian, Aussec, and Hallstadt, the rocks are
made up of an immense number of marine fossils, among them Cephalopods,
Ceratites, and Ammonites of peculiar form. The Orthoceras, which we have
seen abounding in the Silurian period, and continued during the deposit
of the Devonian and Carboniferous periods, appears here for the last
time. We still find here a great number of Gasteropods and of
Lamellibranchs of the most varied form. Sea Urchins--corals of elegant
form--appear to have occupied, on the other side of the Alps, the same
seas which in France and Germany seem to have been nearly destitute of
animals. Some beds are literally formed of accumulated shells belonging
to the genus _Avicula_; but these last-mentioned deposits are to be
considered as more properly belonging to the Rhætic or Penarth strata,
into which the New Red or Keuper Marl gradually passes upwards, and
which are more fully described at page 207.

In following the grand mountainous <DW72>s of the Alps and Carpathians we
discover the saliferous rocks by this remarkable accumulation of
Aviculæ. The same facies presents itself under identical conditions in
Syria, in India, in New Caledonia, in New Zealand, and in Australia. It
is not the least curious part of this period, that it presents, on one
side of the site of the Alps, which were not yet raised, an immense
accumulation of sediment, charged with gypsum, rock-salt, &c., without
organic remains; while beyond, a region presents itself equally
remarkable for the extraordinary accumulation of the remains of marine
Mollusca. Among these were _Myophoria lineata_, which is often
confounded with Trigonia, and _Stellispongia variabilis_.

France at this period was still the skeleton of what it has since
become. A map of that country represents the metamorphic rocks occupying
the site of the Alps, the Cévennes, and the Puy-de-Dôme, the country
round Nantes, and the Islands of Brittany. The Primary rocks reach the
foot of the Pyrenees, the Cotentin, the Vosges, and the Eifel Mountains.
Some bands of coal stretch away from Valenciennes to the Rhine, and on
the north of the Vosges, these mountains themselves being chiefly
composed of Triassic rocks.


RHÆTIC, OR PENARTH SUB-PERIOD.

The attention of geologists has been directed within the last few years,
more especially, to a series of deposits which intervene between the New
Red Marl of the Trias, and the blue argillaceous limestones and shales
of the Lower Lias. The first-mentioned beds, although they attain no
great thickness in this country, nevertheless form a well-defined and
persistent zone of strata between the unfossiliferous Triassic marls and
the lower Liassic limestone with _Ostrea Liassica_ and _Ammonites
planorbis_, _A. angulatus_ and _A. Bucklandi_; being everywhere
characterised by the presence of the same groups of organic remains, and
the same general lithological character of the beds. These last may be
described as consisting of three sub-divisions, the lowermost composed
of alternations of marls, clays, and marly limestones in the lower part,
forming a gradual passage downwards into the New Red Marls upon which
they repose. 2. A middle group of black, thinly laminated or paper-like
shales, with thin layers of indurated limestone, and crowded in places
with _Pecten Valoniensis_, _Cardium Rhæticum_, _Avicula contorta_, and
other characteristic shells, as well as by the presence, nearly always,
of a remarkable bed, which is commonly known as the “Bone-bed.” This
thin band of stone, which is so well known at Aust, Axmouth,
Westbury-on-Severn, and elsewhere, is a brecciated or conglomerated band
of variable thickness which, sometimes a sandstone and sometimes a
limestone, is always more or less composed of the teeth, scales, and
bones of numerous genera of Fishes and Saurians, together with their
fossilised excrement, which will be more fully and subsequently
described under the name of Coprolites, under the Liassic period.

The molar tooth of a small predaceous fossil mammal of the Microlestes
family (μικρος, _little_; ληστης, _beast_), whose nearest living
representative appears to be some of the Hypsiprymnidæ or Kangaroo Rats,
has been found by Mr. Dawkins in some grey marls underlying the bone-bed
on the sea-shore at Watchett, in Somersetshire; affording the earliest
known trace of a fossil mammal in the Secondary rocks. Several small
teeth belonging to the genus Microlestes have also been discovered by
Mr. Charles Moore in a breccia of Rhætic age, filling a fissure
traversing Carboniferous Limestone near Frome; and in addition to the
discovery of the remains of Microlestes, those of a mammal more closely
allied to the Marsupials than any other order, have been met with at
Diegerloch, south-east of Stuttgart, in a remarkable bone-breccia, which
also yielded coprolites and numerous traces of fishes and reptiles.

The uppermost sub-division includes certain beds of white and
cream- limestone, resembling in appearance the smooth fracture
and closeness of texture of the lithographic limestone of Solenhofen,
and which, known to geologists and quarrymen under the name “white
lias,” given to it by Dr. William Smith, was formerly always considered
to belong to, and was included in, the Lias proper. The most remarkable
bed in this zone is one of only a few inches in thickness, but it has
long been known to collectors, and sought after under the name of Cotham
Marble or Landscape Stone, the latter name having reference to the
curious dendritic markings which make their appearance on breaking the
stone at right angles to its bedding, bearing a singular resemblance to
a landscape with trees, water, &c.; while the first name is that derived
from its occurrence abundantly at Cotham, in the suburbs of Bristol,
where the stone was originally found and noticed.

This band of stone is interesting in another respect, because it
sometimes shows by its uneven, eroded, and water-worn upper surface,
that an interval took place soon after it had been deposited, when the
newly-formed stone became partially dissolved, eroded, or worn away by
water, before the stratum next in succession was deposited upon it. The
same phenomenon is displayed, in a more marked degree, in the uppermost
limestone or “white lias” bed of the series, which not only shows an
eroded surface, but the holes made by boring Molluscs, exactly as is
produced at the present day by the same class of animals, which excavate
holes in the rocks between high and low-water marks, to serve for their
dwelling-places, and as a protection from the waves to their somewhat
delicate shells.

The “White Lias” of Smith is the equivalent of the Koessen beds which
immediately underlie the Lower Lias of the Swabian Jura, and have been
traced for a hundred miles, from Geneva to the environs of Vienna; and,
also, of the Upper St. Cassian beds, which are so called from their
occurrence at St. Cassian in the Austrian Alps.

The general character of the series of strata just described, is that
of a deposit formed in tolerably shallow water. In the Alps of Lombardy
and the Tyrol, in Luxembourg, in France, and, in fact, throughout nearly
the whole of Europe, they form a sort of fringe in the margin of the
Triassic sea; and, although of comparatively inconsiderable thickness in
England, they become highly developed in Lombardy, &c., to an enormous
thickness, and constitute the great mass of the Rhætian Alps and a
considerable part of the well-known beds of St. Cassian, and Hallstadt
in the Austrian Alps. (See page 205.)

The Rhætic beds of Europe were, as a whole, formed under very different
conditions in different areas. The thickness of the strata and the large
and well-developed fauna (chiefly Mollusca) indicate that the Rhætic
strata of Lombardy, and other parts of the south and east of Europe,
were deposited in a broad open ocean. On the other hand, the
comparatively thin beds of this age in England and north-western Europe,
the fauna of which, besides being poor in genera and species, consists
of small and dwarfed forms, point to the conclusion that they were in
great part deposited in shallow seas and in estuaries, or in lagoons, or
in occasional salt lakes, under conditions which lasted for a long
period.[56]

  [56] See A. C. Ramsay, “On the Physical Relations of the New Red Marl,
       Rhætic Beds, and Lower Lias,” _Quart. Jour. Geol. Soc._, vol. 27,
       p. 189.

In consequence of the importance they assume in Lombardy (the ancient
Rhætia), the name “Rhætic Beds” has been given to these strata by Mr.
Charles Moore; Dr. Thomas Wright has proposed the designation “Avicula
Contorta Zone,” from the plentiful occurrence of that shell in the black
shales forming the well-marked middle zone, and which is everywhere
present where this group of beds is found; Jules Martin and others have
proposed the term “Infra-lias,” or “Infra-liassic strata;” while the
name “Penarth Beds” has been assigned to these deposits in this country
by Mr. H. W. Bristow, at the suggestion of Sir Roderick Murchison, in
consequence of their conspicuous appearance and well-exposed sections in
the bold headlands and cliffs of that locality, in the British Channel,
west of Cardiff.

A fuller description of these beds will be found in the Reports of the
Bath Meeting of the British Association (1864), by Mr. Bristow; also in
communications to the _Geological Magazine_, for 1864, by MM. Bristow
and Dawkins;[57] in papers read before the Geological Society by Dr.
Thomas Wright,[58] Mr. Charles Moore,[59] and Mr. Ralph Tate,[60] as
printed in their _Quarterly Journal_; and by Mr. Etheridge, in the
Transactions of the Cotteswold Natural History Club for 1865-66. The
limits of the Penarth Beds have also been lately accurately laid down by
Mr. Bristow in the map of the Geological Survey over the district
comprised between Bath, Bristol, and the Severn; and elaborately
detailed typical sections of most of the localities in England, where
these beds occur, have been constructed by MM. Bristow, Etheridge, and
Woodward, of the Geological Survey of Great Britain, which, when
published, will greatly add to our knowledge of this remarkable and
interesting series of deposits.

  [57] _Quart. Jour. Geol. Soc._, vol. xx., p. 396.

  [58] Ibid, vol. xvii., p. 483.

  [59] Ibid, vol. xvi., p. 374.

  [60] Ibid, vol. xx., p. 103.


JURASSIC PERIOD.

This period, one of the most important in the physical history of the
globe, has received its name from the Jura mountains in France, the Jura
range being composed of the rocks deposited in the seas of the period.
In the term Jurassic, the formations designated as the “Oolite” and
“Lias” are included, both being found in the Jura mountains. The
Jurassic period presents a very striking assemblage of characteristics,
both in its vegetation and in the animal remains which belong to it;
many genera of animals existing in the preceding age have disappeared,
new genera have replaced them, comprising a very specially organised
group, containing not less than 4,000 species.

The Jurassic period is sub-divided into two sub-periods: those of the
_Lias_ and the _Oolite_.


THE LIAS

is an English provincial name given to an argillaceous limestone, which,
with marl and clay, forms the base of the Jurassic formation, and passes
almost imperceptibly into the Lower Oolite in some places, where the
Marlstone of the Lias partakes of the mineral character, as well as the
fossil remains of the Lower Oolite; and it is sometimes treated of as
belonging to that formation. “Nevertheless, the Lias may be traced
throughout a great part of Europe as a separate and independent group,
of considerable thickness, varying from 500 to 1,000 feet, containing
many peculiar fossils, and having a very uniform lithological
aspect.”[61] The rocks which represent the Liassic period form the base
of the Jurassic system, and have a mean thickness of about 1,200 feet.
In the inferior part we find argillaceous sandstones, which are called
the sandstones of the Lias, and comprehend the greater part of the
_Quadersandstein_, or building-stone of the Germans, above which comes
compact limestone, argillaceous, bluish, and yellowish; finally, the
formation terminates in the marlstones which are sometimes sandy, and
occasionally bituminous.

  [61] Lyell, “Elements of Geology,” p. 413.

The Lias, in England, is generally in three groups: 1, the upper, clays
and shales, underlying sands; 2, the middle, lias or marlstone; and 3,
the lower, clays and limestone; but these have been again
sub-divided--the last into six zones, each marked by its own peculiar
species of Ammonites; the second into three zones; the third consists of
clay, shale, and argillaceous limestone. For the purposes of description
we shall, therefore, divide the Lias into these three groups:--

1. _Upper Lias Clay_, consists of blue clay, or shale, containing
nodular bands of claystones at the base, crowded with _Ammonites
serpentinus_, _A. bifrons_, _Belemnites_, &c.

2. The _Middle Lias_, commonly known as the Marlstone, is surmounted by
a bed of oolitic ironstone, largely worked in Leicestershire and in the
north of England as a valuable ore of iron. The underlying marls and
sands, the latter of which become somewhat argillaceous below, form beds
from 200 to 300 feet thick in Dorsetshire and Gloucestershire; the
fossils are _Ammonites margaritaceus_, _A. spinatus_, _Belemnites
tripartitus_. The upper rock-beds, especially the bed of ironstone on
the top, is generally remarkably rich in fossils.

[Illustration: Fig. 88.--Gryphæa incurva.]

3. _Lower Lias_ (averaging from 600 to 900 feet in thickness) consists,
in the lower part, of thin layers of bluish argillaceous limestone,
alternating with shales and clays; the whole overlaid by the blue clay
of which the lower member of the Liassic group usually consists. This
member of the series is well developed in Yorkshire, at Lyme Regis and
Charmouth in Dorsetshire, and generally over the South-West and Midland
Counties of England. _Gryphæa incurva_ (Fig. 88), with sandy bands,
occurs at the base, in addition to which we find _Ammonites planorbis
Bucklandi_, _A. Ostrea liassica_, _Lima gigantea_, _Ammonites
Bucklandi_, &c., in the lower limestones and shales.

Above the clay are yellow sands from 100 to 200 feet thick, underlying
the limestone of the Inferior Oolite. These sands were, until lately,
considered to belong to the latter formation--as they undoubtedly do
physically--until they were shown, by Dr. Thomas Wright, of Cheltenham,
to be more nearly allied, by their fossils, to the Lias below than to
the Inferior Oolite above, into which they form the passage-beds.

In France the Lias abounds in the Calvados, in Burgundy, Lorraine,
Normandy, and the Lyonnais. In the Vosges and Luxembourg, M. Elie de
Beaumont states that the Lias containing _Gryphæa incurva_ and _Lima
gigantea_, and some other marine fossils, becomes arenaceous; and around
the Harz mountains, in Westphalia and Bavaria, in its lower parts the
formation is sandy, and is sometimes a good building-stone.

“In England the Lias constitutes,” says Professor Ramsay, “a
well-defined belt of strata, running continuously from Lyme Regis, on
the south-west, through the whole of England, to Yorkshire on the
north-east, and is an extensive series of alternating beds of clay,
shale, and limestone, with occasional layers of jet in the upper part.
The unequal hardness of the clays and limestones of the Liassic strata
causes some of its members to stand out in the distinct minor
escarpments, often facing the west and north-west. The Marlstone forms
the most prominent of these, and overlooks the broad meadows of the
lower Lias-clay, that form much of the centre of England.” In Scotland
there are few traces of the Lias. Zoophytes, Mollusca, and Fishes of a
peculiar organisation, but, above all, Reptiles of extraordinary size
and structure gave to the sea of the Liassic period an interest and
features quite peculiar. Well might Cuvier exclaim, when the drawings of
the Plesiosaurus were sent to him: “Truly this is altogether the most
monstrous animal that has yet been dug out of the ruins of a former
world!” In the whole of the English Lias there are about 243 genera, and
467 species of fossils. The whole series has been divided into zones
characterised by particular Ammonites, which are found to be limited to
them, at least locally.

Among the Echinodermata belonging to the Lias we may cite _Asterias
lumbricalis_ and _Palæocoma Furstembergii_, which constitutes a genus
not dissimilar to the star-fishes, of which its radiated form reminds
us. The Pentacrinites, of which _Pentacrinites Briareus_ is a type,
ornaments many collections by its elegant form, and is represented in
Figs. 79 and 89. It belongs to the order of Crinoidea, which is
represented at the present time by a single living species, _Pentacrinus
caput-Medusæ_, one of the rare and delicate Zoophytes of the Caribbean
sea.

Oysters (_Ostrea_) made their appearance in the Muschelkalk of the last
period, but only in a small number of species; they increased greatly in
importance in the Liassic seas.

[Illustration: Fig. 89.--Pentacrinites Briareus. Half natural size.]

The _Ammonites_, a curious genus of Cephalopoda, which made their first
appearance in small numbers towards the close of the preceding Triassic
period, become quite special in the Secondary epoch, with the close of
which they disappear altogether. They were very abundant in the Jurassic
period, and, as we have already said, each zone is characterised by its
peculiar species. The name is taken from the resemblance of the shell to
the ram’s-horn ornaments which decorated the front of the temple of
Jupiter Ammon and the bas-reliefs and statues of that pagan deity. They
were Cephalopodous Mollusca with circular shells, rolled upon themselves
symmetrically in the same plane, and divided into a series of chambers.
The animal only occupied the outer chamber of the shell; all the others
were empty. A siphon or tube issuing from the first chamber traversed
all the others in succession, as is seen in all the Ammonites and
Nautili. This tube enabled the animal to rise to the surface, or to sink
to the bottom, for the Ammonite could fill the chambers with water at
pleasure, or empty them, thus rendering itself lighter or heavier as
occasion required. The Nautilus of our seas is provided with the same
curious organisation, and reminds us forcibly of the Ammonites of
geological times.

Shells are the only traces which remain of the Ammonites. We have no
exact knowledge of the animal which occupied and built them. The attempt
at restoration, as exhibited in Fig. 91, will probably convey a fair
idea of the Ammonite when living. We assume that it resembled the
Nautilus of modern times. What a curious aspect these early seas must
have presented, covered by myriads of these Molluscs of all sizes,
swimming about in eager pursuit of their prey!

The Ammonites of the Jurassic age present themselves in a great variety
of forms and sizes; some of them of great beauty. _Ammonites bifrons_,
_A. Noditianus_, _A. bisulcatus_, _A. Turneri_ (Fig. 90), and _A.
margaritatus_, are forms characteristic of the Lias.

[Illustration: Fig. 90.--Ammonites Turneri, from the Lower Lias.]

The _Belemnites_, molluscous Cephalopods of a very curious organisation,
appeared in great numbers, and for the first time, in the Jurassic seas.
Of this Mollusc we only possess the fossilised internal “bone,”
analogous to that of the modern cuttle-fish and the calamary of the
present seas. This simple relic is very far from giving us an exact idea
of what the animal was to which the name of Belemnite has been given
(from Βελεμνον, _a dart_) from their supposed resemblance to the head of
a javelin. The slender cylindrical bone, the only vestige remaining to
us, was merely the internal skeleton of the animal. When first
discovered they were called, by the vulgar, “Thunder-stones” and
“Ladies’ fingers.” They were, at last, inferred to be the shelly
processes of some sort of ancient cuttle-fish. Unlike the Ammonite,
which floated on the surface and sunk to the bottom at pleasure, the
Belemnite, it has been thought, swam nearer the bottom of the sea, and
seized its prey from below.

[Illustration: Fig. 91.--Ammonite restored.]

[Illustration: Fig. 92.--Belemnite restored.]

In Fig. 92 is given a restoration of the living Belemnite, by Dr.
Buckland and Professor Owen, in which the terminal part of the animal is
marked in a slightly darker tint, to indicate the place of the bone
which alone represents in our days this fossilised being. A sufficiently
exact idea of this Mollusc may be arrived at from the existing
cuttle-fish. Like the cuttle-fish, the Belemnite secreted a black
liquid, a sort of ink or sepia; and the bag containing the ink has
frequently been found in a fossilised state, with the ink dried up, and
elaborate drawings have been made with this fossil pigment.

The beaks, or horny mandibles of the mouth, which the Belemnite
possessed in common with the other naked Cephalopoda, are represented in
Fig. 78, p. 181.

As Sir H. De la Beche has pointed out, the destruction of the animals
whose remains are known to us by the name of Belemnites was exceedingly
great when the upper part of the Lias of Lyme Regis was deposited.
Multitudes seem to have perished almost simultaneously, and millions are
entombed in a bed beneath Golden Cap, a lofty cliff between Lyme Regis
and Bridport Harbour, as well as in the upper Lias generally.[62]

  [62] De la Beche’s “Geological Manual,” 3rd ed., p. 447.

Among the Belemnites characteristic of the Liassic period may be cited
_B. acutus_ (Fig. 93), _B. pistiliformis_, and _B. sulcatus_.

[Illustration: Fig. 93.--Belemnites acutus.]

The seas of the period contained a great number of the fishes called
_Ganoids_; which are so called from the splendour of the hard and
enamelled scales, which formed a sort of defensive armour to protect
their bodies. _Lepidotus gigas_ was a fish of great size belonging to
this age. A smaller fish was the _Tetragonolepis_, or _Æchmodus Buchii_.
The _Acrodus nobilis_, of which the teeth are still preserved, and
popularly known by the name of _fossil leeches_, was a fish of which an
entire skeleton has never been met with. Neither are we better informed
as to the _Hybodus reticulatus_. The bony spines, which form the
anterior part of the dorsal fin of this fish, had long been an object of
curiosity to geologists, under the general name of _Ichthyodorulites_,
before they were known to be fragments of the fin of the _Hybodus_. The
Ichthyodorulites were supposed by some naturalists to be the jaw of some
animal--by others, weapons like those of the living _Balistes_ or
_Silurus_; but Agassiz has shown them to be neither the one nor the
other, but bony spines on the fin, like those of the living genera of
_Cestracions_ and _Chimæras_, in both of which the concave face is armed
with small spines like those of the _Hybodus_. The spines were simply
imbedded in the flesh, and attached to it by strong muscles. “They
served,” says Dr. Buckland, “as in the _Chimæra_, to raise and depress
the fin, their action resembling that of a movable mast lowering
backward.”

[Illustration: Fig. 94.--Ichthyosaurus communis.]

Let us hasten to say, however, that these are not the beings that
characterised the age, and were the salient features of the generation
of animals which existed during the Jurassic period. These
distinguishing features are found in the enormous reptiles with lizard’s
head, crocodile’s conical teeth, the trunk and tail of a quadruped,
whale-like paddles, and the double-concave vertebræ of fishes; and this
strange form, on such a gigantic scale that even their inanimate remains
are examined with a curiosity not unmixed with awe. The country round
Lyme Regis, in Dorsetshire, has long been celebrated for the curious
fossils discovered in its quarries, and preserved in the muddy
accumulations of the sea of the Liassic period. The country is
hilly--“up one hill and down another,” is a pretty correct provincial
description of the walk from Bridport to Lyme Regis--where some of the
most frightful creatures the living world has probably ever beheld,
sleep the sleep of stones. The quarries of Lyme Regis form the cemetery
of the Ichthyosauri; the sepulchre where lie interred these dragons of
the ancient seas.

In 1811 a country girl, who made her precarious living by picking up
fossils for which the neighbourhood was famous, was pursuing her
avocation, hammer in hand, when she perceived some bones projecting a
little out of the cliff. Finding, on examination, that it was part of a
large skeleton, she cleared away the rubbish, and laid bare the whole
creature imbedded in the block of stone. She hired workmen to dig out
the block of Lias in which it was buried. In this manner was the first
of these monsters brought to light: “a monster some thirty feet long,
with jaws nearly a fathom in length, and huge saucer-eyes; which have
since been found so perfect, that the petrified lenses have been split
off and used as magnifiers,” as a writer in _All the Year Round_ assures
us.

[Illustration: Fig. 95.--Head of Ichthyosaurus platydon.]

In Fig. 95 the head of _I. platydon_ is represented. As in the Saurians,
the openings of the nostrils are situated near the anterior angle of the
orbits of the eyes, while those of the Crocodile are near the snout;
but, on the other hand, in its osteology and its mode of dentition it
nearly resembles the Crocodile; the teeth are pointed and conical--not,
however, set in deep or separate sockets, but only implanted in a long
and deep continuous groove hollowed in the bones of the jaw. These
strong jaws have an enormous opening; for, in some instances, they have
been found eight feet in length and armed with 160 teeth. Let us add
that teeth lost through the voracity of the animal, or in contests with
other animals, could be renewed many times; for, at the inner side of
the base of every old tooth, there is always the bony germ of a new one.

The eyes of this marine monster were much larger than those of any
animal now living; in volume they frequently exceed the human head, and
their structure was one of their most remarkable peculiarities. In front
of the sclerotic coat or capsule of the eye there is an annular series
of thin bony plates, surrounding the pupil. This structure, which is now
only met with in the eyes of certain turtles, tortoises, and lizards,
and in those of many birds, could be used so as to increase or diminish
the curvature of the transparent cornea, and thus increase or diminish
the magnifying power, according to the requirements of the
animal--performing the office, in short, of a telescope or microscope at
pleasure. The eyes of the Ichthyosaurus were, then, an optical apparatus
of wonderful power and of singular perfection, enabling the animal, by
their power of adaptation and intensity of vision, to see its prey far
and near, and to pursue it in the darkness and in the depths of the sea.
The curious arrangement of bony plates we have described furnished,
besides, to its globular eye, the power necessary to bear the pressure
of a considerable weight of water, as well as the violence of the waves,
when the animal came to the surface to breathe, and raised its head
above the waves. This magnificent specimen of the fish-lizard, or
Ichthyosaurus, as it was named by Dr. Ure, now forms part of the
treasures of the British Museum.

At no period in the earth’s history have Reptiles occupied so important
a place as they did in the Jurassic period. Nature seems to have wished
to bring this class of animals to the highest state of development. The
great Reptiles of the Lias are as complicated in their structure as the
Mammals which appeared at a later period. They probably lived, for the
most part, by fishing in shallow creeks and bays defended from heavy
breakers, or in the open sea; but they seem to have sought the shore
from time to time; they crawled along the beach, covered with a soft
skin, perhaps not unlike some of our Cetaceæ. The Ichthyosaurus, from
its form and strength, may have braved the waves of the sea as the
porpoise does now. Its destructiveness and voracity must have been
prodigious, for Dr. Buckland describes a specimen which had between its
ribs, in the place where the stomach might be supposed to have been
placed, the skeleton of a smaller one--a proof that this monster, not
content with preying on its weaker neighbours, was in the habit of
devouring its own kind. In the same waters lived the Plesiosaurus, with
long neck and form more strange than that of the Ichthyosaurus; and
these potentates of the seas were warmed by the same sun and tenanted
the same banks, in the midst of a vegetation not unlike that which the
climate of Africa now produces.

The great Saurians in the Lias of Lyme Regis seem to have suffered a
somewhat sudden death, partly in consequence of a series of small
catastrophes suddenly destroying the animals then existing in particular
spots. “In general the bones are not scattered about, and in a detached
state, as would happen if the dead animal had descended to the bottom of
the sea, to be decomposed, or devoured piecemeal, as, indeed, might also
happen if the creature floated for a time on the surface, one animal
devouring one part, and another carrying off a different portion; on the
contrary, the bones of the skeleton, though frequently compressed, as
must arise from the enormous pressure to which they have so long been
subjected, are tolerably connected, frequently in perfect, or nearly
perfect, order, as if prepared by the anatomist. The skin, moreover, may
sometimes be traced, and the compressed contents of the intestines may
at times be also observed--all tending to show that the animals were
suddenly destroyed, and as suddenly preserved.”[63]

  [63] “Geological Manual,” by H. T. De la Beche, 3rd ed., p. 346.

These strange and gigantic Saurians seem almost to disappear during the
succeeding geological periods; for, although they have been discovered
as low down as the Trias in Germany, and as high up as the Chalk in
England, they only appear as stragglers in these epochs; so, too, the
Reptiles, the existing Saurians are, as it were, only the shadowy,
feeble representatives of these powerful races of the ancient world.

Confining ourselves to well-established facts, we shall consider in some
detail the best known of these fossil reptiles--the _Ichthyosaurus_,
_Plesiosaurus_, and _Pterodactyle_.

The extraordinary creature which bears the name of _Ichthyosaurus_ (from
the Greek words Ιχθυς σαυρος, signifying fish-lizard), presents certain
dispositions and organic arrangements which are met with dispersed in
certain classes of animals now living, but they never seem to be again
reunited in any single individual. It possesses, as Cuvier says, the
snout of a dolphin, the head of a lizard, the jaws and teeth of a
crocodile, the vertebræ of a fish, the head and sternum of a lizard, the
paddles like those of a whale, and the trunk and tail of a quadruped.

Bayle appears to have furnished the best idea of the Ichthyosaurus by
describing it as the Whale of the Saurians--the Cetacean of the
primitive seas. It was, in fact, an animal exclusively marine; which, on
shore, would rest motionless like an inert mass. Its whale-like paddles,
and fish-like vertebræ, the length of the tail and other parts of its
structure, prove that its habits were aquatic; as the remains of fishes
and reptiles, and the form of its teeth, show that it was carnivorous.
Like the Whale, also, the Ichthyosaurus breathed atmospheric air; so
that it was under the necessity of coming frequently to the surface of
the water, like that inhabitant of the deep. We can even believe, with
Bayle, that it was provided, like the Whale, with vents or blowers,
through which it ejected, in columns into the air, the water it had
swallowed.

The dimensions of the Ichthyosaurus varied with the species, of which
five are known and described. These are _Ichthyosaurus communis_, _I.
platydon_, _I. intermedius_, _I. tenuirostris_, and _I. Cuvierii_, the
largest being more than thirty feet in length.

[Illustration: Fig. 96.--Ichthyosaurus platydon.]

[Illustration: Fig. 97.--Lower jaw of Ichthyosaurus. (Dr. Buckland.)]

[Illustration: Fig. 98.--Skeleton of Ichthyosaurus.

Containing teeth and bones of Fishes in a coprolitic form. One-fifteenth
natural size.]

The short, thick neck of the Ichthyosaurus supported a capacious head,
and was continued backwards, from behind the eyes, in a column composed
of more than a hundred vertebræ. The animal being adapted, like the
whale, for rapid movement through the water, its vertebræ had none of
the invariable solidity of those of the Lizard or Crocodile, but rather
the structure and lightness of those of Fishes. The section of these
vertebræ presents two hollow cones, connected only by their summits to
the centre of the vertebræ, which would permit of the utmost flexibility
of movement. The ribs extended along the entire length of the vertebral
column, from the head to the pelvis. The bones of the sternum, or that
part of the frame which supported the paddles, present the same
combinations with those of the sternum in the Ornithorhynchus, or
Duck-billed Platypus, of New Holland, an animal which presents the
singular combination of a mammalian furred quadruped having the bill of
a duck and webbed feet; which dived to the bottom of the water in search
of its food, and returned to the surface to breathe the air. In this
phenomenon of living Nature the Creator seems to have repeated, in our
days, the organic arrangements which he had originally provided for the
Ichthyosaurus.

In order that the animal should be able to move with rapidity in the
water, both its anterior and posterior members were converted into fins
or paddles. The anterior fins were half as large again as the posterior.
In some species each paddle was made up of nearly a hundred bones, of
polygonal form, and disposed in series representing the phalanges of the
fingers. This hand, jointed at the arm, bears resemblance, in
osteological construction, to the paddles, without distinct fingers, of
the Porpoise and the Whale. A specimen of the posterior fin of _I.
communis_, discovered at Barrow-on-Soar, in Leicestershire, in 1840, by
Sir Philip Egerton, exhibited on its posterior margin the remains of
cartilaginous rays, which bifurcated as they approached the edge, like
those in the fins of a fish. “It had previously been supposed,” says
Professor Owen, “that the locomotive organs were enveloped, while
living, in a smooth integument, like that of the turtle and porpoise,
which has no other support than is afforded by the bones and ligaments
within; but it now appears that the fin was much larger, expanding far
beyond the osseous frame-work, and deviating widely in its fish-like
rays from the ordinary reptilian type.” The Professor believes that,
besides the fore-paddles, these stiff-necked Saurians were furnished at
the end of the tail with a fin to assist them in turning, not placed
horizontally, as in the whale, but vertically, forming a powerful
instrument of progression and motion. It is obvious that the
Ichthyosaurus was an animal powerfully armed for offence and defence. We
cannot say, with certainty, whether the skin was smooth, like that of
the whale or lizard, or covered with scales, like the great reptiles of
our own age. Nevertheless, as the scales of the Fishes and the cuirass
and horny armour of other Reptiles of the Lias are preserved, and as no
such defensive scales have been found belonging to the Ichthyosaurus, it
is probable that the skin was naked and smooth. The tail, composed of
from eighty to eighty-five vertebræ, was provided with large and long
paddles, arranged vertically as in the Whale.

It is curious to see to what a degree of perfection has been carried, in
our days, the knowledge of the antediluvian animals, their habits, and
their economy. Fig. 98 represents the skeleton of an Ichthyosaurus found
in the Lias of Lyme Regis, which still retains in its abdominal cavity
coprolites, that is to say, the residue of digestion. The soft parts of
the intestinal canal have disappeared, but the _fæces_ themselves are
preserved, and their examination informs us as to the alimentary
regimen of this animal which has perished from the earth many thousands,
perhaps millions, of years. Mary Anning, to whom we owe many of the
discoveries made in the neighbourhood of Lyme Regis, her native place,
had in her collection an enormous coprolite of the Ichthyosaurus. This
coprolite (Fig. 99) contained some bones and scales of Fishes, and of
divers Reptiles, well enough preserved to have their species identified.
It only remains to be added that, among the bones, those of the
Ichthyosaurus were often found, especially those of young individuals.
The presence of the undigested remains of vertebræ and other bones of
animals of its own species in the coprolites of the Ichthyosaurus
proves, as we have already had occasion to remark, that this great
Saurian must have been a most voracious monster, since it habitually
devoured not only fish, but individuals of its own race--the smaller
becoming the prey of the larger. The structure of the jaw of the
Ichthyosaurus leads us to believe that the animal swallowed its prey
without dividing it. Its stomach and intestines must, then, have formed
a sort of pouch of great volume, filling entirely the abdominal cavity,
and corresponding in extent to the great development of the teeth and
jaws.

[Illustration: Fig. 99.--Coprolite, enclosing bones of small
Ichthyosaurus.]

[Illustration: Fig. 100.--Coprolite of Ichthyosaurus.]

The perfection with which its contents have been preserved in the
fossilised coprolites, furnishes indirect proofs that the intestinal
canal of the Ichthyosaurus resembled closely that of the shark and the
dog-fish--fishes essentially voracious and destructive, which have the
intestinal canal spirally convoluted, an arrangement which is exactly
that indicated in some of the coprolites of the Ichthyosaurus, as is
evident from the impressions which the folds of the intestine have left
on the coprolite, of which Fig. 100 is a representation. In the cliffs
near Lyme Regis coprolites are abundant in the Liassic formation, and
have been found disseminated through the shales and limestones along
many miles of that coast.

What an admirable privilege of science, which is able, by an examination
of the simplest parts in the organisation of beings which lived ages
ago, to give to our minds such solid teachings and such true enjoyments!
“When we discover,” says Dr. Buckland, “in the body of an Ichthyosaurus
the food which it has engulfed an instant before its death, when the
intervals between its sides present themselves still filled with the
remains of fishes which it had swallowed some ten thousand years ago, or
a time even twice as great, all these immense intervals vanish, time
disappears, and we find ourselves, so to speak, thrown into immediate
contact with events which took place in epochs immeasurably distant, as
if we occupied ourselves with the affairs of the previous day.”

[Illustration: Fig. 101.--Skull of Plesiosaurus restored. (Conybeare.)

_a_, profile; _b_, seen from above.]

The name of _Plesiosaurus_ (from the Greek words πλησιος, _near_, and
σαυρος, _lizard_) reminds us that this animal, though presenting many
peculiarities of general structure, is allied by its organisation to the
Saurian or Lizard family, and, consequently, to the Ichthyosaurus.

The Plesiosaurus presents, in its organic structure, the most curious
assemblage we have met with among the organic vestiges of the ancient
world. The Plesiosaurus was a marine, air-breathing, carnivorous
reptile, combining the characters of the head of a Lizard, the teeth of
a Crocodile, a neck of excessive length resembling that of a Swan, the
ribs of a Chameleon, a body of moderate size, and a very short tail,
and, finally, four paddles resembling those of a Whale. Let us bestow a
glance upon the remains of this strange animal which the earth has
revealed, and which science has restored to us.

The head of the Plesiosaurus presents a combination of the characters
belonging to the Ichthyosaurus, the Crocodile, and the Lizard. Its
enormously long neck comprises a greater number of vertebræ than the
neck of either the Camel, the Giraffe, or even the Swan, which of all
the feathered race has the longest neck in comparison to the rest of the
body. And it is to be remarked, that, contrary to what obtains in the
Mammals, where the vertebræ of the neck are always seven, the vertebræ
in birds increase in number with the length of the neck.

[Illustration: Fig. 102.--Skeleton of Plesiosaurus dolichodeirus
restored. (Conybeare principally.)]

The body is cylindrical and rounded, like that of the great marine
Turtles. It was, doubtless, naked, _i.e._, not protected with the scales
or carapace with which some authors have invested it; for no traces of
such coverings have been found near any of the skeletons which have been
hitherto discovered. The dorsal vertebræ are attached to each other by
nearly plane surfaces like those of terrestrial quadrupeds, a mode of
arrangement which must have deprived the whole of its vertebral column
of much of its flexibility. Each pair of ribs surrounded the body with a
complete girdle, formed of five pieces, as in the Chameleon and Iguana;
whence, no doubt, as with the Chameleon, great facilities existed for
the contraction and dilatation of the lungs.

[Illustration: Fig. 103.--Sternum and pelvis of Plesiosaurus. Pub.,
pubis; Isch., ischium; Il., ilium.]

The breast, the pelvis, and the bones of the anterior and posterior
extremities furnished an apparatus which permitted the Plesiosaurus,
like the Ichthyosaurus and existing Cetaceans, to sink in the water and
return to the surface at pleasure (Fig. 103). Prof. Owen, in his “Report
on British Reptiles,” characterises them as air-breathing and
cold-blooded animals; the proof that they respired atmospheric air
immediately, being found in the position and structure of the nasal
passages, and the bony mechanism of the thoracic duct and abdominal
cavity. In the first, the size and position of the external nostrils
(Fig. 102), combined with the structure of the paddles, indicate a
striking analogy between the extinct Saurians and the Cetaceans,
offering, as the Professor observes, “a beautiful example of the
adaptation of structure to the peculiar exigencies of species.” While
the evidence that they were cold-blooded animals is found in the
flexible or unanchylosed condition of the osseous pieces of the occiput
and other cranial bones of the lower jaw, and of the vertebral column;
from which the Professor draws the conclusion that the heart was adapted
for transmitting a part only of the blood through the respiratory
organs; the absence of the ball-and-socket articulations of the bones of
the vertebræ, the position of the nostrils near the summit of the head,
the numerous short and flat digital bones, which must have been
enveloped in a simple undivided integumentary sheath, forming in both
fore and hind extremities a paddle closely resembling that of the living
Cetacea. The paddles are larger and more powerful than those of the
Ichthyosaurus, to compensate for the slight assistance the animal
derived from the tail. The latter--shorter, as compared with the length
of the rest of the body, than in the Ichthyosaurus--was more calculated
to act the part of a rudder, in directing the course of the animal
through the water, than as a powerful organ of propulsion.

[Illustration: Fig. 104.--Remains of Plesiosaurus macrocephalus.
One-twelfth natural size.]

Such were the strange combinations of form and structure in the
Plesiosaurus and Ichthyosaurus--genera of animals whose remains have,
after an interment extending to unknown thousands of years, been
revealed to light and submitted to examination; nay, rebuilt, bone by
bone, until we have the complete skeletons before us, and the habits of
the animals described, as if they had been observed in life. Conybeare
thus speaks of the supposed habits of these extinct forms, which he had
built up from scanty materials: “That the Plesiosaurus was aquatic is
evident from the form of its paddles; that it was marine is equally so,
from the remains with which it is universally associated; that it may
have occasionally visited the shore, the resemblance of its extremities
to the turtle may lead us to conjecture; its motion, however, must have
been very awkward on land; its long neck must have impeded its progress
through the water, presenting a striking contrast to the organisation
which so admirably fits the Ichthyosaurus for cutting through the waves.
May it not, therefore, be concluded that it swam on or near the surface,
arching back its long neck like the swan, and occasionally darting it
down at the fish which happened to float within its reach? It may,
perhaps, have lurked in shallow water along the coasts, concealed among
the sea-weeds, and, raising its nostrils to the surface from a
considerable depth, may have found a secure retreat from the assaults of
dangerous enemies, while the length and flexibility of its neck may have
compensated for the want of strength in its jaws, and incapacity for
swift motion through the water, by the suddenness and agility of the
attack they enabled it to make on every animal fitted to become its
prey.”

The Plesiosaurus was first described by the Rev. W. D. Conybeare and Sir
Henry De la Beche, in the “Geological Society’s Transactions” for 1821,
and a restoration of _P. dolichodeirus_, the most common of these
fossils, appeared in the same work for 1824. The first specimen was
discovered, as the Ichthyosaurus had been previously, in the Lias of
Lyme Regis; since then other individuals and species have been found in
the same geological formation in various parts of England, Ireland,
France, and Germany, and with such variations of structure that
Professor Owen has felt himself justified in recording sixteen distinct
species, of which we have represented _P. dolichodeirus_ (Fig. 102), as
restored by Conybeare, and _P. macrocephalus_ (Fig. 104), with its
skeleton, as moulded from the limestone of Lyme Regis, which has been
placed in the Palæontological Gallery of the British Museum.

[Illustration: XV.--Ideal scene of the Lias with Ichthyosaurus and
Plesiosaurus.]

The Plesiosaurus was scarcely so large as the Ichthyosaurus. The
specimen of _I. platydon_ in the British Museum probably belonged to an
animal four-and-twenty feet long, and some are said to indicate thirty
feet, while there are species of Plesiosauri measuring eighteen and
twenty, the largest known specimen of _Plesiosaurus Cramptoni_ found in
the lias of Yorkshire, and now in the Museum of the Royal Society of
Dublin, being twenty-two feet four inches in length. On the opposite
page (PLATE XV.) an attempt is made to represent these grand reptiles of
the Lias in their native element, and as they lived.

Cuvier says of the Plesiosaurus, “that it presents the most monstrous
assemblage of characteristics that has been met with among the races of
the ancient world.” This expression should not be understood in a
literal sense; there are no monsters in Nature; in no living creature
are the laws of organisation ever positively infringed; and it is more
in accordance with the general perfection of creation to see in an
organisation so special, in a structure which differs so notably from
that of the animals of our own days, the simple development of a type,
and sometimes also the introduction of beings, and successive changes in
their structure. We shall see, in examining the curious series of
animals of the ancient world, that the organisation and physiological
functions go on improving unceasingly, and that each of the extinct
genera which preceded the appearance of man, present, for each organ,
modifications which always tend towards greater perfection. The fins of
the fishes of Devonian seas become the paddles of the Ichthyosauri and
of the Plesiosauri; these, in their turn, become the membranous foot of
the Pterodactyle, and, finally, the wing of the bird. Afterwards comes
the articulated fore-foot of the terrestrial mammalia, which, after
attaining remarkable perfection in the hand of the ape, becomes,
finally, the arm and hand of man, an instrument of wonderful delicacy
and power, belonging to an enlightened being gifted with the divine
attribute of reason! Let us, then, dismiss any idea of monstrosity with
regard to these antediluvian animals; let us learn, on the contrary, to
recognise, with admiration, the divine proofs of design which they
display, and in their organisation to see only the handiwork of the
Creator.

Another strange inhabitant of the ancient world, the _Pterodactylus_
(from πτερον, _a wing_, and δακτυλος, _a finger_), discovered in 1828,
made Cuvier pronounce it to be incontestably the most extraordinary of
all the extinct animals which had come under his consideration; and such
as, if we saw them restored to life, would appear most strange and
dissimilar to anything that now exists. In size and general form, and in
the disposition and character of its wings, this fossil genus, according
to Cuvier, somewhat resembled our modern bats and vampyres, but had its
beak elongated like the bill of a woodcock, and armed with teeth like
the snout of a crocodile; its vertebræ, ribs, pelvis, legs, and feet
resembled those of a lizard; its three anterior fingers terminated in
long hooked claws like that on the fore-finger of the bat; and over its
body was a covering, neither composed of feathers as in the bird, nor of
hair as in the bat, but probably a naked skin; in short, it was a
monster resembling nothing that has ever been heard of upon earth,
except the dragons of romance and heraldry. Moreover, it was probably
noctivagous and insectivorous, and in both these points resembled the
bat; but differed from it in having the most important bones in its body
constructed after the manner of those of reptiles.

[Illustration: Fig. 105.--Pterodactylus crassirostris.]

“Thus, like Milton’s fiend, all-qualified for all services and all
elements, the creature was a fit companion for the kindred reptiles that
swarmed in the seas, or crawled on the shores, of a turbulent planet:

    “The Fiend,
    O’er bog, or steep, through strait, rough, dense, or rare,
    With head, hands, wings, or feet, pursues his way,
    And sinks, or swims, or wades, or creeps, or flies.

_Paradise Lost_, Book II., line 947.

“With flocks of such-like creatures flying in the air, and shoals of
Ichthyosauri and Plesiosauri swarming in the ocean, and gigantic
Crocodiles and Tortoises crawling on the shores of primæval lakes and
rivers--air, sea, and land must have been strangely tenanted in these
early periods of our infant world.”[64]

  [64] Professor Buckland on the Pterodactylus. “Trans. Geol. Soc.,” 2nd
       series, vol. iii., p. 217.

[Illustration: Fig. 106.--Pterodactylus brevirostris.]

The strange structure of this animal gave rise to most contradictory
opinions from the earlier naturalists. One supposed it to be a bird,
another a bat, and others a flying reptile. Cuvier was the first to
detect the truth, and to prove, from its organisation, that the animal
was a Saurian. “Behold,” he says, “an animal which in its osteology,
from its teeth to the end of its claws, presents all the characters of
the Saurians; nor can we doubt that their characteristics existed in its
integuments and softer parts, in its scales, its circulation, its
generative organs: it was at the same time provided with the means of
flight; but when stationary it could not have made much use of its
anterior extremities, even if it did not keep them always folded as
birds fold their wings. It might, it is true, use its small anterior
fingers to suspend itself from the branches of trees; but when at rest
it must have been generally on its hind feet, like the birds again, and
like them it must have carried its neck half-erect and curved backwards,
so that its enormous head should not disturb its equilibrium.” This
diversity of opinion need not very much surprise us after all, for, with
the body and tail of an ordinary mammal, it had the form of a bird in
its head and the length of its neck, of the bat in the structure and
proportion of its wings, and of a reptile in the smallness of its head
and in its beak, armed with at least sixty equal sharp-pointed teeth,
differing little in form and size.

Dr. Buckland describes eight distinct species, varying in size from a
snipe to a cormorant. Of these, _P. crassirostris_ (Fig. 105) and _P.
brevirostris_ (Fig. 106), were both discovered in the Lias of
Solenhofen. _P. macronyx_ belongs to the Lias of Lyme Regis.

The Pterodactyle was, then, a reptile provided with wings somewhat
resembling those of Bats, and formed, as in that Mammal, of a membrane
which connected the body with the excessively elongated phalanges of the
fourth finger, which served to expand the membrane that answered the
purposes of a wing. The Pterodactyle of the Liassic period was, as we
have seen, an animal of small size; the largest species in the older
Lias beds did not exceed ten or twelve inches in length, or the size of
a raven, while the later forms found fossil in the Greensand and Wealden
beds must have measured more than sixteen feet between the tips of the
expanded wings. On the other hand, its head was of enormous dimensions
compared with the rest of the body. We cannot admit, therefore, that
this animal could really fly, and, like a bird, beat the air. The
membranous appendage which connected its long finger with its body was
rather a parachute than a wing. It served to moderate the velocity of
its descent when it dropped on its prey from a height. Essentially a
climber, it could only raise itself by climbing up tall trees or rocks,
after the manner of lizards, and throw itself thence to the ground, or
upon the lower branches, by making use of its natural parachute.

The ordinary position of the Pterodactyle was probably upon its two hind
feet, the lower extremities being adapted for standing and moving on the
ground, after the manner of birds. Habitually, perhaps, it perched on
trees; it could creep, or climb along rocks and cliffs, or suspend
itself from trees, with the assistance of its claws and feet, after the
manner of existing Bats. It is even probable, Dr. Buckland thought, that
it had the power of swimming and diving, so common to reptiles, and
possessed by the Vampyre Bat of the island of Bonin. It is believed that
the smaller species lived upon insects, and the larger preyed upon
fishes, upon which it could throw itself like the sea-gull.

The most startling feature in the organisation of this animal is the
strange combination of two powerful wings attached to the body of a
reptile. The imagination of the poets long dwelt on such a combination;
the _Dragon_ was a creation of their fancy, and it played a great part
in fable and in pagan mythology. The Dragon, or flying reptile,
breathing fire and poisoning the air with his fiery breath, had,
according to the fable, disputed with man the possession of the earth.
Gods and demigods claimed, among their most famous exploits, the glory
of having vanquished this powerful and redoubtable monster.

Among the animals of our epoch, only a single reptile is found provided
with wings, or digital appendages analogous to the membranous wings of
the bats, and which can be compared to the Pterodactyle. This is called
the _Dragon_, one of the Draconidæ, a family of Saurians, which has been
described by Daudin, as distinguished by the first six ribs, instead of
hooping round the abdomen, extending in nearly a straight line, and
sustaining a prolongation of skin which forms a sort of wing analogous
to that of the Pterodactyle. Independent of the four feet, this wing
sustains the animal, like a parachute, as it leaps from branch to
branch; but the creature has no power to beat the air with it as birds
do when flying. This reptile lives in the forests of the hottest parts
of Africa, and in some isles of the Indian Ocean, especially in Sumatra
and Java. The only known species is that figured at page 238 (Fig. 107),
which comes from the East Indies.

What a strange population was that which occupied the earth at this
stage of its history, when the waters were filled with creatures so
extraordinary as those whose history we have traced! Plesiosauri and
Ichthyosauri filled the seas, upon the surface of which floated
innumerable Ammonites in light skiffs, some of them as large as a
good-sized cart-wheel, while gigantic Turtles and Crocodiles crawled on
the banks of the rivers and lakes. Only one genus of Mammals had yet
appeared, but no birds; nothing broke the silence of the air, if we
except the breathing of the terrestrial reptiles and the flight of
winged insects.

The earth cooled progressively up to the Jurassic period, the rains lost
their continuity and abundance, and the pressure of the atmosphere
sensibly diminished. All these circumstances favoured the appearance
and the multiplication of innumerable species of animals, whose singular
forms then showed themselves on the earth. We can scarcely imagine the
prodigious quantity of Molluscs and Zoophytes whose remains lie buried
in the Jurassic rocks, forming entire strata of immense thickness and
extent.

[Illustration: Fig. 107.--Draco volans.]

The same circumstances concurred to favour the production of plants. If
the shores and seas of the period received such a terrible aspect from
the formidable animals we have described, the vegetation which covered
the land had also its peculiar character and appearance. Nothing that we
know of in the existing scenery of the globe surpasses the rich
vegetation which decorated the continents of the Jurassic period. A
temperature still of great elevation, a humid atmosphere, and, we have
no reason to doubt, a brilliant sun, promoted the growth of a luxuriant
vegetation, such as some of the tropical islands, with their burning
temperature and maritime climate, can only give us an idea of, while it
recalls some of the Jurassic types of vegetation. The elegant Voltzias
of the Trias had disappeared, but the Horse-tails (_Equiseta_) remained,
whose slender and delicate stems rose erect in the air with their
graceful panicles; the gigantic rushes also remained; and though the
tree-ferns had lost their enormous dimensions of the Carboniferous age,
they still preserved their fine and delicately-cut leaves.

Alongside these vegetable families, which passed upwards from the
preceding age, an entire family--the Cycads (Fig. 72, p. 168)--appear
for the first time. They soon became numerous in genera, such as
Zamites, Pterophyllum (Williamsonia), and Nilssonia. Among the species
which characterise this age, we may cite the following, arranging them
in families:--

  FERNS.                    CYCADS.                   CONIFERS.

  Odontopteris cycadea.    Zamites distans.           Taxodites.
  Taumopteris Munsteri.    Zamites heterophyllus.     Pinites.
  Camptopteris crenata.    Zamites gracilis.
                           Pterophyllum dubium.
                           Nilssonia contigua.
                           Nilssonia elegantissima.
                           Nilssonia Sternbergii.

The _Zamites_ seem to be forerunners of the Palms, which make their
appearance in the following epoch; they were trees of elegant
appearance, closely resembling the existing Zamias, which are trees of
tropical America, and especially of the West India Islands; they were so
numerous in species and in individuals that they seem to have formed, of
themselves alone, one half of the forests during the period which
engages our attention. The number of their fossilised species exceeds
that of the living species. The trunk of the Zamites, simple and covered
with scars left by the old leaves, supports a thick crown of leaves more
than six feet in length, disposed in fan-like shape, arising from a
common centre.

The _Pterophyllum_ (Williamsonia), formed great trees, of considerable
elevation, and covered with large pinnated leaves from top to bottom.
Their leaves, thin and membranous, were furnished with leaflets
truncated at the summit and traversed by fine nervures, not convergent,
but abutting on the terminal truncated edge.

The _Nilssonia_, finally, were Cycadeaceæ resembling the Pterophyllum,
but with thick and coriaceous leaves, and short leaflets contiguous to,
and in part attached to the base; they were obtuse or nearly truncated
at the summit, and would present nervures arched or confluent towards
that summit.

The essential characters of the vegetation during the Liassic sub-period
were:--1. The great predominance of the Cycadeaceæ, thus continuing the
development which commenced in the previous period, expanding into
numerous genera belonging both to this family and that of the _Zamites_
and _Nilssonia_; 2. The existence among the Ferns of many genera with
reticulated veins or nervures, and under forms of little variation,
which scarcely show themselves in the more ancient formations.

[Illustration: Fig. 108.--Millepora alcicornis.

(Recent Coral.)]

[Illustration: XVI.--Ideal Landscape of the Liassic Period.]

On the opposite page (PLATE XVI.) is an ideal landscape of the Liassic
period; the trees and shrubs characteristic of the age are the elegant
Pterophyllum, which appears in the extreme left of the picture, and the
Zamites, which are recognisable by their thick and low trunk and
fan-like tuft of foliage. The large horsetail, or Equisetum of this
epoch, mingles with the great Tree-ferns and the Cypress, a Conifer
allied to those of our own age. Among animals, we see the Pterodactyle
specially represented. One of these reptiles is seen in a state of
repose, resting on its hind feet. The other is represented, not flying,
after the manner of a bird, but throwing itself from a rock in order to
seize upon a winged insect, the dragon-fly (_Libellula_), the remains of
which have been discovered, associated with the bones of the
Pterodactyle, in the lithographic limestone of Pappenheim and
Solenhofen.


OOLITIC SUB-PERIOD.

This period is so named because many of the limestones entering into the
composition of the formations it comprises, consist almost entirely of
an aggregation of rounded concretionary grains resembling, in outward
appearance, the roe or eggs of fishes, and each of which contains a
nucleus of sand, around which concentric layers of calcareous matter
have accumulated; whence the name, from ωον, _egg_, and λιθος, _stone_.

The Oolite series is usually subdivided into three sections, the
_Lower_, _Middle_, and _Upper Oolite_. These rocks form in England a
band some thirty miles broad, ranging across the country from Yorkshire,
in the north-east, to Dorset, in the south-west, but with a great
diversity of mineral character, which has led to a further subdivision
of the series, founded on the existence of particular strata in the
central and south-western counties:--

     UPPER.                 MIDDLE.            LOWER.

  1. Purbeck Beds.       1. Coral Rag.      1. Cornbrash.
  2. Portland Stone      2. Oxford Clay.    2. Great Oolite & Forest
     and Sand.                                 Marble.
  3. Kimeridge Clay.                        3. Stonesfield Slate.
                                            4. Fuller’s Earth.
                                            5. Inferior Oolite.

The alternations of clay and masses of limestone in the Liassic and
Oolite formations impart some marked features to the outline of the
scenery both of France and England: forming broad valleys, separated
from each other by ranges of limestone hills of more or less elevation.
In France, the Jura mountains are composed of the latter; in England,
the <DW72>s of this formation are more gentle--the valleys are
intersected by brooks, and clothed with a rich vegetation; it forms what
is called a tame landscape, as compared with the wilder grandeur of the
Primary rocks--it pleases more than it surprises. It yields materials
also, more useful than some of the older formations, numerous quarries
being met with which furnish excellent building-materials, especially
around Bath, where the stone, when first quarried, is soft and easily
worked, but becomes harder on exposure to the air.

The annexed section (Fig. 109) will give some idea of the configuration
which the stratification assumes, such as may be observed in proceeding
from the north-west to the south-east, from Caermarthenshire to the
banks of the Ouse.


LOWER OOLITE FAUNA.

The most salient and characteristic feature of this age is, undoubtedly,
the appearance of animals belonging to the class of Mammals. But the
organisation, quite special, of the first of the Mammalia will certainly
be a matter of astonishment to the reader, and must satisfy him that
Nature proceeded in the creation of animals by successive steps, by
transitions which, in an almost imperceptible manner, connect the beings
of one age with others more complicated in their organisation. The first
Mammals which appeared upon the earth, for example, did not enjoy all
the organic attributes belonging to the more recent creations of the
class. In the latter the young are brought forth living, and not from
eggs, like Birds, Reptiles, and Fishes. But the former belonged to that
order of animals quite special, and never numerous, the young of which
are transferred in a half-developed state, from the body of the mother
to an external pouch in which they remain until they become perfected;
in short, to marsupial animals. The mother nurses her young during a
certain time in a sort of pouch external to the body, in the
neighbourhood of the abdomen, and provided with teats to which the young
adhere. After a more or less prolonged sojourn in this pouch, the young
animal, when sufficiently matured and strong enough to battle with the
world, emerges from its warm retreat, and enters fully into life and
light; the process being a sort of middle course between oviparous
generation, in which the animals are hatched from eggs after exclusion
from the mother’s body, like Birds; and viviparous, in which the animals
are brought forth alive, as in the ordinary Mammals.

[Illustration: Fig. 109.--General view of the succession of British
strata, with the elevations they reach above the level of the sea.

_G_, Granitic rocks; _a_, Gneiss; _b_, Mica-schist; _c_, Skiddaw or
Cumbrian Slates; _d_, Snowdon rocks; _e_, Plynlymmon rocks; _f_,
Silurian rocks; _g_, Old Red Sandstone; _h_, Carboniferous Limestone;
_i_, Millstone Grit; _k_, Coal-measures; _l_, Magnesian Limestone; _m_,
New Red Sandstone; _n_, Lias; _o_, Lower, Middle, and Upper Oolites;
_p_, Greensand; _q_, Chalk; _r_, Tertiary strata.]

In standard works on natural history the animals under consideration are
classed as _mammiferous Didelphæ_. They are brought forth in an
imperfect state, and during their transitional condition are suckled in
a pouch supported by bones called _marsupial_, which are attached by
their extremities to the pelvis, and serve to support the marsupium,
whence the animals provided with these provisions for bringing up their
progeny are called _Marsupial Mammals_. The Opossum, Kangaroo, and
Ornithorhynchus are existing representatives of this group.

[Illustration: Fig. 110.--Jaw of Thylacotherium Prevostii.]

[Illustration: Fig. 111.--Jaw of Phascolotherium.]

The name of _Thylacotherium_, or _Amphitherium_, or _Phascolotherium_,
is given to the first of these marsupial Mammals which made their
appearance, whose remains have been discovered in the Lower Oolite, and
in one of its higher stages, namely, that called the _Great Oolite_.
Fig. 110 represents the jaw of the first of these animals, and Fig. 111
the other--both of the natural size. These jaw-bones represent all that
has been found belonging to these early marsupial animals; and Baron
Cuvier and Professor Owen have both decided as to their origin. The
first was found in the Stonesfield quarries. The Phascolotherium, also a
Stonesfield fossil, was the ornament of Mr. Broderip’s collection. The
animals which lived on the land during the Lower Oolitic period would be
nearly the same with those of the Liassic. The insects were, perhaps,
more numerous.

The marine fauna included Reptiles, Fishes, Molluscs, and Zoophytes.
Among the first were the Pterodactyle, and a great Saurian, the
Teleosaurus, belonging to a family which made its appearance in this
age, and which reappears in the following epoch. Among the Fishes, the
Ganoids and Ophiopsis predominate. Among the Ammonites, _Ammonites
Humphriesianus_, _A. Herveyii_ (Fig. 112), _A. Brongniarti_, _Nautilus
lineatus_, and many other representatives of the cephalopodous Mollusca.
Among the Brachiopods are _Terebratula digona_ (Fig. 113) and _T.
spinosa_. Among the Gasteropoda the _Pleurotomaria conoidea_ is
remarkable from its elegant shape and markings, and very unlike any of
the living _Pleurotoma_ as represented by _P. Babylonia_ (Fig. 114).
_Ostrea Marshii_ and _Lima proboscidea_, which belong to the Acephala,
are fossil Mollusca of this epoch, to which also belong _Entalophora
cellarioides_, _Eschara Ranviliana_, _Bidiastopora cervicornis_; elegant
and characteristic molluscous Polyzoa. We give a representation of two
living species, as exhibiting the form of these curious beings. (Figs.
115 and 116.)

[Illustration: Fig. 112.--Ammonites Herveyii.]

[Illustration: Fig. 113.--Terebratula digona.]

[Illustration: Fig. 114.--Pleurotoma Babylonia. (Recent.)]

The Echinoderms and Polyps appear in great numbers in the deposits of
the Lower Oolite: _Apiocrinus elegans_, _Hyboclypus gibberulus_,
_Dysaster Endesii_ represent the first; _Montlivaltia caryophyllata_,
_Anabacia orbulites_, _Cryptocœnia bacciformis_, and _Eunomia radiata_
represent the second.

[Illustration: Fig. 115.--Adeona folifera.

(Recent Polyzoa.)]

[Illustration: Fig. 116.--Cellaria loriculata.

(Recent Polyzoa.)]

This last and most remarkable species of Zoophyte presents itself in
great masses many yards in circumference, and necessitates a long period
of time for its production. This assemblage of little creatures living
under the waters but only at a small depth beneath the surface, as Mr.
Darwin has demonstrated, has nevertheless produced banks, or rather
islets, of considerable extent, which at one time constituted veritable
reefs rising out of the ocean. These reefs were principally constructed
in the Jurassic period, and their extreme abundance is one of the
characteristics of this geological age. The same phenomenon continues in
our day, but by the agency of a new race of zoophytes, which carry on
their operations, preparing a new continent, probably, in the _atolls_
of the Pacific Ocean. (See Fig. 108, p. 240.)

[Illustration: Fig. 117.

1, Otopteris dubia; 2, Otopteris obtusa; 3,
Otopteris acuminata; 4, Otopteris cuneata.]

The flora of the epoch was very rich. The Ferns continue to exist, but
their size and bearing were sensibly inferior to what they had been in
the preceding period. Among them Otopteris, distinguished for its
simply pinnated leaves, whose leaflets are auriculate at the base: of
the five species, 1, _O. dubia_; and 2, _O. obtusa_; and 3, _O.
acuminata_; and 4, _O. cuneata_ (Fig. 117), are from the Oolite. In
addition to these we may name _Coniopteris Murrayana_, _Pecopteris
Desnoyersii, Pachypteris lanceolata_, and _Phlebopteris Phillipsii_; and
among the Lycopods, _Lycopodus falcatus_.

The vegetation of this epoch has a peculiar facies, from the presence of
the family of the Pandanaceæ, or screw-pines, so remarkable for their
aërial roots, and for the magnificent tuft of leaves which terminates
their branches. Neither the leaves nor the roots of these plants have,
however, been found in the fossil state, but we possess specimens of
their large and spherical fruit, which leave no room for doubt as to the
nature of the entire plant.

The Cycads were still represented by the _Zamias_, and by many species
of Pterophyllum. The Conifers, that grand family of recent times, to
which the pines, firs, and other trees of our northern forests belong,
began to occupy an important part in the world’s vegetation from this
epoch. The earliest Conifers belonged to the genera _Thuites_,
_Taxites_, and _Brachyphyllum_. The _Thuites_ were true _Thuyas_,
evergreen trees of the present epoch, with compressed branches, small
imbricated and serrated leaves, somewhat resembling those of the
Cypress, but distinguished by many points of special organisation. The
_Taxites_ have been referred, with some doubts, to the Yews. Finally,
the _Brachyphyllum_ were trees which, according to the characteristics
of their vegetation, seem to have approached nearly to two existing
genera, the _Arthotaxis_ of Tasmania, and the _Weddringtonias_ of South
Africa. The leaves of the Brachyphyllum are short and fleshy, with a
large and rhomboidal base.


LOWER OOLITE ROCKS.

The formation which represents the Lower Oolite, and which in England
attains an average thickness of from 500 to 600 feet, forms a very
complex system of stratification, which includes the two formations,
_Bajocien_ and _Bathonian_, adopted by M. D’Orbigny and his followers.
The lowest beds of the _Inferior Oolite_ occur in Normandy, in the Lower
Alps (Basses-Alpes), in the neighbourhoods of Lyons and Neuchatel. They
are remarkable near Bayeux for the variety and beauty of their fossils:
the rocks are composed principally of limestones--yellowish-brown, or
red, charged with hydrated oxide of iron, often oolitic, and reposing on
calcareous sands. These deposits are surmounted by alternate layers of
clay and marl, blue or yellow--the well-known _Fuller’s Earth_, which is
so called from its use in the manufacture of woollen fabrics to extract
the grease from the wool. The second series of the Lower Oolite, which
attains a thickness of from 150 to 200 feet on the coast of Normandy,
and is well developed in the neighbourhood of Caen and in the Jura, has
been divided, in Britain, into four formations, in an ascending scale:--

1. The _Great_ or _Bath Oolite_, which consists principally of a very
characteristic, fine-grained, white, soft, and well-developed oolitic
limestone, at Bath, and also at Caen in Normandy. At the base of the
Great Oolite the Stonesfield beds occur, in which were found the bones
of the marsupial Mammals, to which we have already alluded; and along
with them bones of Reptiles, principally Pterodactyles, together with
some finely-preserved fossil plants, fruits, and insects.

2. _Bradford Clay_, which is a bluish marl, containing many fine
Encrinites (commonly called stone-lilies), but which had only a local
existence, appearing to be almost entirely confined to this formation.
“In this case, however,” says Lyell, “it appears that the solid upper
surface of the ‘Great Oolite’ had supported, for a time, a thick
submarine forest of these beautiful Zoophytes, until the clear and still
water was invaded with a current charged with mud, which threw down the
stone-lilies, and broke most of their stems short off near the point of
attachment. The stumps still remain in their original position.”[65] See
Fig. 1, PLATE XIX., p. 261. (Bradford, or Pear, Encrinite.)

  [65] “Elements of Geology,” p. 399.

3. _Forest Marble_, which consists of an argillaceous shelly limestone,
abounding in marine fossils, and sandy and quartzose marls, is quarried
in the forest of Wichwood, in Wiltshire, and in the counties of Dorset,
Wilts, and Somerset.

4. The _Cornbrash_ (wheat-lands) consists of beds of rubbly
cream- limestone, which forms a soil particularly favourable to
the cultivation of cereals; hence its name.[66]

  [66] See Bristow in Descriptive Catalogue of Rocks, in _Mus. Pract.
       Geol._, p. 134.

[Illustration: Fig. 118.--Meandrina Dædalæa.

_a_, entire figure, reduced; _b_, portion, natural size.

(Recent Coral.)]

The Lower Oolite ranges across the greater part of England, but “attains
its maximum development near Cheltenham, where it can be subdivided, at
least, into three parts. Passing north, the two lower divisions, each
more or less characterised by its own fossils, disappear, and the
Ragstone north-east of Cheltenham lies directly upon the Lias;
apparently as conformably as if it formed its true and immediate
successor, while at Dundry the equivalents of the upper freestones and
ragstones (the lower beds being absent) lie directly on the exceedingly
thin sands, which there overlie the Lower Lias. In Dorsetshire, on the
coast, the series is again perfect, though thin. Near Chipping Norton,
in Oxfordshire, the Inferior Oolite disappears altogether, and the Great
Oolite, having first overlapped the Fullers’ Earth, passes across the
Inferior Oolite, and in its turn seems to lie on the Upper Lias with a
regularity as perfect as if no formation in the neighbourhood came
between them. In Yorkshire the changed type of the Inferior Oolite, the
prevalence of sands, land-plants, and beds of coal, occur in such a
manner as to leave no doubt of the presence of terrestrial surfaces on
which the plants grew, and all these phenomena lead to the conclusion
that various and considerable oscillations of level took place in the
British area during the deposition of the strata, both of the Inferior
Oolite and of the formations which immediately succeed it.”[67]

  [67] President’s Address, by Professor A. C. Ramsay. _Quart. Jour.
       Geol. Soc._, 1864, vol. xx., p. 4.

The Inferior Oolite here alluded to is a thin bed of calcareous
freestone, resting on, and sometimes replaced by yellow sand, which
constitutes the passage-beds from the Liassic series. The Fullers’ Earth
clay lies between the limestones of the Inferior and Great Oolite, at
the base of which last lies the Stonesfield slate--a slightly oolitic,
shelly limestone, or flaggy and fissile sandstone, some six feet thick,
rich in organic remains, and ranging through Oxfordshire towards the
north-east, into Northamptonshire and Yorkshire. At Colley Weston, in
Northamptonshire, fossils of _Pecopteris polypodioides_ are found. In
the Great Oolite formation, near Bath, are many corals, among which the
_Eunomia radiata_ is very conspicuous. The fossil is not unlike the
existing brain-coral of the tropical seas (Fig. 118). The work of this
coral seems to have been suddenly stopped by “an invasion,” says Lyell,
“of argillaceous matter, which probably put a sudden stop to the growth
of Bradford Encrinites, and led to their preservation in marine
strata.”[68] The Cornbrash is, in general, a cream- limestone,
about forty feet thick, in the south-west of England, and occupying a
considerable area in Dorsetshire and North Wilts, as at Cricklade,
Malmesbury, and Chippenham, in the latter county. _Terebratula obovata_
is its characteristic shell, and _Nucleolites clunicularis_, _Lima
gibbosa_, and _Avicula echinata_ occur constantly in great numbers.
Wherever it occurs the Cornbrash affords a rich and fertile soil, well
adapted for the growth of wheat, while the Forest Marble, as a soil, is
generally poor. The Cornbrash passes downwards into the Forest Marble,
and sometimes, as at Bradford, near Bath, is replaced by clay. This
clay, called the Bradford clay, is almost wholly confined to the county
of Wilts. _Terebratula decussata_ is one of the most characteristic
fossils, but the most common is the Apiocrinites or pear-shaped
encrinite, whose remains in this clay are so perfectly preserved that
the most minute articulations are often found in their natural
positions. PLATE XIX., p. 261 (Fig. 1), represents an adult attached by
a solid base to the rocky bottom on which it grew, whilst the smaller
individuals show the Encrinite in its young state--one with arms
expanded, the other with them closed. Ripple-marked slabs of fissile
Forest Marble are used as a roofing-slate, and may be traced over a
broad band of country in Wiltshire and Gloucestershire, separated from
each other by thin seams of clay, in which the undulating ridges of
the sand are preserved, and even the footmarks of small Crustaceans are
still visible.

  [68] “Elements of Geology,” p. 400.

[Illustration: XVII.--Ideal Landscape of the Lower Oolite Period.]

On the opposite page (PLATE XVII.) is represented an ideal landscape of
the period of the Lower Oolite. On the shore are types of the vegetation
of the period. The _Zamites_, with large trunk covered with fan-like
leaves, resembled in form and bearing the existing Zamias of tropical
regions; a _Pterophyllum_, with its stem covered from base to summit
with its finely-cut feathery leaves; Conifers closely resembling our
Cypress, and an arborescent Fern. What distinguishes this sub-period
from that of the Lias is a group of magnificent trees, _Pandanus_,
remarkable for their aërial roots, their long leaves, and globular
fruit.

Upon one of the trees of this group the artist has placed the
_Phascolotherium_, not very unlike to our Opossum. It was amongst the
first of the Mammalia which appeared in the ancient world. The artist
has here enlarged the dimensions of the animal in order to show its
form. Let the reader reduce it in imagination one-sixth, for it was not
larger than an ordinary-sized cat.

A Crocodile and the fleshless skeleton of the Ichthyosaurus remind us
that Reptiles still occupied an important place in the animal creation.
A few Insects, especially Dragon-flies, fly about in the air. Ammonites
float on the surface of the waves, and the terrible Plesiosaurus, like a
gigantic swan, swims about in the sea. The circular reef of coral, the
work of ancient Polyps, foreshadows the atolls of the great ocean, for
it was during the Jurassic period that the Polyps of the ancient world
were most active in the production of coral-reefs and islets.


MIDDLE OOLITE.

The terrestrial flora of this age was composed of Ferns, Cycads, and
Conifers. The first represented by the _Pachypteris microphylla_, the
second by _Zamites Moreana_. _Brachyphyllum Moreanum_ and _B. majus_
appear to have been the Conifers most characteristic of the period;
fruits have also been found in the rocks of the period, which appear to
belong to Palms, but this point is still obscure and doubtful.

Numerous vestiges of the fauna which animated the period are also
revealed in the rocks of this age. Certain hemipterous insects appear on
the earth for the first time, and the Bees among the Hymenoptera,
Butterflies among the Lepidoptera, and Dragon-flies among the
Neuroptera. In the bosom of the ocean, or upon its banks, roamed the
_Ichthyosaurus_, _Ceteosaurus_, _Pterodactylus crassirostris_, and the
_Geosaurus_; the latter being very imperfectly known.

The Ceteosaurus whose bones have been discovered in the upper beds of
the Great Oolite at Enslow Rocks, at the Kirtlington Railway Station,
north of Oxford, and some other places, was a species of Crocodile
nearly resembling the modern Gavial or Crocodile of the Ganges. This
huge whale-like reptile has been described by Professor John Phillips as
unmatched in size and strength by any of the largest inhabitants of the
Mesozoic land or sea--perhaps the largest animal that ever walked upon
the earth. A full-grown Ceteosaurus must have been _at least_ fifty feet
long, ten feet high, and of a proportionate bulk. In its habits it was,
probably, a marsh-loving or river-side animal, dwelling amidst filicene,
cycadaceous, and coniferous shrubs and trees full of insects and small
mammalia. The one small and imperfect tooth which has been found
resembles that of Iguanodon more than of any other reptile; and it seems
probable that the Ceteosaurus was nourished by vegetable food, which
abounded in the vicinity of its haunts, and was not obliged to contend
with the Megalosaurus for a scanty supply of more stimulating diet.[69]

  [69] For a full account of the Ceteosaurus, see “The Geology of the
       Thames Valley,” by Prof. John Phillips, F.R.S. 1871.

Another reptile allied to the Pterodactyle lived in this epoch--the
_Ramphorynchus_, distinguished from the Pterodactyle by a long tail. The
imprints which this curious animal has left upon the sandstone of the
period are impressions of its feet and the linear furrow made by its
tail. Like the Pterodactyle, the Ramphorynchus, which was about the size
of a crow, could not precisely fly, but, aided by the wing (a sort of
natural parachute formed by the membrane connecting the fingers with the
body), it could throw itself from a height upon its prey. Fig. 119
represents a restoration of this animal. The footprints in the soil are
in imitation of those which accompany the remains of the Ramphorynchus
in the Oolitic rocks, and they show the imprints of the anterior and
posterior feet and also the marks made by the tail.

This tail was very long, far surpassing in length the rest of the
vertebral column, and consisting of more than thirty vertebræ--which
were at first short, but rapidly elongate, retain their length for a
considerable distance, and then gradually diminish in size.

[Illustration: XVIII.--Ideal landscape of the Middle Oolitic Period.]

Another genus of Reptiles appears in the Middle Oolite, of which we have
had a glimpse in the Lias and Great Oolite of the preceding section.
This is the _Teleosaurus_, which the recent investigations of M. E.
Deslongchamps allow of re-construction. The Teleosaurus enables us to
form a pretty exact idea of these Crocodiles of the ancient seas--these
cuirassed Reptiles, which the German geologist Cotta describes as “the
great barons of the kingdom of Neptune, armed to the teeth, and clothed
in an impenetrable panoply; the true filibusters of the primitive seas.”

[Illustration: Fig. 119.--Ramphorynchus restored. One-quarter natural
size.]

The Teleosaurus resembled the Gavials of India. The former inhabited the
banks of rivers, perhaps the sea itself; they were longer, more slender,
and more active than the living species; they were about thirty feet in
length, of which the head may be from three to four feet, with their
enormous jaws sometimes with an opening of six feet, through which they
could engulf, in the depths of their enormous throat, animals of
considerable size.

The _Teleosaurus cadomensis_ is represented on the opposite page (PLATE
XVIII.), after the sketch of M. E. Deslongchamps, carrying from the sea
in its mouth a _Geoteuthis_, a species of Calamary of the Oolitic epoch.
This creature was coated with a cuirass both on the back and belly. In
order to show this peculiarity, a living individual is represented on
the shore, and a dead one is floating on its back in shallow water,
leaving the ventral cuirass exposed.

Behind the _Teleosaurus cadomensis_ in the engraving, another Saurian,
the _Hylæosaurus_, is represented, which makes its appearance in the
Cretaceous epoch. We have here adopted the restoration which has been so
ably executed by Mr. Waterhouse Hawkins, at the Crystal Palace,
Sydenham.

Besides the numerous Fishes with which the Oolitic seas swarmed, they
contained some Crustaceans, Cirripedes, and various genera of Mollusca
and Zoophytes. _Eryon arctiformis_, represented in Fig. 119, belongs to
the class of Crustaceans, of which the spiny lobster is the type. Among
the Mollusca were some Ammonites, Belemnites, and Oysters, of which many
hundred species have been described. Of these we may mention _Ammonites
refractus, A. Jason and A. cordatus, Ostrea dilatata, Terebratula
diphya, Diceras arietena, Belemnites hastatus_, and _B. Puzosianus_. In
some of the finely-laminated clays the Ammonites are very perfect, but
somewhat compressed, with the outer lip or margin of the aperture entire
(Fig. 120). Similar prolongations have been noticed in Belemnites found
by Dr. Mantell in the Oxford Clay, near Chippenham.

[Illustration: Fig. 120.--Eryon arctiformis.]

[Illustration: Fig. 121.--Perfect Ammonite.]

Among the Echinoderms, _Cidaris glandiferus_, _Apiocrinus Roissyanus_,
and _A. rotundus_, the graceful _Saccocoma pectinata_, _Millericrinus
nodotianus_, _Comatula costata_, and _Hemicidaris crenularis_ may be
mentioned; _Apiocrinites rotundus_, figured in PLATE XIX., is a reduced
restoration: 1, being expanded; _a_, closed; 3, a cross section of
the upper extremity of the pear-shaped head; 4, a vertical section
showing the enlargement of the alimentary canal, with the hollow
lenticular spaces which descend through the axis of the column, forming
the joints, and giving elasticity and flexure to the whole stem, without
risk of dislocation. _A. rotundus_ is found at Bradford in Wiltshire,
Abbotsbury in Dorset, at Soissons, and Rochelle. This species--known as
the Bradford Pear-Encrinite--is only found in the strata mentioned.

[Illustration: XIX.--Fig. 1.--Apiocrinites rotundus. Fig. 2.--Encrinus
liliiformis.]

The Corals of this epoch occur in great abundance. We have already
remarked that these aggregations of Polyps are often met with at a great
depth in the strata. These small calcareous structures have been formed
in the ancient seas, and the same phenomenon is extending the
terrestrial surface in our days in the seas of Oceania, where reefs and
atolls of coral are rising by slow and imperceptible steps, but with no
less certainty. Although their mode of production must always remain to
some extent a mystery, the investigations of M. Lamaroux, Mr. Charles
Darwin, and M. D’Orbigny have gone a long way towards explaining their
operations; for the Zoophyte in action is an aggregation of these minute
Polyps. Describing what he believes to be a sea-pen, a Zoophyte allied
to _Virgularia Patagonia_, Mr. Darwin says: “It consists of a thin,
straight, fleshy stem, with alternate rows of polypi on each side, and
surrounding an elastic stony axis. The stem at one extremity is
truncate, but at the other is terminated by a vermiform fleshy
appendage. The stony axis which gives strength to the stem, may be
traced at this extremity into a mere vessel filled with granular matter.
At low water hundreds of these zoophytes might be seen, projecting like
stubble, with the truncate end upwards, a few inches above the surface
of the muddy sand. When touched or pulled, they drew themselves in
suddenly, with force, so as nearly or quite to disappear. By this
action, the highly-elastic axis must be bent at the lower extremity,
where it is naturally slightly curved; and I imagine it is by this
elasticity alone that the zoophyte is enabled to rise again through the
mud. Each polypus, though closely united to its brethren, has a distinct
mouth, body, and tentacula. Of these polypi, in a large specimen there
must be many thousands. Yet we see that they act by one movement; that
they have one central axis, connected with a system of obscure
circulation.” Such is the brief account given by a very acute observer
of these singular beings. They secrete the calcareous matter held in
solution in the oceanic waters, and produce the wonderful structures we
have now under consideration; and these calcareous banks have been in
course of formation during many geological ages. They just reach the
level of the waters, for the polyps perish as soon as they are so far
above the surface that neither the waves nor the flow of the tides can
reach them. In the Oolitic rocks these banks are frequently found from
twelve to fifteen feet thick, and many leagues in length, and
preserving, for the most part, the relative positions which they
occupied in the sea while in course of formation.

The rocks which now represent the Middle Oolitic Period are usually
divided into the _Oxford Clay_, the lower member of which is an
arenaceous limestone, known as the _Kellaways Rock_, which in Wiltshire
and other parts of the south-west of England attains a thickness of
eight or ten feet, with the impressions of numerous Ammonites, and other
shells. In Yorkshire, around Scarborough, it reaches the thickness of
thirty feet; and forms well-developed beds of bluish-black marl in the
department of Calvados, in France. It is the base of this clay which
forms the soil (_Argile de Dives_) of the valley of the Auge, renowned
for its rich pasturages and magnificent cattle. The same beds form the
base of the oddly-shaped but fine rocks of La Manche, which are
popularly known as the _Vaches Noires_ (or black cows)--a locality
celebrated, also, for its fine Ammonites transformed into pyrites.

The _Oxford Clay_ constitutes the base of the hills in the neighbourhood
of Oxford, forming a bed of clay sometimes more than 600 feet thick. It
is found well-developed in France, at Trouville, in the department of
the Calvados; and at Neuvisy, in the department of the Ardennes, where
it attains a thickness of about 300 feet. It is a bluish, sometimes
whitish limestone (often argillaceous), and bluish marl. The _Gryphæa
dilatata_ is the most common fossil in the Oxford Clay. The _Coral Rag_
is so called from the fact that the limestone of which it is chiefly
composed consists, in part, of an aggregation of considerable masses of
petrified Corals; not unlike those now existing in the Pacific Ocean,
supposing them to be covered up for ages and fossilised. This coral
stratum extends through the hills of Berkshire and North Wilts, and it
occurs again near Scarborough. In the counties of Dorset, Bedford,
Buckingham, and Cambridge, and some other parts of England, the
limestone of the Coral Rag disappears and is replaced by clay--in which
case the Oxford Clay is overlaid directly by the Kimeridge Clay. In
France it is found in the departments of the Meuse, of the Yonne, of the
Ain, of the Charente Inférieure. In the Alps the _Diceras limestone_ is
regarded, by most geologists, as coeval with the English Coral Rag.


UPPER OOLITE.

[Illustration: Fig. 122.--Bird of Solenhofen (Archæopteryx).]

Some marsupial Mammals have left their remains in the Upper Oolite as in
the Lower. They belong to the genus _Sphalacotherium_. Besides the
Plesiosauri and Teleosauri, there still lived in the maritime regions a
Crocodile, the _Macrorhynchus_; and the monstrous _Pœcilopleuron_, with
sharp cutting teeth, one of the most formidable animals of this epoch;
the _Hylæosaurus_, _Cetiosaurus_, _Stenosaurus_, and _Streptospondylus_,
and among the Turtles, the _Emys_ and _Platemys_. As in the Lower
Oolite, so also in the Upper, Insects similar to those by which we are
surrounded, pursued their flight in the meadows and hovered over the
surface of the water. Of these, however, too little is known for us to
give any very precise indication on the subject of their special
organisation.

The most remarkable fact relating to this period is the appearance of
the first bird. Hitherto the Mammals, and of these only
imperfectly-organised species, namely, the Marsupials, have alone
appeared. It is interesting to witness birds appearing immediately
after. In the quarries of lithographic stone at Solenhofen, the remains
of a bird, with feet and feathers, have been found, but without the
head. These curious remains are represented in Fig. 122, in the position
in which they were discovered. The bird is usually designated the Bird
of Solenhofen.

[Illustration: Fig. 123.

Shell of Physa fontinalis.]

The Oolitic seas of this series contained Fishes belonging to the genera
_Asteracanthus_, _Strephodes_, _Lepidotus_, and _Microdon_. The
Cephalopodous Mollusca were not numerous, the predominating genera
belonging to the Lamellibranchs and to the Gasteropods, which lived on
the shore. The reef-making Madrepores or Corals were more numerous. A
few Zoophytes in the fossil state testify to the existence of these
extraordinary animals. The fossils characteristic of the fauna of the
period include _Ammonites decipiens_ and _A. giganteus_, _Natica
elegans_ and _hemispherica_, _Ostrea deltoidea_ and _O. virgula_,
_Trigonia gibbosa_, _Pholadomya multicostata_ and _P. acuticostata_,
_Terebratula subsella_, and _Hemicidaris Purbeckensis_. Some _Fishes_,
_Turtles_, _Paludina_, _Physa_ (Fig. 123), _Unio_, _Planorbis_ (Fig.
201), and the little crustacean bivalves, the Cypris, constituted the
fresh-water fauna of the period.

The terrestrial flora of the period consisted of Ferns, Cycadeaceæ, and
Conifers; in the ponds and swamps some Zosteræ. The _Zosteræ_ are
monocotyledonous plants of the family of the Naïdaceæ, which grow in the
sandy mud of maritime regions, forming there, with their long, narrow,
and ribbon-like leaves, vast prairies of the most beautiful green. At
low tides these masses of verdure appear somewhat exposed. They would
form a retreat for a great number of marine animals, and afford
nourishment to others.

       *       *       *       *       *

[Illustration: XX.--Ideal Landscape of the Upper Oolitic Period.]

On the opposite page an ideal landscape of the period (PLATE XX.)
represents some of the features of the Upper Oolite, especially the
vegetation of the Jurassic period. The _Sphenophyllum_, among the
Tree-ferns, is predominant in this vegetation; some _Pandanas_, a few
_Zamites_, and many _Conifers_, but we perceive no Palms. A coral islet
rises out of the sea, having somewhat of the form of the _atolls_ of
Oceania, indicating the importance these formations assumed in the
Jurassic period. The animals represented are the _Crocodileimus_ of
Jourdan, the _Ramphorynchus_, with the imprints which characterise its
footsteps, and some of the invertebrated animals of the period, as the
_Asteria_, _Comatula_, _Hemicidaris_, _Pteroceras_. Aloft in the air
floats the bird of Solenhofen, the _Archæopteryx_, which has been
re-constructed from the skeleton, with the exception of the head, which
remains undiscovered.

       *       *       *       *       *

The rocks which represent the Upper Oolite are usually divided into two
series: 1. The _Purbeck Beds_; 2. The _Portland Stone and Sand_; and 3.
The _Kimeridge Clay_.

The _Kimeridge Clay_, which in many respects bears a remarkable
resemblance to the Oxford Clay, is composed of blue or yellowish
argillaceous beds, which occur in the state of clay and shale
(containing locally beds of bituminous schist, sometimes forming a sort
of earthy impure coal), and several hundred feet in thickness. These
beds are well developed at Kimeridge, in Dorsetshire, whence the clay
takes its name. In some parts of Wiltshire the beds of bituminous matter
have a shaly appearance, but there is an absence of the impressions of
plants which usually accompany the bitumen, derived from the
decomposition of plants. These rocks, with their characteristic fossils,
_Cardium striatulum_ and _Ostrea deltoidea_, are found throughout
England: in France, at Tonnerre, Dept. Yonne; at Havre; at Honfleur; at
Mauvage; in the department of the Meuse it is so rich in shells of
_Ostrea deltoidea_ and _O. virgula_, that, “near Clermont in Argonne, a
few leagues from St. Menehould,” says Lyell,[70] “where these indurated
marls crop out from beneath the Gault, I have seen them (_Gryphæa
virgula_) on decomposing leave the surface of every ploughed field
literally strewed over with this fossil oyster.”

  [70] “Elements of Geology,” p. 393.

The second section of this series consists of the oolitic limestone of
Portland, which is quarried in the Isle of Portland and in the cliffs of
the Isle of Purbeck in Dorsetshire, and also at Chilmark in the Vale of
Wardour, in Wiltshire. In France, the Portland beds are found near
Boulogne, at Cirey-le-Château, Auxerre, and Gray (Haute Saône).

The Isle, or rather peninsula of Portland,[71] off the Dorsetshire
coast, rises considerably above the sea-level, presenting on the side of
the port a bold line of cliffs, connected with the mainland by the
Chesil bank,[72] an extraordinary formation, consisting of a beach of
shingle and pebbles loosely piled on the blue Kimeridge clay, and
stretching ten miles westward along the coast. The quarries are chiefly
situated in the northerly part of the island. The story told of this
remarkable island is an epitome of the revolutions the surface of the
earth has undergone. The slaty Purbeck beds which overlie the Portland
stone are of a dark-yellowish colour; they are burnt in the
neighbourhood for lime. The next bed is of a whiter and more lively
colour. It is the stone of which the portico of St. Paul’s and many of
the houses of London, built in Queen Anne’s time, were constructed. The
building-stone contains fossils exclusively marine. Upon this stratum
rests a bed of limestone formed in lacustrine waters. Finally, upon this
bed rests another deposit of a substance which consists of very
well-preserved vegetable earth or _humus_, quite analogous to our
vegetable soil, of the thickness of from fifteen to eighteen inches, and
of a blackish colour; it contains a strong proportion of carbonaceous
earth; it abounds in the silicified remains of Conifers and other
plants, analogous to the _Zamia_ and _Cycas_--this soil is known as the
“dirt-bed.” The trunks of great numbers of silicified trees and tropical
plants are found here erect, their roots fixed in the soil, and of
species differing from any of our forest trees. “The ruins of a forest
upon the ruins of a sea,” says Esquiros, “the trunks of these trees were
petrified while still growing. The region now occupied by the narrow
channel and its environs had been at first a sea, in whose bed the
Oolitic deposits which now form the Portland stone accumulated: the bed
of the sea gradually rose and emerged from the waves. Upon the land thus
rescued from the deep, plants began to grow; they now constitute with
their ruins the soil of the dirt-bed. This soil, with its forest of
trees, was afterwards plunged again into the waters--not the bitter
waters of the ocean, but in the fresh waters of a lake formed at the
mouth of some great river.”

  [71] For details respecting these strata the reader may consult, with
       advantage, the useful handbook to the geology of Weymouth and
       Portland, by Robert Damon.

  [72] See Bristow and Whitaker “On the Chesil Bank,” _Geol. Mag._, vol.
       vi., p. 433.

Time passed on, however; a calcareous sediment brought from the interior
by the waters, formed a layer of mud over the dirt-bed; finally, the
whole region was covered by a succession of calcareous deposits, until
the day when the Isle of Portland was again revealed to light. “From the
facts observed,” says Lyell, “we may infer:--1. That those beds of the
Upper Oolite, called the Portland, which are full of marine shells, were
overspread with fluviatile mud, which became dry land, and covered with
a forest, throughout a portion of space now occupied by the south of
England, the climate being such as to admit of the growth of the _Zamia_
and _Cycas_. 2. This land at length sank down and was submerged with its
forest beneath a body of fresh water from which sediment was thrown down
enveloping fluviatile shells. 3. The regular and uniform preservation of
this thin bed of black earth over a distance of many miles, shows that
the change from dry land to the state of a fresh-water lake, or estuary,
was not accompanied by any violent denudation or rush of water, since
the loose black earth, together with the trees which lay prostrate on
its surface, must inevitably have been swept away had any such violent
catastrophe taken place.”[73]

  [73] “Elements of Geology,” p. 389.

[Illustration: Fig. 124.--Geological humus. _a_, Fresh-water calcareous
slate (Purbeck); _b_, Dirt-bed, with roots and stems of trees; _c_,
Fresh-water beds; _d_, Portland Stone.]

The soil known as the _dirt-bed_ is nearly horizontal in the Isle of
Portland; but we discover it again not far from there in the sea-cliffs
of the Isle of Purbeck, having an inclination of 45°, where the trunks
continue perfectly parallel among themselves, affording a fine example
of a change in the position of beds originally horizontal. Fig. 124
represents this species of geological _humus_. “Each _dirt-bed_” says
Sir Charles Lyell, “may, no doubt, be the memorial of many thousand
years or centuries, because we find that two or three feet of vegetable
soil is the only monument which many a tropical forest has left of its
existence ever since the ground on which it now stands was first covered
with its shade.”[74]

  [74] Ibid, p. 391.

This bed of vegetable soil is, then, near the summit of that long and
complicated series of beds which constitute the Jurassic period; these
ruins, still vegetable, remind us forcibly of the coal-beds, for they
are nothing else than a less advanced state of that kind of vegetable
fossilisation which was perfected on such an immense scale, and during
an infinite length of time in the coal period.

The Purbeck beds, which are sometimes subdivided into Lower, Middle, and
Upper, are mostly fresh-water formations, intimately connected with the
Upper Portland beds. But there they begin and end, being scarcely
recognisable except in Dorsetshire, in the sea-cliffs of which they were
first studied. They are finely exposed in Durdlestone Bay, near Swanage,
and at Lulworth Cove, on the same coast. The _lower beds_ consist of a
purely fresh-water marl, eighty feet thick, containing shells of
_Cypris_, _Limnæa_, and some _Serpulæ_ in a bed of marl of
brackish-water origin, and some _Cypris_-bearing shales, strangely
broken up at the west end of the Isle of Purbeck.

The _Middle series_ consists of twelve feet of marine strata known as
the “cinder-beds,” formed of a vast accumulation of _Ostrea distorta_,
resting on fresh-water strata full of _Cypris fasciculata_, _Planorbis_,
and _Limnæa_, by which this strata has been identified as far inland as
the vale of Wardour in Wiltshire. Above the cinder-beds are shales and
limestones, partly of fresh-water and partly of brackish-water origin,
in which are Fishes, many species of Lepidotus, and the crocodilian
reptile, _Macrorhynchus_. On this rests a purely marine deposit, with
_Pecten_, _Avicula_, &c. Above, again, are brackish beds with _Cyrena_,
overlying which is thirty feet of fresh-water limestone, with _Fishes_,
_Turtles_, and _Cyprides_.

The _upper beds_ are purely fresh-water strata, about fifty feet thick,
containing _Paludina_, _Physa_, _Limnæa_, all very abundant. In these
beds the Purbeck marble, formerly much used in the ornamental
architecture of the old English cathedrals, was formerly quarried. (See
Note, page 274.)

       *       *       *       *       *

A few words may be added, in explanation of the term _oolite_, applied
to this sub-period of the Jurassic formation. In a great number of rocks
of this series the elements are neither crystalline nor amorphous--they
are, as we have already said, oolitic; that is to say, the mass has the
form of the roe of certain fishes. The question naturally enough arises,
Whence this singular oolitic structure assumed by the components of
certain rocks? It is asserted that the grinding action of the sea acting
upon the precipitated limestone produces rounded forms analogous to
grains of sand. This hypothesis may be well founded in some cases. The
marine sediments which are deposited in some of the warm bays of
Teneriffe are found to take the spheroidal granulated form of the
oolite. But these local facts cannot be made to apply to the whole
extent of the oolitic formations. We must, therefore, look further for
an explanation of the phenomena.

It is admitted that if the cascades of Tivoli, for example, can give
birth to the oolitic grains, the same thing happens in the quietest
basins, that in stalactite-caverns oolitic grains develop themselves,
which afterwards, becoming cemented together from the continued, but
very slow, affluence of the calcareous waters, give rise to certain
kinds of oolitic rocks.

On the other hand, it is known that nodules, more or less large, develop
themselves in marls in consequence of the concentration of the
calcareous elements, without the possibility of any wearing action of
water. Now, as there exists every gradation of size between the smallest
oolitic grains and the largest concretions, it is reasonable to suppose
that the oolites are equally the product of concentration.

Finally, from research to research, it is found that perfectly
constituted oolites--that is to say, concentric layers, as in the
Jurassic limestone--develop themselves in vegetable earth in places
where the effects of water in motion is not more admissible than in the
preceding instances.

Thus we arrive at the conclusion, that if Nature sometimes forms
crystals with perfect terminations in magmas in the course of
solidification, she gives rise also to spheroidal forms surrounding
various centres, which sometimes originate spontaneously, and in other
cases are accumulated round the débris of fossils, or even mere grains
of sand. Nevertheless, all mineral substances are not alike calculated
to produce oolitic rocks; putting aside some particular cases, this
property is confined to limestone and oxide of iron.

       *       *       *       *       *

With regard to the distribution of the Jurassic formation on the
terrestrial globe, it may be stated that the Cotteswold Hills in
England, and in France the Jura mountains, are almost entirely composed
of these rocks, the several series of beds being all represented in
them--this circumstance, in fact, induced Von Humboldt to name the
formation after this latter range. The Upper Lias also exists in the
Pyrenees and in the Alps; in Spain; in many parts of Northern Italy; in
Russia, especially in the government of Moscow, and in the Crimea; but
it is in Germany where it occupies the most important place. A thin bed
of oolitic limestone presents, at Solenhofen in Bavaria, a geological
repository of great celebrity, containing fossil Plants, Fishes,
Insects, Crustaceans, with some Pterodactyles, admirably preserved; it
yielded also some of the earliest of the feathered race. The fine
quarries of lithographic stone at Pappenheim, so celebrated all over
Europe, belong to the Jurassic formation.

It has recently been announced that these rocks have been found in
India; they contribute largely to the formation of the main mass of the
Himalayas, and to the chain of the Andes in South America; finally, from
recent investigations, they seem to be present in New Zealand.

In England the Lias constitutes a well-defined belt about thirty miles
broad, extending from Dorsetshire, in the south, to Yorkshire, in the
north, formed of alternate beds of clay, shales, and limestone (with
layers of jet), on the coast near Whitby. It is rich, as we have seen,
in ancient life, and that in the strongest forms imaginable. From the
unequal hardness of the rocks it comprises, it stands out boldly in some
of the minor ranges of hills, adding greatly to the picturesque beauty
of the scenery in the centre of the country. In Scotland the formation
occupies a very limited space.

A map of the country at the close of the Jurassic period would probably
show double the extent of dry land in the British Islands, compared with
what it displayed as an island in the primordial ocean; but Devon and
Cornwall had long risen from the sea, and it is probable that the
Jurassic beds of Dorsetshire and France were connected by a tongue of
land running from Cherbourg to the Liassic beds of Dorsetshire, and that
Boulogne, still an island, was similarly connected with the Weald.

[Illustration: Fig. 125.--Crioceras Duvallii, Sowerby. A non-involuted
Ammonite. (Neocomian.)]

    NOTE.--Sections of the Purbeck strata of Dorsetshire have been
    constructed by Mr. Bristow, from actual measurement, in the
    several localities in the Isle of Purbeck, where they are most
    clearly and instructively displayed.

    These sections, published by the Geological Survey, show in
    detail the beds in their regular and natural order of
    succession, with the thickness, mineral character, and contents,
    as well as the fossils, of each separate bed.


THE CRETACEOUS PERIOD.

The name _Cretaceous_ (from _creta_, chalk) is given to this epoch in
the history of our globe because the rocks deposited by the sea, towards
its close, are almost entirely composed of chalk (carbonate of lime).

Carbonate of lime, however, does not now appear for the first time as a
part of the earth’s crust; we have already seen limestone occurring,
among the terrestrial materials, from the Silurian period; the Jurassic
formation is largely composed of carbonate of lime in many of its beds,
which are enormous in number as well as extent; it appears, therefore,
that in the period called _Cretaceous_ by geologists, carbonate of lime
was no new substance in the constitution of the globe. If geologists
have been led to give this name to the period, it is because it accords
better than any other with the characteristics of the period; with the
vast accumulations of chalky or earthy limestone in the Paris basin, and
the beds of so-called Greensand, and Chalk of the same age, so largely
developed in England.

We have already endeavoured to establish the origin of lime, in speaking
of the Silurian and Devonian periods, but it may be useful to
recapitulate the explanation here, even at the risk of repeating
ourselves.

We have said that lime was, in all probability, introduced to the globe
by thermal waters flowing abundantly through the fissures, dislocations,
and fractures in the ground, which were themselves caused by the gradual
cooling of the globe; the central nucleus being the grand reservoir and
source of the materials which form the solid crust. In the same manner,
therefore, as the several eruptive substances--such as granites,
porphyries, trachytes, basalts, and lava--have been ejected, so have
thermal waters charged with carbonate of lime, and often accompanied by
silica, found their way to the surface in great abundance, through the
fissures, fractures, and dislocations in the crust of the earth. We need
only mention here the Iceland geysers, the springs of Plombières, and
the well-known thermal springs of Bath and elsewhere in this country.

But how comes lime in a state of bicarbonate, dissolved in these
thermal waters, to form rocks? That is what we propose to explain.

During the primary geological periods, thermal waters, as they reached
the surface, were discharged into the sea and united themselves with the
waves of the vast primordial ocean, and the waters of the sea became
sensibly calcareous--they contained, it is believed, from one to two per
cent. of lime. The innumerable animals, especially Zoophytes, and
Mollusca with solid shells, with which the ancient seas swarmed,
secreted this lime, out of which they built up their mineral
dwelling--or shell. In this liquid and chemically calcareous medium, the
Foraminifera and Polyps of all forms swarmed, forming an innumerable
population. Now what became of the bodies of these creatures after
death? They were of all sizes, but chiefly microscopic; that is, so
small as to be individually all but invisible to the naked eye. The
perishable animal matter disappeared in the bosom of the waters by
decomposition, but there still remained behind the indestructible
inorganic matter, that is to say, the carbonate of lime forming their
testaceous covering; these calcareous deposits accumulating in thick
beds at the bottom of the sea, became compacted into a solid mass, and
formed a series of continuous beds superimposed on each other. These,
increasing imperceptibly in the course of ages, ultimately formed the
rocks of the _Cretaceous_ period, which we have now under consideration.

These statements are not, as the reader might conceive from their
nature, a romantic conception invented to please the imagination of
those in search of a system--the time is past when geology should be
regarded as the romance of Nature--nor has what we advance at all the
character of an arbitrary conception. One is no doubt struck with
surprise on learning, for the first time, that all the limestone rocks,
all the calcareous stones employed in the construction of our dwellings,
our cities, our castles and cathedrals, were deposited in the seas of an
earlier world, and are only composed of an aggregation of shells of
Mollusca, or fragments of the testaceous coverings of Foraminifera and
other Zoophytes--nay, that they were secreted from the water itself, and
then assimilated by these minute creatures, and that this would appear
to have been the great object of their creation in such myriads. Whoever
will take the trouble to observe, and reflect on what he observes, will
find all his doubts vanish. If chalk be examined with a microscope, it
will be found to be composed of the remains of numerous Zoophytes, of
minute and divers kinds of shells, and, above all, of Foraminifera, so
small that their very minuteness seems to have rendered them
indestructible. A hundred and fifty of these small beings placed end to
end, in a line, will only occupy the space of about one-twelfth part of
an inch.

[Illustration: Chalk under the Microscope.

Fig. 126.--Chalk of Meudon (magnified).]

Much of this curious information was unknown, or at least only
suspected, when Ehrenberg began his microscopical investigations. From
small samples of chalk reduced to powder, placed upon the object-glass,
and examined under the microscope, Ehrenberg prepared the designs which
we reproduce from his learned micrographical work, in which some of the
elegant forms discovered in the Chalk are illustrated, greatly
magnified. Fig. 126 represents the chalk of Meudon, in France, in which
ammonite-like forms of Foraminifera and others, equally beautiful,
appear. Fig. 127, from the chalk of Gravesend, contains similar objects.
Fig. 128 is an example of chalk from the island of Moën, in Denmark;
and Fig. 129, that which is found in the Tertiary rocks of Cattolica, in
Sicily. In all these the shells of Ammonites appear, with clusters of
round Foraminifera and other Zoophytes. In two of these engravings
(Figs. 126 and 128), the chalk is represented in two modes--in the upper
half, by transparency or transmitted light; in the lower half, the mass
is exhibited by superficial or reflected light.

[Illustration: Chalk under the Microscope.

Fig. 127.--Chalk of Gravesend. (After Ehrenberg).--Magnified.]

Observation, then, establishes the truth of the explanation we have
given concerning the formation of the chalky or Cretaceous rocks; but
the question still remains--How did these rocks, originally deposited in
the sea, become elevated into hills of great height, with bold
escarpments, like those known in England as the North and South Downs?
The answer to this involves the consideration of other questions which
have, at present, scarcely got beyond hypothesis.

[Illustration: Chalk under the Microscope.

Fig. 128.--Chalk of the Isle of Moën, Denmark.]

[Illustration: Chalk under the Microscope.

Fig. 129.--Chalk of Cattolica, Sicily (magnified).]

During and after the deposition of the Portland and Purbeck beds, the
entire Oolite Series, in the south and centre of England and other
regions, was raised above the sea-level and became dry land. Above these
Purbeck beds, as Professor Ramsay tells us [in the district known as the
Weald], “we have a series of beds of clays, sandstones, and shelly
limestones, indicating by their fossils that they were deposited in an
estuary where fresh water and occasionally brackish water and marine
conditions prevailed. The Wealden and Purbeck beds indeed represent the
delta of an immense river which in size may have rivalled the Ganges,
Mississippi, Amazon, &c., and whose waters carried down to its mouth the
remains of land-plants, small Mammals, and great terrestrial Reptiles,
and mingled them with the remains of Fishes, Molluscs, and other forms
native to its waters. I do not say that this immense river was formed
or supplied by the drainage of what we now call Great Britain--I do not
indeed know where this continent lay, but I do know that England formed
a part of it, and that in size it must have been larger than Europe, and
was probably as large as Asia, or the great continent of America.”
Speaking of the geographical extent of the Wealden, Sir Charles Lyell
says: “It cannot be accurately laid down, because so much of it is
concealed beneath the newer marine formations. It has been traced about
200 miles from west to east; from the coast of Dorsetshire to near
Boulogne, in France; and nearly 200 miles from north-west to
south-east, from Surrey and Hampshire to Beauvais, in France;”[75] but
he expresses doubt, supposing the formation to have been continuous, if
the two areas were contemporaneous, the region having undergone frequent
changes, the great estuary having altered its form, and even shifted its
place. Speaking of a hypothetical continent, Sir Charles Lyell says: “If
it be asked where the continent was placed from the ruins of which the
Wealden strata were derived, and by the drainage of which a great river
was fed, we are half tempted to speculate on the former existence of the
Atlantis of Plato. The story of the submergence of an ancient continent,
however fabulous in history, must have been true again and again as a
geological event.”[76]

  [75] “Elements of Geology,” p. 349.

  [76] Ibid, p. 350.

The proof that the Wealden series were accumulated under fresh-water
conditions and as a river deposit[77] lies partly in the nature of the
strata, but chiefly in the nature of the organic remains. The fish give
no positive proof, but a number of Crocodilian reptiles give more
conclusive evidence, together with the shells, most of them being of
fresh-water origin, such as Paludina, Planorbis, Lymnæa, Physa, and such
like, which are found living in many ponds and rivers of the present
day. Now and then we find bands of marine remains, not mixed with
fresh-water deposits, but interstratified with them; showing that at
times the mouth and delta of the river had sunk a little, and that it
had been invaded by the sea; then by gradual change it was lifted up,
and became an extensive fresh-water area. This episode at last comes to
an end by the complete submergence of the Wealden area; and upon these
fresh-water strata a set of marine sands and clays, and upon these again
thick beds of pure white earthy limestone of the Cretaceous period were
deposited. The lowest of these formations is known as the Lower
Greensand; then followed the clays of the Gault, which were succeeded by
the Upper Greensand. Then, resting upon the Upper Greensand, comes the
vast mass of Chalk which in England consists of soft white earthy
limestone, containing, in the upper part, numerous bands of
interstratified flints, which were mostly sponges originally, that have
since become silicified and converted into flint. The strata of chalk
where thickest are from 1,000 to 1,200 feet in thickness. Their upheaval
into dry land brought this epoch to an end; the conditions which had
contributed to its formation ceased in our area, and as the uppermost
member of the Secondary rocks, it closes the record of Mesozoic times in
England.

  [77] “The Physical Geology and Geography of Great Britain,” by A. C.
       Ramsay, F.R.S., p. 64.

Let us add, to remove any remaining doubts, that in the basin of a
modern European sea--the Baltic--a curious assemblage of phenomena,
bearing on the question, is now in operation. The bed and coast-line of
the Baltic continue slowly but unceasingly to rise, and have done so for
several centuries, in consequence of the constant deposit which takes
place of calcareous shells, added to the natural accumulations of sand
and mud. The Baltic Sea will certainly be filled up in time by these
deposits, and this modern phenomenon, which we find in progress, so to
speak, brings directly under our observation an explanation of the
manner in which the cretaceous rocks were produced in the ancient world,
more especially when taken in connection with another branch of the same
subject to which Sir Charles Lyell called attention, in an address to
the Geological Society. It appears that just as the northern part of the
Scandinavian continent is now rising, and while the middle part south of
Stockholm remains unmoved, the southern extremity in Scania is sinking,
or at least has sunk, within the historic period; from which he argues
that there may have been a slow upheaval in one region, while the
adjoining one was stationary, or in course of submergence.

After these explanations as to the manner in which the cretaceous rocks
were formed, let us examine into the state of animal and vegetable life
during this important period in the earth’s history.

The vegetable kingdom of this period forms an introduction to the
vegetation of the present time. Placed at the close of the Secondary
epoch, this vegetation prepares us for transition, as it were, to the
vegetation of the Tertiary epoch, which, as we shall see, has a great
affinity with that of our own times.

The landscapes of the ancient world have hitherto shown us some species
of plants of forms strange and little known, which are now extinct. But
during the period whose history we are tracing, the vegetable kingdom
begins to fashion itself in a less mysterious manner; Palms appear, and
among the regular species we recognise some which differ little from
those of the tropics of our days. The dicotyledons increase slightly in
number amid Ferns and Cycads, which have lost much of their importance
in numbers and size; we observe an obvious increase in the dicotyledons
of our own temperate climate, such as the alder, the wych-elm, the
maple, and the walnut, &c.

“As we retire from the times of the primitive creation,” says Lecoq,
“and slowly approach those of our own epoch, the sediments seem to
withdraw themselves from the polar regions and restrict themselves to
the temperate or equatorial zones. The great beds of sand and
limestone, which constitute the Cretaceous formation, announce a state
of things very different from that of the preceding ages. The seasons
are no longer marked by indications of central heat; zones of latitude
already show signs of their existence.

“Hitherto two classes of vegetation predominated: the cellular
_Cryptogams_ at first, the dicotyledonous _Gymnosperms_ afterwards; and
in the epoch which we have reached--the transition epoch of
vegetation--the two classes which have reigned heretofore become
enfeebled, and a third, the dicotyledonous _Angiosperms_, timidly take
possession of the earth--they consist at first of a small number of
species, and occupy only a small part of the soil, of which they
afterwards take their full share; and in the succeeding periods, as in
our own times, we shall see that their reign is firmly established;
during the Cretaceous period, in short, we witness the appearance of the
first dicotyledonous _Angiosperms_. Some arborescent Ferns still
maintain their position, and the elegant _Protopteris Singeri_,
Preissl., and P. _Buvigneri_, Brongn., still unfold their light fronds
to the winds of this period. Some _Pecopteri_, differing from the
Wealden species, live along with them. Some _Zamites_, _Cycads_, and
_Zamiostrobi_ announce that in the Cretaceous period the temperature was
still high. New Palms show themselves, and, among others, _Flabellaria
chamæropifolia_ is especially remarkable for the majestic crown at its
summit.

“The _Conifers_ have endured better than the _Cycadeæ_; they formed
then, as now, great forests, where _Damarites_, _Cunninghamias_,
_Araucarias_, _Eleoxylons_, _Abietites_, and _Pinites_ remind us of
numerous forms still existing, but dispersed all over the earth.

“From this epoch date the _Comptonias_, attributed to the Myricaceæ;
_Almites Friesii_, Nils., which we consider as one of the Betulaceæ;
_Carpinites arenaceus_, Gœp., which is one of the Cupuliferæ; the
_Salicites_, which are represented to us by the arborescent willows; the
Acerinæ would have their _Acerites cretaceæ_, Nils., and the Juglanditæ,
the _Juglandites elegans_, Gœp. But the most interesting botanical event
of this period is the appearance of the _Credneria_, with its
triple-veined leaves, of which no less than eight species have been
found and described, but whose place in the systems of classification
still remains uncertain. The _Crednerias_, like the _Salicites_, were
certainly trees, as were most of the species of this remote epoch.”

In the following illustration are represented two of the Palms belonging
to the Cretaceous period, restored from the imprints and fragments of
the fossil remains left by the trunk and branches in the rocks of the
period (Fig. 130.)

[Illustration: Fig. 130.--Fossil Palms restored.]

But if the vegetation of the Cretaceous period exhibits sensible signs
of approximation to that of our present era, we cannot say the same of
the animal creation. The time has not yet come when Mammals analogous to
those of our epoch gave animation to the forests, plains, and shores of
the ancient world; even the Marsupial Mammals, which made their
appearance in the Liassic and Oolitic formations, no longer exist, so
far as is known, and no others of the class have taken their place. No
climbing Opossum, with its young ones, appears among the leaves of the
Zamites. The earth appears to be still tenanted by Reptiles, which alone
break the solitudes of the woods and the silence of the valleys. The
Reptiles, which seem to have swarmed in the seas of the Jurassic period,
partook of the crocodilian organisation, and those of this period seem
to bear more resemblance to the Lizards of our day. In this period the
remains of certain forms indicate that they stood on higher legs; they
no longer creep on the earth, and this is apparently the only
approximation which seems to connect them more closely with higher
forms.

It is not without surprise that we advert to the immense development,
the extraordinary dimensions which the Saurian family attained at this
epoch. These animals which, in our days, rarely exceed a yard or so in
length, attained in the Cretaceous period as much as twenty. The marine
lizard, which we notice under the name of _Mosasaurus_, was then the
scourge of the seas, playing the part of the Ichthyosauri of the
Jurassic period; for, from the age of the Lias to that of the Chalk, the
Ichthyosauri, the Plesiosauri, and the Teleosauri were, judging from
their organisation, the tyrants of the waters. They appear to have
become extinct at the close of the Cretaceous period, and to give place
to the _Mosasaurus_, to whom fell the formidable task of keeping within
proper limits the exuberant production of the various tribes of Fishes
and Crustaceans which inhabited the seas. This creature was first
discovered in the celebrated rocks of St. Peter’s Mount at Maestricht,
on the banks of the Meuse. The skull alone was about four feet in
length, while the entire skeleton of _Iguanodon Mantelli_, discovered by
Dr. Mantell in the Wealden strata, has since been met with in the
Hastings beds of Tilgate Forest, measuring, as Professor Owen estimates,
between fifty and sixty feet in length. These enormous Saurians
disappear in their turn, to be replaced in the seas of the Tertiary
epoch by the Cetaceans; and henceforth animal life begins to assume,
more and more, the appearance it presents in the actually existing
creation.

Seeing the great extent of the seas of the Cretaceous period, Fishes
were necessarily numerous. The pike, salmon, and dory tribes, analogous
to those of our days, lived in the seas of this period; they fled before
the sharks and voracious dog-fishes, which now appeared in great
numbers, after just showing themselves in the Oolitic period.

The sea was still full of Polyps, Sea-urchins, Crustaceans of various
kinds, and many genera of Mollusca different from those of the Jurassic
period; alongside of gigantic Lizards are whole piles of
animalculæ--those Foraminifera whose remains are scattered in infinite
profusion in the Chalk, over an enormous area and of immense thickness.
The calcareous remains of these little beings, incalculable in number,
have indeed covered, in all probability, a great part of the terrestrial
surface. It will give a sufficient idea of the importance of the
Cretaceous period in connection with these organisms to state that, in
the rocks of the period, 268 genera of animals, hitherto unknown, and
more than 5,000 species of special living beings have been found; the
thickness of the rocks formed during the period being enormous. Where is
the geologist who will venture to estimate the time occupied in creating
and destroying the animated masses of which this formation is at once
both the cemetery and the monument? For the purposes of description it
will be convenient to divide the Cretaceous series into lower and upper,
according to their relative ages and their peculiar fossils.


THE LOWER CRETACEOUS PERIOD.

  English equivalents.              French classification.

  Lower Greensand, upper part.      Étage Aptien st.
  Lower Greensand, lower part.        „   Néocomien supérieur.
  Weald clay and Hastings sands.      „   Néocomien inférieur.

The Lower Wealden or Hastings Sand consists of sand, sandstone, and
calciferous grit, clay, and shale, the argillaceous strata
predominating. This part of the Wealden consists, in descending order,
of:--

                                                                 Feet.
  Tunbridge Wells sand--Sandstone and loam                        150
  Wadhurst clay--Blue and brown shale and clay, with a little
  calc grit                                                       100
  Ashdown sands--Hard sand, with beds of calc grit                160
  Ashburnham sands--Mottled, white, and red clay and sandstone    330

The Hastings sand has a hard bed of white sand in its upper part, whose
steep natural cliffs produce the picturesque scenery of the “High rocks”
of Hastings in Sussex.

Calcareous sandstone and grit, in which Dr. Mantell found the remains of
the _Iguanodon_ and _Hylæosaurus_, form an upper member of the
Tunbridge Wells Sand. The formation extends over Hanover and Westphalia;
the Wealden of these countries, according to Dr. Dunker and Von Meyer,
corresponding in their fossils and mineral characters with those of the
English series. So that “we can scarcely hesitate,” says Lyell, “to
refer the whole to one great delta.”[78]

  [78] Lyell’s “Elements of Geology,” p. 349.

The overlying Weald clay crops out from beneath the Lower Greensand in
various parts of Kent and Sussex, and again in the Isle of Wight, and in
the Isle of Purbeck, where it reappears at the base of the chalk.

The upper division (or the Weald clay) is, as we have said, of purely
fresh-water origin, and is supposed to have been the estuary of some
vast river which, like the African Quorra, may have formed a delta some
hundreds of miles broad, as suggested by Dr. Dunker and Von Meyer.

The Lower Greensand is known, also, as the _Néocomien_, after Neocomium,
the Latin name of the city of Neufchatel, in Switzerland, where this
formation is largely developed, and where, also, it was first recognised
and established as a distinct formation. Dr. Fitton, in his excellent
monograph of the Lower Cretaceous formations, gives the following
descending succession of rocks as observable in many parts of Kent:--

                                                           Feet.

  1. Sand, white, yellowish, or brown, with concretions
     of limestone and chert                                     70
  2. Sand, with green matter                             70 to 100
  3. Calcareous stone, called Kentish rag                60 to  80

These divisions, which are traceable more or less from the southern part
of the Isle of Wight to Hythe in Kent, present considerable variations.
At Atherfield, where sixty-three distinct strata, measuring 843 feet,
have been noticed, the limestone is wholly wanting, and some fossils
range through the whole series, while others are confined to particular
divisions; but Prof. E. Forbes states, that when the same conditions are
repeated in overlying strata the same species reappear; but that changes
of depth, or of the mineral nature of the sea-bottom, the presence or
absence of lime or of peroxide of iron, the occurrence of a muddy,
sandy, or gravelly bottom, are marked by the absence of certain species,
and the predominance of others.[79]

  [79] Ibid, p. 340.

Among the marine fauna of the Néocomian series the following are the
principal. Among the _Acephala_, one of the largest and most abundant
shells of the lower Néocomian, as displayed in the Atherfield section,
is the large _Perna Mulleti_ (Fig. 131).

[Illustration: Fig. 131.--Perna Mulleti. One-quarter natural size.

_a_, exterior; _b_, part of the upper hinge.]

[Illustration: Fig. 132.--Hamites. One-third natural size.]

The _Scaphites_ have a singular boat-shaped form, wound with contiguous
whorls in one part, which is detached at the last chamber, and projects
in a more or less elongated condition.

_Hamites_, _Crioceras_, and _Ancyloceras_ have club-like terminations
at both extremities; they may almost be considered as non-involuted
Ammonites with the spiral evolutions disconnected or partially unrolled,
as in the engraving (Figs. 125 and 132). _Ancyloceras Matheronianus_
seems to have had spines projecting from the ridge of each of the
convolutions.

[Illustration: Fig. 133.--Shell of Turritella terebra.

(Living form.)]

[Illustration: Fig. 134.--Turrillites costatus.

(Chalk.)]

The _Toxoceras_ had the shell also curved, and not spiral.

The _Baculites_ had the shell differing from all Cephalopods, inasmuch
as it was elongated, conical, perfectly straight, sometimes very
slender, and tapering to a point.

The _Turrilites_ have the shell regular, spiral, and _sinistral_; that
is, turning to the left in an oblique spiral of contiguous whorls. The
engraving will convey the idea of their form (Fig. 134).

Among others, as examples of form, we append Figs. 133, 135, 136.

This analysis of the marine fauna belonging to the Néocomian formation
might be carried much further, did space permit, or did it promise to be
useful; but, without illustration, any further merely verbal description
would be almost valueless.

[Illustration: Fig. 135--Terebrirostra lyra.

_a_, back view; _b_, side view.]

[Illustration: Fig. 136.--Terebratula deformis.]

Numerous Reptiles, a few Birds, among which are some “Waders,” belong to
the genera of _Palæornis_ or _Cimoliornis_; new Molluscs in considerable
quantities, and some extremely varied Zoophytes, constitute the rich
fauna of the Lower Chalk. A glance at the more important of these
animals, which we only know in a few mutilated fragments, is all our
space allows; they are true medals of the history of our globe, medals,
it is true, half effaced by time, but which consecrate the memory of
departed ages.

In the year 1832 Dr. Mantell added to the wonderful discoveries he had
made in the Weald of Sussex, that of the great Lizard-of-the-woods, the
_hylæosaurus_ (ὑλη, _wood_, σαυρος, _lizard_). This discovery was made
in Tilgate forest, near Cuckfield, and the animal appears to have been
from twenty to thirty feet in length. The osteological characters
presented by the remains of the Hylæosaurus are described by Dr. Mantell
as affording another example of the blending of the Crocodilian with the
Lacertian type of structure; for we have, in the pectoral arch, the
scapula or omoplate of a crocodile associated with the coracoid of a
lizard. Another remarkable feature in these fossils is the presence of
the large angular bones or spines, which, there is reason to infer,
constituted a serrated crest along the middle of the back; and the
numerous small oval dermal bones which appear to have been arranged in
longitudinal series along each side of the dorsal fringe.

The _Megalosaurus_, the earliest appearance of which is among the more
ancient beds of the Liassic and Oolitic series, is again found at the
base of the Cretaceous rocks. It was, as we have seen, an enormous
lizard, borne upon slightly raised feet; its length exceeded forty feet,
and in bulk it was equal to an elephant seven feet high.

[Illustration: Fig. 137.--Lower Jaw of the Megalosaurus.]

[Illustration: Fig. 138.--Tooth of Megalosaurus.]

The Megalosaurus found in the ferruginous sands of Cuckfield, in Sussex,
in the upper beds of the Hastings Sands, must have been at least sixty
or seventy feet long. Cuvier considered that it partook both of the
structure of the Iguana and the Monitors, the latter of which belong to
the Lacertian Reptiles which haunt the banks of the Nile and tropical
India. The Megalosaurus was probably an amphibious Saurian. The
complicated structure and marvellous arrangement of the teeth prove that
it was essentially carnivorous. It fed probably on other Reptiles of
moderate size, such as the Crocodiles and Turtles which are found in a
fossil state in the same beds. The jaw represented in Fig. 137 is the
most important fragment of the animal we possess. It is the lower jaw,
and supports many teeth: it shows that the head terminated in a straight
muzzle, thin and flat on the sides, like that of the _Gavial_, the
Crocodile of India. The teeth of the Megalosaurus were in perfect accord
with the destructive functions with which this formidable creature was
endowed. They partake at once of the nature of a knife, sabre, and saw.
Vertical at their junction with the jaw, they assume, with the increased
age of the animal, a backward curve, giving them the form of a
gardener’s pruning-knife (Fig. 138; also _c._ Fig. 179). After
mentioning some other particulars, respecting the teeth, Buckland says:
“With teeth constructed so as to cut with the whole of their concave
edge, each movement of the jaws produced the combined effect of a knife
and a saw, at the same time that the point made a first incision like
that made by a point of a double-cutting sword. The backward curvature
taken by the teeth at their full growth renders the escape of the prey
when once seized impossible. We find here, then, the same arrangements
which enable mankind to put in operation many of the instruments which
they employ.”

[Illustration: Fig. 139.--Nasal Horn of Iguanodon.

Two-thirds natural size.]

[Illustration: Fig. 140.--Ammonites rostratus.

(Upper Greensand.)]

The _Iguanodon_, signifying _Iguana-toothed_ (from the Greek word,
οδους, _tooth_), was more gigantic still than the Megalosaurus; one of
the most colossal, indeed, of all the Saurians of the ancient world
which research has yet exposed to the light of day. Professor Owen and
Dr. Mantell were not agreed as to the form of the tail; the former
gentleman assigning it a short tail, which would affect Dr. Mantell’s
estimate of its probable length of fifty or sixty feet; the largest
thigh-bone yet found measures four feet eight inches in length. The form
and disposition of the feet, added to the existence of a bony horn (Fig.
139), on the upper part of the muzzle or snout, almost identifies it as
a species with the existing Iguanas, the only Reptile which is known to
be provided with such a horn upon the nose; there is, therefore, no
doubt as to the resemblance between these two animals; but while the
largest of living Iguanas scarcely exceeds a yard in length, its fossil
congener was probably fifteen or sixteen times that length. It is
difficult to resist the feeling of astonishment, not to say incredulity,
which creeps over one while contemplating so striking a disproportion as
that which subsists between this being of the ancient world and its ally
of the new.

[Illustration: Fig. 141.--Teeth of Iguanodon.

_a_, young tooth; _b_, _c_, teeth further advanced, and worn.

(Wealden.)]

The Iguanodon carried, as we have said, a horn on its muzzle; the bone
of its thigh, as we have seen, surpassed that of the Elephant in size;
the form of the bone and feet demonstrates that it was formed for
terrestrial locomotion; and its dental system shows that it was
herbivorous.

[Illustration: Fig. 142.--Fishes of the Cretaceous period.

1, Beryx Lewesiensis; 2, Osmeroides Mantelli.]

The teeth (Fig. 141), which are the most important and characteristic
organs of the whole animal, are imbedded laterally in grooves, or
sockets, in the dentary bone; there are three or four sockets of
successional teeth on the inner side of the base of the old teeth. The
place thus occupied by the edges of the teeth, their trenchant and
saw-like form, their mode of curvature, the points where they become
broader or narrower which turn them into a species of nippers or
scissors--are all suitable for cutting and tearing the tough vegetable
substances which are also found among the remains buried with this
colossal reptile, a restoration of which is represented in PLATE XXI.,
p. 296.

       *       *       *       *       *

The Cretaceous seas contained great numbers of Fishes, among which some
were remarkable for their strange forms. The _Beryx Lewesiensis_ (1),
and the _Osmeroides Mantelli_ (2) (Fig. 142), are restorations of these
two species as they are supposed to have been in life. The _Odontaspis_
is a new genus of Fishes which may be mentioned. _Ammonites rostratus_
(Fig. 140), and _Exogyra conica_ (Fig. 147), are common shells in the
Upper Greensand.

[Illustration: XXI.--Ideal scene in the Lower Cretaceous Period, with
Iguanodon and Megalosaurus.]

The seas of the Lower Cretaceous period were remarkable in a zoological
point of view for the great number of species and the multiplicity of
generic forms of molluscous Cephalopods. The Ammonites assume quite
gigantic dimensions; and we find among them new species distinguished by
their furrowed transverse spaces, as in the _Hamites_ (Fig. 132). Some
of the _Ancyloceras_ attained the magnitude of six feet, and other
genera, as the _Scaphites_, the _Toxoceras_, the _Crioceras_ (Fig. 125),
and other Mollusca, unknown till this period, appeared now. Many
Echinoderms, or sea-urchins, and Zoophytes, have enriched these rocks
with their animal remains, and would give its seas a condition quite
peculiar.

On the opposite page an ideal landscape of the period is represented
(PLATE XXI.), in which the Iguanodon and Megalosaurus struggle for the
mastery in the centre of a forest, which enables us also to convey some
idea of the vegetation of the period. Here we note a vegetation at once
exotic and temperate--a flora like that of the tropics, and also
resembling our own. On the left we observe a group of trees, which
resemble the dicotyledonous plants of our forests. The elegant
_Credneria_ is there, whose botanical place is still doubtful, for its
fruit has not been found, although it is believed to have belonged to
plants with two seed-leaves, or dicotyledonous, and the arborescent
Amentaceæ. An entire group of trees, composed of Ferns and Zamites, are
in the background; in the extreme distance are some Palms. We also
recognise in the picture the alder, the wych-elm, the maple, and the
walnut-tree, or at least species analogous to these.

       *       *       *       *       *

The Néocomian beds in France are found in Champagne, in the departments
of the Aube, the Yonne, the Haute-Alps, &c. They are largely developed
in Switzerland at Neufchatel, and in Germany.

1. The Lower Néocomian consists of marls and greyish clay, alternating
with thin beds of grey limestone. It is very thick, and occurs at
Neufchatel and in the Drôme. The fossils are _Spatangus retusus_,
_Crioceras_ (Fig. 125), _Ammonites Asterianus_, &c.

2. _Orgonian_ (the limestone of Orgon). This group exists, also, at
Aix-les-Bains in Savoy, at Grenoble, and generally in the thick, white,
calcareous beds which form the precipices of the Drôme. The fossils
_Chama ammonia_, _Pigaulus_, &c.

3. The _Aptien_ (or Greensand) consists generally of marls and clay. In
France it is found in the department of Vaucluse, at Apt (whence the
name Aptien), in the department of the Yonne, and in the Haute-Marne.
Fossils, _Ancyloceras Matheronianus_, _Ostrea aquila_, and _Plicatula
placunea_. These beds consist here of greyish clay, which is used for
making tiles; there of bluish argillaceous limestone, in black or
brownish flags. In the Isle of Wight it becomes a fine sandstone,
greyish and slightly argillaceous, which at Havre, and in some parts of
the country of Bray, become well-developed ferruginous sandstones.

[Illustration: Fig. 143.--Cypris spinigera.]

[Illustration: Fig. 144.--Cypris Valdensis.]

We have noted that the Lower Néocomian formation, although a marine
deposit, is in some respects the equivalent of the _Weald Clay_, a
fresh-water formation of considerable importance on account of its
fossils. We have seen that it was either formed at the mouth of a great
river, or the river was sufficiently powerful for the fresh-water
current to be carried out to sea, carrying with it some animals, forming
a fluviatile, or lacustrine fauna, on a small scale. These were small
Crustaceans of the genus _Cypris_, with some molluscous Gasteropoda of
the genera _Melania_, _Paludina_, and acephalous Mollusca of the five
genera _Cyrena_, _Unio_, _Mytilus_, _Cyclas_, and _Ostrea_. Of these,
_Cypris spinigera_ (Fig. 143) and _Cypris Valdensis_ (Fig. 144) may be
considered as among the most characteristic fossils of this local fauna.

The Cretaceous series is not interesting for its fossils alone; it
presents also an interesting subject for study in a mineralogical point
of view. The white Chalk, examined under the microscope by Ehrenberg,
shows a curious globiform structure. The green part of its sandstone and
limestone constitutes very singular compounds. According to the result
of Berthier’s analysis, we must consider them as silicates of iron. The
iron shows itself here not in beds, as in the Jurassic rocks, but in
masses, in a species of pocket in the Orgonian beds. They are usually
hydrates in the state of hematites, accompanied by quantities of ochre
so abundant that they are frequently unworkable. In the south of France
these veins were mined to a great depth by the ancient monks, who were
the metallurgists of their age. But for the artist the important
Orgonian beds possess a special interest; their admirable vertical
fractures, their erect perpendicular peaks, each surpassing the other in
boldness, form his finest studies. In the Var, the defiles of Vésubia,
of the Esteron, and Tinéa, are jammed up between walls of peaks, for
many hundreds of yards, between which there is scarcely room for a
narrow road by the side of the roaring torrent. “In the Drôme,” says
Fournet, “the entrance to the beautiful valley of the Vercors is closed
during a part of the year, because, in order to enter, it is necessary
to cross the two gullies, the _Great_ and _Little Goulet_, through which
the waters escape from the valley. Even during the dry season, he who
would enter the gorge must take a foot-bath.

“This state of things could not last; and in 1848 it was curious to see
miners suspended on the sides of one of these lateral precipices, some
450 feet above the torrent, and about an equal distance below the summit
of the Chalk. There they began to excavate cavities or niches in the
face of the rock, all placed on the same level, and successively
enlarged. These were united together in such a manner as to form a road
practicable for carriages; now through a gallery, now covered by a
corbelling, to look over which affords a succession of surprises to the
traveller.

“This is not all,” adds M. Fournet: “he who traverses the high plateaux
of the country finds at every step deep diggings in the soil, designated
pits or _scialets_, the oldest of which have their sides clothed with a
curious vegetation, in which the _Aucolin_ predominates; shelter is
found in these pits from the cutting winds which rage so furiously in
these elevated regions. Others form a kind of cavern, in which a
temperature obtains sufficient to freeze water even in the middle of
summer. These cavities form natural _glaciers_, which we again find upon
some of the table-lands of the Jura.

“The cracks and crevasses of the limestone receive the waters produced
by falling rain and melted snow; true to the laws of all fluid bodies,
they filter through the rocks until they reach the lower and impervious
marly beds, where they form sheets of water, which in course of time
find some outlet through which they discharge themselves. In this manner
subterranean galleries, sometimes of great extent, are formed, in which
are assembled all the marvels which crumbling stalactites, stalagmites,
placid lakes, and headlong torrents can produce; finally, these waters,
forcing their way through the external orifices, give rise to those fine
cascades which, with the first gushing torrent, form an actual river.”

The _Albien_ of Alc. D’Orbigny, which Lyell considers to be the
equivalent of the _Gault_, French authors treat as the “_glauconie_”
formation, the name being drawn from a rock composed of chalk with
greenish grains of _glauconite_, or silicate of iron, which is often
mixed with the limestone of this formation. The fossils by which it is
identified are very varied. Among its numerous types, we find
Crustaceans belonging to the genera _Arcania_ and _Corystes_; many new
Mollusca, _Buccinum_, _Solen_, _Pterodonta_, _Voluta_, _Chama_, &c.;
great numbers of molluscous Brachiopods, forming highly-developed
submarine strata; some Echinoderms, unknown up to this period, and
especially a great number of Zoophytes; some Foraminifera, and many
Polyzoa (Bryozoa). The glauconitic formation consists of two groups of
strata: the _Gault_ Clay and the _glauconitic_ chalk, or Upper Greensand
and Chloritic Marl.


UPPER CRETACEOUS PERIOD.

During this phase of the terrestrial evolutions, the continents, to
judge from the fossilised wood which we meet with in the rocks which now
represent it, would be covered with a very rich vegetation, nearly
identical, indeed, with that which we have described in the preceding
sub-period; according to Adolphe Brongniart, the “age of angiosperms”
had fairly set in; the Cretaceous flora displays, he considers, a
transitional character from the Secondary to the Tertiary vegetation;
that the line between the gymnosperms, or naked-seeded plants, and the
angiosperms, having their seeds enclosed in seed-vessels, runs between
the Upper and Lower Cretaceous formations. “We can now affirm,” says
Lyell, “that these Aix-la-Chapelle plants, called Credneria, flourished
before the rich reptilian fauna of the secondary rocks had ceased to
exist. The Ichthyosaurus, Pterodactyle, and Mosasaurus were of coeval
date with the oak, the walnut, and the fig.”[80]

  [80] Lyell’s “Elements of Geology,” p. 333.

The terrestrial fauna, consisting of some new Reptiles haunting the
banks of rivers, and Birds of the genus Snipe, have certainly only
reached us in small numbers. The remains of the marine fauna are, on the
contrary, sufficiently numerous and well preserved to give us a great
idea of its riches, and to enable us to assign to it a characteristic
facies.

The sea of the Upper Cretaceous period bristled with numerous submarine
reefs, occupying a vast extent of its bed--reefs formed of Rudistes
(Lamarck), and of immense quantities of various kinds of corals which
are everywhere associated with them. The Polyps, in short, attain here
one of the principal epochs of their existence, and present a remarkable
development of forms; the same occurs with the Polyzoa (Bryozoa) and
Amorphozoa; while, on the contrary, the reign of the Cephalopods seems
to end. Beautiful types of these ancient reefs have been revealed to us,
and we discover that they have been formed under the influence of
submarine currents, which accumulated masses of these animals at certain
points. Nothing is more curious than this assemblage of
_Rudistes_--still standing erect, isolated or in groups--as may be seen,
for instance, at the summit of the mountains of the _Cornes_ in the
Corbières, upon the banks of the pond of Berre in Provence, and in the
environs of Martigues, at La Cadière, at Figuières, and particularly
above Beausset, near Toulon.

“It seems,” says Alcide D’Orbigny, “as if the sea had retired in order
to show us, still intact, the submarine fauna of this period, such as it
was when in life. There are here enormous groups of _Hippurites_ in
their places, surrounded by Polyps, Echinoderms, and Molluscs, which
lived in union in these animal colonies, analogous to those which still
exist in the coral-reefs of the Antilles and Oceania. In order that
these groups should have been preserved intact, they must first have
been covered suddenly by sediment, which, being removed by the action of
the atmosphere, reveals to us, in their most secret details, this Nature
of the past.”

In the Jurassic period we have already met with these isles or reefs
formed by the accumulation of Coral and other Zoophytes; they even
constituted, at that period, an entire formation called the _Coral-rag_.
The same phenomenon, reproduced in the Cretaceous seas, gave rise to
similar calcareous formations. We need not repeat what we have said
already on this subject when describing the Jurassic period. The coral
or madrepore isles of the Jurassic epoch and the reefs of Rudistes and
Hippurites of the Cretaceous period have the same origin, and the
_atolls_ of Oceania are reproductions in our own day of precisely
similar phenomena.

The invertebrate animals which characterise the Cretaceous age are among

    CEPHALOPODA.

    _Nautilus sublævigatus_ and _N. Danicus; Ammonites rostratus;
    Belemnitella mucronata._

    GASTEROPODA.

    _Voluta elongata; Phorus canaliculatus; Nerinea bisulcata;
    Pleurotomaria Fleuriausa_, and _P. Santonensis; Natica
    supracretacea._

    ACEPHALA.

    _Trigonia scabra; Inoceramus problematicus_ and _I. Lamarckii;
    Clavigella cretacea; Pholadomya æquivalvis; Spondylus spinosus;
    Ostrea vesicularis; Ostrea larva; Janira quadricostata; Arca
    Gravesii; Hippurites Toucasianus_ and _H. organisans; Caprina
    Aguilloni; Radiolites radiosus_, and _R. acuticostus._

    BRACHIOPODA.

    _Crania Ignabergensis; Terebratula obesa._

    POLYZOA (BRYOZOA) AND ESCHINODEMATA.

    _Reticulipora obliqua; Ananchytes ovatus; Micraster
    cor-anguinum, Hemiaster bucardium_ and _H. Fourneli; Galerites
    albogalerus; Cidaris Forchammeri; Palæocoma Furstembergii._

    1. POLYPI; 2. FORAMINIFERA; 3. AMORPHOZOA.

    1. _Cycollites elliptica; Thecosmilia rudis; Enallocœnia ramosa;
    Meandrina Pyrenaica; Synhelia Sharpeana_. 2. _Orbitoides media;
    Lituola nautiloidea; Flabellina rugosa_. 3. _Coscinopora
    cupuliformis; Camerospongia fungiformis_.

Among the numerous beings which inhabited the Upper Cretaceous seas
there is one which, by its organisation, its proportions, and the
despotic empire which it would exercise in the bosom of the waters, is
certainly most worthy of our attention. We speak of the _Mosasaurus_,
which was long known as the great animal of _Maestricht_, because its
remains were found near that city in the most modern of the Cretaceous
deposits.

In 1780 a discovery was made in the quarries of Saint Peter’s Rocks,
near Maestricht, of the head of a great Saurian, which may now be seen
in the Museum of Natural History in Paris. This discovery baffled all
the science of the naturalists, at a period when the knowledge of these
ancient beings was still in its infancy. One saw in it the head of a
Crocodile; another, that of a Whale; memoirs and monographs rained down,
without throwing much light on the subject. It required all the efforts
of Adrian Camper, joined to those of the immortal Cuvier, to assign its
true zoological place to the Maestricht animal. The controversy over
this fine fossil engaged the attention of the learned for the remainder
of the last century and far into the present.

Maestricht is a city of the Netherlands, built on the banks of the
Meuse. At the gates of this city, in the hills which skirt the left or
western bank of the river, there rises a solid mass of cretaceous
formation known as Saint Peter’s Rocks. In composition these beds
correspond with the Meudon chalk beds, and they contain similar fossils.
The quarries are about 100 feet deep, consisting in the upper part of
twenty feet abounding in corals and Polyzoa, succeeded by fifty feet of
soft yellowish limestone, furnishing a fine building stone, which has
been quarried from time immemorial, and extends up to the environs of
Liège; this is succeeded by a few inches of greenish soil with
Encrinites, and then by a very white chalk with layers of flints. The
quarry is filled with marine fossils, often of great size.

These fossil remains, naturally enough, attracted the attention of the
curious, and led many to visit the quarries; but of all the discoveries
which attracted attention the greatest interest attached to the gigantic
animal under consideration. Among those interested by the discovery of
these strange vestiges was an officer of the garrison of Maestricht,
named Drouin. He purchased the bones of the workmen as the pick
disengaged them from the rock, and concluded by forming a collection in
Maestricht, which was spoken of with admiration. In 1766, the trustees
of the British Museum, hearing of this curiosity, purchased it, and had
it removed to London. Incited by the example of Drouin, Hoffmann, the
surgeon of the garrison, set about forming a similar collection, and his
collection soon exceeded that of Drouin’s Museum in riches. It was in
1780 that he purchased of the quarrymen the magnificent fossil head,
exceeding six feet in length, which has since so exercised the sagacity
of naturalists.

Hoffman did not long enjoy the fruits of his precious prize, however;
the chapter of the church of Maestricht claimed, with more or less
foundation, certain rights of property; and in spite of all protest, the
head of the _Crocodile of Maestricht_, as it was already called, passed
into the hands of the Dean of the Chapter, named Goddin, who enjoyed
the possession of his antediluvian trophy until an unforeseen incident
changed the aspect of things. This incident was nothing less than the
bombardment and surrender of Maestricht to the Army of the North under
Kleber, in 1794.

The Army of the North did not enter upon a campaign to obtain the crania
of Crocodiles, but it had on its staff a savant who was devoted to such
pacific conquests. Faujas de Saint-Fond, who was the predecessor of
Cordier in the Zoological Chair of the Jardin des Plantes, was attached
to the Army of the North as Scientific Commissioner; and it is suspected
that, in soliciting this mission, our naturalist had in his eye the
already famous head of the Crocodile of the Meuse. However that may be,
Maestricht fell into the hands of the French, and Faujas eagerly claimed
the famous fossil for the French nation, which was packed with the care
due to a relic numbering so many thousands of ages, and dispatched to
the Museum of Natural History in Paris. On its arrival, Faujas undertook
a labour which, as he thought, was to cover him with glory. He commenced
the publication of a work entitled “The Mountain of Saint Peter of
Maestricht,” describing all the fossil objects found in the Dutch quarry
there, especially the _Great Animal_ of Maestricht. He endeavoured to
prove that this animal was a Crocodile.

Unfortunately for the glory of Faujas, a Dutch savant had devoted
himself to the same study. Adrian Camper was the son of a great
anatomist of Leyden, Pierre Camper, who had purchased of the heirs of
the surgeon Hoffman some parts of the skeleton of the animal found in
the quarry of Saint Peter. He had even published in the _Philosophical
Transactions_ of London, as early as 1786, a memoir, in which the animal
is classed as a Whale. At the death of his father, Adrian Camper
re-examined the skeleton, and in a work which Cuvier quotes with
admiration, he fixed the ideas which were until then floating about. He
proved that the bones belonged neither to a Fish, nor a Whale, nor to a
Crocodile, but rather to a particular genus of Saurian Reptiles, or
marine lizards, closely resembling in many important structural
characters, existing Monitors and Iguanas, and peculiar to rocks of the
Cretaceous period, both in Europe and America. Long before Faujas had
finished the publication of his work on _La Montagne de Saint-Pierre_
that of Adrian Camper had appeared, and totally changed the ideas of the
world on this subject. It did not, however, hinder Faujas from
continuing to call his animal the Crocodile of Maestricht. He even
announced, some time after, that Adrian Camper was also of his opinion.
“Nevertheless,” says Cuvier, “it is as far from the Crocodile as it is
from the Iguana; and these two animals differ as much from each other
in their teeth, bones, and viscera, as the ape differs from the cat, or
the elephant from the horse.”

[Illustration: Fig. 145.

_a_, skull of Monitor Niloticus; _b_, under-jaw of same.]

The masterly memoir of Cuvier, while confirming all the views of Camper,
has restored the individuality of this surprising being, which has since
received the name of Mosasaurus, that is to say, Saurian or Lizard of
the Meuse. It appears, from the researches of Camper and Cuvier, that
this reptile of the ancient world formed an intermediate genus between
the group of the Lacertilia, which comprehends the Monitors (represented
in Fig. 145), and the ordinary Lizards; and the Lacertilia, whose
palates are armed with teeth, a group which embraces the _Iguana_ and
the _Anolis_. In respect to the Crocodiles, the Mosasaurus resembles
them in so far as they all belong to the same class of Reptiles.

The idea of a lizard, adapted for living and moving with rapidity at the
bottom of the water, is not readily conceived; but a careful study of
the skeleton of the Mosasaurus reveals to us the secret of this
anatomical mechanism. The vertebræ of the animal are concave in front
and convex behind; they are attached by means of orbicular or arched
articulations, which permitted it to execute easily movements of flexion
in any direction. From the middle of the back to the extremity of the
tail these vertebræ are deficient in the articular processes which
support and strengthen the trunk of terrestrial vertebrated animals:
they resemble in this respect the vertebræ of the Dolphins; an
organisation necessary to render swimming easy. The tail, compressed
laterally at the same time that it was thick in a vertical direction,
constituted a straight rudder, short, solid, and of great power. An
arched bone was firmly attached to the body of each caudal vertebra in
the same manner as in Fishes, for the purpose of giving increased power
to the tail; finally, the extremities of the animal could scarcely be
called feet, but rather paddles, like those of the Ichthyosaurus, the
Plesiosaurus, and the Whale. We see in Fig. 146 that the jaws are armed
with numerous teeth, fixed in their sockets by an osseous base, both
large and solid. Moreover, an altogether peculiar dental system occupies
the vault of the palate, as in the case of certain Serpents and Fishes,
where the teeth are directed backwards, like the barb of a hook, thus
opposing themselves to the escape of prey. Such a disposition of the
teeth sufficiently proves the destructive character of this Saurian.

[Illustration: Fig. 146.--Head of Mosasaurus Camperi.]

The dimensions of this aquatic lizard, estimated at twenty-four feet,
are calculated to excite surprise. But, as we have already seen, the
Ichthyosauri and Teleosauri were of great dimensions, as were also the
Iguanodon and Megalosaurus, which were ten times the size of living
Iguanas. In all these colossal forms we can only see a difference of
dimensions, the aggrandisement of a type; the laws which affected the
organisation of all these beings remain unchanged, they were not errors
of Nature--_monstrosities_, as we are sometimes tempted to call
them--but simply types, uniform in their structure, and adapted by their
dimensions to the physical conditions with which God had surrounded
them.

[Illustration: XXII.--Ideal Landscape of the Cretaceous Period.]

In PLATE XXII. is represented an ideal view of the earth during the
_Upper Cretaceous_ period. In the sea swims the Mosasaurus; Molluscs,
Zoophytes, and other animals peculiar to the period are seen on the
shore. The vegetation seems to approach that of our days; it consists of
Ferns and Cycadeæ (Pterophyllums), mingled with Palms, Willows, and some
dicotyledons of species analogous to those of our present epoch. Algæ,
then very abundant, composed the vegetation of the sea-shore.

We have said that the terrestrial flora of the Upper Cretaceous period
was nearly identical with that of the Lower. The marine flora of these
two epochs included some Algæ, Confervæ, and Naïadæ, among which may be
noted the following species: _Confervites fasciculatus_, _Chondrites
Mantelli_, _Sargassites Hynghianus_. Among the Naïadæ, _Zosterites
Orbigniana_, _Z. lineata_, and several others.

The _Confervæ_ are fossils which may be referred, but with some doubt,
to the filamentous Algæ, which comprehend the great group of the
Confervæ. These plants were formed of simple or branching filaments,
diversely crossing each other; or subdivided, and presenting traces of
transverse partitions.

The _Chondrites_ are, perhaps, fossil Algæ, with thick, smooth branching
fronds, pinnatifid, or divided into pairs, with smooth cylindrical
divisions, and resembling _Chondrus_, _Dumontia_, and _Halymenia_ among
living genera.

The _Sargassites_, finally, have been vaguely referred to the genus
_Sargassum_, so abundant in tropical seas. These Algæ are distinguished
by a filiform, branched, or ramose stem, bearing foliaceous appendages,
regular, often petiolate, and altogether like leaves, and globular
vesicles, supported by a small stalk.

       *       *       *       *       *

The rocks which actually represent the _Upper Cretaceous period_ divide
themselves naturally into six series; but British and French geologists
make some distinction: the former dividing them into 1, _Maestricht_ and
_Faxoe_ beds, said not to occur in England; 2, _White Chalk_, with
_flints_; 3, _White Chalk_, without _flint_s; 4, _Chalk Marl_; 5, _Upper
Greensand_; and 6, _Gault_. The latter four are divided by foreign
geologists into 1, _Turonian_; 2, _Senonian_; 3, _Danian_.

The _Gault_ is the lowest member of the Upper Cretaceous group. It
consists of a bluish-black clay mixed with greensand, which underlies
the Upper Greensand. Near Cambridge, where the Gault is about 200 feet
thick, a layer of shells, bones, and nodules, called the “Coprolite
Bed,” from nine inches to a foot thick, represents the Upper Greensand,
and rests on the top of the Gault Clay. These nodules and fossils are
extensively worked on account of the phosphatic matter they contain, and
when ground and converted into superphosphate of lime they furnish a
very valuable agricultural manure. The Gault attains a thickness of
about 100 feet on the south-east coast of England. It extends into
Devonshire, Mr. Sharpe considering the Black Down beds of that country
as its equivalents. It shows itself in the Departments of the
Pas-de-Calais, the Ardennes, the Meuse, the Aube, the Yonne, the Ain,
the Calvados, and the Seine-Inférieure. It presents very many distinct
mineral forms, among which two predominate: green sandstone and blackish
or grey clays. It is important to know this formation, for it is at this
level that the Artesian waters flow in the wells of Passy and Grenelle,
near Paris.

The _glaucous_ chalk, or Upper Greensand, which is represented typically
in the departments of the Sarthe, of the Charente-Inférieure, of the
Yonne and the Var, is composed of quartzose sand, clay, sandstone, and
limestone. In this formation, at the mouth of the Charente, we find a
remarkable bed, which has been described as a submarine forest. It
consists of large trees with their branches imbedded horizontally in
vegetable matter, containing kidney-shaped nodules of amber, or
fossilised resin.

The _Turonian_ beds are so named because the province of Touraine,
between Saumur and Montrichard, possesses the best-developed type of
this strata. The mineralogical composition of the beds is a fine and
grey marly chalk, as at Vitry-le-François; of a pure white chalk, with a
very fine grain, slightly argillaceous, and poor in fossils, in the
Departments of the Yonne, the Aube, and the Seine-Inférieure; granular
tufaceous chalk, white or yellowish, mixed with spangles of mica, and
containing Ammonites, in Touraine and a part of the Department of the
Sarthe; white, grey, yellow, or bluish limestone, inclosing Hippurites
and Radiolites. In England the Lower Chalk passes also into Chalk Marl,
with Ammonites, and then into beds known as the Upper Greensand,
containing green particles of glauconite, mixed, in Hampshire and
Surrey, with much calcareous matter. In the Isle of Wight this formation
attains a thickness of 100 feet. The _Senonian_ beds take their name
from the ancient _Senones_. The city of Sens is in the centre of the
best-characterised portion of this formation; Epernay, Meudon, Sens,
Vendôme, Royau, Cognac, Saintes, are the typical regions of the
formation in France. In the Paris basin, inclusive of the Tours beds, it
attains a thickness of upwards of 1,500 feet, as was proved by the
samples brought up, during the sinking of the Artesian well, at
Grenelle, by the borings.

In its geographical distribution the Chalk has an immense range; fine
Chalk of nearly similar aspect and composition being met with in all
directions over hundreds of miles, alternating in its lower beds with
layers of flints. In England the higher beds usually consist of a
pure-white calcareous mass, generally too soft for building-stone, but
sometimes passing into a solid rock.

The _Danian_ beds, which occupy the summit of the scale in the
Cretaceous formation, are finely developed at Maestricht, on the Meuse;
and in the Island of Zeeland, belonging to Denmark; where they are
represented by a slightly yellowish, compact limestone, quarried for the
construction of the city of Faxoe. It is slightly represented in the
Paris basin at Meudon, and Laversines, in the Department of the Oise, by
a white and often rubbly limestone known as _pisolitic limestone_. In
this formation _Ammonites Danicus_ is found. The yellowish sandy
limestone of Maestricht is referred to the _Danian_ type. Besides
Molluscs, Polyps, and Polyzoa (Bryozoa), this limestone contains remains
of Fishes, Turtles, and Crocodiles. But what has rendered this rock so
celebrated was that it contained the remains of the _great animal of
Mæstricht_, the Mæsasaurus.

At the close of the geological period, whose natural physiognomy we have
thus traced, Europe was still far from displaying the configuration
which it now presents. A map of the period would represent the great
basin of Paris (with the exception of a zone of Chalk), the whole of
Switzerland, the greater part of Spain and Italy, the whole of Belgium,
Holland, Prussia, Hungary, Wallachia, and Northern Russia, as one vast
sheet of water. A band of Jurassic rocks still connected France and
England at Cherbourg--which disappeared at a later period, and caused
the separation of the British Islands from what is now France.

[Illustration: Fig. 147.--Exogym conica. Upper Greensand and Gault, from
Blackdown Hill.]




TERTIARY PERIOD.


A new organic creation makes its appearance in the Tertiary period;
nearly all the animal life is changed, and what is most remarkable in
this new development is the appearance, in larger numbers, of the great
class of Mammifera.

During the Primary period, Crustaceans and Fishes predominated in the
animal kingdom; in the Secondary period the earth was assigned to
Reptiles; but during the Tertiary period the Mammals were kings of the
earth; nor do these animals appear in small number, or at distant
intervals of time; great numbers of these beings appear to have lived on
the earth, and at the same moment; many of them being, so to say,
unknown and undescribed.

If we except the Marsupials, the first created Mammals would appear to
have been the Pachyderms, to which the Elephant belongs. This order of
animals long held the first rank; it was almost the only representative
of the Mammal during the first of the three periods which constitute the
Tertiary epoch. In the second and third periods Mammals appear of
species which have now become extinct, and which were alike curious from
their enormous proportions, and from the singularity of their structure.
Of the species which appeared during the latter part of the epoch, the
greater number still exist. Among the new Reptiles, some Salamanders, as
large as Crocodiles, and not very distinct from existing forms, are
added to the animal creation during the three periods of the Tertiary
epoch. Chelonians were abundant within the British area during the older
epoch. During the same epoch Birds are present, but in much fewer
numbers than the Mammalia; here songsters, there birds of prey, in other
cases domestic--or, rather, some appear to wait the yoke and
domestication from man, the future supreme lord of the earth.

The seas were inhabited by a considerable number of beings of all
classes, and nearly as varied as those now living; but we no longer find
in the Tertiary seas those Ammonites, Belemnites, and Hippurites which
peopled the seas and multiplied with such astonishing profusion during
the Secondary period. Henceforth the testaceous Mollusca approximate in
their forms to those of the present time. The older and newer Tertiary
Series contain few peculiar genera. But genera now found in warmer
climates were greatly developed within the British area during the
earlier Tertiary times, and _species_ of cold climates mark the close of
the later Tertiaries.

What occurs to us, however, as most remarkable in the Tertiary epoch is
the prodigious increase of animal life; it seems as if it had then
attained its fullest extension. Swarms of testaceous Mollusca of
microscopic proportions--Foraminifera and Nummulites--must have
inhabited the seas, crowding together in ranks so serried that the
agglomerated remains of their shells form, in some places, beds hundreds
of feet thick. It is the most extraordinary display which has appeared
in the whole range of creation.

Vegetation during the Tertiary period presents well-defined
characteristics. The Tertiary flora approaches, and is sometimes nearly
identical with, that of our days. The class of dicotyledons shows itself
there in its fullest development; it is the epoch of flowers. The
surface of the earth is embellished by the variegated colours of the
flowers and fruits which succeed them. The white spikes of the Gramineæ
display themselves upon the verdant meadows without limit; they seem
provocative of the increase of Insects, which now singularly multiply.
In the woods crowded with flowering trees, with rounded tops, like our
oak and birch, Birds become more numerous. The atmosphere, purified and
disembarrassed of the veil of vapour which has hitherto pervaded it, now
permits animals with such delicate pulmonary organs to live and multiply
their race.

During the Tertiary period the influence of the central heat may have
ceased to make itself felt, in consequence of the increased thickness of
the terrestrial crust. By the influence of the solar heat, climates
would be developed in the various latitudes; the temperature of the
earth would still be nearly that of our present tropics, and at this
epoch, also, cold would begin to make itself felt at the poles.

Abundant rains would, however, continue to pour upon the earth enormous
quantities of water, which would give rise to important rivers; new
lacustrine deposits of fresh water were formed in great numbers; and
rivers, by means of their alluvial deposits, began to form new land. It
is, in short, during the Tertiary epoch that we trace an alternate
succession of beds containing organic beings of marine origin, with
others peculiar to fresh water. It is at the end of this period that
continents and seas take their respective places as we now see them,
and that the surface of the earth received its present form.

The Tertiary epoch, or series, embraces three very distinct periods, to
which the names of _Eocene_, _Miocene_, and _Pliocene_ have been given
by Sir Charles Lyell. The etymology of these names is derived--Eocene,
from the Greek ηως, _dawn_, and καινος, _recent_; Miocene, from μειον,
_less_, καινος, _recent_; and Pliocene, from πλειον, _more_, καινος,
_recent_; by which it is simply meant to express, that each of these
periods contains a minor or greater proportion of recent species (of
Testacea), or is more or less remote from the dawn of life and from the
present time;[81] the expressions are in one sense forced and incorrect,
but usage has consecrated them, and they have obtained universal
currency in geological language, from their convenience and utility.

  [81] Lyell’s “Elements of Geology,” p. 187.

[Illustration: Fig. 148.--Trigonia margaritacea. (Living form.)]


THE EOCENE PERIOD.

During this period _terra firma_ has vastly gained upon the domain of
the sea; furrowed with streams and rivers, and here and there with great
lakes and ponds, the landscape of this period presented the same curious
mixture which we have noted in the preceding age, that is to say, a
combination of the vegetation of the primitive ages with one analogous
to that of our own times. Alongside the birch, the walnut, the oak, the
elm, and the alder, rise lofty palm-trees, of species now extinct, such
as _Flabellaria_ and _Palmacites_; with many evergreen trees (Conifers),
for the most part belonging to genera still existing, as the _firs_, the
_pines_, the _yews_, the _cypresses_, the _junipers_, and the _thuyas_
or tree of life.

The _Cupanioides_, among the Sapindaceæ; the _Cucumites_, among the
Cucurbitaceæ (species analogous to our bryony), climb the trunks of
great trees, and hang in festoons of aerial garlands from their
branches.

The Ferns were still represented by the genera _Pecopteris_, by the
_Tæniopteris_, _Asplenium_, _Polypodium_. Of the mosses, some
_Hepaticas_ formed a humble but elegant and lively vegetation alongside
the terrestrial and frequently ligneous plants which we have noted.
_Equiseta_ and _Charæ_ would still grow in marshy places and on the
borders of rivers and ponds.

It is not without some surprise that we observe here certain plants of
our own epoch, which seem to have had the privilege of ornamenting the
greater watercourses. Among these we may mention the Water Caltrop,
_Trapa natans_, whose fine rosettes of green and dentated leaves float
so gracefully in ornamental ponds, supported by their spindle-shaped
petioles, its fruit a hard coriaceous nut, with four horny spines, known
in France as _water-chestnuts_, which enclose a farinaceous grain not
unpleasant to the taste; the pond-weed, _Potamogeton_, whose leaves form
thick tufts of green, affording food and shelter to the fishes;
_Nympheaceæ_, which spread beside their large round and hollow leaves,
so admirably adapted for floating on the water, now the deep-yellow
flowers of the _Nenuphar_ now the pure white flowers of the _Nymphæa_.
Listen to Lecoq, as he describes the vegetation of the period:--“The
Lower Tertiary period,” he says, “constantly reminds us of the tropical
landscapes of the present epoch, in localities where water and heat
together impress on vegetation a power and majesty unknown in our
climates. The Algæ, which have already been observed in the marine
waters at the close of the Cretaceous period, represented themselves
under still more varied forms, in the earlier Tertiary deposits, when
they have been formed in the sea. Hepaticas and Mosses grew in the more
humid places; many pretty Ferns, as _Pecopteris_, _Tæniopteris_, and the
_Equisetum stellare_ (Pomel) vegetated in cool and humid places. The
fresh waters are crowded with _Naiades_, _Chara_, _Potamogeton_,
_Caulinites_, with _Zosterites_, and with _Halochloris_. Their leaves,
floating or submerged, like those of our aquatic plants, concealed
legions of Molluscs whose remains have also reached us.

“Great numbers of Conifers lived during this period. M. Brongniart
enumerates forty-one different species, which, for the most part, remind
us of living forms with which we are familiar--of Pines, Cypresses,
Thuyas, Junipers, Firs, Yews, and Ephedra. Palms mingled with these
groups of evergreen trees; the _Flabellaria Parisiensis_ of Brongniart,
_F. raphifolia_ of Sternberg, _F. maxima_ of Unger; and some
_Palmacites_, raised their widely-spreading crowns near the magnificent
_Hightea_; Malvaceæ, or _Mallows_, doubtless arborescent, as many among
them, natives of very hot climates, are in our days.

“Creeping plants, such as the _Cucumites variabilis_ (Brongn.), and the
numerous species of _Cupanioïdes_--the one belonging to the
Cucurbitaceæ, and the other to the Sapindaceæ--twined their slender
stems round the trunks, doubtless ligneous, of various Leguminaceæ.

“The family of Betulaceæ of the order Cupuliferæ show the form, then
new, of _Quercus_, the Oak; the Juglandeæ, and Ulmaceæ mingle with the
Proteaceæ, now limited to the southern hemisphere. _Dermatophyllites_,
preserved in amber, seem to have belonged to the family of the Ericineæ,
and _Tropa Arcturæ_ of Unger, of the group Œnothereæ, floated on the
shallow waters in which grew the _Chara_ and the _Potamogeton_.

“This numerous flora comprises more than 200 known species, of which 143
belonged to the Dicotyledons, thirty-three to the Monocotyledons, and
thirty-three to the Cryptogams.

“Trees predominate here as in the preceding period, but the great
numbers of aquatic plants of the period are quite in accordance with the
geological facts, which show that the continents and islands were
intersected by extensive lakes and inland seas, while vast marine bays
and arms of the sea penetrated deeply into the land.”

[Illustration: Fig. 149.--Branch of Eucalyptus restored.]

It is moreover a peculiarity of this period that the whole of Europe
comprehended a great number of those plants which are now confined to
Australasia, and which give so strange an aspect to that country, which
seems, in its vegetation, as in its animals, to have preserved in its
warm latitudes the last vestiges of the organic creations peculiar to
the primitive world. As a type of dicotyledonous trees of the epoch, we
present here a restored branch of _Eucalyptus_ (Fig. 149), with its
flowers. All the family of the Proteaceæ, which comprehends the
_Banksia_, the _Hakea_, the _Gerilea protea_, existed in Europe during
the Tertiary period. The family of Mimosas, comprising the _Acacia_ and
_Inga_, which in our age are only natives of the southern hemisphere,
abounded in Europe during the same geological period. A branch of
_Banksia_, with its fructification, taken from impressions discovered in
rocks of the period, is represented in Fig. 150--it is different from
any species of Banksia living in our days.

[Illustration: Fig. 150.--Fruit-branch of Banksia restored.]

Mammals, Birds, Reptiles, Fishes, Insects, and Molluscs, form the
terrestrial fauna of the Eocene period. In the waters of the lakes,
whose surfaces are deeply ploughed by the passage of large Pelicans,
lived Molluscs of varied forms, as _Physa_, _Limnæa_, _Planorbis_; and
Turtles swam about, as _Trionyx_ and the _Emides_. Snipes made their
retreat among the reeds which grew on the shore; sea-gulls skimmed the
surface of the waters or ran upon the sands; owls hid themselves in the
cavernous trunks of old trees; gigantic buzzards hovered in the air,
watching for their prey; while heavy crocodiles slowly dragged their
unwieldy bodies through the high marshy grasses. All these terrestrial
animals have been discovered in England or in France, alongside the
overthrown trunks of palm-trees. The temperature of these countries was
then much higher than it is now. The Mammals which lived under the
latitudes of Paris and London are only found now in the warmest
countries of the globe.

The Pachyderms (from the Greek παχυς, _thick_, δερμα, _skin_) seem to
have been amongst the earliest Mammals which appeared in the Eocene
period, and they held the first rank from their importance in number of
species as well as in size. Let us pause an instant over these
Pachyderms. Their predominance over other fossil Mammals, which exceed
considerably the number now living, is a fact much insisted on by
Cuvier. Among them were a great number of intermediate forms, which we
seek for in vain in existing genera. In fact, the Pachyderms are
separated, in our days, by intervals of greater extent than we find in
any other mammalian genera; and it is very curious to discover among the
animals of the ancient world the broken link which connects the chain of
these beings, which have for their great tomb the plaster-quarries of
Paris, Montmartre and Pantin being their latest refuge.

Each block taken from those quarries encloses some fragment of a bone of
these Mammals; and how many millions of these bones had been destroyed
before attention was directed to the subject! The _Palæotherium_ and the
_Anoplotherium_ were the first of these animals which Cuvier restored;
and subsequent discoveries of other fragments of the same animals have
only served to confirm what the genius of the great naturalist divined.
His studies in the quarries of Montmartre gave the signal, as they
became the model, for similar researches and restorations of the animals
of the ancient world, all over Europe--researches which, in our age,
have drawn geology from the state of infancy in which it languished, in
spite of the magnificent and persevering labours of Steno, Werner,
Hutton, and Saussure.

[Illustration: Fig. 151.--Palæotherium magnum restored.]

The _Palæotherium_, _Anoplotherium_, and _Xiphodon_ were herbivorous
animals, which must have lived in great herds. They appear to have been
intermediate, according to their organisation, between the Rhinoceros,
the Horse, and the Tapir. There seem to have existed many species of
them, of very different sizes. After the labours of Cuvier, nothing is
easier than to represent the _Palæotherium_ as it lived: the nose
terminating in a muscular fleshy trunk, or rather snout, somewhat like
that of the Tapir; the eye small, and displaying little intelligence;
the head enormously large; the body squat, thick, and short; the legs
short and very stout; the feet supported by three toes, enclosed in a
hoof; the size, that of a large horse. Such was the great Palæotherium,
peaceful flocks of which must have inhabited the valleys of the plateau
which surrounds the ancient basin of Paris; in the lacustrine formations
of Orleans and Argenton; in the Tertiary formations of Issil and
Puy-en-Velay, in the department of the Gironde; in the Tertiary
formations near Rome; and in the beds of limestone[82] at the quarries
of Binsted, in the Isle of Wight. Fig. 151 represents the great
Palæotherium, after the design, in outline, given by Cuvier in his work
on _fossil bones_.

  [82] This limestone belongs to the Bembridge beds, and forms part of
       the Fluvio-marine series. See “Survey Memoir on the Geology of
       the Isle of Wight,” by H. W. Bristow.

[Illustration: Fig. 152.--Skull of Palæotherium magnum.]

The discovery and re-arrangement of these and other forms, now swept
from the face of the globe, are the noblest triumphs of the great French
zoologist, who gathered them, as we have seen, from heaps of confused
fragments, huddled together pell-mell, comprising the bones of a great
many species of animals of a former age of the world, all unknown within
the historic period. The generic characters of Palæotherium give them
forty-four teeth, namely, twelve _molars_, two _canines_, and
twenty-eight others, three toes, a short proboscis, for the attachment
of which the bones of the nose were shortened, as represented in Fig.
153, leaving a deep notch below them. The molar teeth bear considerable
resemblance to those of the Rhinoceros. In the structure of that part of
the skull intended to support the short proboscis, and in the feet, the
animal seems to have resembled the Tapir.

[Illustration: Fig. 153.--Skeletons of the Palæotherium magnum (_a_) and
minimum (_b_) restored.]

The geological place of the extinct Palæotherium seems to have been in
the first great fresh-water formation of the Eocene period, where it is
chiefly found with its allies, of which several species have been found
and identified by Cuvier. Dr. Buckland is not singular in thinking that
they lived and died on the margins of lakes and rivers, as the
Rhinoceros and Tapir do now. He is also of opinion that some retired
into the water to die, and that the dead carcases of others may have
been drifted into the deeper parts in seasons of flood.

The _Palæotherium_ varied greatly in size, some species being as large
as the Rhinoceros, while others ranged between the size of the Horse and
that of a Hog or a Roe. The smaller Palæotherium resembled the Tapir.
Less in size than a Goat, with slim and light legs, it must have been
very common in the north of France, where it would browse on the grass
of the wild prairies. Another species, the _P. minimum_, scarcely
exceeded the Hare in size, and it probably had all the lightness and
agility of that animal. It lived among the bushy thickets of the
environs of Paris, in Auvergne, and elsewhere.

All these animals lived upon seeds and fruits, on the green twigs, or
subterranean stems, and the succulent roots of the plants of the period.
They generally frequented the neighbourhood of fresh water.

[Illustration: Fig. 154.--Anoplotherium commune. One-twentieth natural
size.]

The _Anoplotherium_ (from ανοπλος, _defenceless_, θηριον, _animal_), had
the posterior molar teeth analogous to those of the Rhinoceros, the feet
terminating in two great toes, forming an equally divided hoof, like
that of the Ox and other Ruminants, and the tarsus of the toes nearly
like those of the Camel. It was about the size of the Ass; its head was
light; but what would distinguish it most must have been an enormous
tail of at least three feet in length, and very thick at its junction
with the body. This tail evidently served it as a rudder and propeller
when swimming in the lakes or rivers, which it frequented, not to seize
fish (for it was strictly herbivorous), but in search of roots and stems
of succulent aquatic plants. “Judging from its habits of swimming and
diving,” says Cuvier, “the Anoplotherium would have the hair smooth,
like the otter; perhaps its skin was even half naked. It is not likely
either that it had long ears, which would be inconvenient in its aquatic
kind of life; and I am inclined to think that, in this respect, it
resembled the Hippopotamus and other quadrupeds which frequent the water
much.” To this description Cuvier had nothing more to add. His memoir
upon the _pachydermatous fossils_ of Montmartre is accompanied by a
design in outline of _Anoplotherium commune_, which has been closely
followed in Fig. 154.

There were species of Anoplotherium of very small size. _A. leporinum_
(or the Hare-Anoplotherium), whose feet are evidently adapted for speed;
_A. minimum_ and _A. obliquum_ were of still smaller dimensions; the
last, especially, scarcely exceeded the size of a rat. Like the
Water-rats, this species inhabited the banks of brooks and small rivers.

[Illustration: Fig. 155.--Xiphodon gracile.]

The _Xiphodon_ was about three feet in height at the withers, and
generally about the size of the Chamois, but lighter in form, and with a
smaller head. In proportion as the appearance of the _Anoplotherium
commune_ was heavy and sluggish, so was that of _Xiphodon gracile_
graceful and active; light and agile as the Gazelle or the Goat, it
would rapidly run round the marshes and ponds, depasturing on the
aromatic herbs of the dry lands, or browsing on the sprouts of the young
shrubs. “Its course,” says Cuvier, in the memoir already quoted, “was
not embarrassed by a long tail; but, like all active herbivorous
animals, it was probably timid, and with large and very mobile ears,
like those of the stag, announcing the slightest approach of danger.
Neither is there any doubt that its body was covered with short smooth
hair; and consequently we only require to know its colour in order to
paint it as it formerly existed in this country, where it has been dug
up after so many ages.” Fig. 155 is a reproduction from the design in
outline with which Cuvier accompanied the description of this animal,
which he classes with the Anoplotherium, and which has received in our
days the name of _Xiphodon gracile_.

The gypsum-quarries of the environs of Paris include, moreover, the
remains of other Pachyderms: the _Chæropotamus_, or River-hog (from
χοιρος ποταμος), which has some analogy with the living Pecari, though
much larger; the _Adapis_, which reminds us, in its form, of the
Hedgehog, of which, however, it was three times the size. It seems to
have been a link between the Pachyderms and the Insectivorous Carnivora.
The _Lophiodon_, the size of which varied with the species, from that of
the Rabbit to that of the Rhinoceros, was still more closely allied to
the Tapir than to the Anoplotherium; it is found in the lower beds of
the gypseous formation, that is to say in the “Calcaire Grossier.”

A Parisian geologist, M. Desnoyers, librarian of the Museum of Natural
History there, has discovered in the gypseous beds of the valley of
Montmorency, and elsewhere in the neighbourhood of Paris, as at Pantin,
Clichy, and Dammartin, the imprints of the footsteps of some Mammals, of
which there seems to be some question, especially with regard to the
Anoplotherium and Palæotherium. Footprints of Turtles, Birds, and even
of Carnivora, sometimes accompany these curious traces, which have a
sort of almond-shape more or less lobed, according to the divisions of
the hoof of the animal, and which recall to mind completely, in their
mode of production and preservation, those imprints of the steps of the
Labyrinthodon which have been mentioned as occurring in rocks of the
Triassic period. This discovery is interesting, as it furnishes a means
of comparison between the imprints and the animals which have produced
them. It brings into view, as it were, the material traces left in their
walks upon the soil by animals now annihilated, but who once occupied
the mysterious sites of an earlier world. (See Fig. 1, p. 12.)

It is interesting to picture in imagination the vast pasturages of the
Tertiary period swarming with Herbivora of all sizes. The country now
surrounding the city of Paris belongs to the period in question, and not
far from its gates, the woods and plains were crowded with “game” of
which the Parisian sportsman little dreams, but which would nevertheless
singularly animate the earth at this distant epoch. The absence of great
Carnivora explains the rapid increase of the agile and graceful denizens
of the wood, whose race seems to have been so multiplied then, but which
was ultimately annihilated by the ferocious beasts of prey which
afterwards made their appearance.

The same novelty, riches, and variety which distinguished the Mammals of
the Tertiary period extended to other classes of animals. The class of
Birds, of which we can only name the most remarkable, was represented by
the curious fossil known as the “_Bird of Montmartre_.” The bones of
other birds have been obtained from Hordwell, as well as the remains of
quadrupeds. Among the latter the _Hyænodon_, supposed to be the oldest
known example of a true carnivorous animal in the series of British
fossils, and the fossil Bat known as the _Vespertilio Parisiensis_.
Among Reptiles the Crocodile, which bears the name of Isle of Wight
Alligator, _Crocodilus Toliapicus_. Among the Turtles the _Trionyx_, of
which there is a fine specimen in the Museum of Natural History in Paris
(Fig. 156).

[Illustration: Fig. 156.--Trionyx, or Turtle, of the Tertiary period.]

In the class Fishes we now see the _Pleuronectes_, or flat-fish, of
which _Platax altissimus_ and _Rhombus minimus_ are well-known examples.
Among the Crustaceans we see the earliest crabs. At the same time
multitudes of new Mollusca make their appearance: _Oliva_, _Triton_,
_Cassis_, _Harpa_, _Crepidula_, &c.

[Illustration: XXIII.--Ideal Landscape of the Eocene Period.]

The hitherto unknown forms of _Schizaster_ are remarkable among
Echinoderms; the Zoophytes are also abundant, especially the
_Foraminifera_, which seem to make up by their numbers for their
deficiency in size. It was in this period, in the bosom of its seas, and
far from shore, that the _Nummulites_ existed, whose calcareous
envelopes play such a considerable part as the elements of some of the
Tertiary formations. The shelly agglomerates of these Protozoan
Rhizopods constitute now very important rocks. The Nummulitic limestone
forms, in the chain of the Pyrenees, entire mountains of great height;
in Egypt it forms strata of considerable extent, and it is of these
rocks that the ancient pyramids were built. What an enormous time must
have been necessary to convert the remains of these little shells into
beds many hundreds of feet thick! The _Miliola_ were also so abundant in
the Eocene seas as to constitute the greater part of calcareous
rocks[83] out of which Paris has been built. Agglomerated in this
manner, these little shells form the continuous beds of limestone which
are quarried for building purposes in the environs of Paris, at
Gentilly, Vaugirard, and Châtillon.

  [83] Similar beds of Miliolite limestone are found in the Middle
       Bagshot beds on the coast of Sussex, off Selsey--the only
       instance in England of the occurrence of such calcareous deposits
       of Middle Eocene age.--H. W. B.

       *       *       *       *       *

On the opposite page we present, in PLATE XXIII., an imaginary landscape
of the Eocene period. We remark amongst its vegetation a mixture of
fossil species with others belonging to the present time. The Alders,
the Wych-elms, and the Cypresses, mingle with _Flabellaria_; the Palms
of extinct species. A great Bird--a wader, the _Tantalus_--occupies the
projecting point of a rock on the right; the Turtle (_Trionyx_), floats
on the river, in the midst of Nymphæas, Nenuphars, and other aquatic
plants; whilst a herd of Palæotheria, Anoplotheria, and Xiphodon
peacefully browse the grass of the natural meadows of this peaceful
oasis.

With a general resemblance in their fossils, nothing can be more
dissimilar, on the whole, than the lithological or mineral characters of
the Eocene deposits of France and England; “those of our own island,”
says Lyell,[84] “being almost exclusively of mechanical
origin--accumulations of mud, sand, and pebbles; while in the
neighbourhood of Paris we find a great succession of strata composed of
limestones, some of them siliceous, and of crystalline gypsum and
siliceous sandstone, and sometimes of pure flint used for millstones.
Hence it is by no means an easy task to institute an exact comparison
between the various members of the English and French series. It is
clear that, on the sites both of Paris and London, a continual change
was going on in the fauna and flora by the coming in of new species and
the dying out of others; and contemporaneous changes of geographical
conditions were also in progress in consequence of the rising and
sinking of the land and bottom of the sea. A particular subdivision,
therefore, of time was occasionally represented in one area by land, in
another by an estuary, in a third by sea; and even where the conditions
were in both areas of a marine character, there was often shallow water
in one, and deep sea in another, producing a want of agreement in the
state of animal life.” The Eocene rocks, as developed in France and
England, may be tabulated as follows, in descending order:--

  [84] “Elements of Geology,” p. 292.


                 English.                            French.
                 /                   \               / Calcaire de la Beauce.
                 | Hempstead beds.   |               \ Grès de Fontainebleau.
                 |                   |
  Upper Eocene. <                    |               / Calcaire silicieux or
                 | Bembridge beds.    >Fluvio-marine<  Calcaire Lacustre
                 |                   | series.       | Moyen. Gypseous
                 \                   |               \ series of Montmartre.
                                     |
                 / Osborne beds.     |               / Grès de Beauchamp
                 | Headon beds.      /               \ and Calcaire Marin.
                 |
                 | Upper Bagshot sand.                 Upper Sables Moyens.
                 |
  Middle Eocene.<                                    / Lower Sables Moyens,
                 | Barton clay.      \ Middle       <  Lower Calcaire
                 | Bracklesham beds. / Bagshot.      | Grossier, and
                 |                                   \ Glauconie Grossière.
                 |
                 | Lower Bagshot                     / Lits coquillières.
                 \ beds.                             \ Glauconie Moyenne.

                 / London clay.                        Wanting.
                 |
                 | Woolwich and     \                / Argile Plastique.
                 | Reading beds, or  >               \ Glauconie Inférieure.
  Lower Eocene. <  Plastic clay.    /
                 |
                 | Oldhaven beds.
                 |
                 \ Thanet sands.                       Sables Inférieurs.

The Woolwich and Reading Beds, or the Plastic Clay of older writers,
consists of extensive beds of sand with occasional beds of potter’s
clay, which lie at the base of the Tertiary formation in both England
and France. Generally variegated, sometimes grey or white, it is
employed as a potter’s earth in the manufacture of delf-ware.

In England the red-mottled clay of the Woolwich and Reading Beds in
Hampshire and the Isle of Wight is often seen in contact with the chalk;
but in the south-eastern part of the London basin, Mr. Prestwich shows
that the Thanet Sand (consisting of a base of fine, light- sand,
mixed with more or less argillaceous matter) intervenes between the
Chalk and the Oldhaven Beds, or in their absence the Woolwich and
Reading beds, which lie below the London Clay. The Thanet Sands derive
their name from their occurrence in the Isle of Thanet, in Kent, in the
eastern part of which county they attain their greatest development.
Under London and its southern suburbs the Thanet sand is from thirteen
to forty-four feet thick, but it becomes thinner in a westerly
direction, and does not occur beyond Ealing.[85]

  [85] “Memoir of the Geological Survey of Great Britain. The Geology of
       Middlesex, &c.;” by W. Whitaker, p. 9.

The Woolwich and Reading beds in the Hampshire basin rest immediately on
the Chalk, and separate it from the overlying London Clay, as may be
seen in the fine exposure of the Tertiary strata in Alum Bay, at the
western extremity of the Isle of Wight, and in Studland Bay, on the
western side of the Isle of Purbeck, in Dorsetshire.

In the London basin the Woolwich and Reading beds also rest on the
Chalk, where the Thanet Sands are absent, as is the case, for the most
part, over the area west of Ealing and Leatherhead.

The beds in question are very variable in character, but may be
generally described as irregular alternations of clays and sands--the
former mostly red, mottled with white, and from their plastic nature
suitable for the purposes of the potter; the latter also of various
colours, but sometimes pure white, and sometimes containing pebbles of
flint.

The Woolwich and Reading beds are called after the localities of the
same names; they are fifty feet thick at Woolwich, and from sixty to
seventy feet at Reading.

The Oldhaven beds (so termed by Mr. W. Whitaker from their development
at the place of the same name in Kent) are a local deposit, occurring
beneath the London Clay on the south side of the London basin, from
Croydon eastward, at the most eastern part of Surrey, and through
Kent--in the north-western corner of which county they form some
comparatively broad tracts. The beds consist of rounded flint pebbles,
in a fine sandy base, or of fine light- sand, and are from
eighty to ninety feet thick under London.

The London Clay, which has a breadth of twenty miles or more about
London, consists of tenacious brown and bluish-grey clay, with layers of
the nodular concretions, called Septaria, which are well known on the
Essex and Hampshire coasts, where they are collected for making Roman
cement. The London Clay has a maximum thickness of nearly 500 feet. The
fossils of the London Clay are of marine genera, and very plentiful in
some districts. Taken altogether they seem to indicate a moderate,
rather than a tropical climate, although the Flora is, as far as can be
judged, certainly tropical in its affinities.[86] The number of species
of extinct Turtles obtained from the Isle of Sheppey alone, is stated by
Prof. Agassiz to exceed that of all the species of Chelone now known to
exist throughout the globe. Above this great bed lie the Bracklesham and
Bagshot beds, which consist of light-yellow sand with an intermediate
layer of dark-green and brown clay, over which lie the Barton Clay (in
the Hampshire basin) and the white Upper Bagshot Sands, which are
succeeded by the Fluvio-marine series comprising the Headon, Bembridge,
and Hempstead series, and consisting of limestones, clays, and marls, of
marine, brackish, and fresh-water origin.[87] For fuller accounts of the
Tertiary strata of England, the reader is recommended to the numerous
excellent memoirs of Mr. Prestwich, to the memoir “On the Tertiary
Fluvio-marine Formations of the Isle of Wight,” by Professor Edward
Forbes, and to the memoir “On the Geology of the London Basin,” by Mr.
W. Whitaker.

  [86] Prestwich. _Quart. Jour. Geol. Soc._, vol. x., p. 448.

  [87] Detailed sections of the whole of the Tertiary strata of the Isle
       of Wight have been constructed by Mr. H. W. Bristow from actual
       measurement of the beds in their regular order of succession, as
       displayed at Hempstead, Whitecliff Bay, Colwell and Tolland’s
       Bays, Headon Hill, and Alum Bay. These sections, published by the
       Geological Survey of Great Britain, show the thickness, mineral
       character, and organic remains found in each stratum, and are
       accompanied by a pamphlet in explanation.

At the base of the _Argile Plastique_ of France is a conglomerate of
chalk and of divers calcareous substances, in which have been found at
Bas-Meudon some remains of Reptiles, Turtles, Crocodiles, Mammals, and,
more lately, those of a large Bird, exceeding the Ostrich in size, the
_Gastornis_, which Professor Owen classes among the wading rather than
among aquatic birds. In the Soissonnais there is found, at the same
horizon, a great mass of lignite, enclosing some shells and bones of the
most ancient Pachyderm yet discovered, the _Coryphodon_, which resembles
at once both the Anoplotherium and the Pig. The _Sables Inférieurs_, or
Bracheux Sands, form a marine bed of great thickness near Beauvais; they
are principally sands, but include beds of calciferous clay and banks of
shelly sandstone, and are considered to be older than the plastic clay
and lignite, and to correspond with the Thanet Sands of England. They
are rich in shells, including many Nummulites. At La Fère, in the
Department of the Aisne, a fossil skull of _Arctocyon primævus_,
supposed to be related both to the Bear and to the Kinkajou, and to be
the oldest known Tertiary Mammal, was found in a deposit of this age.
This series seems to have been formed chiefly in fresh water.

The _Calcaire grossier_, consisting of marine limestones of various
kinds, and with a coarse, sometimes compact, grain, is suitable for
mason-work. These deposits, which form the most characteristic member
of the Paris basin, naturally divide themselves into three groups of
strata, characterised, the first, by _Nummulites_; the second by
_Miliolites_; and the third or upper beds by _Cerithia_. The beds are
also sometimes named Nummulite limestone, Miliolite limestone, and
Cerithium limestone. Above these a great mass, generally sandy, is
developed. It is marine at the base, and there are indications of
brackish water in its upper parts; it is called Beauchamp Sandstone, or
Sables Moyens (_Grès de Beauchamp_). These sands are very rich in
shells. The _siliceous limestone_, or lower travertin, is a compact
siliceous limestone extending over a wide area, and resembles a
precipitate from mineral waters. The _gypseous_ formation consists of a
long series of marly and argillaceous beds, of a greyish, green, or
white colour, in the intervals between which a thick deposit of gypsum,
or sulphate of lime, is intercalated. This gypsum bed is found in its
greatest thickness in France at Montmartre and Pantin near Paris. The
formation of this gypsum is probably due to the action of free sulphuric
acid upon the carbonate of lime of the formation; the sulphuric acid
itself being produced by the transformation of the gaseous masses of
sulphuretted hydrogen emanating from volcanic vents, into that acid, by
the action of air and water. It was, as we have already said, in the
gypsum-quarries of Montmartre that the numerous bones of Palæotherium
and Anoplotherium were found. It is exclusively at this horizon that we
find the remains of these animals, which seem to have been preceded by
the _Coryphodon_, and afterwards by the _Lophiodon_; the order of
succession in the appearance of these animals is now perfectly
established. It may be added that round Paris the Eocene formation, from
its lowest beds to the highest, is composed of beds of plastic clay, of
the _Calcaire grossier_ with its _Nummulites_, _Miliolites_, and
_Alveolites_, followed by the gypseous formation; the series terminating
in the Fontainebleau Sandstone, remarkable for its thickness and also
for its fine scenery, as well as for its usefulness in furnishing
paving-stone for the capital. In Provence the same series of rocks are
continued, and attain an enormous thickness. This upper part of the
Eocene deposit is entirely of lacustrine formation. Grignon has procured
from a single spot, where they were embedded in a calcareous sand, no
less than 400 fossils, chiefly formed of comminuted shells, in which,
however, were well-preserved species both of marine, terrestrial, and
fresh-water shells. Of the Paris basin, Sir Charles Lyell says: “Nothing
is more striking in this assemblage of fossil testacea than the great
proportion of species referable to the genus _Cerithium_. There occur no
less than 137 species of this genus in the Paris basin, and almost all
of them in the _Calcaire grossier_. Most of the living _Cerithia_ (Figs.
157 and 168) inhabit the sea near the mouths of rivers, where the waters
are brackish; so that their abundance in the marine strata now under
consideration is in harmony with the hypothesis that the Paris basin
formed a gulf into which several rivers flowed.”[88]

  [88] “Elements of Geology,” p. 300.

To give the reader some idea of the formation, first come the limestones
and lower marls, which contain fine lignite or wood-coal produced from
vegetable matter buried in moist earth, and excluded from all access of
air, a material which is worked in some parts of the south of France as
actively as a coal-mine. In these lignites _Anodon_ and other
fresh-water shells are found.

From the base of Sainte-Victoire to the other side of Aix, we trace a
conglomerate characterised by its red colour, but which dies away in its
prolongation westward. This conglomerate contains land-snails (_Helix_)
of various sizes, mixed with fresh-water shells. Upon this conglomerate,
comprising therein the marls, rests a thick deposit of limestone with
the gypsum of Aix and Manosque, which is believed to correspond with
that of Paris. Some of the beds are remarkably rich in sulphur. The
calcareous marly laminæ which accompany the gypsum of Aix contain
Insects of various kinds, and Fishes resembling _Lebias cephalotes_.
Finally, the whole terminates at Manosque in a fresh series of marls and
sandstones, alternating with beds of limestone with _Limnæa_ and
_Planorbis_. At the base of this series are found three or four beds of
lignite more inflammable than coal, which also give out a very
sulphurous oil. We may form some estimate of the thickness of this last
stage, if we add that, above the beds of fusible lignite, we may reckon
sixty others of dry lignite, some of them capable of being very
profitably worked if this part of Provence were provided with more
convenient roads.

“The Nummulitic formation, with its characteristic fossils,” says
Lyell,[89] “plays a far more conspicuous part than any other Tertiary
group in the solid framework of the earth’s crust, whether in Europe,
Asia, or Africa. It often attains a thickness of many thousand feet, and
extends from the Alps to the Carpathians, and is in full force in the
north of Africa, as, for example, in Algeria and Morocco. It has been
traced from Egypt, where it was largely quarried of old for the building
of the Pyramids, into Asia Minor, and across Persia, by Bagdad, to the
mouth of the Indus. It occurs not only in Cutch, but in the mountain
ranges which separate Scinde from Persia, and which form the passes
leading to Caboul; and it has been followed still further eastward into
India, as far as eastern Bengal and the frontiers of China.”

  [89] Ibid., p. 305.

“When we have once arrived at the conclusion,” he adds, “that the
Nummulitic formation occupies a middle place in the Eocene series, we
are struck with the comparatively modern date to which some of the
greatest revolutions in the physical geography of Europe, Asia, and
northern Africa must be referred. All the mountain chains, such as the
Alps, Pyrenees, Carpathians, and Himalayas, into the composition of
whose central and loftiest parts the Nummulitic strata enter bodily,
could have had no existence till after the Middle Eocene period.”

The Eocene strata, Professor Ramsay thinks, extended in their day _much
further_ west, “because,” he says, “here, at the extreme edge of the
chalk escarpments, you find outlying fragments of them,” from which he
argues that they were originally deposited all over the Chalk as far as
these points, but being formed of soft strata they were “denuded”
backwards.

The Beloptera represented in Fig. 195 are curious Belemnite-like
organisms, occurring in Tertiary strata, and evidently the internal bone
of a Cephalopod, having a wing-like projection or process on each side.
As a genus it holds a place intermediate between the Cuttle-fish and the
Belemnite.

[Illustration: Fig. 157.--Cerithium telescopium.

(Living form.)]


THE MIOCENE PERIOD.

The Miocene formation is not present in England; unless we suppose, with
Sir Charles Lyell, that it is represented by the Hempstead beds of the
Isle of Wight.

It is on the European continent that we find the most striking
characteristics of the Miocene period. In our own islands traces of it
are few and far between. In the Island of Mull certain beds of shale,
interstratified with basalt and volcanic ash, are described by the Duke
of Argyll as of Miocene date;[90] and Miocene clay is found
interstratified with bands of imperfect coal at Bovey Tracey. The
vegetation which distinguished the period is a mixture of the vegetable
forms peculiar to the burning climate of the present tropical Africa,
with such as now grow in temperate Europe, such as Palms, Bamboos,
various kinds of Laurels, Combretaceæ (Terminalia), with the grand
Leguminales of warm countries (as _Phaseolites_, _Erythrina_,
_Bauhinia_, _Mimosites_, _Acacia_); Apocyneæ analogous to the genera of
our tropical regions; a _Rubiacea_ altogether tropical (_Steinhauera_)
mingle with some Maples, Walnut-trees, Beeches, Elms, Oaks, and
Wych-elms, genera now confined to temperate and even cold countries.

  [90] _Quarterly Journal of Geol. Soc._, vol. vii., p. 89.

Besides these, there were, during the Miocene period, mosses, mushrooms,
charas, fig-trees, plane-trees, poplars, and evergreens. “During the
second period of the Tertiary epoch,” says Lecoq, “the Algæ and marine
Monocotyledons were less abundant than in the preceding age; the Ferns
also diminished, the mass of Conifers were reduced, and the Palms
multiplied in species. Some of those cited in the preceding period seem
still to belong to this, and the magnificent _Flabellaria_, with the
fine _Phœnicites_, which we see now for the first time, gave animation
to the landscape. Among the Conifers some new genera appear; among them
we distinguish _Podocarpens_, a southern form of vegetation of the
present age. Almost all the arborescent families have their
representatives in the forests of this period, where for the first time
types so different are united. The waters are covered with _Nymphæa
Arithnæa_ (Brongniart); and with _Myriophyllites capillifolius_ (Unger);
_Culmites animalis_ (Brongniart); and _C. Gœpperti_ (Munster), spring up
in profusion upon their banks, and the grand _Bambusinites sepultana_
throws the shadow of its long articulated stem across them. Some
analogous species occupy the banks of the great rivers of the New World;
one Umbellifera is even indicated, by Unger, in the _Pimpinellites
zizioides_.

Of this period date some beds of lignite resulting from the
accumulation, for ages, of all these different trees. It seems that
arborescent vegetation had then attained its apogee. Some _Smilacites_
interlaced like the wild vines with these grand plants, which fell on
the ground where they grew, from decay; some parts of the earth, even
now, exhibit these grand scenes of vegetation. They have been described
by travellers who have traversed the tropical regions, where Nature
often displays the utmost luxury, under the screen of clouds which does
not allow the rays of the sun to reach the earth. M. D’Orbigny cites an
interesting instance which is much to the point. “I have reached a
zone,” he says (speaking of Rio Chapura in South America), “where it
rains regularly all the year round. We can scarcely perceive the rays of
the sun, at intervals, through the screen of clouds which almost
constantly veils it. This circumstance, added to the heat, gives an
extraordinary development to the vegetation. The wild vines fall on all
sides, in garlands, from the loftiest branches of trees whose summits
are lost in the clouds.”

The fossil species of this period, to the number of 133, begin to
resemble those which enrich our landscapes. Already tropical plants are
associated with the vegetables of temperate climates; but they are not
yet the same as existing species. Oaks grow side by side with Palms, the
Birch with Bamboos, Elms with Laurels, the Maples are united to the
Combretaceæ, to the Leguminales, and to the tropical Rubiaceæ. The forms
of the species, belonging to temperate climates, are rather American
than European.

The luxuriance and diversity of the Miocene flora has been employed by a
German savant in identifying and classifying the Middle Tertiary or
Miocene strata of Switzerland. We are indebted to Professor Heer, of
Zurich, for the restoration of more than 900 species of plants, which he
classified and illustrated in his “Flora Tertiaria Helvetiæ.” In order
to appreciate the value of the learned Professor’s undertaking, it is
only necessary to remark that, where Cuvier had to study the position
and character of a bone, the botanist had to study the outline,
nervation, and microscopic structure of a leaf. Like the great French
naturalist, he had to construct a new science at the very outset of his
great work.

[Illustration: Fig. 158.--Andrias Scheuchzeri.]

The Miocene formations of Switzerland are called _Molasse_ (from the
French _mol_, soft), a term which is applied to a _soft_, incoherent,
greenish sandstone, occupying the country between the Alps and the Jura,
and they may be divided into lower, middle, and upper Miocene; the
middle one is marine, the other two being fresh-water formations. The
upper fresh-water Molasse is best seen at Œningen, in the Rhine valley,
where, according to Sir Roderick Murchison, it ranges ten miles east and
west from Berlingen, on the right bank, to Waugen and to Œningen, near
Stein, on the left bank. In this formation Professor Heer enumerates
twenty-one beds. No. 1, a bluish-grey marl seven feet thick, without
organic remains, resting on No. 2, limestone, with fossil plants,
including leaves of poplar, cinnamon, and pond-weed (_Potamogeton_). No.
3, bituminous rock, with _Mastodon angustidens_. No. 5, two or three
inches thick, containing fossil Fishes. No. 9, the stone in which the
skeleton of the great Salamander _Andrias Scheuchzeri_ (Fig. 158) was
found. Below this, other strata with Fishes, Tortoises, the great
Salamander, as before, with fresh-water Mussels, and plants. In No. 16,
Sir R. Murchison obtained the fossil fox of Œningen, _Galacynus
Œningensis_ (Owen). In these beds Professor Heer had, as early as 1859,
determined 475 species of fossil plants, and 900 insects.

The plants of the Swiss Miocene period have been obtained from a country
not one-fifth the size of Switzerland, yet such an abundance of species,
which Heer reckons at 3,000, does not exist in any area of equal extent
in Europe. It exceeds in variety, he considers, after making every
allowance for all not having existed at the same time, and from other
considerations, the Southern American forests, and rivals such tropical
countries as Jamaica and Brazil. European plants occupy a secondary
place, while the evergreen Oaks, Maples, Poplars, and Plane-trees,
Robinias, and Taxodiums of America and the smaller Atlantic islands,
occupy such an important place in the fossil flora that Unger was
induced to suggest the hypothesis, that, in the Miocene period the
present basin of the Atlantic was dry land--and this hypothesis has been
ably advocated by Heer.

       *       *       *       *       *

The terrestrial animals which lived in the Miocene period were Mammals,
Birds, and Reptiles. Many new Mammals had appeared since the preceding
period; among others, Apes, Cheiropteras (Bats), Carnivora, Marsupials,
Rodents, Dogs. Among the first we find _Pithecus antiquus_ and
_Mesopithecus_; the Bats, Dogs, and Coati inhabited Brazil and Guiana;
the Rats North America; the Genettes, the Marmots, the Squirrels, and
Opossums having some affinity to the Opossums of America. Thrushes,
Sparrows, Storks, Flamingoes, and Crows, represent the class Birds.
Among the Reptiles appear several Snakes, Frogs, and Salamanders. The
lakes and rivers were inhabited by Perches and Shad. But it is among the
Mammals that we must seek for the most interesting species of animals of
this period. They are both numerous and remarkable for their dimensions
and peculiarities of form; but the species which appeared in the Miocene
period, as in those which preceded it, are now only known by their
fossil remains and bones.

The _Dinotherium_ (Fig. 159), one of the most remarkable of these
animals, is the largest terrestrial Mammal which has ever lived. For a
long time we possessed only very imperfect portions of the skeleton of
this animal, upon the evidence of which Cuvier was induced erroneously
to place it among the Tapirs. The discovery of a lower jaw, nearly
perfect, armed with defensive tusks descending from its lower jaw,
demonstrated that this hitherto mysterious animal was the type of an
altogether new and singular genus. Nevertheless, as it was known that
there were some animals of the ancient world in which both jaws were
armed, it was thought for some time that such was the case with the
Dinotherium. But in 1836, a head, nearly entire, was found in the
already celebrated beds at Eppelsheim, in the Grand Duchy of Hesse
Darmstadt. In 1837 this fine fragment was carried to Paris, and exposed
to public view. It was nearly a yard and a half long, and above a yard
wide. The defences, it was found, were enormous, and were carried at the
anterior extremity of the lower maxillary bone, and much curved inwards,
as in the Morse. The molar teeth were in many respects analogous to
those of the Tapir, and the great suborbital apertures, joined to the
form of the nasal bone, rendered the existence of a proboscis or trunk
very probable. But the most remarkable bone belonging to the Dinotherium
which has yet been found is an omoplate or scapula, which by its form
reminds us of that of the Mole.

[Illustration: Fig. 159.--Dinotherium.]

This colossus of the ancient world, respecting which there has been so
much argument, somewhat approaches the Mastodon; it seems to announce
the appearance of the Elephant; but its dimensions were infinitely
greater than those of existing Elephants, and superior even to those of
the Mastodon and of the Mammoth, both fossil Elephants, the remains of
which we shall have to describe presently.

[Illustration: Fig. 160.--Teeth of Mastodon.]

From its kind of life, and its frugal regimen, this Pachyderm scarcely
merited the formidable name of Dinotherium which has been bestowed on it
by naturalists (from δεινος, _terrible_, θηριον, _animal_). Its size
was, no doubt, frightful enough, but its habits seem to have been
peaceful. It is supposed to have inhabited fresh-water lakes, or the
mouths of great rivers and the marshes bordering their banks by
preference. Herbivorous, like the Elephant, it employed its proboscis
probably in seizing the plants which hung suspended over the waters, or
floated on their surface. We know that the elephants are very partial to
the roots of herbaceous plants which grow in flooded plains. The
Dinotherium appears to have been organised to satisfy the same tastes.
With the powerful natural mattock which Nature had supplied him for
penetrating the soil, he would be able to tear from the bed of the
river, or lake, feculent roots like those of the Nymphæa, or even much
harder ones, for which the mode of articulation of the jaws, and the
powerful muscles intended to move them, as well as the large surface of
the teeth, so well calculated for grinding, were evidently intended
(Fig. 160).

       *       *       *       *       *

The _Mastodon_ was, to all appearance, very nearly of the size and form
of our Elephant--his body, however, being somewhat longer, while his
limbs, on the contrary, were a little thicker. He had tusks, and very
probably a trunk, and is chiefly distinguished from the existing
Elephant by the form of his molar teeth, which form the most distinctive
character in his organisation. These teeth are nearly rectangular, and
present on the surface of their crown great conical tuberosities, with
rounded points disposed in pairs to the number of four or five,
according to the species. Their form is very distinct, and may be easily
recognised. They do not bear any resemblance to those of the carnivora,
but are like those of herbivorous animals, and particularly those of the
Hippopotamus. The molar teeth are at first sharp and pointed, but when
the conical points are ground down by mastication, they assume the
appearance presented in Fig. 161. When, from continued grinding, the
conical teat-like points are more deeply worn, they begin to assume the
appearance shown in Fig. 160. In Fig. 162 we represent the head and
lower jaw of the Miocene Mastodon; from which it will appear that the
animal had two projecting tusks in the lower jaw, corresponding with two
of much larger dimensions which projected from the upper jaw.

[Illustration: Fig. 161.--Molar teeth of Mastodon, worn.]

It was only towards the middle of the last century that the Mastodon
first attracted attention in Europe. About the year 1705, it is true,
some bones of this animal had been found at Albany, now the capital of
New York, but the discovery attracted little attention. In 1739, a
French officer, M. de Longueil, traversed the virgin forests bordering
the great river Ohio, in order to reach the great river Mississippi, and
the savages who escorted him accidentally discovered on the borders of a
marsh various bones, some of which seemed to be those of unknown
animals. In this turfy marsh, which the natives designated the Great
Salt Lake, in consequence of the many streams charged with salt which
lose themselves in it, herds of wild ruminants still seek its banks,
attracted by the salt--for which they have a great fondness--such being
the reason probably which had caused the accumulation, at this point, of
the remains of so large a number of quadrupeds belonging to these remote
ages in the history of the globe. M. de Longueil carried some of these
bones with him, and, on his return to France, he presented them to
Daubenton and Buffon; they consisted of a femur, one extremity of a
tusk, and three molar teeth. Daubenton, after mature examination,
declared the teeth to be those of a Hippopotamus; the tusk and the
gigantic femur, according to his report, belonged to an Elephant; so
that they were not even considered to be parts of one and the same
animal. Buffon did not share this opinion, and he was not long in
converting Daubenton, as well as other French naturalists, to his views.
Buffon declared that the bones belonged to an Elephant, whose race had
lived only in the primitive ages of the globe. It was then, only, that
the fundamental notion of extinct species of animals, exclusively
peculiar to ancient ages of the world, began to be entertained for the
first time by naturalists--a notion which laid dormant during nearly a
century, before it bore the admirable fruits which have since so
enriched the natural sciences and philosophy.

[Illustration: Fig. 162.--Head of the Mastodon of the Miocene period.

A, B, the whole head; C, lower jaw.]

Buffon gave the fossil the name of the _Animal or Elephant of the Ohio_,
but he deceived himself as to its size, believing it to be from six to
eight times the size of our existing Elephant; an estimate which he was
led to make by an erroneous notion with regard to the number of the
Elephant’s teeth. The _Animal of the Ohio_ had only four molars, while
Buffon imagined that it might have as many as sixteen, confounding the
germs, or supplementary teeth, which exist in the young animal, with the
permanent teeth of the adult individual. In reality, however, the
Mastodon was not much larger than the existing species of African
Elephant.

The discovery of this animal had produced a great impression in Europe.
Becoming masters of Canada by the peace of 1763, the English sought
eagerly for more of these precious remains. The geographer Croghan
traversed anew the region of the Great Salt Lake, pointed out by De
Longueil, and found there some bones of the same nature. In 1767 he
forwarded many cases to London, addressing them to divers naturalists.
Collinson, among others, the friend and correspondent of Franklin, who
had his share in this consignment, took the opportunity of sending a
molar tooth to Buffon.

[Illustration: Fig. 163.--Skeleton of Mastodon giganteus.]

It was not, however, till 1801 that the remains of the perfect skeleton
were discovered. An American naturalist, named Peale, was fortunate
enough to get together two nearly complete skeletons of this important
animal. Having been apprised that many large bones had been found in the
marly clay on the banks of the Hudson, near Newburg, in the State of New
York, Mr. Peale proceeded to that locality. In the spring of 1801 a
considerable part of one skeleton was found by the farmer who had dug it
out of the ground, but, unfortunately, it was much mutilated by his
awkwardness, and by the precipitancy of the workmen. Having purchased
these fragments, Mr. Peale sent them on to Philadelphia.

[Illustration: Fig. 164.--Mastodon restored.]

In a marsh, situated five leagues west of the Hudson, the same gentleman
discovered, six months after, a second skeleton of the Mastodon,
consisting of a perfect jaw and a great number of bones. With the bones
thus collected, the naturalist managed to construct two nearly complete
skeletons. One of these still remains in the Museum of Philadelphia; the
other was sent to London, where it was exhibited publicly.

[Illustration: Fig. 165.--Molar tooth of Mastodon.]

Discoveries nearly analogous to these followed, the most curious of
which was made in this manner by Mr. Barton, a Professor of the
University of Pennsylvania. At a depth of six feet in the ground, and
under a great bank of chalk, bones of the Mastodon were found sufficient
to form a skeleton. One of the teeth found weighed about seventeen
pounds (Fig. 165); but the circumstance which made this discovery the
more remarkable was, that in the middle of the bones, and enveloped in a
kind of sac which was probably the stomach of the animal, a mass of
vegetable matter was discovered, partly bruised, and composed of small
leaves and branches, among which a species of rush has been recognised
which is yet common in Virginia. We cannot doubt that these were the
undigested remains of the food, which the animal had browsed on just
before its death.

The aboriginal natives of North America called the Mastodon the _father
of the ox_. A French officer named Fabri wrote thus to Buffon in 1748.
The natives of Canada and Louisiana, where these remains are abundant,
speak of the Mastodon as a fantastic creature which mingles in all their
traditions and in their ancient national songs. Here is one of these
songs, which Fabri heard in Canada: “When the great _Manitou_ descended
to the earth, in order to satisfy himself that the creatures he had
created were happy, he interrogated all the animals. The bison replied
that he would be quite contented with his fate in the grassy meadows,
where the grass reached his belly, if he were not also compelled to keep
his eyes constantly turned towards the mountains to catch the first
sight of the _father of oxen_, as he descended, with fury, to devour
him and his companions.”

The Cheyenne Indians have a tradition that these great animals lived in
former times, conjointly with a race of men whose size was proportionate
to their own, but that the _Great Being_ destroyed both by repeated
strokes of his terrible thunderbolts.

The native Indians of Virginia had another legend. As these gigantic
Elephants destroyed all other animals specially created to supply the
wants of the Indians, God, the thunderer, destroyed them; a single one
only succeeded in escaping. It was “the great male, which presented its
head to the thunderbolts and shook them off as they fell; but being at
length wounded in the side, he took to flight towards the great lakes,
where he remains hidden to this day.” All these simple fictions prove,
at least, that the Mastodon has lived upon the earth at some not very
distant period. We shall see, in fact, that it was contemporaneous with
the Mammoth, which, it is now supposed, may have been co-existent with
the earlier races of mankind, or only preceded a little the appearance
of man.

Buffon, as we have said, gave to this great fossil animal the name of
the Elephant of the Ohio; it has also been called the Mammoth of the
Ohio. In England it was received with astonishment. Dr. Hunter showed
clearly enough, from the thigh-bone and the teeth, that it was no
Elephant; but having heard of the existence of the Siberian Mammoth, he
at once came to the conclusion that they were bones of that animal. He
then declared the teeth to be carnivorous, and the idea of a
_carnivorous elephant_ became one of the wonders of the day. Cuvier at
once dissipated the clouds of doubt which surrounded the subject,
pointing out the osteological differences between the several species,
and giving to the American animal the appropriate name of Mastodon (from
μαστος, _a teat_, and οδους, _a tooth_), or teat-like-toothed animal.

Many bones of the Mastodon have been found in America since that time,
but remains are rarely met with in Europe, except as fragments--as the
portion of a jaw-bone discovered in the Red Crag near Norwich, which
Professor Owen has named _Mastodon angustidens_. It was even thought,
for a long time, with Cuvier, that the Mastodon belonged exclusively to
the New World; but the discovery of many of the bones mixed with those
of the Mammoth, (_Elephas primigenius_) has dispelled that opinion.
Bones of Mastodon have been found in great numbers in the Val d’Arno. In
1858 a magnificent skeleton was discovered at Turin.

The form of the teeth of the Mastodon shows that it fed, like the
Elephant, on the roots and succulent parts of vegetables; and this is
confirmed by the curious discovery made in America by Barton. It lived,
no doubt, on the banks of rivers and on moist and marshy lands. Besides
the great Mastodon of which we have spoken, there existed a Mastodon
one-third smaller than the Elephant, and which inhabited nearly all
Europe.

There are some curious historical facts in connection with the remains
of the Mastodon which ought not to be passed over in silence. On the
11th of January, 1613, the workmen in a sand-pit situated near the
Castle of Chaumont, in Dauphiny, between the cities of Montricourt and
Saint-Antoine, on the left bank of the Rhône, found some bones, many of
which were broken up by them. These bones belonged to some great fossil
Mammal, but the existence of such animals was at that time wholly
unknown. Informed of the discovery, a country surgeon named Mazuyer
purchased the bones, and gave out that he had himself discovered them in
a tomb, thirty feet long by fifteen broad, built of bricks, upon which
he found the inscription TEUTOBOCCHUS REX. He added that, in the same
tomb, he found half a hundred medals bearing the effigy of Marius. This
Teutobocchus was a barbarian king, who invaded Gaul at the head of the
Cimbri, and who was vanquished near _Aquæ Sextiæ_ (Aix in Provence) by
Marius, who carried him to Rome to grace his triumphal procession. In
the notice which he published in confirmation of this story, Mazuyer
reminded the public that, according to the testimony of Roman authors,
the head of the Teuton king exceeded in dimensions all the trophies
borne upon the lances in the triumph. The skeleton which he exhibited
was five-and-twenty feet in length and ten broad.

Mazuyer showed the skeleton of the pretended Teutobocchus in all the
cities of France and Germany, and also to Louis XIII., who took great
interest in contemplating this marvel. It gave rise to a long
controversy, or rather an interminable dispute, in which the anatomist
Riolan distinguished himself--arguing against Habicot, a physician,
whose name is all but forgotten. Riolan attempted to prove that the
bones of the pretended king were those of an Elephant. Numerous
pamphlets were exchanged by the two adversaries, in support of their
respective opinions. We learn also from Gassendi, that a Jesuit of
Tournon, named Jacques Tissot, was the author of the notice published by
Mazuyer. Gassendi also proves that the pretended medals of Marius were
forgeries, on the ground that they bore Gothic characters. It seems very
strange that these bones, which are still preserved in the cases of the
Museum of Natural History in Paris, where anybody may see them, should
ever have been mistaken, for a single moment, for human remains. The
skeleton of Teutobocchus remained at Bordeaux till 1832, when it was
sent to the Museum of Natural History in Paris, where M. de Blainville
declared that it belonged to a Mastodon.

[Illustration: Fig. 166.--Skeleton of Mesopithecus.]

[Illustration: Fig. 167.--Mesopithecus restored. One-fifth natural
size.]

The Apes made their appearance at this period. In the ossiferous beds
of Sansan M. Lartet discovered the _Dryopithecus_, as well as _Pithecus
antiquus_, but only in imperfect fragments. M. Albert Gaudry was more
fortunate: in the Miocene rocks of Pikermi, in Greece, he discovered the
entire skeleton of _Mesopithecus_, which we present here (Fig. 166),
together with the same animal restored (Fig. 167). In its general
organisation it resembles the dog-faced baboon or ape, a piece of
information which has guided the artist in the restoration of the
animal.

       *       *       *       *       *

The seas of the Miocene period were inhabited by great numbers of beings
altogether unknown in earlier formations; we may mention no less than
ninety marine genera which appear here for the first time, and some of
which have lived down to our epoch. Among these, the molluscous
Gasteropods, such as _Conus_, _Turbinella_, _Ranella_, _Murex_ (Fig.
169), and _Dolium_ are the most abundant; with many Lamellibranchiata.

[Illustration: Fig. 168.--Cerithium plicatum.]

[Illustration: Fig. 169.--Murex Turonensis.]

[Illustration: Fig. 170.--Ostrea longirostris. One quarter natural size.

Living form.]

The Foraminifera are also represented by new genera, among which are the
Bolivina, Polystomella, and Dentritina.

Finally, the Crustaceans include the genera _Pagurus_ (or the Hermit
crabs); _Astacus_. (the lobster); and _Portunus_ (or paddling crabs). Of
the first, it is doubtful if any fossil species have been found; of the
last, species have been discovered bearing some resemblance to
_Podophthalmus vigil_, as _P. Defrancii_, which only differs from it in
the absence of the sharp spines which terminate the lateral angles of
the carapace in the former; while _Portunus leucodon_ (Desmarest) bears
some analogy to Lupea.

[Illustration: XXIV.--Ideal Landscape of the Miocene Period.]

       *       *       *       *       *

[Illustration: Fig. 171.--Podophthalmus vigil.]

An ideal landscape of the Miocene period, which is given on the opposite
page (PLATE XXIV.), represents the Dinotherium lying in the marshy
grass, the Rhinoceros, the Mastodon, and an Ape of great size, the
_Dryopithecus_, hanging from the branches of a tree. The products of the
vegetable kingdom are, for the greater part, analogous to those of the
present time. They are remarkable for their abundance, and for their
graceful and serried vegetation; and still remind us in some respects,
of the vegetation of the Carboniferous period. It is, in fact, a
continuation of the characteristics of that period, and from the same
cause, namely, the submersion of land under marshy waters, which has
given birth to a sort of coal which is often found in the Miocene
formation, and which we call _lignite_. This imperfect coal does not
quite resemble that of the Carboniferous, or true Coal-measure period,
because it is of much more recent date, and because it has not been
subjected to the same internal heat, accompanied by the same pressure of
superincumbent strata, which produced the older coal-beds of the Primary
epoch.

[Illustration: Fig. 172.--Lupea pelagica.]

The _lignites_, which we find in the Miocene, as in the Eocene period,
constitute, however, a combustible which is worked and utilised in many
countries, especially in Germany, where it is made in many places to
serve in place of coal. These beds sometimes attain a thickness of above
twenty yards, but in the environs of Paris they form beds of a few
inches only, which alternate with clays and sands. We cannot doubt that
lignites, like true coal, are the remains of the buried forests of an
ancient world; in fact, the substance of the woods of our forests, often
in a state perfectly recognisable, is frequently found in the lignite
beds; and the studies of modern botanists have demonstrated, that the
species of which the lignites are formed, belong to a vegetation
closely resembling that of Europe in the present day.

Another very curious substance is found with the lignite--yellow amber.
It is the mineralised resin, which flowed from certain extinct
pine-trees of the Tertiary epoch; the waves of the Baltic Sea, washing
the amber out of the deposits of sand and clay in which it lies buried,
this substance, being very little heavier than water, is thrown by the
waves upon the shore. For ages the Baltic coast has supplied commerce
with amber. The Phœnicians ascended its banks to collect this beautiful
fossil resin, which is now chiefly found between Dantzic and Memel,
where it is a government monopoly in the hands of contractors, who are
protected by a law making it theft to gather or conceal it.

Amber,[91] while it has lost none of its former commercial value, is,
besides, of much palæontological interest; fossil insects, and other
extraneous bodies, are often found enclosed in the nodules, where they
have been preserved in all their original colouring and integrity of
form. As the poet says--

  [91] See Bristow’s “Glossary of Mineralogy,” p. 11.

    “The things themselves are neither rich nor rare,
     The wonder’s how the devil they got there.”

The natural aromatic qualities of the amber combined with exclusion of
air, &c., have embalmed them, and thus transmitted to our times the
smaller beings and the most delicate organisms of earlier ages.

The Miocene rocks, of marine origin, are very imperfectly represented in
the Paris basin, and their composition changes with the localities. They
are divided into two groups of beds: 1. _Molasse_, or soft clay; 2.
_Faluns_, or shelly marl.

In the Paris basin the _Molasse_ presents, at its base, quartzose sands
of great thickness, sometimes pure, sometimes a little argillaceous or
micaceous. They include beds of sandstone (with some limestone), which
are worked in the quarries of Fontainebleau, d’Orsay, and Montmorency,
for paving-stone for the streets of Paris and the neighbouring towns.
This last formation is altogether marine. To these sands and sandstones
succeeds a fresh-water deposit, formed of a whitish and partly siliceous
limestone, which forms the ground of the plateau of La Beauce, between
the valleys of the Seine and the Loire: this is called the _Calcaire de
la Beauce_. It is there mixed with a reddish and more or less sandy
clay, containing small blocks of burrh-stone used for millstones, easily
recognised by their yellow-ochreous colour, and the numerous cavities
or hollows with which their texture is honeycombed.

This grit, or _silex meulier_, is much used in Paris for the arches of
cellars, underground conduits, sewers, &c.

The _Faluns_ in the Paris basin consist of divers beds formed of shells
and Corals, almost entirely broken up. In many parts of the country, and
especially in the environs of Tours and Bordeaux, they are dug out for
manuring the land. To the Falun series belong the fresh-water marl,
limestone, and sand, which composed the celebrated mound of Sansan, near
Auch, in the Department of Gers, in which M. Lartet found a considerable
number of bones of Turtles, Birds, and especially Mammals, such as
_Mastodon_ and _Dinotherium_, together with a species of long-armed ape,
which he named _Pithecus antiquus_, from the circumstance of its
affording the earliest instance of the discovery of the remains of the
quadrumana, or monkey-tribe, in Europe. Isolated masses of Faluns occur,
also, near the mouth of the Loire and to the south of Tours, and in
Brittany.

[Illustration: Fig. 173.--Caryophylla cyathus.]


PLIOCENE PERIOD.

This last period of the Tertiary epoch was marked, in some parts of
Europe, by great movements of the terrestrial crust, always due to the
same cause--namely, the continual and gradual cooling of the globe. This
leads us to recall what we have repeatedly stated, that this cooling,
during which the outer zone of the fluid mass passed to the solid state,
produced irregularities and inequalities in the external surface,
sometimes accompanied by fractures through which the semi-fluid or pasty
matter poured itself; leading afterwards to the upheaval of mountain
ranges through these gaping chasms. Thus, during the Pliocene period,
many mountains and mountain-chains were formed in Europe by basaltic and
volcanic eruptions. These upheavals were preceded by sudden and
irregular movements of the elastic mass of the crust--by earthquakes, in
short--phenomena which have been already sufficiently explained.

       *       *       *       *       *

In order to understand the nature of the vegetation of the period, as
compared with that with which we are familiar, let us listen to M.
Lecoq: “Arrived, finally,” says that author, “at the last period which
preceded our own epoch--the epoch in which the temperate zones were
still embellished by tropical forms of vegetation, which were, however,
slowly declining, driven out as it were by a cooling climate and by the
invasion of more vigorous species--great terrestrial commotions took
place: mountains are covered with eternal snow; continents now take
their present forms; but many great lakes, now dried up, still existed;
great rivers flowed majestically through smiling countries, whose
surface man had not yet come to modify.

“Two hundred and twelve species compose this rich flora, in which the
Ferns of the earlier ages of the world are scarcely indicated, where the
Palms seem to have quite disappeared, and we see forms much more like
those which are constantly under our observation. The _Culmites
arundinaceus_ (Unger) abounds near the water, where also grows the
_Cyperites tertiarius_ (Unger), where floats _Dotamogeton geniculatus_
(Braun), and where we see submerged _Isoctites Brunnii_ (Unger). Great
Conifers still form the forests. This fine family has, as we have seen,
passed through every epoch, and still presents us with its elegant forms
and persistent evergreen foliage; _Taxodites_, _Thuyoxylum_,
_Abietites_, _Pinites_, _Eleoxylon_, and _Taxites_ being still the forms
most abundant in these old natural forests.

“The predominating character of this period is the abundance of the
group of the Amentaceæ; whilst the Conifers are thirty-two in number, of
the other we reckon fifty-two species, among which are many European
genera, such as _Alnus_; _Quercus_, the oak; _Salix_, the willow;
_Fagus_, the beech; _Betula_, the birch, &c.

“The following families constitute the arborescent flora of the period
besides those already mentioned:--Balsaminaceæ, Lauraceæ, Thymelæaceæ,
Santalaceæ, Cornaceæ, Myrtaceæ, Calycanthaceæ, Pomaceæ, Rosaceæ,
Amygdaleæ, Leguminosæ, Anacardiaceæ, Juglandaceæ, Rhamnaceæ,
Celastrinaceæ, Sapindaceæ, Meliaceæ, Aceraceæ, Tiliaceæ, Magnoliaceæ,
Capparidaceæ, Sapoteaceæ, Styracaceæ, Oleaceæ, Juncaceæ, Ericaceæ.

“In all these families great numbers of European genera are found, often
even more abundant in species than now. Thus, as Brongniart observes, in
this flora we reckon fourteen species of Maple; three species of Oak;
and these species proceed from two or three very circumscribed
localities, which would not probably, at the present time, represent in
a radius of several leagues more than three or four species of these
genera.”

An important difference distinguishes the Pliocene flora, as compared
with those of preceding epochs, it is the absence of the family of Palms
in the European flora, as noted by Lecoq, which forms such an essential
botanical feature in the Miocene period. We mention this, because, in
spite of the general analogy which exists between the vegetation of the
Pliocene period and that of temperate regions in the present day, it
does not appear that there is a single species of the former period
absolutely identical with any one now growing in Europe. Thus, the
European vegetation, even at the most recent geological epoch, differs
specifically from the vegetation of our age, although a general
resemblance is observable between the two.

[Illustration: Fig. 174.--Skeleton of the Mastodon of Turin.]

The terrestrial animals of the Pliocene period present us with a great
number of creatures alike remarkable from their proportions and from
their structure. The Mammals and the batrachian Reptiles are alike
deserving of our attention in this epoch. Among the former the Mastodon,
which makes its first appearance in the Miocene formations, continues
to be found, but becomes extinct apparently before we reach the upper
beds. Others present themselves of genera totally unknown till now, some
of them, such as the _Hippopotamus_, the _Camel_, the _Horse_, the _Ox_,
and the _Deer_, surviving to the present day. The fossil horse, of all
animals, is perhaps that which presents the greatest resemblance to
existing individuals; but it was small, not exceeding the ass in size.

[Illustration: Fig. 175.--Head of Rhinoceros tichorhinus, partly
restored under the direction of Eugene Deslongchamps.]

The _Mastodon_, which we have considered in our description of the
preceding period, still existed in Pliocene times; in Fig. 174 the
species living in this latter age is represented--it is called the
Mastodon of Turin. As we see, it has only two projecting tusks or
defences in the upper jaw, instead of four, like the American species,
which is described in page 343. Other species belonging to this period
are not uncommon; the portion of an upper jaw-bone with a tooth which
was found in the Norwich Crag at Postwick, near Norwich, Dr. Falconer
has shown to be a Pliocene species, first observed in Auvergne, and
named by Messrs. Croizet and Jobert, its discoverers, _Mastodon
Arvernensis_.

The _Hippopotamus_, _Tapir_, and _Camel_, which appear during the
Pliocene period, present no peculiar characteristics to arrest our
attention.

The Apes begin to abound in species; the Stags were already numerous.

The _Rhinoceros_, which made its appearance in the Miocene period,
appears in greater numbers in the Pliocene deposits. The species
peculiar to the Tertiary epoch is _R. tichorhinus_, which is descriptive
of the bony partition which separated its two nostrils, an anatomical
arrangement which is not found in our existing species. Two horns
surmount the nose of this animal, as represented in Fig. 175. Two living
species, namely, the Rhinoceros of Africa and Sumatra, have two horns,
but they are much smaller than those of _R. tichorhinus_. The existing
Indian Rhinoceros has only one horn.

The body of _R. tichorhinus_ was covered with very thick hair, and its
skin was without the rough and callous scales which we remark on the
skin of the living African species.

Contemporaneously with this gigantic species there existed a dwarf
species about the size of our Hog; and along with it several
intermediate species, whose bones are found in sufficient numbers to
enable us to reconstruct the skeleton. The curvature of the nasal bone
of the fossil Rhinoceros and its gigantic horn have given rise to many
tales and popular legends. The famous bird, the _Roc_, which played so
great a part in the fabulous myths of the people of Asia, originated in
the discovery in the bosom of the earth of the cranium and horns of a
fossil Rhinoceros. The famous dragons of western tradition have a
similar origin.

In the city of Klagenfurth, in Carinthia, is a fountain on which is
sculptured the head of a monstrous dragon with six feet, and a head
surmounted by a stout horn. According to the popular tradition still
prevalent at Klagenfurth, this dragon lived in a cave, whence it issued
from time to time to frighten and ravage the country. A bold cavalier
kills the dragon, paying with his life for this proof of his courage. It
is the same legend which is current in every country, from that of the
valiant St. George and the Dragon and of St. Martha, who nearly about
the same age conquered the fabulous _Tarasque_ of the city of Languedoc,
which bears the name of Tarascon.

But at Klagenfurth the popular legend has happily found a
mouth-piece--the head of the pretended dragon, killed by the valorous
knight, is preserved in the Hôtel de Ville, and this head has furnished
the sculptor for his fountain with a model for the head of his statue.
Herr Unger, of Vienna, recognised at a glance the cranium of the fossil
Rhinoceros; its discovery in some cave had probably originated the fable
of the knight and the dragon. And all legends are capable of some such
explanation when we can trace them back to their sources, and reason
upon the circumstances on which they are founded.

The traveller Pallas gives a very interesting account of a _Rhinoceros
tichorhinus_ which he saw, with his own eyes, taken out of the ice in
which its skin, hair, and flesh had been preserved. It was in December,
1771, that the body of the Rhinoceros was observed buried in the frozen
sand upon the banks of the Viloui, a river which discharges itself into
the Lena below Yakutsk, in Siberia, in 64° north latitude. “I ought to
speak,” the learned naturalist says, “of an interesting discovery which
I owe to the Chevalier de Bril. Some Yakouts hunting this winter near
the Viloui found the body of a large unknown animal. The Sieur Ivan
Argounof, inspector of the Zimovic, had sent on to Irkutsk the head and
a fore and hind foot of the animal, all very well preserved.” The Sieur
Argounof, in his report, states that the animal was half buried in the
sand; it measured as it lay three ells and three-quarters Russian in
length, and he estimated its height at three and a half; the animal,
still retaining its flesh, was covered with skin which resembled tanned
leather; but it was so decomposed that he could only remove the fore and
hind foot and the head, which he sent to Irkutsk, where Pallas saw them.
“They appeared to me at first glance,” he says, “to belong to a
Rhinoceros; the head especially was quite recognisable, since it was
covered with its leathery skin, and the skin had preserved all its
external characters, and many short hairs. The eyelids had even escaped
total decay, and in the cranium here and there, under the skin, I
perceived some matter which was evidently the remains of putrefied
flesh. I also remarked in the feet the remains of the tendons and
cartilages where the skin had been removed. The head was without its
horn, and the feet without hoofs. The place of the horn, and the raised
skin which had surrounded it, and the division which existed in both the
hind and fore feet, were evident proofs of its being a Rhinoceros. In a
dissertation addressed to the Academy of St. Petersburg, I have given a
full account of this singular discovery. I give there reasons which
prove that a Rhinoceros had penetrated nearly to the Lena, in the most
northern regions, and which have led to the discovery of the remains of
other strange animals in Siberia. I shall confine myself here to a
description of the country where these curious remains were found, and
to the cause of their long preservation.

“The country watered by the Viloui is mountainous; all the
stratification of these mountains is horizontal. The beds consist of
selenitic and calcareous schists and beds of clay, mixed with numerous
beds of pyrites. On the banks of the Viloui we meet with coal much
broken; probably coal-beds exist higher up near to the river. The brook
Kemtendoï skirts a mountain entirely formed of selenite or crystallised
sulphate of lime and of rock-salt, and this mountain of alabaster is
more than 300 versts (about 200 miles), in ascending the Viloui, from
the place where the Rhinoceros was found. Opposite to the place we see,
near the river, a low hill, about a hundred feet high, which, though
sandy, contains some beds of millstone. The body of the Rhinoceros had
been buried in coarse gravelly sand near this hill, and the nature of
the soil, which is always frozen, had preserved it. The soil near the
Viloui never thaws to a great depth, for, although the rays of the sun
soften the soil to the depth of two yards in the more elevated sandy
places, in the valleys, where the soil is half sand and half clay, it
remains frozen at the end of summer half an ell below the surface.
Without this intense cold the skin of the animal and many parts of it
would long since have perished. The animal could only have been
transported from some southern country to the frozen north at the epoch
of the Deluge, for the most ancient chronicles speak of no changes of
the globe more recent, to which we could attribute the deposit of these
remains and of the bones of elephants which are found dispersed all over
Siberia.”[92]

  [92] “Pallas’s Voyage,” vol. iv., pp. 130-134.

In this extract the author refers to a memoir previously published by
himself, in the “Commentarii” of the Academy of St. Petersburg. This
memoir, written in Latin, and entitled “Upon some Animals of Siberia,”
has never been translated. After some general considerations, the author
thus relates the circumstances attending the discovery of the fossil
Rhinoceros, with some official documents affirming their correctness,
and the manner in which the facts were brought under his notice by the
Governor of Irkutsk, General Bril: “The skin and tendons of the head and
feet still preserved considerable flexibility, imbued as it were with
humidity from the earth; but the flesh exhaled a fetid ammoniacal odour,
resembling that of a latrine. Compelled to cross the Baïkal Lake before
the ice broke up, I could neither draw up a sufficiently careful
description nor make sketches of the parts of the animal; but I made
them place the remains, without leaving Irkutsk, upon a furnace, with
orders that after my departure they should be dried by slow degrees and
with the greatest care, continuing the process for some time, because
the viscous matter which incessantly oozed out could only be dissipated
by great heat. It happened, unfortunately, that during the operation the
posterior part of the upper thigh and the foot were burnt in the
overheated furnace, and they were thrown away; the head and the
extremity of the hind foot only remained intact and undamaged by the
process of drying. The odour of the softer parts, which still contained
viscous matter in their interior, was changed by the desiccation into
one resembling that of flesh decomposed in the sun.

“The Rhinoceros to which the members belonged was neither large for its
species nor advanced in age, as the bones of the head attest, yet it
was evidently an adult from the comparison made of the size of the
cranium as compared with that of others of the same species more aged,
which were afterwards found in a fossil state in divers parts of
Siberia. The entire length of the head from the upper part of the nape
of the neck to the extremity of the denuded bone of the jaw was thirty
inches; the horns were not with the head, but we could still see evident
vestiges of two horns, the nasal and frontal. The front, unequal and a
little protuberant between the orbits, and of a rhomboidal egg-shape, is
deficient in the skin, and only covered by a light horny membrane,
bristling with straight hairs as hard as horn.

“The skin which covers the greater part of the head is in the dried
state, a tenacious, fibrous substance, like curried leather, of a
brownish-black on the outside and white in the inside; when burnt, it
had the odour of common leather; the mouth, in the place where the lips
should have been soft and fleshy, was putrid and much lacerated; the
extremities of the maxillary bone were bare. Upon the left side, which
had probably been longest exposed to the air, the skin was here and
there decomposed and rubbed on the surface; nevertheless, the greater
part of the mouth was so well preserved on the right side that the
pores, or little holes from which doubtless the hairs had fallen, were
still visible all over that side, and even in front. In the right side
of the jaw there were still in certain places numerous hairs grouped in
tufts, for the most part rubbed down to the roots, and here and there of
two or three lines still retaining their full length. They stand erect,
are stiff, and of an ashy colour, but with one or two black, and a
little stiffer than the others, in each bunch.

“What was most astonishing, however, was the fact that the skin which
covered the orbits of the eyes, and formed the eyelids, was so well
preserved and so healthy that the openings of the eyelids could be seen,
though deformed and scarcely penetrable to the finger; the skin which
surrounded the orbits, though desiccated, formed circular furrows. The
cavities of the eyes were filled with matter, either argillaceous or
animal, such as still occupied a part of the cavity of the cranium.
Under the skin the fibres and tendons still remained, and above all the
remains of the temporal muscles; finally, in the throat hung some great
bundles of muscular fibres. The denuded bones were young and less solid
than in other fossil crania of the same species. The bone which gave
support to the nasal horn was not yet attached to the _vomer_; it was
unprovided with articulations like the processes of the young bones. The
extremities of the jaws preserved no vestige either of teeth or
sockets, but they were covered here and there with the remains of the
integument. The first molar was distant about four inches from the
extreme edge of the jaw.

“The foot which remains to me, and which, if I am not mistaken, belongs
to the left hind limb, has not only preserved its skin quite intact and
furnished with hairs, or their roots, as well as the tendons and
ligaments of the heel in all their strength, but also the skin itself
quite whole as far as the bend in the knee. The place of the muscles was
filled with black mud. The extremity of the foot is cloven into three
angles, the bony parts of which, with the periosteum, still remain here
and there; the horny hoofs had been detached. The hairs adhering in many
places to the skin were from one to three lines in length, tolerably
stiff and ash-. What remains of it proves that the foot was
covered with bunches of hair, which hung down.

“We have never, so far as I know, observed so much hair on any
rhinoceros which has been brought to Europe in our times, as appears to
have been presented by the head and feet we have described. I leave you
then to decide if our rhinoceros of the Lena was born or not in the
temperate climate of Central Asia. In fact, the rhinoceros, as I gather
from the relations of travellers, belongs to the forests of Northern
India; and it is likely enough that these animals differ in a more hairy
skin from those which live in the burning zones of Africa, just in the
same way that other animals of a hotter climate are less warmly covered
than those of the same genera in temperate countries.”[93]

  [93] “Commentarii Academiæ Petersburgicæ,” p. 3.

Of all fossil ruminants one of the largest and most singular is the
_Sivatherium_, whose remains have been found in the valley of Murkunda,
in the Sewalik branch of the Sub-Himalayan Mountains. Its name is taken
from that of Siva, the Indian deity worshipped in that part of India.

The _Sivatherium giganteum_ had a body as bulky as that of an ox, and
bore a sort of resemblance to the living Elk. It combined in itself the
characteristics of different kinds of Herbivores, at the same time that
it was marked by individual peculiarities. The massive head possessed
four deciduous, hollow horns, like the Prongbuck; two front ones
conical, smooth, and rapidly rising to a point, and two hinder ones of
larger size, and branched, projected forward above the eyes.[94] Thus it
differed from the deer, whose solid horns annually drop off, and from
the antelope tribe, sheep and oxen, whose hollow horns are persistent,
and resembled only one living ruminant, the prongbuck, in having had
hollow horns subject to shedding. Fig. 176 is a representation of the
_Sivatherium_ restored, in so far, at least, as it is possible to do so
in the case of an animal of which only the cranium and a few other bones
have been discovered.

  [94] Dr. James Murie, _Geological Magazine_, vol. viii., p. 438.

[Illustration: Fig. 176.--Sivatherium restored.]

As if to rival these gigantic Mammals, great numbers of Reptiles seem to
have lived in the Pliocene period, although they are no longer of the
same importance as in the Secondary epoch. Only one of these, however,
need occupy our attention, it is the _Salamander_. The living
Salamanders are amphibious Batrachians, with smooth skins, and rarely
attaining the length of twenty inches. The Salamander of the Tertiary
epoch had the dimensions of a Crocodile; and its discovery opens a
pregnant page in the history of geology. The skeleton of this Reptile
was long considered to be that of a human victim of the deluge, and was
spoken of as “_homo diluvii testis_.” It required all the efforts of
Camper and Cuvier to eradicate this error from the minds of the learned,
and probably in the minds of the vulgar it survived them both.

Upon the left bank of the Rhine, not far from Constance, a little above
Stein, and near the village of Œningen, in Switzerland, there are some
fine quarries of schistose limestone. In consequence of their varied
products these quarries have often been described by naturalists; they
are of Tertiary age, and were visited, among others, by Horace de
Saussure, by whom they are described in the third volume of his “Voyage
dans les Alpes.”

In 1725, a large block of stone was found, incrusted in which a skeleton
was discovered, remarkably well preserved; and Scheuchzer, a Swiss
naturalist of some celebrity, who added to his scientific pursuits the
study of theology, was called upon to give his opinion as to the nature
of this relic of ancient times. He thought he recognised in the skeleton
that of a man. In 1726 he published a description of these fossil
remains in the “Philosophical Transactions” of London; and in 1731 he
made it the subject of a special dissertation, entitled “_Homo diluvii
testis_”--Man, a witness of the Deluge. This dissertation was
accompanied by an engraving of the skeleton. Scheuchzer returned to the
subject in another of his works, “Physica Sacra,” saying: “It is certain
that this schist contains the half, or nearly so, of the skeleton of a
man; that the substance even of the bones, and, what is more, of the
flesh and of parts still softer than the flesh, are there incorporated
in the stone; in a word, it is one of the rarest relics which we have of
that accursed race which was buried under the waters. The figure shows
us the contour of the frontal bone, the orbits with the openings which
give passage to the great nerves of the fifth pair. We see there the
remains of the brain, of the sphenoidal bone, of the roots of the nose,
a notable fragment of the maxillary bone, and some vestiges of the
liver.”

And our pious author exclaims, this time taking the lyrical form--

    “Betrübtes Beingerüst von einem altem Sünder
     Erweiche, Stein, das Herz der neuen Bosheitskinder!”

    “O deplorable skeleton of an accursed ancient,
     Mayst thou soften the hearts of the late children of wickedness!”

The reader has before him the fossil of the Œningen schist (Fig. 177).
It is obviously impossible to see in this skeleton what the enthusiastic
savant wished to perceive. And we can form an idea from this instance,
of the errors to which a preconceived idea, blindly followed, may
sometimes lead. How a naturalist of such eminence as Scheuchzer could
have perceived in this enormous head, and in these upper members, the
least resemblance to the osseous parts of a man is incomprehensible!

[Illustration: Fig. 177.--Andrias Scheuchzeri.]

The Pre-Adamite “witness of the deluge” made a great noise in Germany,
and no one there dared to dispute the opinion of the Swiss naturalist,
under his double authority of theologian and savant. This, probably, is
the reason why Gesner in his “Traité des Pétrifactions,” published in
1758, describes with admiration the fossil of Œningen, which he
attributes, with Scheuchzer, to the _antediluvian man_.

Pierre Camper alone dared to oppose this opinion, which was then
universally professed throughout Germany. He went to Œningen in 1787 to
examine the celebrated fossil animal; he had no difficulty in detecting
the error into which Scheuchzer had fallen. He recognised at once that
it was a Reptile; but he deceived himself, nevertheless, as to the
family to which it belonged; he took it for a Saurian. “A petrified
lizard,” Camper wrote; “could it possibly pass for a man?” It was left
to Cuvier to place in its true family the fossil of Œningen; in a memoir
on the subject he demonstrated that this skeleton belonged to one of the
amphibious batrachians called Salamanders. “Take,” he says in his
memoir, “a skeleton of a Salamander and place it alongside the fossil,
without allowing yourself to be misled by the difference of size, just
as you could easily do in comparing a drawing of the salamander of the
natural size with one of the fossil reduced to a sixteenth part of its
dimensions, and everything will be explained in the clearest manner.”

“I am even persuaded,” adds the great naturalist, in a subsequent
edition of this memoir, “that, if we could re-arrange the fossil and
look closer into the details, we should find still more numerous proofs
in the articular faces of the vertebræ, in those of the jaws, in the
vestiges of very small teeth, and even in the labyrinth of the ear.” And
he invited the proprietors or depositaries of the precious fossil to
proceed to such an examination. Cuvier had the gratification of making,
personally, the investigation he suggested. Finding himself at Haarlem,
he asked permission of the Director of the Museum to examine the stone
which contained the supposed fossil man. The operation was carried on in
the presence of the director and another naturalist. A drawing of the
skeleton of a Salamander was placed near the fossil by Cuvier, who had
the satisfaction of recognising, as the stone was chipped away under the
chisel, each of the bones, announced by the drawing, as they made their
appearance. In the natural sciences there are few instances of such
triumphant results--few demonstrations so satisfactory as this, of the
certitude of the methods of observation and induction on which
palæontology is based.

       *       *       *       *       *

During the Pliocene period Birds of very numerous species, and which
still exist, gave animation to the vast solitudes which man had not yet
occupied. Vultures and Eagles, among the rapacious birds; and among
other genera of birds, gulls, swallows, pies, parroquets, pheasants,
jungle-fowl, ducks, &c.

       *       *       *       *       *

In the marine Pliocene fauna we see, for the first time, aquatic Mammals
or Cetaceans--the _Dolphin_ and _Balæna_ belonging to the period. Very
little, however, is known of the fossil species belonging to the two
genera. Some bones of Dolphins, found in different parts of France,
apprise us, however, that the ancient species differed from those of our
days. The same remark may be made respecting the Narwhal. This Cetacean,
so remarkable for its long tusk, or tooth, in the form of a horn, has
at all times been an object of curiosity.

The Whales, whose remains are found in the Pliocene rocks, differ little
from those now living. But the observations geologists have been able to
make upon these gigantic remains of the ancient world are too few to
allow of any very precise conclusion. It is certain, however, that the
fossil differs from the existing Whale in certain characters drawn from
the bones of the cranium. The discovery of an enormous fragment of a
fossil Whale, made at Paris in 1779, in the cellar of a wine-merchant in
the Rue Dauphine, created a great sensation. Science pronounced, without
much hesitation, on the true origin of these remains; but the public had
some difficulty in comprehending the existence of a whale in the Rue
Dauphine. It was in digging some holes in his cellars that the
wine-merchant made this interesting discovery. His workmen found, under
the pick, an enormous piece of bone buried in a yellow clay. Its
complete extraction caused him a great deal of labour, and presented
many difficulties. Little interested in making further discoveries, our
wine-merchant contented himself with raising, with the help of a chisel,
a portion of the monstrous bone. The piece thus detached weighed 227
pounds. It was exhibited in the wine-shop, where large numbers of the
curious went to see it. Lamanon, a naturalist of that day, who examined
it, conjectured that the bone belonged to the head of a whale. As to the
bone itself, it was purchased for the Teyler Museum, at Haarlem, where
it still remains.

There exists in the Museum of Natural History in Paris only a copy of
the bone of the whale of the Rue Dauphine, which received the name of
_Balænodon Lamanoni_. The examination of this figure by Cuvier led him
to recognise it as a bone belonging to one of the antediluvian Balænæ,
which differed not only from the living species, but from all others
known up to this time.

Since the days of Lamanon, other bones of Balæna have been discovered in
the soil in different countries, but the study of these fossils has
always left something to be desired. In 1806 a fossil Balæna was
disinterred at Monte-Pulgnasco by M. Cortesi. Another skeleton,
seventy-two feet long, was found on the banks of the river Forth, near
Alloa, in Scotland. In 1816 many bones of this animal were discovered in
a little valley formed by a brook running into the Chiavana, one of the
affluents of the Po.

Cuvier has established, among the cetacean fossils, a particular genus,
which he designates under the name of _Ziphius_. The animals to which he
gave the name, however, are not identical either with the Whales
(_Balænæ_), the Cachelots or Sperm Whales, or with the Hyperoodons. They
hold, in the order of Cetaceans, the place that the Palæotherium and
Anoplotherium occupy among the Pachyderms, or that which the Megatherium
and Megalonyx occupy in the order of the Edentates. The _Ziphius_ still
lives in the Mediterranean.

[Illustration: Fig. 178.--Pecten Jacobæus.

(Living species.)]

       *       *       *       *       *

The genera of Mollusca, which distinguish this period from all others,
are very numerous. They include the Cardium, Panopæa, Pecten (Fig.
178), Fusus, Murex, Cypræa, Voluta, Chenopus, Buccinum, Nassa, and many
others.

       *       *       *       *       *

The _Pliocene_ series prevails over Norfolk, Suffolk, and Essex, where
it is popularly known as the Crag. In Essex it rests directly on the
London Clay. Near Norwich it rests on the Chalk.

The _Pliocene rocks_ are divided into lower and upper. The _Older
Pliocene_ comprises the White or Coralline Crag, including the Red Crag
of Suffolk, containing marine shells, of which sixty per cent. are of
extinct species. The _Newer Pliocene_ is represented by the
Fluvio-marine or Norwich Crag, which last, according to the Rev. Osmond
Fisher, is overlaid by Chillesford clay, a very variable and more arctic
deposit, often passing suddenly into sands without a trace of clay.

The Norfolk Forest Bed rests upon the Chillesford clay, when that is not
denuded.

A ferruginous bed, rich in mammalian remains, and known as the Elephant
bed, overlies the Forest Bed, of which it is considered by the Rev. John
Gunn to be an upper division.

The Crag, divided into three portions, is a local deposit of limited
extent. It consists of variable beds of sand, gravel, and marl;
sometimes it is a shelly ferruginous grit, as the Red Crag; at others a
soft calcareous rock made up of shells and bryozoa, as the Coralline
Crag.

The _Coralline Crag_, of very limited extent in this country, ranges
over about twenty miles between the rivers Stour and Alde, with a
breadth of three or four. It consists of two divisions--an upper one,
formed chiefly of the remains of Bryozoa, and a lower one of
light- sands, with a profusion of shells. The upper division is
about thirty-six feet thick at Sudbourne in Suffolk, where it consists
of a series of beds almost entirely composed of comminuted shells and
remains of Bryozoa, forming a soft building-stone. The lower division is
about forty-seven feet thick at Sutton; making the total thickness of
the Coralline Crag about eighty-three feet.

Many of the Coralline Crag Mollusca belong to living species; they are
supposed to indicate an equable climate free from intense cold--an
inference rendered more probable by the prevalence of northern forms of
shells, such as _Glycimeris_, _Cyprina_, and _Astarte_. The late
Professor Edward Forbes, to whom science is indebted for so many
philosophical deductions, points out some remarkable inferences drawn
from the fauna of the Pliocene seas.[95] It appears that in the glacial
period, which we shall shortly have under consideration, many shells,
previously established in the temperate zone, retreated southwards, to
avoid an uncongenial climate. The Professor gives a list of fifty which
inhabited the British seas while the Coralline and Red Crag were
forming, but which are all wanting in the glacial deposits;[96] from
which he infers that they migrated at the approach of the glacial
period, and returned again northwards, when the temperate climate was
restored.[97]

  [95] Edward Forbes in “Memoirs of the Geological Survey of Great
       Britain,” vol. i., p. 336.

  [96] For full information on these deposits the reader is referred to
       the “Memoirs on the Structure of the Crag-beds of Norfolk and
       Suffolk,” by J. Prestwich, F.R.S., in the _Quart. Jour. Geol.
       Soc._, vol. xxvii., pp. 115, 325, and 452 (1871). Also to the
       many Papers by the Messrs. Searles Wood published in the _Quar.
       Jour. Geol. Soc._, the _Ann. Nat. Hist._, the _Phil. Mag._, &c.

  [97] Lyell’s “Elements of Geology,” p. 203.

In the Upper or Mammaliferous (or Norwich) Crag, of which there is a
good exposure in a pit near the asylum at Thorpe, bones of Mammalia are
found with existing species of shells. The greater number of the
Mammalian remains have been supposed, until lately, to be extraneous
fossils; but they are now considered by Mr. Prestwich as truly
contemporaneous. The peculiar mixture of southern forms of life with
others of a more northern type lead to the inference that, at this early
period, a lowering of temperature began gradually to set in from the
period of the Coralline Crag to that of the Forest Bed, which marks the
commencement of the Glacial Period.

The distinction between the Mammaliferous Crag of Norwich and the Red
Crag of Suffolk is purely palæontological, no case of superposition
having yet been discovered, and they are now generally considered as
contemporaneous. Two Proboscidians abundant during the Crag period were
the _Mastodon Arvernensis_ and the _Elephas meridionalis_. In the Red
Crag the Mastodon is stated by the Rev. John Gunn to be more abundant
than the Elephant, while in the Norwich beds their proportions are
nearly equal.

At or near the base of the Red Crag there is a remarkable accumulation,
varying in thickness from a few inches to two feet, of bones, teeth, and
phosphatic nodules (called coprolites), which are worked for making
superphosphate of lime for agricultural manure.

The foreign equivalents of the older Pliocene are found in the
_sub-Apennine strata_. These rocks are sufficiently remarkable in the
county of Suffolk, where they consist of a series of marine beds of
quartzose sand,  red by ferruginous matter.

At the foot of the Apennine chain, which forms the backbone, as it
were, of Italy, throwing out many spurs, the formations on either side,
and on both sides of the Adriatic, are Tertiary strata; they form in
many cases, low hills lying between the Apennines of Secondary formation
and the sea, the strata generally being a light-brown or bluish marl
covered with yellow calcareous sand and gravel, with some fossil shells,
which, according to Brocchi, are found all over Italy. But this wide
range includes some older Tertiary formations, as in the strata of the
Superga near Turin, which are Miocene.

The _Antwerp_ Crag, which is of the same age with the Red and Coralline
Crag of Suffolk, forms great accumulations upon divers points of Europe:
at Antwerp in Belgium, at Carentan and Perpignan, and, we believe, in
the basin of the Rhône, in France. The thickest deposits of this rock
consist of clay and sand, alternating with marl and arenaceous
limestone. These constitute the sub-Apennine hills, alluded to above as
extending on both <DW72>s of the Apennines. This deposit occupies the
Upper Val d’Arno, above Florence. Its presence is recognised over a
great part of Australia. Finally, the seven hills of Rome are composed,
in part, of marine Tertiary rocks belonging to the Pliocene period.

In PLATE XXV. an ideal landscape of the Pliocene period is given under
European latitudes. In the background of the picture, a mountain,
recently thrown up, reminds us that the period was one of frequent
convulsions, in which the land was disturbed and upheaved, and mountains
and mountain-ranges made their appearance. The vegetation is nearly
identical with the present. We see assembled in the foreground the more
important animals of the period--the fossil species, as well as those
which have survived to the present time.

At the close of the Pliocene period, and in consequence of the deposits
left by the seas of the Tertiary epoch, the continent of Europe was
nearly what it is now; few permanent changes have occurred since to
disturb its general outline. Although the point does not admit of actual
proof, there is strong presumptive evidence that in this period, or in
that immediately subsequent to it, the entire European area, with some
trifling exceptions, including the Alps and Apennines, emerged from the
deep. In Sicily, Newer Pliocene rocks, covering nearly half the surface
of the island, have been raised from 2,000 to 3,000 feet above the level
of the sea. Fossil shells have been observed at the height of 8,000 feet
in the Pyrenees; and, as if to fix the date of upheaval, there are great
masses of granite which have penetrated the Lias and the Chalk. Fossil
shells of the period are also found at a height of 10,000 feet in the
Alps, at 13,000 feet in the Andes, and at 18,000 feet in the Himalayas.

[Illustration: XXV.--Ideal Landscape of the Pliocene Period.]

In the mountainous regions of the Alps it is always difficult to
determine the age of beds, in consequence of the disturbed state of the
strata; for instance, the lofty chain of the Swiss Jura consists of many
parallel ridges, with intervening longitudinal valleys; the ridges
formed of contorted fossiliferous strata, which are extensive in
proportion to the number and thickness of the formations which have been
exposed on upheaval. The proofs which these regions offer of
comparatively recent elevation are numerous. In the central Alps,
Cretaceous, Oolitic, Liassic, and Eocene strata are found at the
loftiest summits, passing insensibly into metamorphic rocks of granular
limestone, and into talcose and mica-schists. In the eastern parts of
the chain the older fossiliferous rocks are recognised in similar
positions, presenting signs of intense Plutonic action. Oolitic and
Cretaceous strata have been raised 12,000 feet, Eocene 10,000, and
Miocene 4,000 and 5,000 feet above the level of the sea. Equally
striking proofs of recent elevation exist in the Apennines; the
celebrated Carrara marble, once supposed--from its crystalline texture
and the absence of fossils, and from its resting--1. on talcose schists,
2. on quartz and gneiss--to be very ancient, now turns out to be an
altered limestone of the Oolitic series, and the underlying crystalline
rocks to be metamorphosed Secondary sandstones and shales. Had all these
rocks undergone complete metamorphism, another page in the earth’s
history would have been obscured. As it is, the proofs of what we state
are found in the gradual approach of the rocks to their unaltered
condition as the distance from the intrusive rock increases. This
intrusive rock, however, does not always reach the surface, but it
exists below at no great depth, and is observed piercing through the
talcose gneiss, and passing up into Secondary strata.

At the close of this epoch, therefore, there is every probability that
Europe and Asia had pretty nearly attained their present general
configuration.




QUATERNARY EPOCH.


The Quaternary epoch of the history of our globe commences at the close
of the Tertiary epoch, and brings the narrative of its revolutions down
to our own times.

The tranquillity of the globe was only disturbed during this era by
certain cataclysms whose sphere was limited and local, and by an
interval of cold of very extended duration; the _deluges_ and the
_glacial_ period--these are the two most remarkable peculiarities which
distinguished this epoch. But the fact which predominates in the
Quaternary epoch, and distinguishes it from all other phases of the
earth’s history is the appearance of man, the culminating and supreme
work of the Creator of the universe.

In this last phase of the history of the earth geology recognises three
chronological divisions:--

    1. The European Deluges.

    2. The Glacial Period.

    3. The creation of man and subsequent Asiatic Deluge.

Before describing the three orders of events which occurred in the
Quaternary epoch, we shall present a brief sketch of the organic
kingdoms of Nature, namely, of the animals and vegetables which
flourished at this date, and the new formations which arose. Lyell, and
some other geologists, designate this the POST-TERTIARY EPOCH, which
they divide into two subordinate groups.--1. _The Post-Pliocene Period_;
2. _The Recent or Pleistocene Period._


POST-PLIOCENE PERIOD.

In the days of Cuvier the Tertiary formations were considered as a mere
chaos of superficial deposits, having no distinct relations to each
other. It was reserved for the English geologists, with Sir Charles
Lyell at their head, to throw light upon this obscure page of the
earth’s history; from the study of fossils, science has not only
re-animated the animals, it has re-constructed the theatre of their
existence. We see the British Islands now a straggling archipelago, and
then the mouth of a vast river, of which the continent is lost; for,
says Professor Ramsay, “We are not of necessity to consider Great
Britain as having always been an island; it is an accident that it is an
island now, and it has been an island many times before.” In the
Tertiary epoch we see it surrounded, then, by shallow seas swarming with
numerous forms of animal life; islands covered with bushy Palms; banks
on which Turtles basked in the sun; vast basins of fresh or brackish
water, in which the tide made itself felt, and which abounded with
various species of sharks; rivers in which Crocodiles increased and
multiplied; woods which sheltered numerous Mammals and some Serpents of
large size; fresh-water lakes which received the spoils of numerous
shells. Dry land had increased immensely. Groups of ancient isles we
have seen united and become continents, with lakes, bays, and perhaps
inland seas. Gigantic Elephants, vastly larger than any now existing,
close the epoch, and probably usher in the succeeding one; for we are
not to suppose any sudden break to distinguish one period from another
in Nature, although it is convenient to arrange them so for the purposes
of description. If we may judge from their remains, these animals must
have existed in great numbers, for it is stated that on the coast of
Norfolk alone the fishermen, in trawling for oysters, dredged up between
1820 and 1833, no less than 2,000 molar teeth of Elephants. If we
consider how slowly these animals multiply, these quarries of ivory, as
we may call them, must have required many centuries for their production
and accumulation.

The same lakes and rivers were at this time occupied, also, by the
Hippopotamus, as large and as formidably armed as that now inhabiting
the African solitudes; also the two-horned Rhinoceros; and three species
of Bos, one of which was hairy and bore a mane. Some Deer of gigantic
size, as compared with living species, bounded over the plains. In the
same savannahs lived the Reindeer, the Stag, a Horse of small size, the
Ass, the Bear, and the Roe, for Mammals had succeeded the Ichthyosauri
of a former age. Nevertheless, the epoch had its tyrants also. A Lion,
as large as the largest of the Lions of Africa, hunted its prey in the
British jungles. Another animal of the feline race, the _Machairodus_
(Fig. 179), was probably the most ferocious and destructive of
Carnivora; bands of Hyænas and a terrible Bear, surpassing in size that
of the Rocky Mountains, had established themselves in the caverns; two
species of Beaver made their appearance on the scene.

[Illustration: Fig. 179.--_a_, Tooth of Machairodus, imperfect below,
natural size; _b_, outline of cast of tooth, perfect, half natural size;
_c_, tooth of Megalosaurus, natural size.]

The finding of the remains of most of these animals in caverns was
perhaps among the most interesting discoveries of geology. The discovery
was first made in the celebrated Kirkdale Cave in Yorkshire, which has
been described by Dr. Buckland; and afterwards at Kent’s Hole, near
Torquay. This latter pleasant Devonshire town is built in a creek, shut
out from exposure on all sides except the south. In this creek, hollowed
out of the rocks, is the great fissure or cavern known as Kent’s Hole;
like that of Kirkdale, it has been under water, from whence, after a
longer or shorter interval, it emerged, but remained entirely closed
till the moment when chance led to its discovery. The principal cavern
is 600 feet in length, with many crevices or fissures of smaller extent
traversing the rock in various directions. A bed of hard stalagmite of
very ancient formation, which has been again covered with a thin layer
of soil, forms the floor of the cavern, which is a red sandy clay. From
this bed of red loam or clay was disinterred a mass of fossil bones
belonging to extinct species of Bear, Lion, Rhinoceros, Reindeer,
Beaver, and Hyæna.

Such an assemblage gave rise to all sorts of conjectures. It was
generally thought that the dwelling of some beasts of prey had been
discovered, which had dragged the carcases of elephants, deer, and
others into these caves, to devour them at leisure. Others asked if, in
some cases, instinct did not impel sick animals, or animals broken down
by old age, to seek such places for the purpose of dying in quiet; while
others, again, suggested that these bones might have been engulfed
pell-mell in the hole during some ancient inundation. However that may
be, the remains discovered in these caves show that all these Mammals
existed at the close of the Tertiary epoch, and that they all lived in
England. What were the causes which led to their extinction?

It was the opinion of Cuvier and the early geologists that the ancient
species were destroyed in some great and sudden catastrophe, from which
none made their escape. But recent geologists trace their extinction to
slow, successive, and determinative action due to local causes, the
chief one being the gradual lowering of the temperature. We have seen
that at the beginning of the Tertiary epoch, in the older Eocene age,
palms, cocoa-nuts, and acacias, resembling those now met with in
countries more favoured by the sun, grew in our island. The Miocene
flora presents indications of a climate still warm, but less tropical;
and the Pliocene period, which follows, contains remains which announce
an approach to our present climate. In following the vegetable
productions of the Tertiary epoch, the botanist meets with the floras of
Africa, South America, and Australia, and finally settles in the flora
of temperate Europe. Many circumstances demonstrate this decreasing
temperature, until we arrive at what geologists call the _glacial
period_--one of the winters of the ancient world.

But before entering on the evidences which exist of the glacial era we
shall glance at the picture presented by the animals of the period; the
vegetable products we need not dwell on--it is, in fact, that of our own
era, the flora of temperate regions in our own epoch. The same remark
would apply to the animals, but for some signal exceptions. In this
epoch Man appears, and some of the Mammals of the last epoch, but of
larger dimensions, have long disappeared. The more remarkable of these
extinct animals we shall describe, as we have those belonging to
anterior ages. They are not numerous; those of our hemisphere being the
Mammoth, _Elephas primigenius_; the Bear, _Ursus spelæus_; gigantic
Lion, _Felis spelæa_; Hyæna, _Hyæna spelæa_; Ox, _Bison priscus_, _Bos
primigenius_; the gigantic Stag, _Cervus megaceros_; to which we may add
the _Dinornis_ and _Epiornis_, among birds. In America there existed in
the Quaternary epoch some Edentates of colossal dimensions and of very
peculiar structure, these were _Megatherium_, _Megalonyx_, and
_Mylodon_; we shall pass these animals in review, beginning with those
of our own hemisphere.

The Mammoth, the skeleton of which is represented in Fig. 180, surpassed
the largest existing Elephants of the tropics in size, for it was from
sixteen to eighteen feet in height. The teeth, and the size of the
monstrous tusks, much curved, and with a spiral turn outwards, and which
were from ten to fifteen feet in length, serve to distinguish the
Mammoth from the two Elephants living at the present day, the African
and the Indian. The form of its teeth permits of its being distinguished
from its ally, the Mastodon; for while the teeth of the latter have
rough mammillations on their surface, those of the Mammoth, like those
of the living Indian Elephant, have a broad united surface, with regular
furrowed lines of large curvature. The teeth of the Mammoth are four in
number, like the Elephants, two in each jaw when the animal is adult,
its head is elongated, its forehead concave, its jaws curved and
truncated in front. It has been an easy task, as we shall see, to
recognise the general form and structure of the Mammoth, even to its
skin. We know beyond a doubt that it was thickly covered with long
shaggy hair, and that a copious mane floated upon its neck and along its
back; its trunk resembled that of the Indian Elephant; its body was
heavy, with a tail naked to the end, which was covered with thick tufty
hair, and its legs were comparatively shorter than those of the latter
animal, many of the habits of which it nevertheless possessed.
Blumenbach gave it the specific name of _Elephas primigenius_.

[Illustration: Fig. 180.--Skeleton of the Mammoth, Elephas primigenius.]

In all ages, and in almost all countries, chance discoveries have been
made of fossil bones of elephants in the soil. Pliny has transmitted to
us a tradition, recorded by the historian Theophrastus, who wrote 320
years before Jesus Christ, of the existence of bones of fossil ivory in
the soil of Greece, that the bones were sometimes transformed into
stones. “These bones,” the historian gravely tells us, “were both black
and white, and born of the earth.” Some of the elephant’s bones having a
slight resemblance to those of man, they have often been mistaken for
human bones. In the earlier historic times these great bones,
accidentally disinterred, have passed as having belonged to some hero or
demigod; at a later period they were thought to be the bones of giants.
We have already spoken of the mistake made by the Greeks in taking the
patella of a fossil elephant for the knee-bone of Ajax; in the same
manner the bones revealed by an earthquake, and attributed by Pliny to a
giant, belonged, no doubt, to a fossil elephant. To a similar origin we
may assign the pretended body of Orestes, thirteen feet in length, which
was discovered at Tegea by the Spartans; those of Asterius, the son of
Ajax, discovered in the Isle of Ladea, of ten cubits in length (about
eighteen feet), according to Pausanius; finally, such were the great
bones found in the Isle of Rhodes, of which Phlegon of Tralles speaks in
his “Mundus Subterraneus.”

[Illustration: Fig. 181.--Tooth of the Mammoth.]

We might fill volumes with the history of the remains of pretended
giants found in ancient tombs. The books, in fact, which exist, formed a
voluminous literature in the middle ages--entitled _Gigantology_. All
the facts, more or less real, true or imaginative, may be explained by
the accidental discovery of the bones of some of these gigantic animals.
We find in works on Gigantology, the history of a pretended giant,
discovered in the 4th century, at Trapani in Sicily, of which Boccaccio
speaks, and which may be taken for Polyphemus; of another, found in the
16th century, according to Fasellus, near Palermo; others, according to
the same author, at Melilli between Leontium and Syracuse, Calatrasi and
Petralia, at each of which places the bones of supposed giants were
disinterred. P. Kircher speaks of three other giants being found in
Sicily, of which only the teeth remained perfect.

In 1577, a storm having uprooted an oak near the cloisters of Reyden, in
the Canton of Lucerne, in Switzerland, some large bones were exposed to
view. Seven years after, the celebrated physician and Professor at
Basle, Felix Pläten, being at Lucerne, examined these bones, and
declared they could only be those of a giant. The Council of Lucerne
consented to send the bones to Basle for more minute examination, and
Pläten thought himself justified in attributing to the giant a height of
nineteen feet. He designed a human skeleton on this scale, and returned
the bones with the drawing to Lucerne. In 1706 there only remained of
these bones a portion of the scapula and a fragment of the wrist bone;
the anatomist Blumenbach, who saw them at the beginning of the century,
easily recognised in them the bones of an Elephant. Let us not omit to
add, as a complement to this story, that since the sixteenth century,
the inhabitants of Lucerne have adopted the image of this fabulous giant
as the supporter of the city arms.

Spanish history preserves many stories of giants. The supposed tooth of
St. Christopher, shown at Valence, in the church dedicated to the saint,
was certainly the molar tooth of a fossil Elephant; and in 1789, the
canons of St. Vincent carried through the streets in public procession,
to procure rain, the pretended arm of a saint, which was nothing more
than the femur of an Elephant.

In France, in the reign of Charles VII. (1456), some of these bones of
imaginary giants appeared in the bed of the Rhône. A repetition of the
phenomenon occurred near Saint-Peirat, opposite Valence, when the
Dauphin, afterwards Louis XI., then residing at the latter place, caused
the bones to be gathered together and sent to Bourges, where they long
remained objects of public curiosity in the interior of the
Sainte-Chapelle. In 1564 a similar discovery took place in the same
neighbourhood. Two peasants observed on the banks of the Rhône, along a
<DW72>, some great bones sticking out of the ground. They carried them to
the neighbouring village, where they were examined by Cassanion, who
lived at Valence. It was no doubt apropos to this that Cassanion wrote
his treatise “De Gigantibus.” The description given by the author of a
tooth sufficed, according to Cuvier, to prove that it belonged to an
Elephant; it was a foot in length, and weighed eight pounds. It was also
on the banks of the Rhône, but in Dauphiny, as we have seen, that the
skeleton of the famous Teutobocchus, of which we have spoken in a
previous chapter, was found.

In 1663 Otto de Guericke, the illustrious inventor of the air-pump,
witnessed the discovery of the bones of an Elephant, buried in the
shelly limestone, or Muschelkalk. Along with it were found its enormous
tusks, which should have sufficed to establish its zoological origin.
Nevertheless they were taken for horns, and the illustrious Leibnitz
composed, out of the remains, a strange animal, carrying a horn in the
middle of its forehead, and in each jaw a dozen molar teeth a foot long.
Having fabricated this fantastic animal, Leibnitz named it also--he
called it the _fossil unicorn_. In his “Protogæa,” a work remarkable
besides as the first attempt at a theory of the earth, Leibnitz gave the
description and a drawing of this imaginary animal. During more than
thirty years the unicorn of Leibnitz was universally accepted throughout
Germany; and nothing less than the discovery of the entire skeleton of
the Mammoth in the valley of the Unstrut was required to produce a
change of opinion. This skeleton was at once recognised by Tinzel,
librarian to the Duke of Saxe-Gotha, as that of an Elephant, and was
established as such; not, however, without a keen controversy with
adversaries of all kinds.

In 1700 a soldier of Würtemberg accidentally observed some bones showing
themselves projecting out of the earth, in an argillaceous soil, near
the city of Canstadt, not far from the banks of the Necker. Having
addressed a report to the reigning Duke, the latter caused the place to
be excavated, which occupied nearly six months. A veritable cemetery of
elephants was discovered, in which were not less than sixty tusks. Those
which were entire were preserved; the fragments were abandoned to the
court physician, and they became a mere vulgar medicine. In the last
century the fossil bones of bears, which were abundant in Germany, were
administered in that country medicinally, as an absorbent, astringent,
and sudorific. It was then called by the German doctors the _Ebur
fossile_, or _Unicornu fossile_, _Licorn fossil_. The magnificent tusks
of the Mammoth found at Canstadt helped to combat fever and colic. What
an intelligent man this court physician of Würtemberg must have been!

Numerous discoveries like those we have quoted distinguished the 18th
century; but the progress of science has now rendered such mistakes as
we have had to relate impossible. These bones were at length universally
recognised as belonging to an Elephant, but erudition now intervened,
and helped to obscure a subject which was otherwise perfectly clear.
Some learned pedant declared that the bones found in Italy and France
were the remains of the Elephants which Hannibal brought from Carthage
with the army in his expedition against the Romans. The part of France
where the most ancient bones of these Elephants were found is in the
environs of the Rhône, and consequently on the route of the Carthaginian
general, and this consideration appeared to these terrible savants to be
a particularly triumphant answer to the naturalist’s reasoning. Again,
at a later period, Domitius Ænobarbus conducted the Carthaginian armies,
which were followed by a number of Elephants, armed for war. Cuvier
scarcely took the trouble to refute this insignificant objection. It is
merely necessary to read, in his learned dissertation, of the number of
elephants which could remain to Hannibal when he had entered Gaul.

But the best reply that can be made to this strange objection raised by
the learned, is to show how extensively these fossil bones of Elephants
are scattered, not in Europe only, but over the world--there are few
regions of the globe in which their remains are not found. In the north
of Europe, in Scandinavia, in Ireland, in Belgium, in Germany, in
Central Europe, in Poland, in Middle Russia, in South Russia, in Greece,
in Italy, in Africa, in Asia, and, as we have seen, in England. In the
New World remains of the Mammoth are also met with. What is most
singular is that these remains exist more especially in great numbers in
the north of Europe, in the frozen regions of Siberia--regions
altogether uninhabitable for the Elephant in our days. “There is not,”
says Pallas, “in all Asiatic Russia, from the Don to the extremity of
the promontory of Tchutchis, a stream or river, especially of those
which flow in the plains, on the banks of which some bones of Elephants
and other animals foreign to the climate have not been found. But in the
more elevated regions, the primitive and schistose chains, they are
wanting, as are marine petrifactions. But in the lower <DW72>s and in the
great muddy and sandy plains, above all, in places which are swept by
rivers and brooks, they are always found, which proves that we should
not the less find them throughout the whole extent of the country if we
had the same means of searching for them.”

Every year in the season when thaw takes place, the vast rivers which
descend to the Frozen Ocean in the north of Siberia sweep down with
their waters numerous portions of the banks, and expose to view bones
buried in the soil and in the excavations left by the rushing waters.
Cuvier gives a long list of places in Russia in which interesting
discoveries have been made of Elephants’ bones; and it is certainly
curious that the more we advance towards the north in Russia the more
numerous and extensive do the bone depositories become. In spite of the
oft-repeated and undoubted testimony of numerous travellers, we can
scarcely credit the statements made respecting some of the islands of
the glacial sea near the poles, situated opposite the mouth of the Lena
and of the Indighirka. Here, for example, is an extract from “Billing’s
Voyage” concerning these isles: “The whole island (which is about
thirty-three leagues in length), except three or four small rocky
mountains, is a mixture of ice and sand; and as the shores fall, from
the heat of the sun’s thawing them, the tusks and bones of the mammont
are found in great abundance. To use Chvoinoff’s own expression, the
island is formed of the bones of this extraordinary animal, mixed with
the horns and heads of the buffalo, or something like it, and some horns
of the rhinoceros.”

New Siberia and the Lächow Islands off the mouth of the river Lena, are,
for the most part, only an agglomeration of sand, ice, and Elephants’
teeth. At every tempest the sea casts ashore new quantities of mammoths’
tusks, and the inhabitants of Siberia carry on a profitable commerce in
this fossil ivory. Every year, during the summer, innumerable
fishermen’s barks direct their course towards this _isle of bones_; and,
during winter, immense caravans take the same route, all the convoys
drawn by dogs, returning charged with the tusks of the Mammoth, each
weighing from 150 to 200 pounds. The fossil ivory thus withdrawn from
the frozen north is imported into China and Europe, where it is employed
for the same purposes as ordinary ivory, which is furnished, as we know,
by the existing Elephant and Hippopotamus of Africa and Asia.

The _Isle of Bones_ has served as a quarry of this valuable material,
for export to China, for 500 years; and it has been exported to Europe
for upwards of 100. But the supply from these strange diggings
apparently remains practically undiminished. What a number of
accumulated generations of these bones and tusks does not this profusion
imply!

It was in Siberia that the fossil Elephant received the name of the
_Mammoth_, and its tusks that of _mammoth horns_. The celebrated Russian
savant, Pallas, who gave the first systematic description of the
Mammoth, asserts that the name is derived from the word _mama_, which in
the Tartar idiom signifies the _earth_. According to others, the name is
derived from _behemoth_, mentioned in the Book of Job; or from the
epithet _mahemoth_, which the Arabs add to the word “elephant,” to
designate one of unusual size. A curious circumstance enough is, that
this same legend of an animal living exclusively under ground, exists
amongst the Chinese. They call it _tien-schu_, and we read, in the
great Chinese work on natural history, which was written in the
sixteenth century: “The animal named _tien-schu_, of which we have
already spoken in the ancient work upon the ceremonial entitled “Lyki”
(a work of the fifth century before Jesus Christ), is called also
_tyn-schu_ or _yn-schu_, that is to say, _the mouse which hides itself_.
It always lives in subterranean caverns; it resembles a mouse, but is of
the size of a buffalo or ox. It has no tail; its colour is dark; it is
very strong, and excavates caverns in places full of rocks, and
forests.” Another writer, quoting the same passage, thus expresses
himself: “The _tyn-schu_ haunts obscure and unfrequented places. It dies
as soon as it is exposed to the rays of the sun or moon; its feet are
short in proportion to its size, which causes it to walk badly. Its tail
is a Chinese ell in length. Its eyes are small, and its neck short. It
is very stupid and sluggish. When the inundations of the river
_Tamschuann-tuy_ took place (in 1571), a great many tyn-schu appeared in
the plain; it fed on the roots of the plant _fu-kia_.”

The existence in Russia of the bones and tusks of the Mammoth is
sufficiently confirmed by the following extract from an old Russian
traveller, Ysbrants Ides, who, in 1692, was sent by Peter the Great as
ambassador to the Emperor of China. In the extract which follows, we
remark the very surprising fact of the discovery of a head and foot of
the Mammoth which had been preserved in ice with all the flesh. “Amongst
the hills which are situate north-east of the river Kata,” says the
traveller, “the Mammuts’ tongues and legs are found, as they are also
particularly on the shores of the river Jenize, Trugan, Mongamsea, Lena,
and near Jakutskoi, even as far as the Frozen Ocean. In the spring, when
the ice of this river breaks, it is driven in such vast quantities and
with such force by the high swollen waters, that it frequently carries
very high banks before it, and breaks off the tops of hills, which,
falling down, discover these animals whole, or their teeth only, almost
frozen to the earth, which thaw by degrees. I had a person with me who
had annually gone out in search of these bones; he told it to me as a
real truth, that he and his companions found the head of one of these
animals, which was discovered by the fall of such a frozen piece of
earth. As soon as he opened it, he found the greatest part of the flesh
rotten, but it was not without difficulty that they broke out his teeth,
which were placed in the fore-part of his mouth, as those of the
Elephants are; they also took some bones out of his head, and afterwards
came to his fore-foot, which they cut off, and carried part of it to the
city of Trugan, the circumference of it being as large as that of the
waist of an ordinary man. The bones of the head appeared somewhat red,
as though they were tinctured with blood.

“Concerning this animal there are very different reports. The heathens
of Jakuti, Tungusi, and Ostiacki, say that they continually, or at
least, by reason of the very hard frosts, mostly live under ground,
where they go backwards and forwards; to confirm which they tell us,
that they have often seen the earth heaved up when one of these beasts
was upon the march, and after he was passed, the place sink in, and
thereby make a deep pit. They further believe, that if this animal comes
so near to the surface of the frozen earth as to smell the air, he
immediately dies, which they say is the reason that several of them are
found dead on the high banks of the river, where they unawares came out
of the ground.

“This is the opinion of the Infidels concerning these beasts, which are
never seen.

“But the old Siberian Russians affirm, that the Mammuth is very like the
Elephant, with this difference only, that the teeth of the former are
firmer, and not so straight as those of the latter. They also are of
opinion that there were Elephants in this country before the Deluge,
when this climate was warmer, and that their drowned bodies, floating on
the surface of the water of that flood, were at last washed and forced
into subterranean cavities; but that after this universal deluge, the
air, which before was warm, was changed to cold, and that these bones
have lain frozen in the earth ever since, and so are preserved from
putrefaction till they thaw, and come to light, which is no very
unreasonable conjecture, though it is not absolutely necessary that this
climate should have been warmer before the Flood, since the carcases of
the drowned elephants were very likely to float from other places
several hundred miles distant to this country in the great deluge which
covered the surface of the whole earth. Some of these teeth, which
doubtless have lain the whole summer on the shore, are entirely black
and broken, and can never be restored to their former condition. But
those which are found in good case, are as good as ivory, and are
accordingly transported to all parts of Muscovy, where they are used to
make combs, and all other such-like things, instead of ivory.

“The above-mentioned person also told me that he once found two teeth in
one head that weighed above twelve Russian pounds, which amount to four
hundred German pounds; so that these animals must of necessity be very
large, though a great many lesser teeth are found. By all that I could
gather from the heathens, no person ever saw one of these beasts alive,
or can give any account of its shape; so that all we heard said on this
subject arises from bare conjecture only.”

It is possible this recital may seem suspicious to some readers. We have
ourselves felt some difficulty in believing that this head and foot were
taken from the ice, with the flesh and skin, when we consider that the
animal to which they belonged has been extinct probably more than ten
thousand years. But the assertion of Ysbrants Ides is confirmed by
respectable testimony of more recent date. In 1800, a Russian
naturalist, Gabriel Sarytschew, travelled in northern Siberia. Having
arrived in the neighbourhood of the Frozen Ocean, he found upon the
banks of the Alasœia, which discharges itself into this sea, the entire
body of a Mammoth enveloped in a mass of ice. The body was in a complete
state of preservation, for the permanent contact of the ice had kept out
the air and prevented decomposition. It is well known that at zero and
below it, animal substances will not putrefy, so that in our households
we can preserve all kinds of animal food as long as we can surround them
with ice; and this is precisely what happened to the Mammoth found by
Gabriel Sarytschew in the ice of the Alasœia. The rolling waters had
disengaged the mass of ice which had imprisoned the monstrous pachyderm
for thousands of years. The body, in a complete state of preservation
and covered with its flesh as well as its entire hide, to which long
hairs adhered in certain places, found itself, again, nearly erect on
its four feet.

The Russian naturalist Adams, in 1806, made a discovery quite as
extraordinary as the preceding. We borrow his account from a paper by
Dr. Tilesius in the “Memoirs of the Imperial Academy of Sciences of St.
Petersburg” (vol. v.). In 1799, a Tungusian chief, Ossip Schumachoff,
while seeking for mammoth-horns on the banks of the lake Oncoul,
perceived among the blocks of ice a shapeless mass, not at all
resembling the large pieces of floating wood which are commonly found
there. The following year he noticed that this mass was more disengaged
from the blocks of ice, and had two projecting parts, but he was still
unable to make out what it could be. Towards the end of the following
summer one entire side of the animal and one of his tusks were quite
free from the ice. But the succeeding summer of 1802, which was less
warm and more windy than common, caused the Mammoth to remain buried in
the ice, which had scarcely melted at all. At length, towards the end of
the fifth year (1803), the ice between the earth and the Mammoth having
melted faster than the rest, the plane of its support became inclined;
and this enormous mass fell by its own weight on a bank of sand. In the
month of March, 1804, Schumachoff cut off the horns (the tusks), which
he exchanged with the merchant Bultenof for goods of the value of fifty
roubles (not quite eight pounds sterling). It was not till two years
after this that Mr. Adams, of the St. Petersburg Academy, who was
travelling with Count Golovkin, sent by the Czar of Russia on an embassy
to China, having been told at Jakutsk of the discovery of an animal of
extraordinary magnitude on the shores of the Frozen Ocean, near the
mouth of the river Lena, betook himself to the place. He found the
Mammoth still in the same place, but altogether mutilated. The
Jakoutskis of the neighbourhood had cut off the flesh, with which they
fed their dogs; wild beasts, such as white bears, wolves, wolverines,
and foxes, had also fed upon it, and traces of their footsteps were seen
around. The skeleton, almost entirely cleared of its flesh, remained
whole, with the exception of one fore-leg. The spine of the back, one
scapula, the pelvis, and the other three limbs were still held together
by the ligaments and by parts of the skin; the other scapula was found
not far off. The head was covered with a dry skin; one of the ears was
furnished with a tuft of hairs; the balls of the eyes were still
distinguishable; the brain still occupied the cranium, but seemed dried
up; the point of the lower lip had been gnawed and the upper lip had
been destroyed so as to expose the teeth; the neck was furnished with a
long flowing mane; the skin, of a dark-grey colour, covered with black
hairs and a reddish wool, was so heavy that ten persons found great
difficulty in transporting it to the shore. There was collected,
according to Mr. Adams, more than thirty-six pounds’ weight of hair and
wool which the white bears had trod into the ground, while devouring the
flesh. This Mammoth was a male so fat and well fed, according to the
assertion of the Tungusian chief, that its belly hung down below the
joints of its knees. Its tusks were nine feet six inches in length,
measured along the curve, and its head without the tusks weighed 414
pounds avoirdupois.

Mr. Adams took every care to collect all that remained of this unique
specimen of an ancient creation, and forwarded the parts to St.
Petersburg, a distance of 11,000 versts (7,330 miles). He succeeded in
re-purchasing what he believed to be the tusks at Jakutsk, and the
Emperor of Russia, who became the owner of this precious relic, paid him
8,000 roubles. The skeleton is deposited in the Museum of the Academy of
St. Petersburg, and the skin still remains attached to the head and the
feet. “We have yet to find,” says Cuvier, “any individual equal to
it.”

[Illustration: XXVI.--Skeleton of the Mammoth in the St. Petersburg
Museum.]

Beside the skeleton of this famous Mammoth there is placed that of an
Indian Elephant, and another Elephant with skin and hair, in order that
the visitor may have a proper appreciation of the vast proportions of
the Mammoth, as compared with them. PLATE XXVI., on the opposite page,
represents the saloon of the Museum of St. Petersburg, which contains
these three interesting remains.

[Illustration: Fig. 182.--Mammoth restored.]

In 1860 a great number of bones of the Mammoth, with remains of Hyæna,
Horse, Reindeer, Rhinoceros-megarhinus, and Bison, were found in Belgium
in digging a canal at Lierre, in the province of Antwerp. An entire
skeleton of a young Mammoth, eleven feet six inches high (to the
shoulder), has been reconstructed from these remains by M. Dupont, and
is now placed in the Royal Museum of Natural History in Brussels.[98]

  [98] H. Woodward, _Geological Magazine_, vol. viii., p. 193.

We cannot doubt, after such testimony, of the existence in the frozen
north, of the almost entire remains of the Mammoth. The animals seem to
have perished suddenly; enveloped in ice at the moment of their death,
their bodies have been preserved from decomposition by the continued
action of the cold. If we suppose that one of those animals had sunk
into a marsh which froze soon afterwards, or had fallen accidentally
into the crevasse of some glacier, it would be easy for us to understand
how its body, buried immediately under eternal ice, had remained there
for thousands of years without undergoing decomposition.

In Cuvier’s great work on _fossil bones_, he gives a long and minute
enumeration of the various regions of Germany, France, Italy, and other
countries, which have furnished in our days bones or tusks of the
Mammoth. We venture to quote two of these descriptions:--“In October,
1816,” he says, “there was discovered at Seilberg, near Canstadt, in
Würtemberg, near which some remarkable discoveries were made in 1700, a
very remarkable deposit, which the king, Frederick I., caused to be
excavated, and its contents collected with the greatest care. We are
even assured that the visit which the prince, in his ardour for all that
was great, paid to this spot, aggravated the malady of which he died a
few days after. An officer, Herr Natter, commenced some excavations, and
in four-and-twenty hours discovered twenty-one teeth or fragments of
teeth of elephant, mixed with a great number of bones. The king having
ordered him to continue the excavations, on the second day they came
upon a group of thirteen tusks heaped close upon each other, and along
with them some molar teeth, lying as if they had been packed
artificially. It was on this discovery that the king caused himself to
be transported thither, and ordered all the surrounding soil to be dug
up, and every object to be carefully preserved in its original position.
The largest of the tusks, though it had lost its points and its roots,
was still eight feet long and one foot in diameter. Many isolated tusks
were also found, with a quantity of molar teeth, from two inches to a
foot in length, some still adhering to the jaws. All these fragments
were better preserved than those of 1700, which was attributed to the
depth of the bed, and, perhaps, to the nature of the soil. The tusks
were generally much curved. In the same deposit some bones of Horses and
Stags were found, together with a quantity of teeth of the Rhinoceros,
and others which were thought to belong to a Bear, and one specimen
which was attributed to the Tapir. The place where this discovery was
made is named Seilberg; it is about 600 paces from the city of Canstadt,
but on the opposite side of the Necker.

“All the great river basins of Germany have, like those of the Necker,
yielded fossil bones of the Elephant; those especially abutting on the
Rhine are too numerous to be mentioned, nor is Canstadt the only place
in the valley of the Necker where they are found.”

But of all parts of Europe, that in which they are found in greatest
numbers is the valley of the Upper Arno. We find there a perfect
cemetery of Elephants. These bones were at one time so common in this
valley, that the peasantry employed them, indiscriminately with stones,
in constructing walls and houses. Since they have learned their value,
however, they reserve them for sale to travellers.

The bones and tusks of the Mammoth are met with in America as well as in
the Old World, scattered through Canada, Oregon, and the Northern States
as far south as the Gulf of Mexico. Cuvier enumerates several places on
that continent where their remains are met with, mingled with those of
the Mastodon. The Russian Lieutenant Kotzebue found them on the north
coast of America, in the cliffs of frozen mud in Eschsholtz Bay, within
Behring’s Strait, and in other distant parts of the shores of the Arctic
Seas, where they were so common that the sailors burnt many pieces in
their fires.

It is very strange that the East Indies, that is, one of the only two
regions which is now the home of the Elephant, should be almost the only
country in which the fossil bones of these animals have not been
discovered. In short, from the preceding enumeration, it appears that,
during the geological period whose history we are recording the gigantic
Mammoth inhabited most regions of the globe. Now-a-days, the only
climates which are suited for the existing race of Elephants are those
of Africa and India, that is to say, tropical countries; from which we
must draw the conclusions to which so many other inferences lead, that,
at the epoch in which these animals lived, the temperature of the earth
was much higher than in our days; or, more probably, the extinct race of
Elephants must have been adapted for living in a colder climate than
that which they now require.

Among the antediluvian Carnivora, one of the most formidable seems to
have been the _Ursus spelæus_, or Cave-bear (Fig. 183). This species
must have been a fifth, if not a fourth, larger than the Brown Bear of
our days. It was also more squat: some of the skeletons we possess are
from nine to ten feet long, and only about six feet high. The _U.
spelæus_ abounded in England, France, Belgium, and Germany; and so
extensively in the latter country, that the teeth of the antediluvian
Bear, as we have already stated, formed for a long time part of its
materia medica, under the name of _fossil licorn_. Fig. 183 represents
the skull of the Cave-bear.

At the same time with the _Ursus spelæus_ another Carnivore, the _Felis
spelæus_, or Cave-lion, lived in Europe. This animal is specifically
identical with the living Lion of Asia and Africa: but since in these
early times he had not to contend with the hunter for food, he was, on
the whole, considerably larger than any Lion now existing on the earth.

[Illustration: Fig. 183.--Head of Ursus spelæus.]

The Hyænas of our age consist of two species, the striped and the
spotted Hyænas. The last presents considerable conformity in its
structure with that of the Post-pliocene period, which Cuvier designates
under the name of the fossil Spotted Hyæna. It seems to have been only a
little larger than the existing species. Fig. 184 represents the head of
the _Hyæna spelæa_, whose remains, with those of others, were found in
the caves of Kirkdale and Kent’s Hole; the remains of about 300 being
found in the former. Dr. Buckland satisfied himself, from the quantity
of their dung, that the Hyænas had lived there. In the cave were found
remains of the ox, young elephant, rhinoceros, horse, bear, wolf, hare,
water-rat, and several birds. All the bones present an appearance of
having been broken and gnawed by the teeth of the Hyænas, and they occur
confusedly mixed in loam or mud, or dispersed through the crust of
stalagmite which covered the contents of the cave.

The Horse dates from the Quaternary epoch, if not from the last period
of the Tertiary epoch. Its remains are found in the same rocks with
those of the Mammoth and the Rhinoceros. It is distinguished from our
existing Horse only by its size, which was smaller--its remains abound
in the Post-pliocene rocks, not only in Europe, but in America; so that
an aboriginal Horse existed in the New World long before it was carried
thither by the Spaniards, although we know that it was unknown at the
date of their arrival. “Certainly it is a marvellous fact in the history
of the Mammalia, that in South America, a native horse should have lived
and disappeared, to be succeeded in after ages by the countless herds
descended from the few introduced with the Spanish colonists!”[99]

  [99] “Darwin’s Journal,” p. 130.

[Illustration: Fig. 184.--Head of Hyæna spelæa.]

The Oxen of the period, if not identical with, were at least very near
to our living species. There were three species: the _Bison priscus_,
_B. primigenius_, and _B. Pallasii_; the first with slender legs, with
convex frontal, broader than it was high, and differing but slightly
from the _Aurochs_, except in being taller and by having larger horns.
The remains of _Bison priscus_ are found in England, France, Italy,
Germany, Russia, and America. _Bison primigenius_ was, according to
Cuvier, the source of our domestic cattle. The _Bos Pallasii_ is found
in America and in Siberia, and resembles in many respects the Musk-ox of
Canada.

Where these great Mammals are found we generally discover the fossil
remains of several species of Deer. The palæontological question as
regards these animals is very obscure, and it is often difficult to
determine whether the remains belong to an extinct or an existing
species. This doubt does not extend, however, to the gigantic
forest-stag, _Cervus megaceros_, one of the most magnificent of the
antediluvian animals, whose remains are still frequently found in
Ireland in the neighbourhood of Dublin; more rarely in France, Germany,
Poland, and Italy. Intermediate between the Fallow-deer and the Elk, the
_Cervus megaceros_ partakes of the Elk in its general proportions and in
the form of its cranium, but it approaches the Fallow-deer in its size
and in the disposition of its horns. These magnificent appendages,
however, while they decorated the head of the animal and gave a most
imposing appearance to it, must have sadly impeded its progress through
the thick and tangled forests of the ancient world. The length of these
horns was between nine and ten feet; and they were so divergent that,
measured from one extremity to the other, they occupied a space of
between three and four yards.

The skeleton of the _Cervus megaceros_ is found in the deposits of
calcareous tufa, which underlie the immense peat moss of Ireland;
sometimes in the turf itself, as near the Curragh in Kildare; in which
position they sometimes occur in little mounds piled up in a small
space, and nearly always in the same attitude, the head aloft, the neck
stretched out, the horns reversed and thrown downwards towards the back,
as if the animal, suddenly immersed into marshy ground, had been under
the necessity of throwing up its head in search of respirable air. In
the Geological Cabinet of the Sorbonne, at Paris, there is a magnificent
skeleton of _Cervus megaceros_; another belongs to the College of
Surgeons in London; and there is a third at Vienna.

       *       *       *       *       *

The most remarkable creatures of the period, however, were the great
Edentates--the Glyptodon, the gigantic Megatherium, the Mylodon and the
Megalonyx. The order of Edentates is more particularly characterised by
the absence of teeth in the fore part of the mouth. The masticating
apparatus of the Edentates consists only of molars, the incisors and
canine teeth being, with a few exceptions, absent altogether, as the
animals composing this order feed chiefly on insects or the tender
leaves of plants. The Armadillo, Anteater and Pangolin, are the living
examples of the order. We may add, as still further characteristics,
largely developed claws at the extremities of the toes. The order seems
thus to establish itself as a zoological link in the chain between the
hoofed Mammals and the ungulated animals, or those armed with claws.
All these animals are peculiar to the continent of America.

The _Glyptodon_, which appears during the Quaternary period, belonged to
the family of Armadilloes, and their most remarkable feature was the
presence of a hard, scaly shell, or coat of mail six feet in length, and
composed of numerous segments, which covered the entire upper service of
the animal from the head to the tail. It was, in short, a mammiferous
animal, which appears to have been enclosed in a shell like that of a
Turtle; it resembled in many respects the _Dasypus_ or Anteater, and had
sixteen teeth in each jaw. These teeth were channelled laterally with
two broad and deep grooves, which divided the surface of the molars into
three parts, whence it was named the Glyptodon. The hind feet were broad
and massive, and evidently designed to support a vast incumbent mass; it
presented phalanges armed with short thick and depressed nails or claws.
The animal was, as we have said, enveloped in, and protected by, a
cuirass, or solid carapace, composed of plates which, seen from beneath,
appeared to be hexagonal and united by denticulated sutures: above they
represented double rosettes. The habitat of _Glyptodon clavipes_ was the
pampas of Buenos Ayres, and the banks of an affluent of the Rio Santo,
near Monte Video; specimens have been found not less than nine feet in
length.

The tesselated carapace of the Glyptodon was long thought to belong to
the Megatherium; but Professor Owen shows, from the anatomical structure
of the two animals, that the cuirass belonged to one of them only,
namely, the Glyptodon.

The _Schistopleuron_ does not differ essentially from the Glyptodon, but
is supposed to have been a different species of the same genus; the
chief difference between the two animals being in the structure of the
tail, which is massive in the first and in the other composed of half a
score of rings. In other respects the organisation and habits are
similar, both being herbivorous, and feeding on roots and vegetables.
Fig. 185 represents the _Schistopleuron typus_ restored, and as it
appeared when alive.

Some of the fossil Tortoises discovered in the sub-Himalayan beds
possessed a carapace twelve feet long by six feet in breadth, which must
have corresponded to an animal from eighteen to twenty feet in length;
and the bones of the legs were as massive as those of the Rhinoceros.

The _Megatherium_, or Animal of Paraguay, as it was called, is, at first
view, the oddest and most remarkable animal we have yet had under
consideration, where all have been, according to our notions, strange,
extraordinary, and formidable. The animal creation still goes on as if--

    “Nature made them and then broke the die.”

[Illustration: Fig. 185.--Schistopleuron typus. One-twentieth natural
size.]

[Illustration: XXVII.--Skeleton of the Megatherium (Clift).]

If we cast a glance at the skeleton figured on the opposite page (PLATE
XXVII.), which was found in Paraguay, at Buenos Ayres, in 1788, and
which is now placed, in a perfect state of preservation, in the Museum
of Natural History in Madrid, it is impossible to avoid being struck
with its unusually heavy form, at once awkward as a whole, and ponderous
in most of its parts. It is allied to the existing genus of Sloths,
which Buffon tells us is “of all the animal creation that which has
received the most vicious organisation--a being to which Nature has
forbidden all enjoyment; which has only been created for hardships and
misery.” This notion of the romantic Buffon is, however, altogether
incorrect. An attentive examination of the _Animal of_ _Paraguay_
shows that its organisation cannot be considered either odd or awkward
when viewed in connection with its mode of life and individual habits.
The special organisation which renders the movements of the Sloths so
sluggish, and apparently so painful on level ground, gives them, on the
other hand, marvellous assistance when they live in trees, the leaves of
which constitute their exclusive food. In the same manner, if we
consider that the _Megatherium_ was created to burrow in the earth and
feed upon the roots of trees and shrubs, every organ of its heavy frame
would appear to be perfectly appropriate to its kind of life, and well
adapted to the special purpose which was assigned to it by the Creator.
We ought to place the Megatherium between the Sloths and the Anteaters.
Like the first, it usually fed on the branches and leaves of trees; like
the latter, it burrowed deep in the soil, finding there both food and
shelter. It was as large as an Elephant or Rhinoceros of the largest
species. Its body measured twelve or thirteen feet in length, and it was
between five and six feet high. The engraving on page 403 (PLATE XXVII.)
will convey, more accurately than any mere verbal description, an idea
of the form and proportions of the animal.

The English reader is chiefly indebted to the zeal and energy of Sir
Woodbine Parish for the materials from which our naturalists have been
enabled to re-construct the history of the Megatherium. The remains
collected by him were found in the river Salado, which runs through the
flat alluvial plains called Pampas to the south of the city of Buenos
Ayres. A succession of three unusually dry seasons had lowered the
waters to such a degree as to expose part of the pelvis to view, as the
skeleton stood upright in the mud forming the bed of the river. Further
inquiries led to the discovery of the remains of two other skeletons
near the place where the first had been found; and with them an immense
shell or carapace was met with, most of the bones associated with which
crumbled to pieces on exposure to the air. The osseous structure of this
enormous animal, as furnished by Mr. Clift, an eminent anatomist of the
day, and under whose superintendence the skeleton was drawn, must have
exceeded fourteen feet in length, and upwards of eight feet in height.
The deeply shaded parts of the figure show the portions which are
deficient in the Madrid skeleton.

Cuvier pointed out that the skull very much resembled that of the
Sloths, but that the rest of the skeleton bore relationship, partly to
the Sloths, and partly to the Anteaters.

The large bones, which descend from the zygomatic arch along the
cheek-bones, would furnish a powerful means of attaching the motor
muscles of the jaws. The anterior part of the muzzle is fully developed,
and riddled with holes for the passage of the nerves and vessels which
must have been there, not for a trunk, which would have been useless to
an animal furnished with a very long neck, but for a snout analogous to
that of the Tapir.

[Illustration: Fig. 186.--Skeleton of Megatherium foreshortened.]

The jaw and dental apparatus cannot be exactly stated, because the
number of teeth in the lower jaw is not known. The upper jaw, Professor
Owen has shown, contained five molars on each side; and from comparison
and analogy with the _Scelidotherium_ it may be conjectured that the
_Megatherium_ had four on each side of the lower jaw. Being without
incisors or canines, the structure of its eighteen molars proves that it
was not carnivorous: they each resemble the composite molars of the
Elephant.

[Illustration: Fig. 187.--Bones of the pelvis of the Megatherium.]

The vertebræ of the neck (as exhibited in the foreshortened figure (Fig.
186), taken from the work of Pander and D’Alton, and showing nearly a
front view of the head), as well as the anterior and posterior
extremities of the Madrid skeleton, although powerful, are not to be
compared in dimensions to those of the other extremity of the body; for
the head seems to have been relatively light and defenceless. The lumbar
vertebræ increase in a degree corresponding to the enormous enlargement
of the pelvis and the posterior members. The vertebræ of the tail are
enormous, as is seen in Fig. 187, which represents the bones of the
pelvis and hind foot, discovered by Sir Woodbine Parish, and now in the
Museum of the College of Surgeons. If we add to these osseous organs the
muscles, tendons, and integuments which covered them, we must admit that
the tail of the _Megatherium_ could not be less than two feet in
diameter. It is probable that, like the Armadillo, it employed the tail
to assist in supporting the enormous weight of its body; it would also
be a formidable defensive organ when employed, as is the case with the
Pangolins and Crocodiles. The fore-feet would be about three feet long
and one foot broad. They would form a powerful implement for excavating
the earth, to the greatest depths at which the roots of vegetables
penetrate. The fore-feet rested on the ground to their full length. Thus
solidly supported by the two hind-feet and the tail, and in advance by
one of the fore-feet, the animal could employ the fore-foot left at
liberty in clearing away the earth, in digging up the roots of trees, or
in tearing down the branches; the toes of the fore-feet were, for this
purpose, furnished with large and powerful claws, which lie at an
oblique angle relatively to the ground, much like the burrowing talons
of the mole.

The solidity and size of the pelvis must have been enormous; its immense
iliac bones are nearly at right angles with the vertebral column; their
external edges are distant more than a yard and a half from each other
when the animal is standing. The femur is three times the thickness of
the thigh-bone of the Elephant, and the many peculiarities of structure
in this bone appear to have been intended to give solidity to the whole
frame, by means of its short and massive proportions. The two bones of
the leg are, like the femur, short, thick, and solid; presenting
proportions which we only meet with in the Armadilloes and Anteaters;
burrowing animals with which, as we have said, its two extremities seem
to connect it.

The anatomical organisation of these members denotes heavy, slow, and
powerful locomotion, but solid and admirable combinations for supporting
the weight of an enormous sedentary creature; a sort of excavating
machine, slow of motion but of incalculable power for its own purposes.
In short, the _Megatherium_ exceeded in dimensions all existing
Edentates. It had the head and shoulders of the Sloth, the feet and legs
combined the characteristics of the Anteaters and Sloths, of enormous
size, since it was at least twelve feet long when full grown, its feet
armed with gigantic claws, and its tail at once a means of supporting
its huge body and an instrument of defence. An animal built with such
massive proportions could evidently neither creep nor run; its walk
would be excessively slow. But what necessity was there for rapid
movement in a being only occupied in burrowing under the earth, seeking
for roots, and which would consequently rarely change its place? What
need had it of agility to fly from its enemies, when it could overthrow
the Crocodile with a sweep of its tail? Secure from the attacks of other
animals, this robust herbivorous creature, of which Figure 188 is a
restoration, must have lived peacefully and respected in the solitary
pampas of America.

[Illustration: Fig. 188.--Megatherium restored.]

The immediate cause of the extinction of the Megatherium is, probably,
to be found in causes which are still in operation in South America. The
period between the years 1827 and 1830 is called the “gran seco,” or
the great drought, in South America; and according to Darwin, the loss
of cattle in the province of Buenos Ayres alone was calculated at
1,000,000 head. One proprietor at San Pedro, in the middle of the finest
pasture-country, had lost 20,000 cattle previously to those years. “I
was informed by an eyewitness,” he adds, “that the cattle, in herds of
thousands, rushed into the Parana, and, being exhausted by hunger, they
were unable to crawl up the muddy banks, and thus were drowned. The arm
of the river which runs by San Pedro was so full of putrid carcases,
that the master of a vessel told me that the smell rendered it quite
impassable. All the small rivers became highly saline, and this caused
the death of vast numbers in particular spots; for when an animal drinks
of such water it does not recover. Azara describes the fury of the wild
horses on a similar occasion: rushing into the marshes, those which
arrived first being overwhelmed and crushed by those which
followed.”[100] The upright position in which the various specimens of
Megatheria were found indicates some such cause of death; as if the
ponderous animal, approaching the banks of the river, when shrunk within
its banks, had been bogged in soft mud, sufficiently adhesive to hold it
there till it perished.

  [100] “Journal of Researches,” &c., 2nd ed., p. 133. Charles Darwin.

Like the Megatherium, the _Mylodon_ closely resembled the Sloth, and it
belonged exclusively to the New World. Smaller than the Megatherium, it
differed from it chiefly in the form of the teeth. These organs
presented only molars with smooth surfaces, indicating that the animal
fed on vegetables, probably the leaves and tender buds of trees. As the
Mylodon presents at once hoofs and claws on each foot, it has been
thought that it formed the link between the hoofed, or ungulated animals
and the Edentates. Three species are known, which lived in the pampas of
Buenos Ayres.

In consequence of some hints given by the illustrious Washington, Mr.
Jefferson, one of his successors as President of the United States,
discovered, in a cavern of Western Virginia, the bones of a species of
gigantic Sloth, which he pronounced to be the remains of some
carnivorous animal. They consisted of a femur, a humerus, an ulna, and
three claws, with half a dozen other bones of the foot. These bones Mr.
Jefferson believed to be analogous to those of the lion. Cuvier saw at
once the true analogies of the animal. The bones were the remains of a
species of gigantic Sloth; the complete skeleton of which was
subsequently discovered in the Mississippi, in such a perfect state of
preservation that the cartilages, still adhering to the bones, were not
decomposed. Jefferson called this species the _Megalonyx_. It resembled
in many respects the Sloth. Its size was that of the largest ox; the
muzzle was pointed; the jaws were armed with cylindrical teeth; the
anterior limbs much longer than the posterior; the articulation of the
foot oblique to the leg; two great toes, short, and armed with long and
very powerful claws; the index finger more slender, and armed also with
a less powerful claw; the tail strong and solid: such were the salient
points of the organisation of the _Megalonyx_, whose form was a little
slighter than that of the _Megatherium_.

[Illustration: Fig. 189.--Mylodon robustus.]

The country in which the Megatherium has been found is described by Mr.
Darwin as belonging to the great Pampean formation, which consists
partly of a reddish clay and in part of a highly calcareous marly rock.
Near the coast there are some plains formed from the wreck of the upper
plain, and from mud, gravel, and sand thrown up by the sea during the
slow elevation of the land, as shown by the raised beds of recent
shells. At Punta Alta there is a highly-interesting section of one of
the later-formed little plains, in which many remains of these gigantic
land-animals have been found. These were, says Mr. Darwin:--“First,
parts of three heads and other bones of the Megatherium, the huge
dimensions of which are expressed by its name. Secondly, the
_Megalonyx_, a great allied animal. Thirdly, the _Scelidotherium_, also
an allied animal, of which I obtained a nearly perfect skeleton: it must
have been as large as a rhinoceros; in the structure of its head it
comes, according to Professor Owen, nearest to the Cape Anteater, but in
some other respects it approaches to the Armadilloes. Fourthly, the
_Mylodon Darwinii_, a closely related genus, of little inferior size.
Fifthly, another gigantic edental quadruped. Sixthly, a large animal
with an osseous coat, in compartments, very like that of an armadillo.
Seventhly, an extinct kind of horse. Eighthly, a tooth of a
pachydermatous animal, probably the same with the Macrauchenia, a huge
beast with a long neck like a camel. Lastly, the Toxodon, perhaps one of
the strangest animals ever discovered; in size it equalled an Elephant
or Megatherium, but the structure of its teeth, as Professor Owen
states, proves indisputably that it was intimately related to the
Gnawers, the order which, at the present day, includes most of the
smallest quadrupeds; in many details it is allied to the pachydermata;
judging from the position of its eyes, ears, and nostrils, it was
probably aquatic, like the Dugong and Manatee, to which it is allied.
How wonderfully are the different orders--at the present time so well
separated--blended together in different points in the structure of the
Toxodon!”[101]

  [101] “Journal of Researches,” &c., by Charles Darwin, p. 81.

[Illustration: Fig. 190.--Lower jaw of the Mylodon.]

The remains on which our knowledge of the _Scelidotherium_ is founded
include the cranium, which is nearly entire, with the teeth and part of
the os hyoides, seven cervical, eight dorsal, and five sacral vertebræ,
both the scapulæ, and some other bones. The remains of the cranium
indicate that its general form was an elongated slender compressed cone,
beginning behind by a flattened vertical base, expanding slightly to the
cheek-bone, and thence contracting to the anterior extremity. All these
parts were discovered in their natural relative positions, indicating,
as Mr. Darwin observes, that the gravelly formation in which they were
discovered had not been disturbed since its deposition.

[Illustration: Fig. 191.--Skull of Scelidotherium.]

The lower jaw-bone of _Mylodon_, which Mr. Darwin discovered at the base
of the cliff called Punta Alta, in Northern Patagonia, had the teeth
entire on both sides; they are implanted in deep sockets, and only about
one-sixth of the last molar projects above the alveolus, but the
proportion of the exposed part increases gradually in the inner teeth
(Fig. 191).

[Illustration: Fig. 192.--Dinornis, and Bos.]

“The habits of life of these Megatheroid animals were a complete puzzle
to naturalists, until Professor Owen solved the problem with remarkable
ingenuity. The teeth indicate, by their simple structure, that these
Megatheroid animals lived on vegetable food, and probably on the leaves
and small twigs of trees; their ponderous forms and great strong curved
claws seem so little adapted for locomotion, that some eminent
naturalists have actually believed that, like the Sloths, to which they
are intimately related, they subsisted by climbing back downwards, on
trees, and feeding on the leaves. It was a bold, not to say preposterous
idea to conceive even antediluvian trees with branches strong enough to
bear animals as large as elephants. Professor Owen, with far more
probability, believes that, instead of climbing on the trees, they
pulled the branches down to them, and tore up the smaller ones by the
roots, and so fed on the leaves. The colossal breadth and weight of
their hinder quarters, which can hardly be imagined without having been
seen, become, on this view, of obvious service instead of being an
encumbrance; their apparent clumsiness disappears. With their great
tails and their huge heels firmly fixed like a tripod in the ground,
they could freely exert the full force of their most powerful arms and
great claws. The _Mylodon_, moreover, was furnished with a long
extensile tongue, like that of the giraffe, which by one of those
beautiful provisions of Nature, thus reaches, with the aid of its long
neck, its leafy food.”[102]

  [102] “Journal of Researches,” &c., by Charles Darwin, 2nd ed., p. 81.

[Illustration: XXVIII.--Ideal European Landscape in the Quaternary
Epoch.]

       *       *       *       *       *

Two gigantic birds seem to have lived in New Zealand during the
Quaternary epoch. The _Dinornis_, which, if we may judge from the
_tibia_, which is upwards of three feet long, and from its eggs, which
are much larger than those of the Ostrich, must have been of most
extraordinary size for a bird. In Fig. 192 an attempt is made to restore
this fearfully great bird, the _Dinornis_. As to the _Epiornis_, its
eggs only have been found.

On the opposite page (PLATE XXVIII.) an attempt is made to represent the
appearance of Europe during the epoch we have under consideration. The
Bear is seated at the mouth of its den--the cave (thus reminding us of
the origin of its name of _Ursus spelæus_), where it gnaws the bones of
the Elephant. Above the cavern the _Hyæna spelæa_ looks out, with savage
eye, for the moment when it will be prudent to dispute possession of
these remains with its formidable rival. The great Wood-stag, with other
great animals of the epoch, occupies the farthest shore of a small lake,
where some small hills rise out of a valley crowned with the trees and
shrubs of the period. Mountains, recently upheaved, rise on the distant
horizon, covered with a mantle of frozen snow, reminding us that the
glacial period is approaching, and has already begun to manifest itself.

All these fossil bones, belonging to the great Mammalia which we have
been describing, are found in the Quaternary formation; but the most
abundant of all are those of the Elephant and the Horse. The extreme
profusion of the bones of the Mammoth, crowded into the more recently
formed deposits of the globe, is only surpassed by the prodigious
quantity of the bones of the Horse which are buried in the same beds.
The singular abundance of the remains of these two animals proves that,
during the Quaternary epoch, the earth gave nourishment to immense herds
of the Horse and the Elephant. It is probable that from one pole to the
other, from the equator to the two extremities of the axis of the globe,
the earth must have formed a vast and boundless prairie, while an
immense carpet of verdure covered its whole surface; and such abundant
pastures would be absolutely necessary to sustain these prodigious
numbers of herbivorous animals of great size.

The mind can scarcely realise the immense and verdant plains of this
earlier world, animated by the presence of an infinity of such
inhabitants. In its burning temperature, Pachyderms of monstrous forms,
but of peaceful habits, traversed the tall vegetation, composed of
grasses of all sorts. Deer of gigantic size, their heads ornamented with
enormous horns, escorted the heavy herds of the Mammoth; while the
Horse, small in size and compact of form, galloped and frisked round
these magnificent horizons of verdure which no human eye had yet
contemplated.

Nevertheless, all was not quiet and tranquil in the landscapes of the
ancient world. Voracious and formidable carnivorous animals waged a
bloody war on the inoffensive herds. The Tiger, the Lion, and the
ferocious Hyæna; the Bear, and the Jackal, there selected their prey. On
the opposite page an endeavour is made to represent the great animals
among the Edentates which inhabited the American plains during the
Quaternary epoch (PLATE XXIX). We observe there the Glyptodon, the
Megatherium, the Mylodon, and, along with them, the Mastodon. A small
Ape (the Orthopithecus), which first appeared in the Miocene period,
occupies the branch of a tree in the landscape. The vegetation is that
of tropical America at the present time.

       *       *       *       *       *

The deposits of this age, which are of later date than the Crag, and of
earlier date than the Boulder Clay, with its fragments of rocks
frequently transported from great distances, are classed under the term
“pre-glacial.”

After the deposition of the Forest Bed, which is seen overlying the Crag
for miles between high and low-water mark, on the shore west of Cromer,
in Norfolk, there was a general reduction of temperature, and a period
of intense cold, known as the “glacial period,” seems to have set in,
during which a great part of what is now the British Islands was covered
with a thick coating of ice, and probably united with the Continent.

At this time England south of the Bristol Channel (the estuary of the
Severn), and the Thames, appears to have been above water. The northern
part of the country, and the high-ground generally of Britain and
Ireland were covered with gliding glaciers, by whose grinding action the
whole surface became moulded and worn into its present shape, while the
floating icebergs which broke off at the sea-side from these glaciers,
conveyed away and dropped on the bed of the sea those fragments of rocks
and the gravel and other earthy materials which are now generally
recognised as glacial accumulations.

In all directions, however, proofs are being gradually obtained that,
about this period, movements of submersion under the sea were in
progress, all north of the Thames.

[Illustration: XXIX.--Ideal American Landscape in the Quaternary
Epoch.]

Ramsay points out indications, first of an intensely cold period, when
land was much more elevated than it is now; then of submergence beneath
the sea; and, lastly, re-elevation attended by glacial action. “When we
speak of the vegetation and quadrupeds of Cromer Forest being
pre-glacial,” says Lyell, “we merely mean that their formation preceded
the era of the general submergence of the British Isles beneath the
waters of the glacial sea. The successive deposits seen in direct
superposition on the Norfolk coast,” adds Sir Charles, “imply at first
the prevalence over a wide area of the Newer Pliocene Sea. Afterwards,
the bed of the sea was converted into dry land, and underwent several
oscillations of level, so as to be, first, dry land supporting a forest;
then an estuary; then again land; and, finally, a sea near the mouth of
a river, till the downward movement became so great as to convert the
whole area into a sea of considerable depth, in which much floating ice,
carrying mud, sand, and boulders melted, letting its burthen fall to the
bottom. Finally, over the till with boulders stratified drift was
formed; after which, but not until the total subsidence amounted to more
than 400 feet, an upward movement began, which re-elevated the whole
country, so that the lowest of the terrestrial formations, or the forest
bed, was brought up to nearly its pristine level, in such a manner as to
be exposed at a low tide. Both the descending and ascending movement
seem to have been very gradual.”

[Illustration: Fig. 193.--Palæophognos Gesneri. Fossil Toad.]


EUROPEAN DELUGES.

The Tertiary formations, in many parts of Europe, of more or less
extent, are covered by an accumulation of heterogeneous deposits,
filling up the valleys, and composed of very various materials,
consisting mostly of fragments of the neighbouring rocks. The erosions
which we remark at the bottoms of the hills, and which have greatly
enlarged already existing valleys; the mounds of gravel accumulated at
one point, and which is formed of rolled materials, that is to say, of
fragments of rocks worn smooth and round by continual friction during a
long period, in which they have been transported from one point to
another--all these signs indicate that these denudations of the soil,
these displacements and transport of very heavy bodies to great
distances, are due to the violent and sudden action of large currents of
water. An immense wave has been thrown suddenly on the surface of the
earth, making great ravages in its passage, furrowing the earth and
driving before it débris of all sorts in its disorderly course.
Geologists give the name of _diluvium_ to a formation thus removed and
scattered, which, from its heterogeneous nature, brings under our eyes,
as it were, the rapid passage of an impetuous torrent--a phenomenon
which is commonly designated as a _deluge_.

To what cause are we to attribute these sudden and apparently temporary
invasions of the earth’s surface by rapid currents of water? In all
probability to the upheaval of some vast extent of dry land, to the
formation of some mountain or mountain-range in the neighbourhood of the
sea, or even in the bed of the sea itself. The land suddenly elevated by
an upward movement of the terrestrial crust, or by the formation of
ridges and furrows at the surface, has, by its reaction, violently
agitated the waters, that is to say, the more mobile portion of the
globe. By this new impulse the waters have been thrown with great
violence over the earth, inundating the plains and valleys, and for the
moment covering the soil with their furious waves, mingled with the
earth, sand, and mud, of which the devastated districts have been
denuded by their abrupt invasion. The phenomenon has been sudden but
brief, like the upheaval of the mountain or chain of mountains, which is
presumed to have been the cause of it; but it was often repeated:
witness the valleys which occur in every country, especially those in
the neighbourhood of Lyons and of the Durance. These strata indicate as
many successive deposits. Besides this, the displacement of blocks of
minerals from their normal position is proof, now perfectly
recognisable, of this great phenomenon.

There have been, doubtless, during the epochs anterior to the Quaternary
period of which we write, many deluges such as we are considering.
Mountains and chains of mountains, through all the ages we have been
describing, were formed by upheaval of the crust into ridges, where it
was too elastic or too thick to be fractured. Each of these subterranean
commotions would be provocative of momentary irruptions of the waves.

But the visible testimony to this phenomenon--the living proofs of this
denudation, of this tearing away of the soil, are found nowhere so
strikingly as in the beds superimposed, far and near, upon the Tertiary
formations, and which bear the geological name of _diluvium_. This term
was long employed to designate what is now better known as the “boulder”
formation, a glacial deposit which is abundant in Europe north of the
50th, and in America north of the 40th, parallel, and re-appearing again
in the southern hemisphere; but altogether absent in tropical regions.
It consists of sand and clay, sometimes stratified, mixed with rounded
and angular fragments of rock, generally derived from the same district;
and their origin has generally been ascribed to a series of diluvial
waves raised by hurricanes, earthquakes, or the sudden upheaval of land
from the bed of the sea, which had swept over continents, carrying with
them vast masses of mud and heavy stones, and forcing these stones over
rocky surfaces so as to polish and impress them with furrows and striæ.
Other circumstances occurred, however, to establish a connection between
this formation and the glacial drift. The size and number of the erratic
blocks increase as we travel towards the Arctic regions; some intimate
association exists, therefore, between this formation and the
accumulations of ice and snow which characterise the approaching glacial
period.

As we have already stated at the beginning of this chapter, there is
very distinct evidence of two successive deluges in our hemisphere
during the Quaternary epoch. The two may be distinguished as the
_European Deluge_ and the _Asiatic_. The two European deluges occurred
prior to the appearance of man; the Asiatic deluge happened after that
event; and the human race, then in the early days of its existence,
certainly suffered from this cataclysm. In the present chapter we
confine ourselves to the two cataclysms which overwhelmed Europe in the
Quaternary epoch.

The first occurred in the north of Europe, where it was produced by the
upheaval of the mountains of Norway. Commencing in Scandinavia, the wave
spread and carried its ravages into those regions which now constitute
Sweden, Norway, European Russia, and the north of Germany, sweeping
before it all the loose soil on the surface, and covering the whole of
Scandinavia--all the plains and valleys of Northern Europe--with a
mantle of transported soil. As the regions in the midst of which this
great mountainous upheaval occurred--as the seas surrounding these vast
spaces were partly frozen and covered with ice, from their elevation and
neighbourhood to the pole--the wave which swept these countries carried
along with it enormous masses of ice. The shock, produced by the
collision of these several solid blocks of frozen water, would only
contribute to increase the extent and intensity of the ravages
occasioned by this violent cataclysm, which is represented in PLATE XXX.

The physical proof of this _deluge of the north of Europe_ exists in the
accumulation of unstratified deposits which covers all the plains and
low grounds of Northern Europe. On and in this deposit are found
numerous blocks which have received the characteristic and significant
name of erratic blocks, and which are frequently of considerable size.
These become more characteristic as we ascend to higher latitudes, as in
Norway, Sweden, and Denmark, the southern borders of the Baltic, and in
the British Islands generally, in all of which countries deposits of
marine fossil shells occur, which prove the submergence of large areas
of Scandinavia, of the British Isles, and other regions during parts of
the glacial period. Some of these rocks, characterised as _erratic_, are
of very considerable volume; such, for instance, is the granite block
which forms the pedestal of the statue of Peter the Great at St.
Petersburg. This block was found in the interior of Russia, where the
whole formation is _Permian_, and its presence there can only be
explained by supposing it to have been transported by some vast iceberg,
carried by a diluvial current. This hypothesis alone enables us to
account for another block of granite, weighing about 340 tons, which was
found on the sandy plains in the north of Prussia, an immense model of
which was made for the Berlin Museum. The last of these erratic blocks
deposited in Germany covers the grave of King Gustavus Adolphus, of
Sweden, killed at the battle of Lutzen, in 1632. He was interred beneath
the rock. Another similar block has been raised in Germany into a
monument to the geologist Leopold von Buch.

[Illustration: XXX.--Deluge of the North of Europe.]

These erratic blocks which are met with in the plains of Russia, Poland,
and Prussia, and in the eastern parts of England, are composed of rocks
entirely foreign to the region where they are found. They belong to the
primary rocks of Norway; they have been transported to their present
sites, protected by a covering of ice, by the waters of the northern
deluge. How vast must have been the impulsive force which could carry
such enormous masses across the Baltic, and so far inland as the places
where they have been deposited for the surprise of the geologist or the
contemplation of the thoughtful!

       *       *       *       *       *

The second European deluge is supposed to have been the result of the
formation and upheaval of the Alps. It has filled with débris and
transported material the valleys of France, Germany, and Italy over a
circumference which has the Alps for its centre. The proofs of a great
convulsion at a comparatively recent geological date are numerous. The
Alps may be from eighty to 100 miles across, and the probabilities are
that their existence is due, as Sir Charles Lyell supposes, to a
succession of unequal movements of upheaval and subsidence; that the
Alpine region had been exposed for countless ages to the action of rain
and rivers, and that the larger valleys were of pre-glacial times, is
highly probable. In the eastern part of the chain some of the Primary
fossiliferous rocks, as well as Oolitic and Cretaceous rocks, and even
Tertiary deposits, are observable; but in the central Alps these
disappear, and more recent rocks, in some places even Eocene strata,
graduate into metamorphic rocks, in which Oolitic, Cretaceous, and
Eocene strata have been altered into granular marble, gneiss, and other
metamorphic schists; showing that eruptions continued after the deposit
of the Middle Eocene formations. Again, in the Swiss and Savoy Alps,
Oolitic and Cretaceous formations have been elevated to the height of
12,000 feet, and Eocene strata 10,000 feet above the level of the sea;
while in the Rothal, in the Bernese Alps, occurs a mass of gneiss 1,000
feet thick between two strata containing Oolitic fossils.

Besides these proofs of recent upheaval, we can trace effects of two
different kinds, resulting from the powerful action of masses of water
violently displaced by this gigantic upheaval. At first broad tracks
have been hollowed out by the diluvial waves, which have, at these
points, formed deep valleys. Afterwards these valleys have been filled
up by materials derived from the mountain and transported into the
valley, these materials consisting of rounded pebbles, argillaceous and
sandy mud, generally calcareous and ferriferous. This double effect is
exhibited, with more or less distinctness, in all the great valleys of
the centre and south of France. The valley of the Garonne is, in respect
to these phenomena, classic ground, as it were.

As we leave the little city of Muret, three successive levels will be
observed on the left bank of the Garonne. The lowest of the three is
that of the valley, properly so called; while the loftiest corresponds
to the plateau of Saint-Gaudens. These three levels are distinctly
marked in the Toulousean country, which illustrates the diluvial
phenomena in a remarkable fashion. The city of Toulouse reposes upon a
slight eminence of diluvial formation. The flat diluvial plateau
contrasts strongly with the rounded hills of Gascony and Languedoc. They
are essentially constituted of a bed of gravel, formed of rounded or
oval pebbles, and again covered with sandy and earthy deposits. The
pebbles are principally quartzose, brown or black externally, mixed with
portions of hard “Old Red” and New Red Sandstone. The soft earth which
accompanies the pebbles and gravel is a mixture of argillaceous sand of
a red or yellow colour, caused by the oxide of iron which enters into
its composition. In the valley, properly so called, we find the pebbles
again associated with other minerals which are rare at the higher
levels. Some teeth of the Mammoth, and _Rhinoceros tichorhinus_, have
been found at several points on the borders of this valley.

The small valleys, tributary to the principal valley, would appear to
have been excavated secondarily, partly out of diluvial deposits, and
their alluvium, essentially earthy, has been formed at the expense of
the Tertiary formation, and even of the diluvium itself. Among other
celebrated sites, the diluvial formation is largely developed in Sicily.
The ancient temple of the Parthenon at Athens is built on an eminence
formed of diluvial earth.

In the valley of the Rhine, in Alsace, and in many isolated parts of
Europe, a particular sort of _diluvium_ forms thick beds; it consists of
a yellowish-grey mud, composed of argillaceous matter mixed with
carbonate of lime, quartzose and micaceous sand, and oxide of iron. This
mud, termed by geologists _loess_, attains in some places considerable
thickness. It is recognisable in the neighbourhood of Paris. It rises a
little both on the right and left, above the base of the mountains of
the Black Forest and of the Vosges; and forms thick beds on the banks of
the Rhine.

The fossils contained in diluvial deposits consist, generally, of
terrestrial, lacustrine, or fluviatile shells, for the most part
belonging to species still living. In parts of the valley of the Rhine,
between Bingen and Basle, the fluviatile loam or loess, now under
consideration, is seen forming hills several hundred feet thick, and
containing, here and there, throughout that thickness, land and
fresh-water shells; from which it seems necessary to suppose, according
to Lyell, first, a time when the loess was slowly accumulated, then a
later period, when large portions of it were removed--and followed by
movements of oscillation, consisting, first, of a general depression,
and then of a gradual re-elevation of the land.

       *       *       *       *       *

We have already noticed the caverns in which such extraordinary
accumulations of animal remains were discovered: it will not be out of
place to give here a résumé of the state of our knowledge concerning
_bone-caves_ and _bone-breccias_.

The _bone-caves_ are not simply cavities hollowed out of the rock; they
generally consist of numerous chambers or caverns communicating with
each other by narrow passages (often of considerable length) which can
only be traversed by creeping. One in Mexico extends several leagues.
Perhaps the most remarkable in Europe is that of Gailenreuth in
Franconia. The Harz mountains contain many fine caverns; among others,
those of Scharrfeld and _Baumann’s Hohl_, in which many bones of Hyæna,
Bears, and Lions have been found together. The _Kirkdale Cave_, so well
known from the description given of it by Dr. Buckland, lying about
twenty-five miles north-north-east of York, was the burial-place, as we
have stated, of at least 300 Hyænas belonging to individuals of
different ages; besides containing some other remains, mostly teeth
(those of the Hyæna excepted) belonging to ruminating animals. Buckland
states that the bones of all the other animals, those of the Hyænas not
excepted, were gnawed. He also noticed a partial polish and wearing away
to a considerable depth of one side of many of the best preserved
specimens of teeth and bones, which can only be accounted for by
referring the partial destruction to the continual treading of the
Hyænas, and the rubbing of their skin on the side that lay uppermost at
the bottom of the den.

From these facts it would appear probable that the Cave at Kirkdale was,
“during a long succession of years, inhabited as a den by Hyænas, and
that they dragged into its recesses the other animal bodies, whose
remains are found mixed indiscriminately with their own.”[103] This
conjecture is made almost certain by the discovery made by Dr. Buckland
of many coprolites of animals that had fed on bones, as well as traces
of the frequent passage of these animals to or from the entrance of the
cavern or den. A modern naturalist visiting the Cavern of Adelsberg, in
Carniola, traversed a series of chambers extending over three leagues in
the same direction, and was only stopped in his subterranean discoveries
by coming to a lake which occupied its entire breadth.

  [103] “Reliquiæ Diluvianæ,” by the Rev. W. Buckland, 1823, p. 19.

The interior walls of the bone-caves are, in general, rounded off, and
furrowed, presenting many traces of the erosive action of water,
characteristics which frequently escape observation because the walls
are covered with the calcareous deposit called _stalactite_ or
_stalagmite_--that is, with carbonate of lime, resulting from the
deposition left by infiltrating water, through the overlying limestone,
into the interior of the cavern. The formation of the stalactite, with
which many of the bones were incrusted in the Cave of Gailenreuth, is
thus described by Liebig. The limestone over the cavern is covered with
a rich soil, in which the vegetable matter is continually decaying. This
mould, or humus, being acted on by moisture and air, evolves carbonic
acid, which is dissolved by rain. The rain-water thus impregnated,
permeating the porous limestone, dissolves a portion of it, and
afterwards, when the excess of carbonic acid evaporates in the caverns,
parts with the calcareous matter, and forms _stalactite_--the
stalactites being the pendent masses of carbonate of lime, which hang in
picturesque forms either in continuous sheets, giving the cave and its
sides the appearance of being hung with drapery, or like icicles
suspended from the roof of the cave, through which the water percolates;
while those formed on the surface of the floor form _stalagmite_. These
calcareous products ornament the walls of these gloomy caverns in a most
brilliant and picturesque manner.

Under a covering of stalagmite, the floor of the cave frequently
presents deposits of mud and gravel. It is in excavating this soil that
the bones of antediluvian animals, mixed with shells, fragments of
rocks, and rolled pebbles, are discovered. The distribution of these
bones in the middle of the gravelly argillaceous mud is as irregular as
possible. The skeletons are rarely entire; the bones do not even occur
in their natural positions. The bones of small Rodents are found
accumulated in the crania of great Carnivora. The teeth of Bears,
Hyænas, and Rhinoceros are cemented with the jaw-bones of Ruminants. The
bones are very often polished and rounded, as if they had been
transported from great distances; others are fissured; others,
nevertheless, are scarcely altered. Their state of preservation varies
with their position in the cave.

The bones most frequently found in caves are those of the Carnivora of
the Quaternary epoch: the Bear, Hyæna, the Lion, and Tiger. The animals
of the plain, and notably the great Pachyderms--the Mammoth and
Rhinoceros--are only very rarely met with, and always in small numbers.
From the cavern of Gailenreuth more than a thousand skeletons have been
taken, of which 800 belonged to the large _Ursus spelæus_, and sixty to
the smaller species, with 200 Hyænas, Wolves, Lions, and Gluttons. A jaw
of the Glutton has lately been found by Mr. T. McK. Hughes in a cave in
the Mountain Limestone at Plas Heaton, associated with Wolf, Bison,
Reindeer, Horse, and Cave Bear; proving that the Glutton, which at the
present day inhabits Siberia and the inclement northern regions of
Europe, inhabited Great Britain during the Pleistocene or Quaternary
Period. In the Kirkdale cave the remains, as we have seen, included
those of not less than 300 Hyænas of all ages. Dr. Buckland concludes,
from these circumstances, that the Hyænas alone made this their den, and
that the bones of other animals accumulated there had been carried
thither by them as their prey; it is, however, now admitted that this
part of the English geologist’s conclusions do not apply to the contents
of all bone-caves. In some instances the bones of the Mammals are broken
and worn as with a long transport, _rolled_, according to the technical
geological expression, and finally cemented in the same mud, together
with fragments of the rocks of the neighbourhood. Besides bones of
Hyænas, are found not only the bones of inoffensive herbivora, but
remains of Lions and Bears.

We ought to note, in order to make this explanation complete, that some
geologists consider that these caves served as a refuge for sick and
wounded animals. It is certain that we see, in our own days, some
animals, when attacked by sickness, seek refuge in the fissures of
rocks, or in the hollows of trunks of trees, where they die; to this
natural impulse it may, probably, be ascribed that the skeletons of
animals are so rarely found in forests or plains. We may conclude, then,
that besides the more general mode in which these caverns were filled
with bones, the two other causes which we have enumerated may have been
in operation; that is to say, they were the habitual sojourn of
carnivorous and destructive animals, and they became the retreat of sick
animals on some particular occasions.

What was the origin of these caves? How have these immense excavations
been produced? Nearly all these caves occur in limestone rocks,
particularly in the Jurassic and Carboniferous formations, which present
many vast subterranean caverns. At the same time some fine caves exist
in the Silurian formation, such as the _Grotto des Demoiselles_ (Fig.
194) near Ganges, of Hérault. It should be added, in order to complete
the explanation of the cave formations, that the greater part of these
vast internal excavations have been chiefly caused by subterranean
watercourses, which have eroded and washed away a portion of the walls,
and in this manner greatly enlarged their original dimensions.

But there are other modes than the above of accounting, in a more
satisfactory manner, for the existence of these caves. According to Sir
Charles Lyell, there was a time when (as now) limestone rocks were
dissolved, and when the carbonate of lime was carried away gradually by
springs from the interior of the earth; that another era occurred, when
engulfed rivers or occasional floods swept organic and inorganic débris
into the subterranean hollows previously formed; finally, there were
changes, in which engulfed rivers were turned into new channels, and
springs dried up, after which the cave-mud, breccia, gravel, and fossil
bones were left in the position in which they are now discovered. “We
know,” says that eminent geologist,[104] “that in every limestone
district the rain-water is _soft_, or free from earthy ingredients, when
it falls upon the soil, and when it enters the rocks below; whereas it
is _hard_, or charged with carbonate of lime, when it issues again to
the surface in springs. The rain derives some of its carbonic acid from
the air, but more from the decay of vegetable matter in the soil through
which it percolates; and by the excess of this acid, limestone is
dissolved, and the water becomes charged with carbonate of lime. The
mass of solid matter silently and unceasingly subtracted in this way
from the rocks in every century is considerable, and must in the course
of thousands of years be so vast, that the space it once occupied may
well be expressed by a long suite of caverns.”

  [104] “Elements of Geology,” p. 122.

The most celebrated of these bone-caves are those of Gailenreuth, in
Franconia; of Nabenstein, and of Brumberg, in the same country; the
caves on the banks of the Meuse, near Liège, of which the late Dr.
Schmerling examined forty; of Yorkshire, Devonshire, Somersetshire, and
Derbyshire, in England; also several in Sicily, at Palermo, and
Syracuse; in France at Hérault, in the Cévennes, and Franche Comté; and
in the New World, in Kentucky and Virginia.

The _ossiferous breccia_ differs from the bone-caves only in form. The
most remarkable of them are seen at Cette, Antibes, and Nice, on the
shores of Italy; and in the isles of Corsica, Malta, and Sardinia.

[Illustration: Fig. 194.--Grotto des Demoiselles, Hérault.]

Nearly the same bones are found in the _breccia_ which we find in the
caves; the chief difference being that fossils of the Ruminants are
there in greater abundance. The proportions of bones to the fragments of
stone and cement vary considerably in different localities. In the
_breccia_ of Cagliari, where the remains of Ruminants are less abundant
than at Gibraltar and Nice, the bones, which are those of the small
Rodents, are, so to speak, more abundant than the mud in which they are
embedded. We find, there, also, three or four species of Birds which
belong to Thrushes and Larks. In the _breccia_ at Nice the remains of
some great Carnivora are found, among which are recognised two species
of Lion and Panther. In the Grotto di San-Ciro, in the Monte Griffone,
about six miles from Palermo, in Sicily, Dr. Falconer collected remains
of two species of Hippopotamus and bones of _Elephas antiquus_, Bos,
Stag, Pig, Bear, Dog, and a large _Felis_, some of which indicated a
Pliocene age. Like many others, this cave contains a thick mass of
bone-breccia on its floor, the bones of which have long been known, and
were formerly supposed to be those of giants; while Prof. Ferrara
suggested that the Elephants’ bones were due to the Carthaginian
elephants imported into Sicily for purposes of sport.[105]

  [105] _Quart. Jour. Geol. Soc._, 1859.

But the _breccia_ is not confined to Europe. We meet with it in all
parts of the globe; and recent discoveries in Australia indicate a
formation corresponding exactly to the _ossiferous breccia_ of the
Mediterranean, in which an ochreous-reddish cement binds together
fragments of rocks and bones, among which we find four species of
Kangaroos.

[Illustration: Fig. 195.--Beloptera Sepioidea.]


GLACIAL PERIOD.

The two cataclysms, of which we have spoken, surprised Europe at the
moment of the development of an important creation. The whole scope of
animated Nature, the evolution of animals, was suddenly arrested in that
part of our hemisphere over which these gigantic convulsions spread,
followed by the brief but sudden submersion of entire continents.
Organic life had scarcely recovered from the violent shock, when a
second, and perhaps severer blow assailed it. The northern and central
parts of Europe, the vast countries which extend from Scandinavia to the
Mediterranean and the Danube, were visited by a period of sudden and
severe cold: the temperature of the polar regions seized them. The
plains of Europe, but now ornamented by the luxurious vegetation
developed by the heat of a burning climate, the boundless pastures on
which herds of great Elephants, the active Horse, the robust
Hippopotamus, and great Carnivorous animals grazed and roamed, became
covered with a mantle of ice and snow.

To what cause are we to attribute a phenomenon so unforeseen, and
exercising itself with such intensity? In the present state of our
knowledge no certain explanation of the event can be given. Did the
central planet, the sun, which was long supposed to distribute light and
heat to the earth, lose during this period its calorific powers? This
explanation is insufficient, since at this period the solar heat is not
supposed to have greatly influenced the earth’s temperature. Were the
marine currents, such as the _Gulf Stream_, which carries the Atlantic
Ocean towards the north and west of Europe, warming and raising its
temperature, suddenly turned in the contrary direction? No such
hypothesis is sufficient to explain either the cataclysms or the glacial
phenomena; and we need not hesitate to confess our ignorance of this
strange, this mysterious, episode in the history of the globe.

There have been attempts, and very ingenious ones too, to explain these
phenomena, of which we shall give a brief summary, without committing
ourselves to any further opinion, using for that purpose the information
contained in M. Ch. Martins’ excellent work. “The most violent
convulsions of the solid and liquid elements,” says this able writer,
“appear to have been themselves only the effects due to a cause much
more powerful than the mere expansion of the pyrosphere; and it is
necessary to recur, in order to explain them, to some new and bolder
hypothesis than has yet been hazarded. Some philosophers have belief in
an astronomical revolution which may have overtaken our globe in the
first age of its formation, and have modified its position in relation
to the sun. They admit that the poles have not always been as they are
now, and that some terrible shock displaced them, changing at the same
time the inclination of the axis of the rotation of the earth.” This
hypothesis, which is nearly the same as that propounded by the Danish
geologist, Klee, has been ably developed by M. de Boucheporn. According
to this writer, many multiplied shocks, caused by the violent contact of
the earth with comets, produced the elevation of mountains, the
displacement of seas, and perturbations of climate--phenomena which he
ascribes to the sudden disturbance of the parallelism of the axis of
rotation. The antediluvian equator, according to him, makes a right
angle with the existing equator.

“Quite recently,” adds M. Martins, “a learned French mathematician, M.
J. Adhémar, has taken up the same idea; but, dismissing the more
problematical elements of the concussion with comets as untenable, he
seeks to explain the deluges by the laws of gravitation and celestial
mechanics, and his theory has been supported by very competent writers.
It is this: We know that our planet is influenced by two essential
movements--one of rotation on its axis, which it accomplishes in
twenty-four hours; the other of translation, which it accomplishes in a
little more than 365¼ days. But besides these great and perceptible
movements, the earth has a third, and even a fourth movement, with one
of which we need not occupy ourselves; it is that designated _nutation_
by astronomers. It changes periodically, but within very restricted
limits, the inclination of the terrestrial axis to the plane of the
ecliptic by a slight oscillation, the duration of which is only eighteen
hours, and its influence upon the relative length of day and night
almost inappreciable. The other movement is that on which M. Adhémar’s
theory is founded.

“We know that the curve described by the earth in its annual revolution
round the sun is not a circle, but an ellipse; that is, a slightly
elongated circle, sometimes called a circle of two centres, one of which
is occupied by the sun. This curve is called the ecliptic. We know,
also, that, in its movement of translation, the earth preserves such a
position that its axis of rotation is intercepted, at its centre, by the
plane of the ecliptic. But in place of being perpendicular, or at right
angles with this plane, it crosses it obliquely in such a manner as to
form on one side an angle of one-fourth, and on the other an angle of
three-fourths of a right angle. This inclination is only altered in an
insignificant degree by the movement of _nutation_. I need scarcely add
that the earth, in its annual revolution, occupies periodically four
principal positions on the ecliptic, which mark the limits of the four
seasons. When its centre is at the extremity most remote from the sun,
or _aphelion_, it is the summer solstice for the northern hemisphere.
When its centre is at the other extremity, or _perihelion_, the same
hemisphere is at the winter solstice. The two intermediate points mark
the equinoxes of spring and autumn. The great circle of separation of
light and shade passes, then, precisely through the poles, the day and
night are equal, and the line of intersection of the plane of the
equator and that of the ecliptic make part of the vector ray from the
centre of the sun to the centre of the earth--what we call the
_equinoctial line_.

“Thus placed, it is evident that if the terrestrial axis remained always
parallel to itself, the equinoctial line would always pass through the
same point on the surface of the globe. But it is not absolutely thus.
The parallelism of the axis of the earth is changed slowly, very slowly,
by a movement which Arago ingeniously compares to the varying
inclination of a top when about to cease spinning. This movement has the
effect of making the equinoctial points on the surface of the earth
retrograde towards the east from year to year, in such a manner that at
the end of 25,800 years according to some astronomers, but 21,000 years
according to Adhémar, the equinoctial point has literally made a circuit
of the globe, and has returned to the same position which it occupied at
the beginning of this immense period, which has been called the ‘_great
year_.’ It is this retrograde evolution, in which the terrestrial axis
describes round its own centre that revolution round a double conic
surface, which is known as the _precession of the equinoxes_. It was
observed 2,000 years ago by Hipparchus; its cause was discovered by
Newton; and its complete evolution explained by D’Alembert and Laplace.

“Now, we know that the consequence of the inclination of the terrestrial
axis with the plane of the ecliptic is--

“1. That the seasons are inverse to the two hemispheres--that is to
say, the northern hemisphere enjoys its spring and summer, while the
southern hemisphere passes through autumn and winter.

“2. When the earth approaches nearest to the sun, our hemisphere has its
autumn and winter; and the regions near the pole, receiving none of the
solar rays, are plunged into darkness, approaching that of night, during
six months of the year.

“3. When the earth is most distant from the sun, when much the greater
half of the ecliptic intervenes between it and the focus of light and
heat, the pole, being then turned towards this focus, constantly
receives its rays, and the rest of the northern hemisphere enjoys its
long days of spring and summer.

“Bearing in mind that, in going from the equinox of spring to the
autumnal equinox of our hemisphere, the earth traverses a much longer
curve than it does on its return; bearing in mind, also, the accelerated
movement it experiences in its approach to the sun from the attraction,
which increases in inverse proportion to the square of its distance, we
arrive at the conclusion that our summer should be longer and our winter
shorter than the summer and winter of our antipodes; and this is
_actually_ the case by about eight days.

“I say _actually_, because, if we now look at the effects of the
precession of the equinoxes, we shall see that in a time equal to half
of the _grand year_, whether it be 12,900 or 10,500 years, the
conditions will be reversed; the terrestrial axis, and consequently the
poles, will have accomplished the half of their bi-conical revolution
round the centre of the earth. It will then be the northern hemisphere
which will have the summers shorter and the winters longer, and the
southern hemisphere exactly the reverse. In the year 1248 before the
Christian era, according to M. Adhémar, the north pole attained its
maximum summer duration. Since then--that is to say for the last 3,112
years--it has begun to decrease, and this will continue to the year 7388
of our era before it attains its maximum winter duration.

“But the reader may ask, fatigued perhaps by these abstract
considerations, What is there here in common with the deluges?

“The _grand year_ is here divided, for each hemisphere, into two great
seasons, which De Jouvencel calls the great summer and winter, which
will each, according to M. Adhémar, be 10,500 years.

“During the whole of this period one of the poles has constantly had
shorter winters and longer summers than the other. It follows that the
pole which experiences the long winter undergoes a gradual and
continuous cooling, in consequence of which the quantities of ice and
snow, which melt during the summer, are more than compensated by those
which are again produced in the winter. The ice and snow go on
accumulating from year to year, and finish at the end of the period by
forming, at the coldest pole, a sort of crust or cap, vast, thick, and
heavy enough to modify the spheroidal form of the earth. This
modification, as a necessary consequence, produces a notable
displacement of the centre of gravity, or--for it amounts to the same
thing--of the centre of attraction, round which all the watery masses
tend to restore it. The south pole, as we have seen, finished its _great
winter_ in 1248 B.C. The accumulated ice then added itself to the snow,
and the snow to the ice, at the south pole, towards which the watery
masses all tended until they covered nearly the whole of the southern
hemisphere. But since that date of 1248, our _great winter_ has been in
progress. Our pole, in its turn, goes on getting cooler continually; ice
is being heaped upon snow, and snow upon ice, and in 7,388 years the
centre of gravity of the earth will return to its normal position, which
is the geometrical centre of the spheroid. Following the immutable laws
of central attraction, the southern waters accruing from the melted ice
and snow of the south pole will return to invade and overwhelm once more
the continents of the northern hemisphere, giving rise to new
continents, in all probability, in the southern hemisphere.”

Such is a brief statement of the hypothesis which Adhémar has very
ingeniously worked out. How far it explains the mysterious phenomena
which we have under consideration we shall not attempt to say, our
concern being with the effects. Does the evidence of upward and downward
movements of the surface in Tertiary times explain the great change? For
if the cooling which preceded and succeeded the two European deluges
still remains an unsolved problem, its effects are perfectly
appreciable. The intense cold which visited the northern and central
parts of Europe resulted in the annihilation of organic life in those
countries. All the watercourses, the rivers and streams, the seas and
lakes, were frozen. As Agassiz says in his first work on “Glaciers”: “A
vast mantle of ice and snow covered the plains, the valleys, and the
seas. All the springs were dried up; the rivers ceased to flow. To the
movements of a numerous and animated creation succeeded the silence of
death.” Great numbers of animals perished from cold. The Elephant and
Rhinoceros perished by thousands in the midst of their grazing grounds,
which became transformed into fields of ice and snow. It is then that
these two species disappeared, and seem to have been effaced from
creation. Other animals were overwhelmed, without their race having been
always entirely annihilated. The sun, which lately lighted up the
verdant plains, as it dawned upon these frozen steppes, was only saluted
by the whistling of the north winds, and the horrible rending of the
crevasses, which opened up on all sides under the heat of its rays,
acting upon the immense glacier which formed the sepulchre of many
animated beings.

How can we accept the idea that the plains, but yesterday smiling and
fertile, were formerly covered, and that for a very long period, with an
immense sheet of ice and snow? To satisfy the reader that the proof of
this can be established on sufficient evidence, it is necessary to
direct his attention to certain parts of Europe. It is essential to
visit, at least in idea, a country where _glacial phenomena_ still
exist, and to prove that the phenomena, now confined to those countries,
were spread, during geological times, over spaces infinitely vaster. We
shall choose for our illustration, and as an example, the glaciers of
the Alps. We shall show that the glaciers of Switzerland and Savoy have
not always been restricted to their present limits; that they are, so to
speak, only miniature resemblances of the gigantic glaciers of times
past; and that they formerly extended over all the great plains which
extend from the foot of the chain of the Alps.

To establish these proofs we must enter upon some consideration of
existing glaciers, upon their mode of formation, and their peculiar
phenomena.

The snow which, during the whole year, falls upon the mountains, does
not melt, but maintains its solid state, when the elevation exceeds the
height of 9,000 feet or thereabouts. Where the snow accumulates to a
great thickness, in the valleys, or in the deep fissures in the ground,
it hardens under the influence of the pressure resulting from the
incumbent weight. But it always happens that a certain quantity of
water, resulting from the momentary thawing of the superficial portions,
traverses its substance, and this forms a crystalline mass of ice, with
a granular structure, which the Swiss naturalists designate _névé_. From
the successive melting and freezing caused by the heat by day and the
cold by night, and the infiltration of air and water into its
interstices, the _névé_ is slowly transformed into a homogeneous azure
mass of ice, full of an infinite number of little air-bubbles--this was
what was formerly called _glace bulleuse_ (bubble-ice). Finally, these
masses, becoming completely frozen, water replaces the bubbles of air.
Then the transformation is complete; the ice is homogeneous, and
presents those beautiful azure tints so much admired by the tourist who
traverses the magnificent glaciers of Switzerland and Savoy.

Such is the origin of, and such is the mode in which the glaciers of
the Alps are formed. An important property of glaciers remains to be
pointed out. They have a general movement of translation in the
direction of their <DW72>, under the influence of which they make a
certain yearly progress downward, according to the angle of the <DW72>.
The glacier of the Aar, for example, advances at the rate of about 250
feet each year.

Under the joint influence of the <DW72>, the weight of the frozen mass,
and the melting of the parts which touch the earth, the glacier thus
always tends downwards; but from the effects of a more genial
temperature, the lower extremity melting rapidly, has a tendency to
recede. It is the difference between these two actions which constitutes
the real progressive movement of the glacier.

The friction exercised by the glacier upon the bottom and sides of the
valley, ought necessarily to leave its traces on the rocks with which it
may happen to be in contact. Over all the places where a glacier has
passed, in fact, we remark that the rocks are polished, levelled,
rounded, and, as it is termed, _moutonnées_. These rocks present,
besides, striations or scratches, running in the direction of the motion
of the glacier, which have been produced by hard and angular fragments
of stones imbedded in the ice, and which leave their marks on the
hardest rocks under the irresistible pressure of the heavy-descending
mass of ice. In a work of great merit, which we have before quoted, M.
Charles Martins explains the physical mechanism by which granite rocks
borne onwards in the progressive movements of a glacier, have scratched,
scored, and rounded the softer rocks which the glacier has encountered
in its descent. “The friction,” says M. Martins, “which the glacier
exercises upon the bottom and upon the walls, is too considerable not to
leave its traces upon the rocks with which it may be in contact; but its
action varies according to the mineralogical nature of the rocks, and
the configuration of the ground they cover. If we penetrate between the
soil and the bottom of the glacier, taking advantage of the ice-caverns
which sometimes open at its edge or extremity, we creep over a bed of
pebbles and fine sand saturated with water. If we remove this bed, we
soon perceive that the underlying rock is levelled, polished, ground
down by friction, and covered with rectilinear striæ, resembling
sometimes small grooves, more frequently perfectly straight scratches,
as though they had been produced by means of a graver, or even a very
fine needle. The mechanism by which these striæ have been produced is
that which industry employs to polish stones and metals. We rub the
metallic surface with a fine powder called _emery_, until we give it a
brilliancy which proceeds from the reflection of the light from an
infinity of minute striæ. The bed of pebbles and mud, interposed between
the glacier and the subjacent rock, here represents the emery. The rock
is the metallic surface, and the mass of the glacier which presses on
and displaces the mud in its descent towards the plain, represents the
hand of the polisher. These striæ always follow the direction of the
glacier; but as it is sometimes subject to small lateral deviations, the
striæ sometimes cross, forming very small angles with one another. If we
examine the rocks by the side of a glacier, we find similar striæ
engraved on them where they have been in contact with the frozen mass. I
have often broken the ice where it thus pressed upon the rock, and have
found under it polished surfaces, covered with striations. The pebbles
and grains of sand which had engraved them were still encased in the
ice, fixed like the diamond of the glazier at the end of the instrument
with which he marks his glass.

“The sharpness and depth of the striæ or scratches depend on many
circumstances: if the rock acted upon is calcareous, and the emery is
represented by pebbles and sand derived from harder rocks, such as
gneiss, granite, or protogine, the scratches are very marked. This we
can verify at the foot of the glaciers of Rosenlaui, and of the
Grindenwald in the Canton of Berne. On the contrary, if the rock is
gneissic, granitic, or serpentinous, that is to say, very hard, the
scratches will be less deep and less marked, as may be seen in the
glaciers of the Aar, of Zermatt, and Chamounix. The polish will be the
same in both cases, and it is often as perfect as in marble polished for
architectural purposes.

“The scratches engraved upon the rocks which confine these glaciers are
generally horizontal or parallel to the surface. Sometimes, owing to the
contractions of the valley, these striæ are nearly vertical. This,
however, need not surprise us. Forced onwards by the superincumbent
weight, the glacier squeezes itself through the narrow part, its bulk
expanding upwards, in which case the flanks of the mountain which barred
its passage are marked vertically. This is admirably seen near the
Châlets of Stieregg, a narrow defile which the lower glacier of the
Grindenwald has to clear before it discharges itself into the valley of
the same name. Upon the right bank of the glacier the scratches are
inclined at an angle of 45° to the horizon. Upon the left bank the
glacier rises sometimes quite up to the neighbouring forest, carrying
with it great clods of earth charged with rhododendrons and clumps of
alder, birches, and firs. The more tender or foliated rocks were broken
up and demolished by the prodigious force of the glacier; the harder
rocks offered more resistance, but their surface is planed down,
polished, and striated, testifying to the enormous pressure which they
had to undergo. In the same manner the glacier of the Aar, at the foot
of the promontory on which M. Agassiz’ tent was erected, is polished to
a great height, and on the face, turned towards the upper part of the
valley, I have observed scratches inclined 64°. The ice, erect against
this escarpment, seemed to wish to scale it, but the granite rock held
fast, and the glacier was compelled to pass round it slowly.

“In recapitulation, the considerable pressure of a glacier, joined to
its movement of progression, acts at once upon the bottom and flanks of
the valley which it traverses: it polishes all the rocks which may be
too hard to be demolished by it, and frequently impresses upon them a
peculiar and characteristic form. In destroying all the asperities and
inequalities of these rocks, it levels their surfaces and rounds them on
the sides pointing up the stream, whilst in the opposite direction, or
down the stream, they sometimes preserve their abrupt, unequal, and
rugged surface. We must comprehend, in short, that the force of the
glacier acts principally on the side which is towards the circle whence
it descends, in the same way that the piles of a bridge are more damaged
up-stream, than down, by the icebergs which the river brings down during
the winter. Seen from a distance, a group of rocks thus rounded and
polished reminds us of the appearance of a flock of sheep: hence the
name _roches moutonnées_ given them by the Swiss naturalists.”

Another phenomenon which plays an important part in existing glaciers,
and in those, also, which formerly covered Switzerland, is found in the
fragments of rock, often of enormous size, which have been transported
and deposited during their movement of progression.

The peaks of the Alps are exposed to continual degradations. Formed of
granitic rocks--rocks eminently alterable under the action of air and
water, they become disintegrated and often fall in fragments more or
less voluminous. “The masses of snow,” continues Martins, “which hang
upon the Alps during winter, the rain which infiltrates between their
beds during summer, the sudden action of torrents of water, and more
slowly, but yet more powerfully, the chemical affinities, degrade,
disintegrate, and decompose the hardest rocks. The débris thus produced
falls from the summits into the circles occupied by the glaciers with a
great crash, accompanied by frightful noises and great clouds of dust.
Even in the middle of summer I have seen these avalanches of stone
precipitated from the highest ridges of the Schreckhorn, forming upon
the immaculate snow a long black train, consisting of enormous blocks
and an immense number of smaller fragments. In the spring a rapid
thawing of the winter snows often causes accidental torrents of extreme
violence. If the melting is slow, water insinuates itself into the
smallest fissures of the rocks, freezes there, and rends asunder the
most refractory masses. The blocks detached from the mountains are
sometimes of gigantic dimensions: we have found them sixty feet in
length, and those measuring thirty feet each way are by no means rare in
the Alps.”[106]

  [106] _Revue des Deux Mondes_, p. 925; March 1, 1847.

Thus, the action of aqueous infiltrations followed by frost, the
chemical decomposition which granite undergoes under the influence of a
moist atmosphere, degrade and disintegrate the rocks which constitute
the mountains enclosing the glacier. Blocks, sometimes of very
considerable dimensions, often fall at the foot of these mountains on to
the surface of the glacier. Were it immovable the débris would
accumulate at its base, and would form there a mass of ruins heaped up
without order. But the slow progression, the continuous displacement of
the glacier, lead, in the distribution of these blocks, to a certain
kind of arrangement: the blocks falling upon its surface participate in
its movement, and advance with it. But other downfalls take place daily,
and the new débris following the first, the whole form a line along the
outer edge of the glacier. These regular trains of rocks bear the name
of “_moraines_.” When the rocks fall from two mountains, and on each
edge of the glacier, and two parallel lines of débris are formed, they
are called _lateral moraines_. There are also _median moraines_, which
are formed when two glaciers are confluent, in such a manner that the
_lateral moraine_, on the right of the one, trends towards the left-hand
one of the other. Finally, those moraines are _frontal_, or _terminal_,
which repose, not upon the glacier, but at its point of termination in
the valleys, and which are due to the accumulation of blocks fallen from
the terminal escarpments of glaciers there arrested by some obstacle. In
PLATE XXXI. we have represented an actual Swiss glacier, in which are
united the physical and geological peculiarities belonging to these
enormous masses of frozen water: the moraines here are _lateral_, that
is to say, formed of a double line of débris.

[Illustration: XXXI.--Glaciers of Switzerland.]

Transported slowly on the surface of the glacier, all the blocks from
the mountain preserve their original forms unaltered; the sharpness of
their edges is never altered by their gentle transport and almost
imperceptible motion. Atmospheric agency only can affect or destroy
these rocks when formed of hard resisting material. They then remain
nearly of the same form and volume they had when they fell on the
surface of the glacier; but it is otherwise with blocks and fragments
enclosed between the rock and the glacier, whether it be at the bottom
or between the glacier and its lateral walls. Some of these, under the
powerful and continuous action of this gigantic grinding process, will
be reduced to an impalpable mud, others are worn into facets, while
others are rounded, presenting a multitude of scratches crossing each
other in all directions. These scratched pebbles are of great importance
in studying the extent of ancient glaciers; they testify, on the spot,
to the existence of pre-existing glaciers which shaped, ground, and
striated the pebbles, which water does not; on the contrary, in the
latter, they become polished and rounded, and even natural striations
are effaced.

Thus, huge blocks transported to great distances from their true
geological beds, that is, _erratic blocks_, to use the proper technical
term, rounded (_moutonnées_), polished, and scratched surfaces,
_moraines_; finally, pebbles, ground, polished, rounded, or worn into
smooth surfaces, are all physical effects of glaciers in motion, and
their presence alone affords sufficient proof to the naturalist that a
glacier formerly existed in the locality where he finds them. The reader
will now comprehend how it is possible to recognise, in our days, the
existence of ancient glaciers in different parts of the world. Above
all, wherever we may find both _erratic blocks_ and _moraines_, and
observe, at the same time, indications of rocks having been polished and
striated in the same direction, we may pronounce with certainty as to
the existence of a glacier during geological times. Let us take some
instances.

At Pravolta, in the Alps, going towards _Monte Santo-Primo_, upon a
calcareous rock, we find the mass of granite represented in Fig. 196.
This erratic block exists, with thousands of others, on the <DW72>s of
the mountain. It is about fifty feet long, nearly forty feet broad, and
five-and-twenty in height; and all its edges and angles are perfect.
Some parallel striæ occur along the neighbouring rocks. All this clearly
demonstrates that a glacier existed, in former times, in this part of
the Alps, where none appear at the present time. It is a glacier, then,
which has transported and deposited here this enormous block, weighing
nearly 2,000 tons.

In the Jura Mountains, on the hill of Fourvières, a limestone eminence
at Lyons, blocks of granite are found, evidently derived from the Alps,
and transported there by the Swiss glaciers. The particular mode of
transport is represented theoretically in Fig. 197. A represents, for
example, the summit of the Alps, B the Jura Mountains, or the hill of
Fourvières, at Lyons. At the glacial period, the glacier A B C extended
from the Alps to the mountain B. The granitic débris, which was detached
from the summit of the Alpine mountains, fell on the surface of the
glacier. The movement of progression of this glacier transported these
blocks as far as the summit B. At a later period the temperature of the
globe was raised, and when the ice had melted, the blocks, D E, were
quietly deposited on the spots where they are now found, without having
sustained the slightest shock or injury in this singular mode of
transport.

[Illustration: Fig. 196.--Erratic Blocks in the Alps.]

[Illustration: Fig. 197.--Transported blocks.]

Every day traces, more or less recognisable, are found on the Alps of
ancient glaciers far distant from their existing limits. Heaps of
débris, of all sizes, comprehending blocks with sharp-pointed angles,
are found in the Swiss plains and valleys. _Blocs perchés_ (Perched
blocks), as in PL. XXXI., are often seen perched upon points of the Alps
situated far above existing glaciers, or dispersed over the plain which
separates the Alps from the Jura, or even preserving an incredible
equilibrium, when their great mass is taken into consideration, at
considerable heights on the eastern flank of this chain of mountains. It
is by the aid of these indications that the geologist has been able to
trace to extremely remote distances signs of the former existence of the
ancient glaciers of the Alps, to follow them in their course, and fix
their point of origin, and where they terminated. Thus the humble Mount
Sion, a gently-swelling hill situated to the north of Geneva, was the
point at which three great ancient glaciers had their confluence--the
glacier of the Rhône, which filled all the basin of Lake Leman, or Lake
of Geneva; that of the Isère, which issued from the Annecy and Bourget
Lakes; and that of the Arve, which had its source in the valley of
Chamounix, all converged at this point. According to M. G. de Mortillet,
who has carefully studied this geological question, the extent and
situation of these ancient glaciers of the Alps were as follows:--Upon
its northern flank the _glacier of the Rhine_ occupied all the basin of
Lake Constance, and extended to the borders of Germany; that of the
_Linth_, which was arrested at the extremity of the Lake of Zurich--this
city is built upon its terminal moraine--that of the _Reus_, which
covered the lake of the four cantons with blocks torn from the peaks of
Saint-Gothard;--that of the _Aar_, the last moraines of which crown the
hills in the environs of Berne;--those of the _Arve_ and the _Isère_,
which, as we have said, debouched from Lake Annecy and Lake Bourget
respectively;--that of the _Rhône_, the most important of all. It is
this glacier which has deposited upon the flanks of the Jura, at the
height of 3,400 feet above the level of the sea, the great _erratic
blocks_ already described. This mighty glacier of the Rhône had its
origin in all the lateral valleys formed by the two parallel chains of
the Valais. It filled all the Valais, and extended into the plain, lying
between the Alps and the Jura, from Fort de L’Écluse, near the fall of
the Rhône, up to the neighbourhood of Aarau.

The fragments of rocks transported by the ice-sea which occupied all the
Swiss plain follow, in northerly direction, the course of the valley of
the Rhine. On the other hand, the glacier of the Rhône, after reaching
the plain of Switzerland, turned off obliquely towards the south,
received the glacier of the Arve, then that of the Isère, passed between
the Jura and the mountains of the Grande-Chartreuse, spread over La
Bresse, then nearly all Dauphiny, and terminated in the neighbourhood of
Lyons.

Upon the southern flank of the Alps, the ancient glaciers, according to
M. de Mortillet’s map, occupied all the great valleys from that of the
Dora, on the west, to that of the Tagliamento, on the east. “The glacier
of the _Dora_” says de Mortillet, whose text we greatly abridge,
“debouched into the valley of the Po, close to Turin. That of the
_Dora-Baltéa_ entered the plain of Ivréa, where it has left a
magnificent semicircle of hills, which formed its terminal moraine. That
of the _Toce_ discharged itself into Lake Maggiore, against the glacier
of the Tessin, and then threw itself into the valley of Lake Orta, at
the southern extremity of which its terminal moraines were situated.
That of the Tessin filled the basin of Lake Maggiore, and established
itself between Lugano and Varèse. That of the _Adda_ filled the basin of
Lake Como, and established itself between Mendrizio and Lecco, thus
describing a vast semicircle. That of the _Oglio_ terminated a little
beyond Lake Iseo. That of the _Adige_, finding no passage through the
narrow valley of Roveredo, where the valley became very narrow, took
another course, and filled the immense valley of the Lake of Garda. At
Novi it has left a magnificent moraine, of which Dante speaks in his
‘Inferno.’ That of the _Brenta_ extended over the plain of that commune.
The _Drave_ and the _Tagliamento_ had also their glaciers. Finally,
glaciers occupied all the valleys of the Austrian and Bavarian
Alps.”[107]

  [107] “Carte des Anciens Glaciers des Alpes,” pp. 8-10. (1860.)

Similar traces of the existence of ancient glaciers occur in many other
European countries. In the Pyrenees, in Corsica, the Vosges, the Jura,
&c., extensive ranges of country have been covered, in geological
times, by these vast plains of ice. The glacier of the Moselle was the
most considerable of the glaciers of the Vosges, receiving numerous
affluents; its lowest frontal moraine, which is situated below
Remiremont, could not be less than a mile and a quarter in length.

But the phenomenon of the glacial extension which we have examined in
the Alps was not confined to Central Europe. The same traces of their
ancient existence are observed in all the north of Europe, in Russia,
Iceland, Norway, Prussia, the British Islands, part of Germany, in the
north, and even in some parts of the south, of Spain. In England,
_erratic_ blocks of granite are found which were derived from the
mountains of Norway. It is evident that these blocks were borne by a
glacier which extended from the north pole to England. In this manner
they crossed the Baltic and the North Seas. In Prussia similar traces
are observable.

Thus, during the Quaternary epoch, glaciers which are now limited to the
Polar regions, or to mountainous countries of considerable altitude,
extended very far beyond their present known limits; and, taken in
connection with the deluge of the north, and the vast amount of organic
life which they destroyed, they form, perhaps, the most striking and
mysterious of all geological phenomena.

M. Edouard Collomb, to whom we owe much of our knowledge of ancient
glaciers, furnishes the following note explanatory of a map of Ancient
Glaciers which he has prepared:--

“The area occupied by the ancient Quaternary glaciers may be divided
into two orographical regions:--1. The region of the north, from lat.
52° or 55° up to the North Pole. 2. The region of Central Europe and
part of the south.

“The region of the north which has been covered by the ancient glaciers
comprehends all the Scandinavian peninsula, Sweden, Norway, and a part
of Western Russia, extending from the Niemen on the north in a curve
which passed near the sources of the Dnieper and the Volga, and thence
took a direction towards the shores of the glacial ocean. This region
comprehends Iceland, Scotland, Ireland, the isles dependent on them,
and, finally, a great part of England.

“This region is bounded, on all its sides, by a wide zone from 2° to 5°
in breadth, over which is recognised the existence of erratic blocks of
the north: it includes the middle region of Russia in Europe, Poland, a
part of Prussia, and Denmark; losing itself in Holland on the Zuider
Zee, it cut into the northern part of England, and we find a shred of it
in France, upon the borders of the Cotentin.

“The ancient glaciers of Central Europe consisted, first, of the grand
masses of the Alps. Stretching to the west and to the north, they
extended to the valley of the Rhône as far as Lyons, then crossing the
summit-level of the Jura, they passed near Basle, covering Lake
Constance, and stretching beyond into Bavaria and Austria. Upon the
southern <DW72>s of the Alps, they turned round the summit of the
Adriatic, passed near to Udinet, covered Peschiera, Solferino, Como,
Varèse, and Ivréa, extended to near Turin, and terminated in the valley
of the Stura, near the Col de Tenda.

“In the Pyrenees, the ancient glaciers have occupied all the principal
valleys of this chain, both on the French and Spanish sides, especially
the valleys of the centre, which comprehend those of Luchon, Aude,
Baréges, Cauterets, and Ossun. In the Cantabrian chain, an extension of
the Pyrenees, the existence of ancient glaciers has also been
recognised.

“In the Vosges and the Black Forest they covered all the southern parts
of these mountains. In the Vosges, the principal traces are found in the
valleys of Saint-Amarin, Giromagny, Munster, the Moselle, &c.

“In the Carpathians and the Caucasus the existence of ancient glaciers
of great extent has also been observed.

“In the Sierra Nevada, in the south of Spain, mountains upwards of
11,000 feet high, the valleys which descend from the Picacho de Veleta
and Mulhacen have been covered with ancient glaciers during the
Quaternary epoch.”

There is no reason to doubt that at this epoch all the British islands,
at least all north of the Thames, were covered by glaciers in their
higher parts. “Those,” says Professor Ramsay, “who know the Highlands of
Scotland, will remember that, though the weather has had a powerful
influence upon them, rendering them in places rugged, jagged, and
cliffy, yet, notwithstanding, their general outlines are often
remarkably rounded and flowing; and when the valleys are examined in
detail, you find in their bottoms and on the sides of the hills that the
mammillated structure prevails. This rounded form is known, by those who
study glaciers, by the name of _roches moutonnées_, given to them by the
Swiss writers. These mammillated forms are exceedingly common in many
British valleys, and not only so, but the very same kind of grooving and
striation, so characteristic of the rocks in the Swiss valleys, also
marks those of the Highlands of Scotland, of Cumberland, and Wales.
Considering all these things, geologists, led by Agassiz some five or
six and twenty years ago, have by degrees come to the conclusion, that a
very large part of our island was, during the glacial period, covered,
or nearly covered, with a thick coating of ice in the same way that the
north of Greenland is at present; and that by the long-continued
grinding power of a great glacier, or set of glaciers nearly universal
over the northern half of our country, and the high ground of Wales, the
whole surface became moulded by ice.”

Whoever traverses England, observing its features with attention, will
remark in certain places traces of the action of ice in this era. Some
of the mountains present on one side a naked rock, and on the other a
gentle <DW72>, smiling and verdant, giving a character more or less
abrupt, bold, and striking, to the landscape. Considerable portions of
dry land were formerly covered by a bluish clay, which contained many
fragments of rock or “boulders” torn from the old Cumbrian mountains;
from the Pennine chain; from the moraines of the north of England; and
from the Chalk hills--hence called “boulder” clay--present themselves
here and there, broken, worn, and ground up by the action of water and
ice. These erratic blocks or “boulders” have clearly been detached from
the parent rock by violence, and often transported to considerable
distances. They have been carried, not only across plains, but over the
tops of mountains; some of them being found 130 miles from the parent
rocks. We even find, as already hinted, some rocks of which no
prototypes have been found nearer than Norway. There is, then, little
room for doubting the fact of an extensive system of glaciers having
covered the land, although the proofs have only been gathered
laboriously and by slow degrees in a long series of years. In 1840
Agassiz visited Scotland, and his eye, accustomed to glaciers in his
native mountains, speedily detected their signs. Dr. Buckland became a
zealous advocate of the same views. North Wales was soon recognised as
an independent centre of a system which radiated from lofty Snowdon,
through seven valleys, carrying with them large stones and grooving the
rocks in their passage. In the pass of Llanberis there are all the
common proofs of the valley having been filled with glacier ice. “When
the country was under water,” says Professor Ramsay, “the drift was
deposited which more or less filled up many of the Welsh valleys. When
the land had risen again to a considerable height, the glaciers
increased in size: although they never reached the immense magnitude
which they attained in the earlier portion of the icy epoch. Still they
became so large that such a valley as the Pass of Llanberis was a second
time occupied by ice, which ploughed out the drift that more or less
covered the valley. By degrees, however, as we approach nearer our own
days, the climate slowly ameliorated, and the glaciers began to decline,
till, growing less and less, they crept up and up; and here and there,
as they died away, they left their terminal and lateral moraines still
as well defined in some cases as moraines in lands where glaciers now
exist. Frequently, too, masses of stone, that floated on the surface of
the ice, were left perched upon the rounded _roches moutonnées_, in a
manner somewhat puzzling to those who are not geologists.

“In short, they were let down upon the surface of these rocks so quietly
and so softly, that there they will lie, until an earthquake shakes them
down, or until the wasting of the rock on which they rest precipitates
them to a lower level.”

It was the opinion of Agassiz, after visiting Scotland, that the
Grampians had been covered by a vast thickness of ice, whence erratic
blocks had been dispersed in all directions as from a centre; other
geologists after a time adopted the opinion--Mr. Robert Chambers going
so far as to maintain, in 1848, that Scotland had been at one time
moulded by ice. Mr. T. F. Jamieson followed in the same track, adducing
many new facts to prove that the Grampians once sent down glaciers in
all directions towards the sea. “The glacial grooves,” he says, “radiate
outward from the central heights towards all points of the compass,
although they do not strictly conform to the actual shape and contour of
the minor valleys and ridges.” But the most interesting part of Mr.
Jamieson’s investigations is undoubtedly the ingenious manner in which
he has worked out Agassiz’ assertion that Glenroy, whose remarkable
“_Parallel Roads_” have puzzled so many investigators, was once the
basin of a frozen lake.

Glenroy is one of the many romantic glens of Lochaber, at the head of
the Spey, near to the Great Glen, or the valley of the Caledonian Canal,
which stretches obliquely across the country in a northwesterly
direction from Loch Linnhè to Loch Ness, leaving Loch Arkaig, Loch Aich,
Glen Garry, and many a highland loch besides, on the left, and Glen
Spean, in which Loch Treig, running due north and south, has its mouth,
on the south. Glenroy opens into it from the north, while Glen Gluoy
opens into the Great Glen opposite Loch Arkaig. Mr. Jamieson commenced
his investigations at the mouth of Loch Arkaig, which is about a mile
from the lake itself. Here he found the gneiss ground down as if by ice
coming from the east. On the hill, north of the lake, the gneiss, though
much worn and weathered, still exhibited well-marked striæ, directed up
and down the valley. Other markings showed that the Glen Arkaig glacier
not only blocked up Glen Gluoy, but the mouth of Glen Spean, which lies
two miles or so north of it on the opposite side.

At Brackletter, on the south side of Glen Spean, near its junction with
Glen Lochy, glacial scores pointing more nearly due west, but slightly
inclining to the north, were observed, as if caused by the pressure of
ice from Glen Lui. The south side of Glen Spean, from its mouth to Loch
Treig, is bounded by lofty hills--an extension of Ben Nevis, the highest
of these peaks exceeding 3,000 feet. Numerous gullies intersect their
flanks, and the largest of these, Corry N’Eoin, presents a series of
rocky amphitheatres, or rather large caldrons, whose walls have been
ground down by long-continued glacial action: the quartz-veins are all
shorn down to the level of the gneiss, and streaked with fine scratches,
pointing down the hollows and far up the rocks on either side. During
all these operations the great valley was probably filled up with ice,
which would close Glen Gluoy and Glen Spean, and might also close the
lowest of the lines in Glenroy. But how about the middle and upper
lines?

A glacier crossing from Loch Treig, and protruding across Glen Spean,
would cut off Glens Glaibu and Makoul, when the water in Glenroy could
only escape over the Col into Strathspey, when the first level would be
marked.

Now let the Glen Treig glacier shrink a little, so as to let out water
to the level of the second line by the outline at Makoul, and the theory
is complete. When the first and greatest glacier gave way, Glenroy would
be nearly in its present state.

The glacier, on issuing from the gorge at the end of Loch Treig, would
dilate immensely, the right flank spreading over a rough expanse of
syenite, the neighbouring hills being mica-schists, with veins of
porphyry. Now the syenite breaks into large cuboidal blocks of immense
size. These have been swept before the advancing glacier along with
other débris, and deposited in a semicircle of mounds having a sweep of
several miles, forming circular bands which mark the edges of the
glacier as it shrunk from time to time under the influence of a milder
climate.

This moraine, which was all that was wanting to complete the theory laid
down by Agassiz, is found on the pony-road leading from the mouth of
Loch Treig towards Badenoch. A mile or so brings the traveller to the
summit-level of the road, and beyond the hill a low moor stretches away
to the bottom of the plain. Here, slanting across the <DW72> of the hill
towards Loch Treig, two lines of moraine stretch across the road. At
first they consist of mica-schists and bits of porphyry, but blocks of
syenite soon become intermingled. Outside these are older hillocks,
rising in some places sixty and seventy feet high, forming narrow
steep-sided mounds, with blocks fourteen feet in length sticking out of
the surface, mixed with fragments of mica-schist and gneiss. The inner
moraine consists, almost wholly, of large blocks of syenite, five, ten,
fifteen, and five-and-twenty feet long.

[Illustration: Fig. 198.--Parallel roads of Glenroy; from a sketch by
Professor J. Phillips.]

The present aspect of Glenroy is that of an upper and lower glen opening
up from the larger Glen Spean. The head-waters of Lochaber gather in a
wild mountain tract, near the source of the Spey. The upper glen is an
oval valley, four miles long, by about one broad, bounded on each side
by high mountains, which throw off two streams dividing the mica-schist
from the gneissic systems; the former predominating on the west side,
and the latter on the east. The united streams flow to the south-west
for two miles, when the valley contracts to a rocky gorge which
separates the upper from the lower glen. Passing from the upper to the
lower glen, a line is observed to pass from near the junction of the two
streams, on a level with a flat rock at the gorge, and also with the
uppermost of the three lines of terraces in the lower glen. This line
girdles the sides of the hills right and left, with a seemingly higher
sweep, and is followed by two other perfectly parallel and continuous
lines till Glenroy expands into Glen Spean, which crosses its mouth and
enters the great glen a little south of Loch Lochy. At the point,
however, where Glenroy enters Glen Spean, the two upper terraces cease,
while the lower of the three appears on the north and south side of Glen
Spean, as far as the pass of Glen Muckal, and southward a little way up
the Gubban river and round the head of Loch Treig.

In Scotland, and in Northern England and Wales, there is distinct
evidence that the Glacial Epoch commenced with an era of continental
ice, the land being but slightly lower than at present, and possibly at
the same level, during which period the Scottish hills received their
rounded outlines, and scratched and smoothed rock-surfaces; and the
plains and valleys became filled with the stiff clay, with angular
scratched stones, known as the “Till,” which deposit is believed by
Messrs. Geikie, Jamieson, and Croll to be a _moraine profonde_, the
product of a vast ice-sheet.

In Wales, Professor Ramsay has described the whole of the valleys of the
Snowdonian range as filled with enormous glaciers, the level of the
surface of the ice filling the Pass of Llanberis, rising 500 feet above
the present watershed at Gorphwysfa. In the Lake District of Cumberland
and Westmorland, Mr. De Rance has shown that a vast series of glaciers,
or small ice-sheets, filled all the valleys, radiating out in all
directions from the larger mountains, which formed centres of
dispersion, the ice actually pushing over many of the lesser watersheds,
and scooping out the great rock-basins in which lie the lakes
Windermere, Ullswater, Thirlmere, Coniston Water, and Wastwater, the
bottoms of which are nearly all below the sea-level. The whole of this
district, he has shown, experienced a second glaciation, after the
period of great submergence, in which valley-glaciers scooped out the
marine drift, and left their _moraines_ in the Liza, Langdale, and
other valleys, and high up in the hills, as at Harrison’s Stickle, where
a tarn has been formed by a little _moraine_, acting as a dam, as shown
by Professor Hull.

In Wales, also, valley-glaciers existed after the submergence beneath
the Glacial sea. Thus in Cwm-llafar, under the brow of Carnedd Dafydd,
and Carnedd Llewelyn, Professor Ramsay has shown that a narrow glacier,
about two miles in length, has ploughed out a long narrow hollow in the
drift (which “forms a succession of terraces, the result of marine
denudation, during pauses in the re-elevation of its submersion) to a
depth of more than 2,000 feet.”[108]

  [108] Professor Ramsay, “The Old Glaciers of North Wales.” Longman,
        1860.

The proofs of this great submergence, succeeding the era of “land-ice,”
are constantly accumulating. Since 1863, when Professor Hull first
divided the thick glacial deposits of Eastern Lancashire and Cheshire
into an Upper Boulder Clay, and Lower Boulder Clay divided by a Middle
Sand and Gravel, the whole of which are of marine origin, these
subdivisions have been found to hold good, by himself and Mr. A. H.
Green, over 600 square miles of country around Manchester, Bolton, and
Congleton; by Mr. De Rance over another 600 square miles, around
Liverpool, Preston, Blackpool, Blackburn, and Lancaster, and also in the
low country lying between the Cumberland and Welsh mountains and the
sea.

In Ireland, also, the same triplex arrangement appears to exist.
Professors Harkness and Hull have identified the “Limestone and Manure
Gravels” of the central plain, as referable to the “Middle Sand and
Gravel,” and the “Lower Boulder Clay” rests on a glaciated rock-surface
along the coasts of Antrim and Down, and is overlain by sand, which, in
1832, was discovered by Dr. Scouler to be shell-bearing. At Kingstown
the three deposits are seen resting on a moutonnéed surface of granite,
scored from the N.N.W.

In Lancashire and on the coast of North Wales, between Llandudno and
Rhyl, Mr. De Rance has shown that these deposits often lie upon the
denuded and eroded surface of another clay, of older date, which he
believes to be the product of land-ice, the remnant of the _moraine
profonde_, and the equivalent of the Scotch “Till.” He also shows that
the Lower Boulder Clay never rises above an elevation of fifty or eighty
feet above the sea-level; and that the Middle Sand and Shingle rests
directly upon the rock, or on the surface of this old Till.

Near Manchester the Lower Boulder Clay occasionally rests upon an old
bed of sand and gravel. It is extremely local, but its presence has been
recorded in several sections by Mr. Edward Binney, who was the first to
show, in 1842,[109] that the Lancashire Boulder Clays were formed in the
sea, and that the erratic pebbles and boulders, mainly derived from the
Cumberland Lake Districts, were brought south by means of floating ice.

  [109] In 1840 Dr. Buckland described the occurrence of boulders of
        Criffel Granite between Shalbeck and Carlisle, and attributed
        their position to the agency of ice floating across the Solway
        Firth.

Most of the erratic pebbles and boulders in the Lancashire clays are
more or less scratched and scored, many of them (though quite rounded)
in so many directions that Mr. De Rance believes the Cumberland and
Westmoreland hills to have been surrounded by an ice-belt, which,
occasionally thawing during summer or warm episodes, admitted “breaker
action” on the gradually subsiding coast, wearing the fragments of rocks
brought down by rivers or by glaciers into pebbles that, with the return
of the cold, became covered with the “ice-belt,” which, lifted by the
tides, rolled and dinted the pebbles one against another, and gradually
allowed them to be impressed into its mass, with which they eventually
floated away.

The Middle Sands and Shingles in England have also afforded a great
number of shells of mollusca. At Macclesfield they have been described
by Messrs. Prestwich and Darbishire as occurring at an elevation of
1,100 to 1,200 feet above the level of the sea.[110]

  [110] Mr. Darbishire records seventy species from Macclesfield and
        Moel Tryfaen, taken together, of which 6 are Arctic, and 18 are
        not known in the Upper Crag.

Among other proofs of glacial action and submersion in Wales may be
mentioned the case of Moel Tryfaen, a hill 1,400 feet high, lying to the
westward of Caernarvon Bay, and six or seven miles from Caernarvon. Mr.
Joshua Trimmer had observed stratified drift near the summit of this
mountain, from which he obtained some marine shells; but doubts were
entertained as to their age until 1863, when a deep and extensive
cutting was made in search of slates. In this cutting a stratified mass
of loose sand and gravel was laid open near the summit, thirty-five feet
thick, containing shells, some entire, but mostly in fragments. Sir
Charles Lyell examined the cutting, and obtained twenty species of
shells, and in the lower beds of the drift, “large heavy boulders of
far-transported rocks, glacially polished and scratched on more than one
side:” underneath the whole, the edges of vertical slates were exposed
to view, exhibiting “unequivocal marks of prolonged glaciation.” The
shells belonged to species still living in British or more northern
seas.

From the gravels of the Severn Valley, described by Mr. Maw, thirty-five
forms of mollusca have been identified by Mr. Gwyn Jeffreys. In the
Shingle beds of Leyland, Euxton, Chorley, Preston, Lancaster, and
Blackpool,[111] Mr. De Rance has obtained nearly thirty species.

  [111] The typical species in West Lancashire are _Tellina Balthica_,
        _Cardium edule_, _C. aculeatum_, _C. rusticum_, _Psammobia
        ferroensis_, _Turritella terebra_.

In Eastern Yorkshire, Mr. Searles V. Wood, Jun., has divided the glacial
deposits into “Purple Clay without Chalk,” “Purple Clay with Chalk,” and
“Chalky Clay,” the whole being later than his “Middle Glacial Sands and
Gravel,” which, in East Anglia, are overlain by the “Chalky Clay,” and
rest unconformably upon the “Contorted Drift” of Norfolk, the Cromer
Till, and the Forest Bed. His three Yorkshire clays are, however,
considered by most northern geologists to be the representatives of the
“Upper Boulder Clay” west of the Pennine Chain, the “Chalky Clay” having
been formed before the country had sufficiently subsided to allow the
sandstones and marls, furnishing the red colouring matter, to have
suffered denudation; while the “Purple Clay without Chalk, and with Shap
Granite,” was deposited when all the chalk was mainly beneath the sea,
and the granite from Shap Fell, which had been broken up by
breaker-action during the Middle Sand era, was floated across the passes
of the Pennine Chain and southwards and northwards. A solitary pebble of
Shap granite has been found by Mr. De Rance at Hoylake, in Cheshire; and
many of Criffel Granite, in that county, and on the coast of North
Wales, by Mr. Mackintosh, who has also traced the flow of this granite
in the low country lying north and south of the Cumberland mountains.

At Bridlington, in Yorkshire, occurs a deposit at the base of the
“Purple Clay,” with a truly Arctic fauna. Out of seventy forms of
mollusca recorded by Mr. S. V. Wood, Jun., nineteen are unknown to the
Crag--of these thirteen are purely arctic, and two not known as living.

Shells have been found in the Upper Boulder Clay of Lancashire, at
Hollingworth Reservoir, near Mottram, by Messrs. Binney, Bateman, and
Prestwich, at an elevation of 568 feet above the sea, consisting of
_Fusus Bamffius_, _Purpura lapillus_, _Turritilla terebra_, and _Cardium
edule_. The clay is described by Mr. Binney as sandy, and
brown-, with pebbles of granite and greenstone, some rounded and
some angular. All the above shells, as well as _Tellina Balthica_, have
been found in the Upper Clay of Preston, Garstang, Blackpool, and
Llandudno, by Mr. De Rance, who has also found all the above species
(with the exception of _Fusus_), as well as _Psammobia ferroensis_, and
the siliceous spiculæ of marine sponges, in the Lower Boulder Clay of
West Lancashire. He has described the ordinary red Boulder Clay of
Lancashire as extending continuously through Cheshire and Staffordshire
into Warwickshire, gradually becoming less red and more chalky,
everywhere overlying intermittent sheets of “sands and shingle-beds,”
one of which is particularly well seen at Leamington and Warwick, where
it contains Pectens from the Crag, _Gryphæa_ from the Lias, and chalk
fossils and flints. The latter have also been found by Mr. Lucy in the
neighbourhood of Mount Sorrel, associated with bits of the Coral Rag of
Yorkshire. The gravels of Leicester, Market Harborough, and Lutterworth
were long ago described by the Rev. W. D. Conybeare as affording
“specimens of the organic remains of most of the Secondary Strata in
England.”

The Rev. O. Fisher, F.G.S., has paid much attention to the superficial
covering usually described as “heading,” or “drift,” as well as to the
contour of the surface, in districts composed of the softer strata, and
has published his views in various papers in the _Journal of the
Geological Society_ and in the _Geological Magazine_. He thinks that the
contour of the surface cannot be ascribed entirely to the action of rain
and rivers, but that the changes in the ancient contour since produced
by those changes can be easily distinguished. He finds the covering beds
to consist of two members--a lower one, entirely destitute of organic
remains, and generally unstratified, which has often been forcibly
indented into the bed beneath it, sometimes exhibiting slickenside at
the junction.

There is evidence of this lower member having been pushed or dragged
over the surface, from higher to lower levels, in a plastic condition;
on which account he has named it “The Trail.”

The upper member of the covering beds consists of soil derived from the
lower one, by weathering. It contains, here and there, the remains of
the land-shells which lived in the locality at a period antecedent to
cultivation. It is “The Warp” of Mr. Trimmer.

Neither of these accumulations occur on low flats, where the surface has
been modified since the recent period. They both alike pass below
high-water mark, and have been noticed beneath estuarine deposits.

Mr. Fisher is of opinion that land-ice has been instrumental in forming
the contour of the surface, and that the trail is the remnant of its
_moraine profonde_. And he has given reasons[112] for believing that the
climate of those latitudes may have been sufficiently rigorous for that
result about 100,000 years ago. He attributes the formation of the
superficial covering of Warp to a period of much rainfall and severe
winter-frosts, after the ice-sheet had disappeared.

  [112] _Geological Magazine_, vol. iii., p. 483.

The phenomena which so powerfully affected our hemisphere present
themselves, in a much grander manner, in the New World. The
glacier-system appears to have taken in America the same gigantic
proportions which other objects assume there. Nor is it necessary, in
order to explain the permanent existence of this icy mantle in temperate
climates, to infer the prevalence of any very extraordinary degree of
cold. On this subject M. Ch. Martins thus expresses himself: “The mean
temperature of Geneva is 9° 5 Cent. Upon the surrounding mountains the
limit of perpetual snow is found at 8,800 feet above the level of the
sea. The great glaciers of the valley of Chamounix descend 5,000 feet
below this line. Thus situated, let us suppose that the mean temperature
of Geneva was lowered only 4°, and the average became 5° 5; the decrease
of temperature with the height being 1° c. for every 600 feet, the limit
of perpetual snow would be lowered by 2,437 feet, and would be 6,363
feet above the level of the sea. We can readily admit that the glaciers
of Chamounix would descend below this new limit, to an extent at least
equal to that which exists between their present limit and their lower
extremity. Now, in reality, the foot of these glaciers is 5,000 feet
above the ocean; with a climate 4° colder, it would be 2,437 feet lower;
that is to say, at the level of the Swiss plain. Thus, the lowering of
the line of perpetual snow to this extent would suffice to bring the
glacier of the Arve to the environs of Geneva.... Of the climate which
has favoured the prodigious development of glaciers we have a pretty
correct idea; it is that of Upsala, Stockholm, Christiana, and part of
North America, in the State of New York.... To diminish by four degrees
the mean temperature of a country in order to explain one of the
grandest revolutions of the globe, is to venture on an hypothesis not
bolder than geology has sometimes permitted to itself.”[113]

  [113] _Revue des Deux Mondes._

In proving that glaciers covered part of Europe during a certain period,
that they extended from the North Pole to Northern Italy and the Danube,
we have sufficiently established the reality of this _glacial period_,
which we must consider as a curious episode, as well as certain, in the
history of the earth. Such masses of ice could only have covered the
earth when the temperature of the air was lowered at least some degrees
below zero. But organic life is incompatible with such a temperature;
and to this cause must we attribute the disappearance of certain species
of animals and plants--in particular, the Rhinoceros and the
Elephant--which, before this sudden and extraordinary cooling of the
globe, appear to have limited themselves, in immense herds, to Northern
Europe, and chiefly to Siberia, where their remains have been found in
such prodigious quantities. Cuvier says, speaking of the bodies of the
quadrupeds which the ice had seized, and in which they have been
preserved, with their hair, flesh, and skin, up to our own times: “If
they had not been frozen as soon as killed, putrefaction would have
decomposed them; and, on the other hand, this eternal frost could not
have previously prevailed in the place where they died; for they could
not have lived in such a temperature. It was, therefore, at the same
instant when these animals perished that the country they inhabited was
rendered glacial. These events must have been sudden, instantaneous, and
without any gradation.”[114]

  [114] “Ossements fossiles. Discours sur les Révolutions du Globe.”

[Illustration: Fig. 199.--Fissurella nembosa.

(Living shell.)]

How can we explain the _glacial period_? We have explained M. Adhémar’s
hypothesis, to which it may be objected that the cold of the glacial
period was so general throughout the Polar and temperate regions on both
sides of the equator, that mere local changes in the external
configuration of our planet and displacement of the centre of gravity
scarcely afford adequate causes for so great a revolution in
temperature. Sir Charles Lyell, speculating upon the suggestion of
Ritter and the discovery of marine shells spread far and wide over the
Sahara Desert by Messrs. Escher von der Linth, Desor, and Martins--which
seem to prove that the African Desert has been under water at a very
recent period--infers that the Desert of Sahara constituted formerly a
wide marine area, stretching several hundred miles north and south, and
east and west. “From this area,” he adds, “the south wind must formerly
have absorbed moisture, and must have been still further cooled and
saturated with aqueous vapour as it passed over the Mediterranean. When
at length it reached the Alps, and, striking them, was driven into the
higher and more rarefied regions of the atmosphere, it would part with
its watery burthen in the form of snow; so that the same aërial current
which, under the name of the Föhn, or Sirocco, now plays a leading part
with its hot and dry breath, sometimes, even in the depth of winter, in
melting the snow and checking the growth of glaciers, must, at the
period alluded to, have been the principal feeder of Alpine snow and
ice.”[115] Nevertheless, we repeat, no explanation presents itself which
can be considered conclusive; and in science we should never be afraid
to say, _I do not know_.

  [115] Lyell’s “Elements of Geology,” p. 175.


CREATION OF MAN AND THE ASIATIC DELUGE.

It was only after the glacial period, when the earth had resumed its
normal temperature, that man was created. Whence came he?

He came from whence originated the first blade of grass which grew upon
the burning rocks of the Silurian seas; from whence proceeded the
different races of animals which have successively replaced each other
upon the globe, gradually, but unceasingly, rising in the scale of
perfection. He emanated from the supreme will of the Author of the
worlds which constitute the universe.

The earth has passed through many phases since the time when--in the
words of the Sacred Record--“the earth was without form and void; and
darkness was upon the face of the deep. And the Spirit of God moved upon
the face of the waters.” We have considered all these phases; we have
seen the globe floating in space in a state of gaseous nebulosity,
condensing into liquidity, and beginning to solidify at the surface. We
have pictured the internal agitations, the disturbances, the partial
dislocations to which the earth has been subjected, almost without
interruption, while it could not, as yet, resist the force of the waves
of the fiery sea imprisoned within its fragile crust. We have seen this
envelope acquiring solidity, and the geological cataclysms losing their
intensity and frequency in proportion as this solid crust increased in
thickness. We have looked on, so to speak, while the work of organic
creation was proceeding. We have seen life making its appearance upon
the globe; and the first plants and animals springing into existence. We
have seen this organic creation multiplying, becoming more complex, and
constantly made more perfect with each advance in the progressive phases
of the history of the earth. We now arrive at the greatest event of this
history, at the crowning of the edifice, _si parva licet componere
magnis_.

At the close of the Tertiary epoch, the continents and seas assumed the
respective limits which they now present. The disturbances of the
ground, the fractures of the earth’s crust, and the volcanic eruptions
which are the consequence of them, only occurred at rare intervals,
occasioning only local and restricted disasters. The rivers and their
affluents flowed between tranquil banks. Animated Nature is that of our
own days. An abundant vegetation, diversified by the existence of a
climate which has now been acquired, embellishes the earth. A multitude
of animals inhabit the waters, the dry land, and the air. Nevertheless,
creation has not yet achieved its greatest work--a being capable of
comprehending these marvels and of admiring the sublime work--a soul is
wanting to adore and give thanks to the Creator.

God created man.

What is man?

We might say that man is an intelligent and moral being; but this would
give a very imperfect idea of his nature. Franklin says that man is one
that can make tools! This is to reproduce a portion of the first
proposition, while depreciating it. Aristotle calls man the “wise
being,” ζωον πολιτικον. Linnæus, in his “System of Nature,” after having
applied to man the epithet of wise (_homo sapiens_) writes after this
generic title these profound words: _Nosce te ipsum_. The French
naturalist and philosopher, Isidore Geoffroy Saint-Hilaire, says, “The
plant _lives_, the animal _lives and feels_, man _lives, feels, and
thinks_”--a sentiment which Voltaire had already expressed. “The Eternal
Maker,” says the philosopher of Ferney, “has given to man organisation,
sentiment, and intelligence; to the animals sentiment, and what we call
instinct; to vegetables organisation alone. His power then acts
continually upon these three kingdoms.” It is probably the animal which
is here depreciated. The animal on many occasions undoubtedly thinks,
reasons, deliberates with itself, and acts in virtue of a decision
maturely weighed; it is not then reduced to mere sensation.

To define exactly the human being, we believe that it is necessary to
characterise the nature and extent of his intelligence. In certain cases
the intelligence of the animal approaches nearly to that of man, but the
latter is endowed with a certain faculty which belongs to him
exclusively; in creating him, God has added an entirely new step in the
ascending scale of animated beings. This faculty, peculiar to the human
race, is _abstraction_. We will say, then, that man is an _intelligent_
being, gifted with the faculty of comprehending the _abstract_.

It is by this faculty that man is raised to a pre-eminent degree of
material and moral power. By it he has subdued the earth to his empire,
and by it also his mind rises to the most sublime contemplations. Thanks
to this faculty, man has conceived the ideal, and realised poesy. He has
conceived the infinite, and created mathematics. Such is the
distinction which separates the human race so widely from the
animals--which makes him a creation apart and absolutely new upon the
globe. A being capable of comprehending the ideal and the infinite, of
creating poetry and algebra, such is man! To invent and understand this
formula--

  (_a_ + _b_)² = _a_² + 2_ab_ + _b_²,

or the algebraic idea of negative quantities, this belongs to man. It is
the greatest privilege of the human being to express and comprehend
thoughts like the following:

    J’étais seul près des flots, par une nuit d’étoiles,
    Pas un nuage aux cieux, sur les mers pas de voiles,
    Mes yeux plongeaient plus loin que le monde réel,
    Et les vents et les mers, et toute la nature
    Semblaient interroger dans un confus murmure,
        Les flots des mers, les feux du ciel.

    Et les étoiles d’or, légions infinies,
    À voix haute, à voix basse, avec mille harmonies
    Disaient, en inclinant leur couronne de feu;
    Et les flots bleus, que rien ne gouverne et n’arrête:
    Disaient, en recourbant l’écume de leur crête:
          “C’est le Seigneur, le Seigneur Dieu!”*

VICTOR HUGO, _les Orientales_.

       *       *       *       *       *

    * Alone with the waves, on a starry night,
      My thoughts far away in the infinite;
      On the sea not a sail, not a cloud in the sky,
      And the wind and the waves with sweet lullaby
      Seem to question in murmurs of mystery,
          The fires of heaven, the waves of the sea.

      And the golden stars of the heavens rose higher,
      Harmoniously blending their crowns of fire,
      And the waves which no ruling hand may know,
      ‘Midst a thousand murmurs, now high, now low,
      Sing, while curving their foaming crests to the sea,
            “It is the Lord God! It is He.”

The “Mécanique Céleste” of Laplace, the “Principia” of Newton, Milton’s
“Paradise Lost,” the “Orientales” by Victor Hugo--are the fruits of the
_faculty of abstraction_.

In the year 1800, a being, half savage, who lived in the woods,
clambered up the trees, slept upon dried leaves, and fled on the
approach of men, was brought to a physician named Pinel. Some
sportsmen had found him; he had no voice, and was devoid of
intelligence; he was known as the little savage of Aveyron. The Parisian
_savants_ for a long time disputed over this strange individual. Was it
an ape?--was it a wild man?

[Illustration: XXXII.--Appearance of Man.]

The learned Dr. Itard has published an interesting history of the savage
of Aveyron. “He would sometimes descend,” he writes, “into the garden of
the deaf and dumb, and seat himself upon the edge of the fountain,
preserving his balance by rocking himself to and fro; after a time his
body became quite still, and his face assumed an expression of profound
melancholy. He would remain thus for hours--regarding attentively the
surface of the water--upon which he would, from time to time, throw
blades of grass and dried leaves. At night, when the clear moonlight
penetrated into the chamber he occupied, he rarely failed to rise and
place himself at the window, where he would remain part of the night,
erect, motionless, his neck stretched out, his eyes fixed upon the
landscape lit up by the moon, lost in a sort of ecstasy of
contemplation.” This being was, undoubtedly, a man. No ape ever
exhibited such signs of intelligence, such dreamy manifestations, vague
conceptions of the ideal--in other words, that faculty of _abstraction_
which belongs to humanity alone. In order worthily to introduce the new
inhabitant who comes to fill the earth with his presence--who brings
with him intelligence to comprehend, to admire, to subdue, and to rule
the creation (PL. XXXII.), we require nothing more than the grand and
simple language of Moses, whom Bossuet calls “the most ancient of
historians, the most sublime of philosophers, the wisest of
legislators.” Let us listen to the words of the inspired writer: “And
God said, Let us make man in our image, after our likeness: and let them
have dominion over the fish of the sea, and over the fowl of the air,
and over the cattle, and over all the earth, and over every creeping
thing that creepeth upon the earth. So God created man in his _own_
image, in the image of God created he him; male and female created he
them.”

“And God saw everything that he had made, and, behold, _it was_ very
good.”

       *       *       *       *       *

Volumes have been written upon the question of the unity of the human
race; that is, whether there were many centres of the creation of man,
or whether our race is derived solely from the Adam of Scripture. We
think, with many naturalists, that the stock of humanity is unique, and
that the different human races, the <DW64>s, and the yellow race, are
only the result of the influence of climate upon organisation. We
consider the human race as having appeared for the first time (the mode
of his creation being veiled in Divine mystery, eternally impenetrable
to us) in the rich plains of Asia, on the smiling banks of the
Euphrates, as the traditions of the most ancient races teach us. It is
there, where Nature is so rich and vigorous, in the brilliant climate
and under the radiant sky of Asia, in the shade of its luxuriant masses
of verdure and its mild and perfumed atmosphere, that man loves to
represent to himself the father of his race as issuing from the hand of
his Creator.

We are, it will be seen, far from sharing the opinion of those
naturalists who represent man, at the beginning of the existence of his
species, as a sort of ape, of hideous face, degraded mien, and covered
with hair, inhabiting caves like the bears and lions, and participating
in the brutal instincts of those savage animals.[116] There is no doubt
that early man passed through a period in which he had to contend for
his existence with ferocious beasts, and to live in a primitive state in
the woods or savannahs, where Providence had placed him. But this period
of probation came to an end, and man, an eminently social being, by
combining in groups, animated by the same interests and the same
desires, soon found means to intimidate the animals, to triumph over the
elements, to protect himself from the innumerable perils which
surrounded him, and to subdue to his rule the other inhabitants of the
earth. “The first men,” says Buffon, “witnesses of the convulsive
movements of the earth, still recent and frequent, having only the
mountains for refuge from the inundations; and often driven from this
asylum by volcanoes and earthquakes, which trembled under their feet;
uneducated, naked, and exposed to the elements, victims to the fury of
ferocious animals, whose prey they were certain to become; impressed
also with a common sentiment of gloomy terror, and urged by necessity,
would they not unite, first, to defend themselves by numbers, and then
to assist each other by working in concert, to make habitations and
arms? They began by shaping into the forms of hatchets these hard
flints, the Jade, and other stones, which were supposed to have been
formed by thunder and fallen from the clouds, but which are,
nevertheless, only the first examples of man’s art in a pure state of
Nature. He will soon draw fire from these same flints, by striking them
against each other; he will seize the flames of the burning volcano, or
profit by the fire of the red-hot lava to light his fire of brushwood in
the forest; and by the help of this powerful element he cleanses,
purifies, and renders wholesome the place he selects for his habitation.
With his hatchet of stone he chops wood, fells trees, shapes timber, and
puts it together, fashions instruments of warfare and the most necessary
tools and implements; and after having furnished themselves with clubs
and other weighty and defensive arms, did not these first men find means
to make lighter weapons to reach the swift-footed stag from afar? A
tendon of an animal, a fibre of the aloe-leaf, or the supple bark of
some ligneous plant, would serve as a cord to bring together the two
extremities of an elastic branch of yew, forming a bow; and small
flints, shaped to a point, arm the arrow. They will soon have snares,
rafts, and canoes; they will form themselves into communities composed
of a few families, or rather of relations sprung from the same family,
as is still the case with some savage tribes, who have their game, fish,
and fruits in common. But in all those countries whose area is limited
by water, or surrounded by high mountains, these small nations, becoming
too numerous, have been in time forced to parcel out the land between
them; and from that moment the earth has become the domain of man; he
has taken possession of it by his labour, he has cultivated it, and
attachment to the soil follows the very first act of possession; the
private interest makes part of the national interest; order,
civilisation, and laws succeed, and society acquires force and
consistency.”[117] We love to quote the sentiments of a great
writer--but how much more eloquent would the words of the naturalist
have been, if he had added to his own grand eloquence of language, the
knowledge which science has placed within reach of the writers of the
present time--- if he could have painted man in the early days of his
creation, in presence of the immense animal population which then
occupied the earth, and fighting with the wild beasts which filled the
forests of the ancient world! Man, comparatively very weak in
organisation, destitute of natural weapons of attack or defence,
incapable of rising into the air like the birds, or living under water
like the fishes and some reptiles, might seem doomed to speedy
destruction. But he was marked on the forehead with the Divine seal.
Thanks to the superior gift of an exceptional intelligence, this being,
in appearance so helpless, has by degrees swept the most ferocious of
its occupants from the earth, leaving those only who cater to his wants
or desires, or by whose aid he changes the primitive aspects of whole
continents.

  [116] It is told of a former distinguished and witty member of the
        Geological Society that, having obtained possession of the rooms
        on a certain day, when there was to be a general meeting, he
        decorated its walls with a series of cartoons, in which the
        parts of the members were strangely reversed. In one cartoon
        Ichthyosauri and Plesiosauri were occupied with the skeleton of
        <DW25> sapiens; in another, a party of Crustaceans were occupied
        with a cranium suspiciously like the same species; while in a
        third, a party of Pterichthys were about to dine on a biped with
        a suspicious resemblance to a certain well-conditioned F.G.S. of
        the day.

  [117] “Époques de la Nature,” vol. xii., pp. 322-325. 18mo. Paris,
        1778.

       *       *       *       *       *

The antiquity of man is a question which has largely engaged the
attention of geologists, and many ingenious arguments have been
hazarded, tending to prove that the human race and the great extinct
Mammalia were contemporaneous. The circumstances bearing on the question
are usually ranged under three series of facts: 1. The Cave-deposits; 2.
Peat and shell mounds; 3. Lacustrine habitations, or Lake dwellings.

We have already briefly touched upon the Cave-deposits. In the Kirkdale
Cave no remains or other traces of man’s presence seem to have been
discovered. But in Kent’s Hole, an unequal deposit of loam and clay,
along with broken bones much gnawed, and the teeth of both extinct and
living Mammals, implements evidently fashioned by the human hand were
found in the following order: in the upper part of the clay,
artificially-shaped flints; on the clay rested a layer of stalagmite, in
which streaks of burnt charcoal occurred, and charred bones of existing
species of animals. Above the stalagmite a stone hatchet, or celt, made
of syenite, of more finished appearance, was met with, with articles of
bone, round pieces of blue slate and sandstone-grit, pieces of pottery,
a number of shells of the mussel, limpet, and oyster, and other remains,
Celtic, British, and Roman, of very early date; the lower deposits are
those with which we are here more particularly concerned. The Rev. J.
MacEnery, the gentleman who explored and described them, ascertained
that the flint-instruments occupied a uniform situation intermediate
between the stalagmite and the upper surface of the loam, forming a
connecting link between both; and his opinion was that the epoch of the
introduction of the knives must be dated antecedently to the formation
of the stalagmite, from the era of the quiescent settlement of the mud.
From this view it would follow that the cave was visited posteriorly to
the introduction and subsidence of the loam, and before the formation of
the new super-stratum of stalagmite, by men who entered the cave and
disturbed the original deposit. Although flints have been found in the
loam underlying the regular crust of stalagmite, mingled confusedly with
the bones, and unconnected with the evidence of the visits of man--such
as the excavation of ovens or pits--Dr. Buckland refused his belief to
the statement that the flint-implements were found beneath the
stalagmite, and always contended that they were the work of men of a
more recent period, who had broken up the sparry floor. The doctor
supposed that the ancient Britons had scooped out ovens in the
stalagmite, and that through them the knives got admission to the
underlying loam, and that in this confused state the several materials
were cemented together.

In 1858 Dr. Falconer heard of the newly-discovered cave at Brixham, on
the opposite side of the bay to Torquay, and he took steps to prevent
any doubts being entertained with regard to its contents. This cave was
composed of several passages, with four entrances, formerly blocked up
with breccia and earthy matter; the main opening being ascertained by
Mr. Bristow to be seventy-eight feet above the valley, and ninety-five
feet above the sea, the cave itself being in some places eight feet
wide. The contents of the cave were covered with a layer of stalagmite,
from one to fifteen inches thick, on the top of which were found the
horns of a Reindeer; under the stalagmite came reddish loam or
cave-earth, with pebbles and some angular stones, from two to thirteen
feet thick, containing the bones of Elephants, Rhinoceros, Bears,
Hyænas, Felis, Reindeer, Horses, Oxen, and several Rodents; and, lastly,
a layer of gravel, and rounded pebbles without fossils, underlaid the
cave-earth and formed the lowest deposit.

In these beds no human bones were found, but in almost every part of the
bone-bed were flint-knives, one of the most perfect being found thirteen
feet down in the bone-bed, at its lowest part. The most remarkable fact
in connection with this cave was the discovery of an entire left
hind-leg of the Cave-bear lying in close proximity to this knife; “not
washed in a fossil state out of an older alluvium, and swept afterwards
into this cave, so as to be mingled with the flint implements, but
having been introduced when clothed in its flesh.” The implement and the
Bear’s leg were evidently deposited about the same time, and it only
required some approximative estimate of the date of this deposit, to
settle the question of the antiquity of man, at least in an affirmative
sense.

Mr. H. W. Bristow, who was sent by the Committee of the Royal Society to
make a plan and drawings of the Brixham Cave, found that its entrance
was situated at a height of ninety-five feet above the present level of
the sea. In his Report made to the Royal Society, in explanation of the
plan and sections, Mr. Bristow stated that, in all probability, at the
time the cave was formed, the land was at a lower level to the extent of
the observed distance of ninety-five feet, and that its mouth was then
situated at or near the level of the sea.

The cave consisted of wide galleries or passages running in a north and
south direction, with minor lateral passages branching off nearly at
right angles to the main openings--- the whole cave being formed in the
joints, or natural divisional planes, of the rock.

The mouth or entrance to the cave originated, in the first instance, in
an open joint or fissure in the Devonian limestone, which became widened
by water flowing backwards and forwards, and was partly enlarged by the
atmospheric water, which percolated through the cracks, fissures, and
open joints in the overlying rock. The pebbles, forming the lowest
deposit in the cave, were ordinary shingle or beach-gravel, washed in by
the waves and tides. The cave-earth was the residual part of the
limestone rock, after the calcareous portion had been dissolved and
carried away in solution; and the stalactite and stalagmite were derived
from the lime deposited from the percolating water.

With regard to bone-caves generally, it would seem that, like other such
openings, they are most common in limestone rocks, where they have been
formed by water, which has dissolved and carried away the calcareous
ingredient of the rock. In the case of the Brixham cave, the mode of
action of the water could be clearly traced in two ways: first, in
widening out the principal passages by the rush of water backwards and
forwards from the sea; and, secondly, by the infiltration and
percolation of atmospheric water through the overlying rock. In both
cases the active agents in producing the cave had taken advantage of a
pre-existing fissure or crack, or an open joint, which they gradually
enlarged and widened out, until the opening received its final
proportions.

The cave presented no appearance of ever having been inhabited by man;
or of having been the den of Hyænas or other animals, like Wookey Hole
in the Mendips, and some other bone-caves. The most probable supposition
is, that the hind quarter of the Bear and other bones which were found
in the cave-earth, had been washed into the cave by the sea, in which
they were floating about.

We draw some inferences of the greatest interest and significance from
the Brixham cave and its contents.

We learn that this country was, at one time, inhabited by animals which
are now extinct, and of whose existence we have not even a tradition;
that man, then ignorant of the use of metal, and little better than the
brutes, was the contemporary of the animals whose remains were found in
the cave, together with a rude flint-implement--the only kind of weapon
with which our savage ancestor defended himself against animals scarcely
wilder than himself.

We also learn that after the cave had been formed and sealed up again,
as it were, together with all its contents, by the deposition of a solid
crust of stalagmite--an operation requiring a very great length of time
to effect--the Reindeer (_Cervus Tarandus_) was indigenous to this
country, as is proved by the occurrence of an antler of that animal
which was found lying upon, and partly imbedded in, the stalagmite
forming the roof or uppermost, that is, the latest formed, of the
cave-deposits.

Lastly, we learn that, at the time the cave was formed, and while the
land was inhabited by man, that part of the country was lower by
ninety-five feet than it is now; and that this elevation has probably
been produced so slowly and so gradually, as to have been imperceptible
during the time it was taking place, which extended over a vast interval
of time, perhaps over thousands of years.

Perhaps it may not be out of place here to describe the mode of
formation of bone-caves generally, and the causes which have produced
the appearances these now present.

Caves in limestone rocks have two principal phases--one of formation,
and one of filling up. So long as the water which enters the cavities in
the course of formation, and carries off some of the calcareous matter
in solution, can find an easy exit, the cavity is continually enlarged;
but when, from various causes, the water only enters in small
quantities, and does not escape, or only finds its way out slowly, and
with difficulty, the lime, instead of being removed, is re-deposited on
the walls, roof, sides, and floor of the cavity, in the form of
stalactites and stalagmite, and the work of re-filling with solid
carbonate of lime then takes place.

Encouraged by the Brixham discoveries, a congress of French and English
geologists met at Amiens, in order to consider certain evidence, on
which it was sought to establish as a fact that man and the Mammoth were
formerly contemporaries.

The valley of the Somme, between Abbeville and Amiens, is occupied by
beds of peat, some twenty or thirty feet deep, resting on a thin bed of
clay which covers other beds, of sand and gravel, and itself rests on
white Chalk with flints. Bordering the valley, some hills rise with a
gentle <DW72> to a height of 200 or 300 feet, and here and there, on
their summits, are patches of Tertiary sand and clay, with fossils, and
again more extensive layers of loam. The inference from this geological
structure is that the river, originally flowing through the Tertiary
formation, gradually cut its way through the various strata down to its
present level. From the depth of the peat, its lower part lies below the
sea-level, and it is supposed that a depression of the region has
occurred at some period: again, in land lying quite low on the
Abbeville side of the valley, but above the tidal level, marine shells
occur, which indicate an elevation of the region; again, about 100 feet
above the valley, on the right bank of the river, and on a sloping
surface, is the Moulin-Quignon, where shallow pits exhibit a floor of
chalk covered by gravel and sand, accompanied by gravel and marly chalk
and flints more or less worn, well-rounded Tertiary flints and pebbles,
and fragments of Tertiary sandstone. Such is the general description of
a locality which has acquired considerable celebrity in connection with
the question of the antiquity of man.

The Quaternary deposits of Moulin-Quignon and the peat-beds of the Somme
formerly furnished Cuvier with some of the fossils he described, and in
later times chipped flint-implements from the quarries and bogs came
into the possession of M. Boucher de Perthes; the statements were
received at first not without suspicion--especially on the part of
English geologists who were familiar with similar attempts on their own
credulity--that some at least of these were manufactured by the workmen
of the district. At length, the discovery of a human jaw and tooth in
the gravel-pits of St. Acheul, near Amiens, produced a rigorous
investigation into the facts, and it seems to have been established to
the satisfaction of Mr. Prestwich and his colleagues, that
flint-implements and the bones of extinct Mammalia are met with in the
same beds, and in situations indicating very great antiquity. In the
sloping and irregular deposits overlooking the Somme, the bones of
Elephants, Rhinoceros, with land and fresh-water shells of existing
species, are found mingled with flint-implements. Shells like those now
found in the neighbouring streams and hedge-rows, with the bones of
existing quadrupeds, have been obtained from the peat, with flint-tools
of more than usual finish, and together with them a few fragments of
human bones. Of these reliquiæ, the Celtic memorials lie below the
Gallo-Roman; above them, oaks, alders, and walnut trees occur, sometimes
rooted, but no succession of a new growth of trees appear.

The theory of the St. Acheul beds is this: they were deposited by
fluviatile action, and are probably amongst the oldest deposits in which
human remains occur, older than the peat-beds of the Somme--but what is
their _real_ age? Before submitting to the reader the very imperfect
answer this question admits of, a glance at the previous discoveries,
which tended to give confirmation to the observations just narrated, may
be useful.

Implements of stone and flint have been continually turning up during
the last century and a half in all parts of the world. In the
neighbourhood of Gray’s Inn Lane, in 1715, a flint spear-head was picked
up, and near it some Elephants’ bones. In the alluvium of the Wey, near
Guildford, a wedge-shaped flint-tool was found in the gravel and sand,
in which Elephants’ tusks were also found. Under the cliffs at
Whitstable an oval-shaped flint-tool was found in what had probably been
a fresh-water deposit, and in which bones of the Bear and Elephant were
also discovered. Between Herne Bay and Reculver five other flint-tools
have been found, and three more near the top of the cliff, all in
fresh-water gravel. In the valley of the Ouse, at Beddenham, in
Bedfordshire, flint-implements, like those of St. Acheul, mixed with the
bones of Elephant, Rhinoceros, and Hippopotamus, have been found, and
near them an oval and a spear-shaped implement. In the peat of Ireland
great numbers of such implements have been met with. But nowhere have
they been so systematically sought for and classified as in the
Scandinavian countries.

The peat-deposits of those countries--of Denmark especially--are formed
in hollows and depressions, in the northern drift and Boulder clay, from
ten to thirty feet deep. The lower stratum, of two or three feet in
thickness, consists of _sphagnum_, over which lies another growth of
peat formed of aquatic and marsh plants. On the edge of the bogs trunks
of Scotch firs of large size are found--a tree which has not grown in
the Danish islands within historic times, and does not now thrive when
planted, although it was evidently indigenous within the human period,
since Steenstrup took with his own hands a flint-implement from beneath
the trunk of one. The sessile variety of the oak would appear to have
succeeded the fir, and is found at a higher level in the peat. Higher up
still, the common oak, _Quercus robur_, is found along with the birch,
hazel, and alder. The oak has in its turn been succeeded by the beech.

Another source from which numerous relics of early humanity have been
taken is the midden-heaps (Kjökken-mödden) found along the Scandinavian
coast. These heaps consist of castaway shells mixed with bones of
quadrupeds, birds, and fishes, which reveal in some respects the habits
of the early races which inhabited the coast. Scattered through these
mounds are flint-knives, pieces of pottery, and ashes, but neither
bronze nor iron. The knives and hatchets are said to be a degree less
rude than those of older date found in the peat. Mounds corresponding to
these, Sir Charles Lyell tells us, occur along the American coast, from
Massachusetts and Georgia. The bones of the quadrupeds found in these
mounds correspond with those of existing species, or species which have
existed in historic times.

By collecting, arranging, and comparing the flint and stone implements,
the Scandinavian naturalists have succeeded in establishing a
chronological succession of periods, which they designate--1. The Age of
Stone; 2. The Age of Bronze; 3. The Age of Iron. The first, or Stone
period, in Denmark, corresponded with the age of the Scotch fir, and, in
part, of the sessile oak. A considerable portion of the oak period
corresponded, however, with the age of _bronze_, swords made of that
metal having been found in the peat on the same level with the oak. The
_iron_ age coincides with the beech. Analogous instances, confirmatory
of these statements, occur in Yorkshire, and in the fens of
Lincolnshire.

The traces left indicate that the aborigines went to sea in canoes
scooped out of a single tree, bringing back deep-sea fishes. Skulls
obtained from the peat and from tumuli, and believed to be
contemporaneous with the mounds, are small and round, with prominent
supra-orbital ridges, somewhat resembling the skulls of Laplanders.

The third series of facts (_Lake-dwellings_, or _lacustrine
habitations_) consisted of the buildings on piles, in lakes, and once
common in Asia and Europe. They are first mentioned by Herodotus as
being used among the Thracians of Pæonia, in the mountain-lake Prasias,
where the natives lived in dwellings built on piles, and connected with
the shore by a narrow causeway, by which means they escaped the assaults
of Xerxes. Buildings of the same description occupied the Swiss lakes,
in the mud of which hundreds of implements, like those found in Denmark,
have been dredged up. In Zurich, Moosseedorf near Berne, and Lake
Constance, axes, celts, pottery, and canoes made out of single trees,
have been found; but of the human frame scarcely a trace has been
discovered. One skull dredged up at Meilen, in the Lake of Zurich, was
intermediate between the Lapp-like skull of the Danish tumuli and the
more recent European type.

The age of the different formations in which these records of the human
race are found will probably ever remain a mystery. The evidence which
would make the implements formed by man contemporaneous with the Mammoth
and other great Mammalia would go a great way to prove that man was also
pre-glacial. Let us see how that argument stands.

At the period when the upper Norwich Crag was deposited, the general
level of the British Isles is supposed to have been about 600 feet above
its present level, and so connected with the European continent as to
have received the elements of its fauna and flora from thence.

By some great change, a period of depression occurred, in which all the
country north of the mouth of the Thames and the Bristol Channel was
placed much below the present level. Moel Tryfaen experienced a
submergence of at least 1,400 feet, during which it received the erratic
blocks and other marks, indicative of floating icebergs, which have been
described in a former chapter. The country was raised again to something
like its original level, and again occupied by plants, Molluscs, Fishes
and Reptiles, Birds, and Mammifera. Again subsidence takes place, and,
after several oscillations, the level remains as we now find it. The
estimated time required for these various changes is something enormous,
and might have extended the term to double the number of years. The unit
of the calculation is the upward rate of movement observed on the
Scandinavian coast; applied to the oscillation of the ancient coast of
Snowdonia, the figures represent 224,000 years for the several
oscillations of the glacial period. Adding the pre-glacial period, the
computation gives an additional 48,000 years. But, let us repeat, the
figures and data are somewhat hypothetical.

With regard to the St. Acheul beds--said to be the most ancient
formation in which the productions of human hands have been found--they
are confessedly older than the peat-beds, and the time required for the
production of other peat-beds of equal thickness has been estimated at
7,000 years. The antiquity of the gravel-beds of St. Acheul may be
estimated on two grounds:--1. General elevation above the level of the
valley. 2. By estimating the animal-remains found in the gravel-beds,
and not in the peat. The first question implies the denudation of the
valley below the level of the gravel, or the elevation of the whole
plateau. Each of these operations would involve an incalculable time,
for want of data. In the second case, judging from the slow rate at
which quadrupeds have disappeared in historic times, the extinct Mammoth
and other great animals must have occupied many centuries in dying out,
for the notion that they died out suddenly from sharp and sudden
refrigeration, is not generally admitted.

With regard to the three ages of stone, bronze, and iron, M. Morlot has
based some calculations upon the condition of the delta of Tinière, near
Villeneuve, which lead him to assign to the oldest, or stone period, an
age of 5,000 to 7,000 years, and to the bronze period from 3,000 to
4,000. We may, then, take leave of this subject with the avowal that,
while admitting the probability that an immense lapse of time would be
required for the operations described, we are, in a great measure,
without reliable data for estimating its actual extent.

The opinion which places the creation of man on the banks of the
Euphrates in Central Asia is confirmed by an event of the highest
importance in the history of humanity, and by a crowd of concordant
traditions, preserved by different races of men, all tending to confirm
it. We speak of the Asiatic deluge.

[Illustration: Fig. 200.--Mount Ararat.]

The Asiatic deluge--of which sacred history has transmitted to us the
few particulars we know--was the result of the upheaval of a part of the
long chain of mountains which are a prolongation of the Caucasus. The
earth opening by one of the fissures made in its crust in course of
cooling, an eruption of volcanic matter escaped through the enormous
crater so produced. Volumes of watery vapour or steam accompanied the
lava discharged from the interior of the globe, which, being first
dissipated in clouds and afterwards condensing, descended, in torrents
of rain, and the plains were drowned with the volcanic mud. The
inundation of the plains over an extensive radius was the immediate
effect of this upheaval, and the formation of the volcanic cone of Mount
Ararat, with the vast plateau on which it rests, altogether 17,323 feet
above the sea, the permanent result. The event is graphically detailed
in the seventh chapter of Genesis.

11. “In the six hundredth year of Noah’s life, in the second month, the
seventeenth day of the month, the same day were all the fountains of the
great deep broken up, and the windows of heaven were opened.

12. “And the rain was upon the earth forty days and forty nights.”

       *       *       *       *       *

17. “And the flood was forty days upon the earth; and the waters
increased, and bare up the ark, and it was lift up above the earth.

18. “And the waters prevailed, and were increased greatly upon the
earth; and the ark went upon the face of the waters.

19. “And the waters prevailed exceedingly upon the earth; and all the
high hills, that _were_ under the whole heaven, were covered.

20. “Fifteen cubits upward did the waters prevail; and the mountains
were covered.

21. “And all flesh died that moved upon the earth, both of fowl, and of
cattle, and of beast, and of every creeping thing that creepeth upon the
earth, and every man:

22. “All in whose nostrils _was_ the breath of life, of all that _was_
in the dry land, died.

23. “And every living substance was destroyed which was upon the face of
the ground, both man, and cattle, and the creeping things, and the fowl
of the heaven; and they were destroyed from the earth: and Noah only
remained _alive_, and they that _were_ with him in the ark.

24. “And the waters prevailed upon the earth an hundred and fifty days.”

All the particulars of the Biblical narrative here recited are only to
be explained by the volcanic and muddy eruption which preceded the
formation of mount Ararat. The waters which produced the inundation of
these countries proceeded from a volcanic eruption accompanied by
enormous volumes of vapour, which in due course became condensed and
descended on the earth, inundating the extensive plains which now
stretch away from the foot of Ararat. The expression, “the earth,” or
“all the earth” as it is translated in the Vulgate, which might be
implied to mean the entire globe, is explained by Marcel de Serres, in a
learned book entitled “La Cosmogonie de Moïse,” and other philologists,
as being an inaccurate translation. He has proved that the Hebrew word
_haarets_, incorrectly translated “all the earth,” is often used in the
sense of _region_ or _country_, and that, in this instance, Moses used
it to express only the part of the globe which was then peopled, and not
its entire surface. In the same manner “_the mountains_” (rendered “_all
the mountains_” in the Vulgate), only implies all the mountains known to
Moses. Similarly, M. Glaire, in the “Christomathie Hébraïque,” which he
has placed at the end of his Grammar, quotes the passage in this sense:
“The waters were so prodigiously increased, that the highest mountains
of the vast horizon were covered by them;” thus restricting the
mountains covered by the inundation to those bounded by the horizon.

Nothing occurs, therefore, in the description given by Moses, to hinder
us from seeing in the Asiatic deluge a means made use of by God to
chastise and punish the human race, then in the infancy of its
existence, and which had strayed from the path which he had marked out
for it. It seems to establish the countries lying at the foot of the
Caucasus as the cradle of the human race; and it seems to establish also
the upheaval of a chain of mountains, preceded by an eruption of
volcanic mud, which drowned vast territories entirely composed, in these
regions, of plains of great extent. Of this deluge many races besides
the Jews have preserved a tradition. Moses dates it from 1,500 to 1,800
years before the epoch in which he wrote. Berosus, the Chaldean
historian, who wrote at Babylon in the time of Alexander, speaks of a
universal deluge, the date of which he places immediately before the
reign of Belus, the father of Ninus.

The _Vedas_, or sacred books of the Hindus, supposed to have been
composed about the same time as Genesis, that is, about 3,300 years ago,
make out that the deluge occurred 1,500 years before their time. The
_Guebers_ speak of the same event as having occurred about the same
date.

Confucius, the celebrated Chinese philosopher and lawgiver, born towards
the year 551 before Christ, begins his history of China by speaking of
the Emperor named Jas, whom he represents as making the waters flow
back, which, _being raised to the heavens_, washed the feet of the
highest mountains, covered the less elevated hills, and inundated the
plains. Thus the Biblical deluge (PLATE XXXIII.) is confirmed in many
respects; but it was local, like all phenomena of the kind, and was
the result of the upheaval of the mountains of western Asia.

[Illustration: XXXIII.--The Asiatic Deluge.]

A deluge, quite of modern date, conveys a tolerably exact idea of this
kind of phenomena. We recall the circumstances the better to comprehend
the true nature of the ravages the deluge inflicted upon some Asiatic
countries in the Quaternary period. At six days’ journey from the city
of Mexico there existed, in 1759, a fertile and well-cultivated
district, where grew abundance of rice, maize, and bananas. In the month
of June frightful earthquakes shook the ground, and were continued
unceasingly for two whole months. On the night of the 28th September the
earth was violently convulsed, and a region of many leagues in extent
was slowly raised until it attained a height of about 500 feet over a
surface of many square leagues. The earth undulated like the waves of
the sea in a tempest; thousands of small hills alternately rose and
fell, and, finally, an immense gulf opened, from which smoke, fire,
red-hot stones and ashes were violently discharged, and darted to
prodigious heights. Six mountains emerged from this gaping gulf; among
which the volcanic mountain Jorullo rises 2,890 feet above the ancient
plain, to the height of 4,265 feet above the sea.

At the moment when the earthquake commenced the two rivers _Cuitimba_
and _San Pedro_ flowed backwards, inundating all the plain now occupied
by Jorullo; but in the regions which continually rose, a gulf opened and
swallowed up the rivers. They reappeared to the west, but at a point
very distant from their former beds.

This inundation reminds us on a small scale of the phenomena which
attended the deluge of Noah.

       *       *       *       *       *

Besides the deposits resulting from the partial deluges which we have
described as occurring in Europe and Asia during the Quaternary epoch
there were produced in the same period many new formations resulting
from the deposition of _alluvia_ thrown down by seas and rivers. These
deposits are always few in number, and widely disseminated. Their
stratification is as regular as that of any which belong to preceding
periods; they are distinguished from those of the Tertiary epoch, with
which they are most likely to be confounded, by their situation, which
is very frequently upon the shores of the sea, and by the predominance
of shells of a species identical with those now living in the adjacent
seas.

A marine formation of this kind, which, after constituting the coast of
Sicily, principally on the side of Girgenti, Syracuse, Catania, and
Palermo, occupies the centre of the island, where it rises to the
height of 3,000 feet, is amongst the most remarkable of the great
Quaternary European productions. It is chiefly formed of two great beds;
the lower a bluish argillaceous marl, the other a coarse but very
compact limestone, both containing shells analogous to those of the
present Mediterranean coast. The same formation is found in the
neighbouring islands, especially in Sardinia and Malta. The great sandy
deserts of Africa, as well as the argillo-arenaceous formation of the
steppes of Eastern Russia, and the fertile Tchornozem, or “_black
earth_” of its southern plains, have the same geological origin; so have
the Travertines of Tuscany, Naples, and Rome, and the Tufas, which are
an essential constituent of the Neapolitan soil.

The pampas of South America--which consist of an argillaceous soil of a
deep reddish-brown colour, with horizontal beds of marly clay and
calcareous tufa, containing shells either actually living now in the
Atlantic, or identical with fresh-water shells of the country--ought
surely to be considered as a Quaternary deposit, of even greater extent
than the preceding.

We are now approaching so near to our own age, that we can, as it were,
trace the hand of Nature in her works. Professor Ramsay shows, in the
Memoirs of the Government Geological Survey, that beds nearly a mile in
thickness have been removed by denudation from the summit of the Mendip
Hills, and that broad areas in South Wales and the neighbouring counties
have been denuded of their higher beds, the materials being transported
elsewhere to form newer strata. Now, no combination of causes has been
imagined which has not involved submersion during long periods, and
subsequent elevation for periods of longer or shorter duration.

We can hardly walk any great distance along the coast, either of England
or Scotland, without remarking some flat terrace of unequal breadth, and
backed by a more or less steep escarpment--upon such a terrace many of
the towns along the coast are built. No geologist now doubts that this
fine platform, at the base of which is a deposit of loam or sandy
gravel, with marine shells, had been, at some period, the line of coast
against which the waves of the ocean once broke at high water. At that
period the sea rose twenty, and thirty, and some places a hundred feet
higher than it does now. The ancient sea-beaches in some places formed
terraces of sand and gravel, with littoral shells, some broken, others
entire, and corresponding with species in the seas below; in others they
form bold projecting promontories or deep bays. In an historical point
of view, this coast-line should be very ancient, though it may be only
of yesterday in a geological sense--its origin ascending far beyond
written tradition. The wall of Antoninus, raised by the Romans as a
protection from the attacks of the Caledonians, was built, in the
opinion of the best authorities, not in connection with the old, but
with the new coast-line. We may, then, conclude that in A.D. 140, when
the greater part of this wall was constructed, the zone of the ancient
coast-line had attained its present elevation above the actual level of
the sea.

The same proofs of a general and gradual elevation of the country are
observable almost everywhere: in the estuary of the Clyde, canoes and
other works of art have been exhumed, and assigned to a recent period.
Near St. Austell, and at Carnon, in Cornwall, human skulls and other
relics have been met with beneath marine strata, in which the bones of
whales and still-existing species of land-quadrupeds were imbedded. But
in the countries where hard limestone rocks prevail, in the ancient
Peloponnesus, along the coast of Argolis and Arcadia, three and even
four ranges of ancient sea-cliffs are well preserved, which Messrs.
Boblaye and Verlet describe as rising one above the other, at different
distances from the present coast, sometimes to the height of 1,000 feet,
as if the upheaving force had been suspended for a time, leaving the
waves and currents to throw down and shape the successive ranges of
lofty cliffs. On the other hand, some well-known historical sites may be
adduced as affording evidence of the subsidence of the coast-line of the
Mediterranean in times comparatively modern. In the Bay of Baiæ, the
celebrated temple of Serapis, at Puzzuoli, near Naples, which was
originally built about 100 feet from the sea, and at or near its present
level, exhibits proofs of having gradually sunk nineteen feet, and of a
subsequent elevation of the ground on which the temple stands of nearly
the same amount.

So, also, about half a mile along the sea-shore, and standing at some
distance from it, in the sea, there are the remains of buildings and
columns which bear the name of the Temples of the Nymphs and of Neptune.
The tops of these broken columns are now nearly on a level with the
surface of the water, which is about five feet deep.

With respect to the littoral deposits of the Quaternary period, they are
of very limited extent, except in a few localities. They are found on
the western coast of Norway, and on the coasts of England. In France, an
extensive bed of Quaternary formation is seen on the shores of the
ancient Guienne, and on other parts of the coast, where it is sometimes
concealed by trees and shrubs, or by blown sand, as at Dax in the
Landes, where a steep bank may be traced about twelve miles inland, and
parallel with the present coast, which falls suddenly about fifty feet
from a higher platform of the land, to a lower one extending to the sea.
In making some excavations for the foundations of a building at Abesse,
in 1830, it was discovered that this fall consisted of drift-sand,
filling up a steep perpendicular cliff about fifty feet high, consisting
of a bed of Tertiary clay extending to the sea, a bed of limestone with
Tertiary shells and corals, and, at the summit, the Tertiary sand of the
Landes. The marine beds, together with the alluvium of the rivers, have
given rise to those deposits which occur more especially near the mouths
of rivers and watercourses.

[Illustration: Fig. 201.--Shell of Planorbis corneus.]




EPILOGUE.


Having considered the past history of the globe, we may now be permitted
to bestow a glance upon the future which awaits it.

Can the actual state of the earth be considered as definitive? The
revolutions which have fashioned its surface, and produced the Alps in
Europe, Mount Ararat in Asia, the Cordilleras in the New World--are they
to be the last? In a word, will the terrestrial sphere for ever preserve
the form under which we know it--as it has been, so to speak, impressed
on our memories by the maps of the geographers?

It is difficult to reply with any confidence to this question;
nevertheless, our readers will not object to accompany us a step
further, while we express an opinion, founded on analogy and scientific
induction.

What are the causes which have produced the present inequalities of the
globe--the mountain-ranges, continents, and waters? The primordial cause
is, as we have had frequent occasion to repeat, the cooling of the
earth, and the progressive solidification of the external crust, the
nucleus of which still remains in a fluid or viscous state. These have
produced the contortions, furrows, and fractures which have led to the
elevation of the great mountain-ranges and the depression of the great
valleys--which have caused some continents to emerge from the bed of
ocean and have submerged others. The secondary causes which have
contributed to the formation of a vast extent of dry land are due to the
sedimentary deposits, which have resulted in the creation of new
continents by filling up the basins of the ancient seas.

Now these two causes, although in a minor degree, continue in operation
to the present day. The thickness of the terrestrial crust is only a
small fraction compared to that of the internal liquid mass. The
principal cause, then, of the great dislocations of the earth’s crust
is, so to speak, at our gates; it threatens us unceasingly. Of this the
earthquakes and volcanic eruptions, which are still frequent in our
day, give us disastrous and incontestable proofs. On the other hand, our
seas are continually forming new land: the bed of the Baltic Sea, for
instance, is gradually rising, in consequence of the deposits which will
obviously fill up its area entirely in an interval of time which it
might not be impossible to calculate.

It is, then, probable that the actual condition of the surface and the
respective limits of seas and continents have nothing fixed or definite
in them--that they are, on the contrary, open to great modifications in
the future.

There is another problem much more difficult of solution than the
preceding, but for which neither induction nor analogy furnish us with
any certain data--viz., the perpetuity of our species. Is man doomed to
disappear from the earth some day, like all the races of animals which
preceded him, and prepared the way for his advent? Will a new _glacial
period_, analogous to that which, during the Quaternary period, was felt
so rigorously, again come round to put an end to his existence? Like the
Trilobites of the Silurian period, the great Reptiles of the Lias, the
Mastodons of the Tertiary, and the Megatheriums of the Quaternary epoch,
is the human species to be annihilated--to perish from the globe by a
simple natural extinction? Or must we believe that man, gifted with the
attribute of reason, marked, so to say, with the Divine seal, is to be
the ultimate and supreme term of creation?

Science cannot pronounce upon these grave questions, which exceed the
competence, and extend beyond the circle of human reasoning. It is not
impossible that man should be only a step in the ascending and
progressive scale of animated beings. The Divine Power which has
lavished upon the earth life, sentiment, and thought; which has given
organisation to plants; to animals, motion, sensation, and intelligence;
to man, in addition to these multiple gifts, the faculty of reason,
doubled in value by the ideal--reserves to Himself perhaps in His wisdom
the privilege of creating alongside of man, or after him, a being still
more perfect. This new being, religion and modern poesy would present in
the ethereal and radiant type of the Christian angel, with moral
qualities whose nature and essence would escape our perceptions--of
which we could no more form a notion than one born blind could conceive
of colour, or the deaf and dumb of sound. _Erunt æquales angelis Dei._
“They will be as the angels of God,” says Holy Scripture, speaking of
man raised to the life eternal.

During the Metamorphic epoch the _mineral kingdom_ existed alone; the
rocks, silent and solitary, were all that was yet formed of the burning
earth. During the Primary epoch, the vegetable kingdom, newly created,
extended itself over the whole globe, which it soon covered from pole to
pole with an uninterrupted mass of verdure. During the Secondary and
Tertiary epochs, the vegetable and animal kingdoms divided the earth
between them. In the Quaternary epoch the _human kingdom_ appeared. Is
it in the future destinies of our planet to receive yet another lord?
And after the four kingdoms which now occupy it, is there to be a _new
kingdom_ created, the attributes of which can never be anything but an
impenetrable mystery, and which will differ from man in as great a
degree as man differs from the other animals, and plants from rocks?

We must be contented with suggesting, without hoping to solve, this
formidable problem. It is a great mystery, which, according to the fine
expression of Pliny, “lies hidden in the majesty of Nature,” _latet in
majestate naturæ_; or (to speak more in the spirit of Christian
philosophy) it is known only to the Almighty Creator of the Universe.




  TABLE
  OF
  BRITISH SEDIMENTARY AND FOSSILIFEROUS STRATA.

  BY H. W. BRISTOW.


[Illustration]


  +-------------+---------------+-------------+--------------+--------------+
  |             | SUBDIVISIONS. |   FOREIGN   |   ORIGIN.    |  COMMERCIAL  |
  |             |               | EQUIVALENTS.|              |  PRODUCTS.   |
  +-------------+---------------+-------------+--------------+--------------+
  |             | Blown Sand.   |             |              |    Peat.     |
  |             | Raised        |             |              |   Amber.     |
  |             | Beaches.      | Mud of the  |              |  Gold, Dia-  |
  |POST         | Alluvium.     |    Nile.    |              |  monds, and  |
  |PLIOCENE.    | Brick Earth.  |Loess of the |   Various.   |  other Gems  |
  |             | River Gravel. |   Rhine.    |              |   derived    |
  |             | Cave Deposits.|             |              |   from the   |
  |             | Glacial De-   |             |              |  older de-   |
  |             | posits.       |             |              |   posits.    |
  +-------------+---------------+-------------+--------------+--------------+
  |PLIOCENE.    | Crags.        |Sub-Apennine |    Marine    |  Phosphatic  |
  |             |               |  Strata.    |              |   Nodules.   |
  +-------------+---------------+-------------+--------------+--------------+
  |             | Leaf Beds and |  Molasse.   |              |              |
  |MIOCENE.     | Lignite.      |  Faluns of  |     and      |  Pipeclay.   |
  |             |               |  Touraine.  |              |              |
  +-------------+---------------+-------------+--------------+--------------+
  |             | Upper Eocene. |  Calcaire   | Freshwater.  | Sand, Brown  |
  |             | Bagshot Beds. |  Grossier.  |              | Coal, Pipe-  |
  |EOCENE.      | London Clay.  | Nummulitic  |  Estuarine   | clay, Cement |
  |             | Reading Beds, | Limestones  |     and      |Stone, Bricks,|
  |             | &c.           |(European and|   Marine.    | and Pottery. |
  |             |               |  Asiatic).  |              |              |
  +-------------+---------------+-------------+--------------+--------------+
  |             | White and     |{Maestricht  |              |  Flints from |
  |UPPER        | Grey Chalk.   |{Beds.       |              |  Up. Chalk.  |
  |CRETACEOUS.  | Upper Green-  |{Senonien    |              | Phosphate of |
  |             | sand.         |{Turonien.   |  Marine and  |     Lime.    |
  |             | Gault.       }|             |  Freshwater  | Iron Pyrites.|
  |LOWER        | Lower Green- }|Albien.      |  (Wealden).  |  Sandy Iron- |
  |CRETACEOUS.  | sand.        }|Aptien.      |              |    stones.   |
  |             | Wealden Beds,}|Neocomian.   |              |   Building   |
  |             | &c.          }|             |              |    Stone.    |
  +-------------+---------------+-------------+--------------+--------------+
  |UPPER        |{Purbeck.      |             |Estuarine and |              |
  |OOLITIC.     |{Portland and  |             |   Marine.    |              |
  |             |{Kimeridge.    |             |              |  Coal, Jet,  |
  |MIDDLE       | Coral Rag &   |             |              |  Iron Ores,  |
  |OOLITIC.     | Oxford Clay.  |             |              |   Roofing    |
  |             |{Cornbrash.    |             |              |   Slates,    |
  |             |{Forest Marble |    Jura     |              |  Building    |
  |             |{and Great     | Formation.  |   Marine.    | Stones, and  |
  |LOWER        |{Oolite.       |             |              |    Flags.    |
  |OOLITIC.     |{Stonesfield   |             |              | Alum Shales. |
  |             |{Slate.        |             |              |   Hydraulic  |
  |             |{Inferior      |             |              | Limestones.  |
  |             |{Oolite.       |             |              |              |
  |             | Lias.         |             |              |              |
  +-------------+---------------+-------------+--------------+--------------+
  |             | Rhætic.       |             |              |              |
  |             | New Red Marl, |             |              |   Gypsum.    |
  |KEUPER.      | Sandstone,    | Muschelkalk | Inland Seas. |  Rock Salt.  |
  |             | and Conglom-  |  absent in  |              |   Building   |
  |BUNTER.      | erate.        |   British   | Salt Lakes.  |   Stones.    |
  |             | Sandstone &   |    Isles.   |              |              |
  |             | Pebble Beds.  |             |              |              |
  +-------------+---------------+-------------+--------------+--------------+
  |             | Red Marls and |             |              |              |
  |MAGNESIAN    | Magnesian     |             |              |              |
  |LIMESTONE.   | Limestone.    | Zechstein.  |              |              |
  |             | Red Marl,     |   Kupfer-   |   Marine.    |   Building   |
  |LOWER        | Sandstone,    |  schiefer.  |              |   Stones.    |
  |PERMIAN.     | and Conglom-  |Rothliegende.|              |              |
  |             | erate.        |             |              |              |
  +-------------+---------------+-------------+--------------+--------------+
  |             | Coal Measures.|  Carboni-   |              | Coal, Anthra-|
  |             | Millstone     |  ferien.    |              |    cite.     |
  |CARBONIFER-  | Grit.         |             | Terrestrial  | Iron and Lead|
  |OUS.         | Yoredale      |             |     and      |    Ores.     |
  |             | Rocks.        |             |   Marine.    | Bldng. Stone,|
  |             | Mountain Lime-|             |              |   Marble.    |
  |             | stone.        |             |              | Oil Springs. |
  +-------------+---------------+-------------+--------------+--------------+
  |             |               |             |              |  Ornamental  |
  |DEVONIAN     | Devonian      |             |              |   Marbles.   |
  |AND          | Slates and    |   Eifel     |  Marine And  | Serpentine & |
  |OLD RED SAND-| Limestones.   | Limestone.  |  Freshwater. |   Slates.    |
  |STONE.       | Old Red Sand- |             |              | Tin, Copper, |
  |             | stone, &c.    |             |              | Lead, Silver |
  |             |               |             |              |  Ores, &c.   |
  +-------------+---------------+-------------+--------------+--------------+
  |            {| Ludlow.       |             |              |              |
  |UPPER SILU- {| Wenlock.      |             |              |              |
  |RIAN.       {| Upper         |             |              |   Roofing    |
  |            {| Llandovery.   |             |              |   Slates.    |
  |             |{Lower         |             |   Marine.    |   Building   |
  |             |{Llandovery.   |             |              |   Stones.    |
  |LOWER SILU-  |{Bala and Cara-|             |              | Gold & other |
  |RIAN.        |{doc.          |             |              |   Metals.    |
  |             |{Llandeilo.    |             |              |              |
  |             |{Lingula Flags.| Primordial  |              |              |
  |             |{              |   Zone.     |              |              |
  +-------------+---------------+-------------+--------------+--------------+
  |             | Harlech Grits.|             |              |   Roofing    |
  |CAMBRIAN.    | Llanberis     | Huronian of |   Marine.    |   Slates.    |
  |             | Slates.       |  America.   |              | Gold & other |
  |             |               |             |              |   Metals.    |
  +-------------+---------------+-------------+--------------+--------------+
  |             |    Gneiss     |             |              |              |
  |             | of the Outer  | Labradorite |              |  Serpentine. |
  |LAURENTIAN.  | Hebrides, and |  Series in  |   Marine.    |  Graphite.   |
  |             | N.W. Coast of |   Canada.   |              |              |
  |             | Scotland.     |             |              |              |
  +-------------+---------------+-------------+--------------+--------------+
  |                                                                         |
  |METAMORPHIC ROCKS (_of all ages_):--                                     |
  |       Gneiss, Mica-schist, Quartzite, Talcose-schist, &c. (Serpentine   |
  |       probably?)                                                        |
  |                                                                         |
  |INTRUSIVE ROCKS (_of all ages_):--                                       |
  |       Lavas, Basalt, Trachyte, Pitchstone, &c.                          |
  |       Granite, Syenite, Greenstone, Felstone, Porphyrites, Melaphyres,  |
  |       Mica-Traps, &c. &c.                                               |
  +-------------------------------------------------------------------------+




EXTENSION OF THE PREVIOUS TABLE.


     /    /             /             / Blown Sand and Shingle.
     |    |             |             | Alluvium and River Deltas.
     |    |             |             | Burtle Beds of Somerset.
     |    |             | RECENT AND  | Clay, with Scrobicularia of Pagham,
     |    |             | PRE-       <    Morecombe, &c.
     |    |             | HISTORIC.   | Submerged Forests of Bristol
     |    |             |             | Channel, &c.
     |    |             |             | Peat Bogs of Ireland and Peat Beds
     | P  |             |             \ of England.
     | O  |             |
     | S  |             |             / Raised Beaches.
     | T  |             |             |               / Cave Earth and Loam.
     |    |  PLEIS-     |             | Cave Deposits<  Stalagmite and Bone-
     | T  |  TOCENE,    |             |               \ breccia.
     | E <   OR        <              | River Gravels, Brick Earths, and
     | R  |  QUATER-    | Post       <  Freshwater Clays, with Mammalian
     | T  |  NARY.      | Glacial     | Remains.
     | I  |             |             | Gravels of Bedford Levels, Salisbury,
     | A  |             |             | and other Old Valley Gravels and
     | R  |             |             | Alluvia.
     | Y  |             |             \ Tufa and Shell-marl.
     | .  |             |
     |    |             |             / Kaimes or Kames of Scotland.
     |    |             |             | Eskers or Escars of Ireland.
     |    |             | Glacial    <  Drift (Upper Boulder Clay or Till,
     |    |             |             | Marine Gravels, Lower Till and
  A  |    |             |             | Moraines), Scotch and Welsh,
  G  |    |             |             \ Loess of the Rhine, &c.
  E  |    |             |
     |    \             \ Pre-glacial   Forest Bed of Norfolk Shore.
  O  |
  F  |    /             \             /               \  _Norwich and_
     |    |             |             | Mammaliferous |  _Chillesford_
  M <     |             |             | Crag           > _Crag_
  A  |    | PLIOCENE.    > Crag      <  Red Crag      |  (Newer
  M  |    |             |             |               /  Pliocene).
  M  |    |             |             | Coralline Crag (_Suffolk Crag_)
  A  |    |             /             \ (Older Pliocene).
  L  | K  |
  S  | A  |                           / Leaf Bed of Mull.
  .  | I  | MIOCENE.                 <  Lignite of Antrim.
     | N  |                           \ Bovey Beds, with Lignite.
     | O  |
     | Z  |    /        /             / Corbula Beds.              \  F
     | O  |    |        | Hempstead  <  Upper  \   Freshwater and  |  l
     | I  |    |        | Beds        | Middle  >  Estuary         |  u
     | O  |    | UPPER <              \ Lower  /   Marls.          |  v  S
     | ,  |    | EO-    |                                          |  i  e
     |    |    | CENE.  | Bembridge   / Bembridge Marls.           |  o  r
     | O <     |        \ Beds        \     „     Limestone.        > -  i
     | R  |    |                                                   |  M  e
     |    |    |        / Osborne     / St. Helen’s Sands.         |  a  s
     | T  |    |        | Beds        \ Nettlestone Grits.         |  r  .
     | E  | E  |        |                                          |  i
     | R  | O  |        |             / Upper  \                   |  n
     | T  | C  |        | Headon     <  Middle  > Headon Beds.     |  e
     | I  | E <  MIDDLE<  Beds        \ Lower  /                   /
     | A  | N  | EO-    |
     | R  | E  | CENE.  |             / Upper Bagshot Sand.
     | Y  | .  |        |             | Middle   „    / Barton Clay.
     | .  |    |        | Bagshot    <                \ Bracklesham Beds.
     |    |    |        | Beds        | Lower    „    Sand and Pipeclay,
     |    |    |        \             \ with Plants.
     |    |    |
     |    |    |        /             / London Clay and Bognor Beds (Upper
     |    |    |        |             | London Tertiaries).
     |    |    | LOWER <  London     <  Oldhaven Beds.            \
     |    |    | EO-    | Tertiaries  | Woolwich and Reading Beds |
     |    |    | CENE.  |             | (Plastic Clay).            > Lower
     \    \    \        \             \ Thanet Beds.              /  do.


    /        /     C /                 / Upper Chalk, with Layers of Flint
    |        |     R |                 | (Maestricht and Faxoe Beds).
    |        |     E |  Chalk.        <  Lower Chalk, without Flints.
    |        |  U  T |                 | Chalk Marl.
    |        |  P  A<                  \ Chloritic Marl.
    |        |  P  C |
    |        |  E  E |                   Upper Greensand (Fire-stone of
    |        |  R  O |                   Surrey, Malm-rock), &c.
    |        |     U |
    |   C    |     S \                   Gault.
    |   R    |     .
    |   E    |  L    /   /    /        / Folkestone Beds (Sand).
    |   T    |  O    |   |    | Lower  | Sandgate Beds (with Fullers’
    |   A    |  W  O |   |    | Green-<  Earth).
    |   C   <   E  R |   |    | sand.  | Hythe Beds (with Kentish Rag and
    |   E    |  R    |   |  N |        | Bargate Stone).
    |   O    |     N |   |  e |        \ Atherfield Clay.
    |   U    |  C  E |   |  o |
    |   S    |  R  O | W |  c |        / Weald Clay (with Sussex or Bethers-
    |   .    |  E  C<  e |  o<         \ den Marble and Horsham Stone).
    |        |  T  O | a |  m |
    |        |  A  M | l<   i |        / Upper Tunbridge Wells  \
    |        |  C  I | d |  a |        | Sand.                  |  Tunbridge
    |        |  E  A | e |  n | Has-   | Grinstead Clay.         > Wells
    |        |  O  N | n |  . | tings <  Lower Tunbridge Wells  |  Beds.
    |        |  U  . | . |    | Sands. | Sand.                  /
    |        |  S    |   |    |        | Wadhurst Clay (with Iron Ore).
    |        |  ,    |   |    |        | Ashdown Sands.
    |        \       \   |    \        \ Ashburnham Beds.
    |                    |
    |   /    /     O /   |      Pur-   / Upper (with Purbeck Marble).\ Pur-
    |   |    |  U  O |   |      beck. <  Middle.                      >beck
    |   |    |  P  L |   \             \ Lower (with Dirt Beds).     / Beds.
    |   |    |  P  I<
    |   |    |  E  T |                 / Portland Stone.
    |   |    |  R  E | Portland.      <  Portland Sand.
    |   |    |     . |                 | Kimeridge Clay (with Bituminous
    |   |    |       \                 \ Shale).
    |   |    |
    |   |    |  M  O / Coralline       / Upper Calcareous Grit.
  M |   |    |  I  O | Oolite.        <  Coral Rag (with Iron Ore).
  E |   |    |  D  L<                  \ Lower Calcareous Grit.
  S |   |    |  D  I |
  O |   | O  |  L  T | Oxford Clay.    / Oxford Clay and
  Z |   | O  |  E  E \                 \ Kellaways Rock.
  O |   | L  |     .
  I |   | I  |       /                 / Cornbrash.
  C | J | T  |       | Forest Marble. <  Forest Marble and Bradford Clay
  , | U | I  |       |                 \ (with Encrinites).
    | R | C  |       |
  O | A |   <        |                 / Great or Bath Oolite (with “Ful-
  R<  S | S  |       |                 | lers’ Earth” at base, in S. of
    | S | E  |       | Great Oolite.  <  England).
  S | I | R  |       |                 | Stonesfield Slate, near the base,
  E | C<  I  |   L   |                 \ in part of S. of England.
  C |   | E  |   O   |
  O | S | S  |   W   |                 / Upper Fullers’ Earth (Clay).
  N | E | .  |   E   | Fullers’ Earth.<  Fullers’ Earth Rock (Limestone).
  D | R |    |   R   |                 \ Lower Fullers’ Earth (Clay).
  A | I |    |       |
  R | E |    |   O  <                  / Northampton Sand (with Iron Ore,
  Y | S |    |   O   |                 | in N. Oxfordshire and S.
  . | . |    |   L   |                 | Northamptonshire).
    |   |    |   I   |                 | Ragstone and Clypeus Bed.\  Chel-
    |   |    |   T   |                 | Upper Freestone.         |  ten-
    |   |    |   E   | Inferior       <  Oolite Marl.              > ham
    |   |    |   .   | Oolite.         | Lower Freestone.         |  Sec-
    |   |    |       |                 | Pea Grit.                /  tions.
    |   |    |       |                 | (Colleyweston Slate, at the base
    |   |    |       |                 | of the Limestone, in Lincoln-
    |   |    |       |                 | shire).
    |   |    \       |                 \ Sands.
    |   | AGE OF   / | L  /
    |   |REPTILES, | | i  | Upper Lias.  Clay and Shale.
    |   |OR SAURO-<  | a <  Middle Lias, or Marlstone (Rock Bed, with Iron
    |   |  ZOIC    | | s  | Ore, Sand, &c.).
    |   \ EPOCH.   \ \ .  \ Lower Lias.  Clay, Shale, and Limestone.
    |
    |   / T  /       /                 / “White Lias,” Avicula contorta
    |   | R  |       | Rhætic, or     <  Beds, with Koessen Beds.
    |   | I  |       | Penarth Beds.   | Bone Beds of Aust, &c.
    |   | A  |       |                 \ _St. Cassian and Hallstadt Beds._
    |   | S  | U  T  |
    | P | ,  | P  R  |                 / Red variegated Marl and Upper
    | O |    | P  I <                  | Keuper Sandstone (with Gypsum and
    | I | O  | E  A  |                 | Rock Salt).
    | K | R  | R  S  | Keuper.        <  Lower Keuper Sandstone and Marl
    | I |    |    .  |                 | (Waterstones).
    | L | N  |       |                 | Dolomitic Conglomerate (of Keuper
    | I | E  |       |                 | Age, Somerset, Gloucester, and S.
    | T | W  |       \                 \ Wales).
    | I<    <
    | C | R  | M  T  /
    |   | E  | I  R  |
    | S | D  | D  I <                    _Muschelkalk, absent in Britain._
    | E |    | D  A  |
    | R | S  | L  S  |
    | I | A  | E  .  \
    | E | N  |
    | S | D  | L  T  /
    | . | S  | O  R  |                 / Upper Red and Mottled Sandstone.
    |   | T  | W  I <  Bunter.        <  Pebble Beds, Calcareous Con-
    |   | O  | E  A  |                 | glomerate, and Breccia.
    |   | N  | R  S  |                 \ Lower Red and Mottled Sandstone.
    |   | E  |    .  \
    \   \ .  \


                                                                  GERMANY.
     /   A /   P    /Upper, or / Upper Red Marl and Sandstone. \
     |   G |   E    |Magnesian<  Upper Magnesian Limestone.     > Zechstein.
     |   E |   R    |Limestone | Lower Red Marl and Sandstone. |
     |     |   M   <  Series.  \ Lower Magnesian Limestone.    /
     |   O |   I    |
     |   F |   A    |Lower, or / Red Marl, Sandstone, Breccia, Röthe-liegende,
     |     |   N    | Rothlie-<  and Conglomerate.
     |   F |   .    \  gende.  \
     |   I |
     |U  S |C       /                    ENGLAND.              SCOTLAND.
     |P  H |A       |
     |P  E |R  A  P |           / Upper Coal Measures.   \
     |E  S |B  G  H |   Coal    | Middle Coal Measures. }|  Upper Coal
     |R  , |O  E  Y | Measures.<  Pennant Grit.         } > Measures.
     |     |N     T |           | Lower Coal Measures.   |
     |P  O |I  O  O |           \ Gannister Beds.        /
     |A  R< F  F  Z |
     |L    |E     O |           / Millstone Grit or      \  Moor
     |Æ  I |R  P  I<            \ Farewell Rock.         /  Rock.
     |O  C |O  L  C |
     |Z  H |U  A    |           / Upper Limestone Shale  \  Upper Limestones.
     |O  T |S  N  E |           | (Yoredale Rocks).       > Edge Coals Series.
     |I  H |   T  P |           | Carboniferous Lime-    |  Lower Limestones.
     |C  Y |S  S  O |  Carboni- | stone.                 /
     |.  O |E  ,  C |   ferous, |
     |   Z |R     H |     or   <                         \  Sandstones, Shales,
     |   O |I  O  . |  Mountain | Lower Limestone Shale.  > and Burdie House
     |   I |E  R    | Limestone.|                        /  Limestone.
     |   C |S       |           |
     |     |.       \           \
  P  |   E |
  A  |   P |OLD RED / Old Red  / Upper Devonian or Barnstaple and Marwood Beds,
  L  |   O | SAND-  |  Sand-   | with Petherwin Limestone, in N. E. Cornwall.
  Æ  |   C | STONE < stone, or<  Middle Devonian or Ilfracombe Beds, with
  O  |   H |  AND   |Devonian  | Fossiliferous Limestones and Cornstones.
  Z  |   . | DEVONI-|  Beds.   \ Lower Devonian, or Lynton Beds.
  O  |     \   AN.  \
  I  |                                 WALES AND CENTRAL        LAKE DISTRICT.
  C  |                                      ENGLAND.
  ,  |L    /   /      /             Tilestones (Passage     \
     |O  A |   |      |             Beds).                  |
  O < W  N |   |      |                                      > Kirkby Moor
  R  |E  D |   |      |           / Upper Ludlow Beds (with |  Flags.
     |R    |   |  U   | Ludlow   <  Bone Bed).              /
  P  |   M |   |  P   | Beds.     | Aymestry Limestone.     \
  R  |P  O |   |  P   |           \ Lower Ludlow Beds.      |
  I  |A  L |   |  E   |                                      > Bannisdale Beds.
  M  |L  L |   |  R   |           / Wenlock Limestone.      |
  A  |Æ  U |   |      |           | Wenlock Shale, Sand-    |
  R  |O  S |   |  S   |           | stone, and Flags.       /
  Y  |Z  C |   |  I  <  Wenlock  <  Woolhope Limestone and  \  Coniston Grits
  .  |O  S |S  |  L   | Beds.     | Shale.                  |  and Flags.
     |I  , |I  |  U   |           | Denbighshire Grits,      > Stockdale
     |C    |L  |  R   |           | Shales, Slates, and     |  Slates.
     |.  O |U  |  I   |           \ Flags.                  /
     |   R< R <   A   |
     |A    |I  |  N   |             Tarannon Shale (Pale Slates).
     |G  M |A  |  .   |
     |E  A |N  |      |           / Upper Llandovery Rocks.
     |   L |.  |      | Llando-   | (May Hill Sandstone).
     |O  A |   |      | very     <  (Pentamerus Beds).
     |F  C |   |      | Beds.     |
     |   O |   |      \           \ Lower Llandovery Rocks.
     |C  Z |   |
     |R  O |   |    S / Caradoc,  / Caradoc and Bala Beds.  \
     |U  I |   |    I | or Bala  < (Sandstones often shelly,|  Coniston Lime-
     |S  C |   | L  L | Beds.     | with Bala Limestone,    |  stone, Bala
     |T    |   | O  U |           \ Shale, and Slate).       > (Limestone and
     |A  E |   | W  R |                                     |  Shale).
     |C  P |   | E  I<  Llan-     / Llandeilo Flags and     |  Skiddaw Slates.
     |E  O |   | R  A | deilo.   <  Limestone, &c.          /
     |A  C |   |    N |           \ Tremadoc Slates.
     |N  H |   |    . |
     |S  . |   |      | Lingula     Lingula Flags. (Primordial Zone of
     |     \   \      \ Beds.       Barrande).
     |
     |     /          /           / Harlech Grits, &c.
     |     |          |           | Purple Slates and Grits (St. David’s).
     |  E  |CAMBRIAN.<  Cambrian.<  Llanberis Grits and Slates.
     |  O  |          |           | Longmynd Rocks.
     |  Z  |          |           \ Red Sandstone and Conglomerate (Scotland).
     |  O <           \
     |  I  |
     |  C  |                      / Fundamental Gneiss of the Outer Hebrides
     |  .  |LAURENTIAN.          <  and of the N. W. coast of Scotland, &c.,
     |     |                      | containing the oldest known fossil,
     \     \                      \ _Eozoon Canadense_.




INDEX.

⁂ ITALICS ARE WOODCUT ILLUSTRATIONS.


  Abbeville, 475.
    „        Peat-beds and Flint-tools of, 476.
  Abietinæ, 193.
  Acacia, 318.
  _Acanthodes_, 126.
  Acephala of the Oolite, 246.
  Acephalous or headless Molluscs, 288.
  Acerites cretaceæ, 283.
  Acrodus nobilis, 217.
  Acrogens, 123.
  Adams, Mr., discoveries of, 391.
  Adapis, 325.
  Adelsberg Cave, 430.
  _Adeona folifera_, 247.
  Adhémar’s Glacial Hypothesis, 436.
  Adiantites, 120.
  Agassiz on Glaciers, 439.
  Age of Angiosperms, 300.
     „   Formations, how ascertained, 5.
  Ailsa Craig, 49.
  Air Volcano at Turbaco, 61, 63.
  Albien of D’Orbigny, 300.
  Albite, 96.
  Aleutian Isles, 70.
  Algæ, 103, 114, 123, 309, 336.
  Alkaline Waters of Plombières, 64.
  Alleghany Mountains, 75.
  Alluvial Deposits, 485.
  Almites Frescii, 203.
  Alps, upheaval of, 427.
  Alveolites, 333.
  Amber, 310, 316, 355.
  Amblypterus, 146.
  Amiens, Peat-beds of, 475.
  _Ammonite, a perfect_, 260.
      „      _restoration of an_, 216.
  Ammonites, 11, 12, 207, 212, 214, 246.
      „      _rostratus_, 292, 294.
      „      _Turneri_, 215.
      „      of Jurassic Period, 215.
      „      rotundus, 263.
      „      Herveyii, 246.
      „      Danicus, 311.
  Amorphozoa, 301.
  Ancient Glaciers of the Rhine, Linth, and the Reus, 449.
  Ancient Granite, 31.
  Ancyloceras, 288.
  _Andrias Scheuchzeri_, 368.
  Angiosperms, Age of, 300.
       „       Seeds, in a Seed-vessel, 283, 300.
  Animal of the Ohio, 343.
     „   of Paraguay, 401.
  Annelides, 126.
  Anning, Mary, 219, 225.
  Annularia, 137, 154.
      „      _orifolia_, 158.
  Anodon, 120, 334.
  Anomopteris, 193.
  Anoplotherium, 319, 323.
        „        _commune_, 323.
  Anorthite, 96.
  Antediluvian Glaciers, 449.
       „       Man, 367.
  Anthracite, 72.
  Antiquity of Man, 469.
  Antwerp Crag, 373.
  Ape, 360.
  Ape, First Appearance of, 349.
  _Apiocrinites liliiformis_, 261.
         „      _rotundus_, 261.
  _Aploceras_, 146.
  Aptien (Greensand of Apt) Fossils of Havre, of the Isle of Wight, 297.
  Apuan Alps, 76.
  _Arborescent Ferns_, 130.
  Arbroath Paving-stone, 129.
  Archæopteryx, 265.
  _Archegosaurus minor_, 154, 158.
  Arctocyon primævus, 332.
  Arenicolites, 101.
  Argile de Dives, 264.
     „   plastique, 332.
  Armentaceæ, 297.
  Arran, Granite of, 38.
  Artesian Wells, 16, 88.
  Artificially-formed Coal, 164.
  _Asaphus caudatus_, 103.
  Ashburnham Sands, 286.
  Ashdown Sands, 286.
  Ashes, Showers of Volcanic, 58.
  Asiatic Deluge, 423; caused by upheaval of Caucasian Range, 480.
  Asplenium, 315.
  Asteracanthus, 266.
  Asterias lombricalis, 213.
  Asterophyllites, 120, 154, 158, 173, 177.
        „          _foliosa_, 157.
  Atherfield Series of Rocks, 287.
  Atlantis of Plato, 118, 281.
  _Atrypa reticularis_, 127.
  Auchenaspis, 129.
  Aucolin, 299.
  Augite, 44.
  Auvergne, Mountains of, 62.
     „      Acidulated Springs in, 64.
     „      Extinct Volcanoes of, 51.
  Aveyron Savage, 469.
  Avicula, 189, 205, 252, 272.
     „     contorta, 207.
     „     contorta zone, 207.
  Azores, New Islands formed in the, 70.

  Baculites, 289.
  Bagshot Beds, 332.
  Bajocien Formation, 249.
  Bala Beds, 109.
  Balæna of Monte Pulgnasco, 370.
  Balænodon Lamanoni, 370.
  Balistes, or Silurus, 218.
  Baltic Sea filling up, 282, 490.
  _Banksia_, 318.
  Barmouth Sandstone, 101.
  _Basalt in Prismatic Columns_, 47.
  Basalt, 44.
     „    Action of, upon Limestone, 72.
     „    of Ireland, 48.
     „    Prismatic Structure of, 49.
  Basaltic Formations, 44.
     „     Causeways, 48, 49.
     „     _Plateau, theoretical view of_, 47.
     „     Cavern of Staffa, 50.
  Bat, 326, 338.
  Bath Oolite, 243, 250.
  Bathonian Formation, 249.
  Batrachian Reptiles of Pliocene, 358.
  Baumann’s Hohl, 429.
  Bay of Fundy, 159.
  Beaver, Disappearance of, 184.
     „    of Post-Pliocene Period, 379.
  Beds of Coal, Formation of, 159.
  Bees, 255.
  _Belemnite restored_, 216.
       „     of Liassic Period, 217.
  Belemnites, 212, 215, 260.
       „      _acutus_, 217.
  Bellerophon, 108.
      „        _costatus_, 145.
      „        _hiulcus_, 145.
  _Beloptera Sepioidea_, 181, 434.
  Bembridge Series, 330, 332.
  Ben Nevis, 90, 182.
  Bernese Alps, 427.
  _Beryx Lewesiensis_, 294.
  Biblical Account of Noachian Deluge, 480.
  Bidiastopora cervicornis, 246.
  Bigsby, Dr. J. T., on Silurian Fauna and Flora, 104.
  Binney, Edw., on Boulder Clay of Lancashire, 462.
  _Bird of Solenhofen_, 265.
     „  of Montmartre, 326.
  Birds, First Appearance of, 193.
    „    of Eocene Period, 326.
    „    of Miocene Period, 369.
  Bison primigenius, 399.
    „   priscus, 399.
  Bituminous Fountains, 60.
  Black Down Beds, 310.
  Boccaccio’s Giant, 284.
  Bogs of Denmark, 477.
  Bone-beds of Rhætic, or Penarth Series, 207.
  Bone-breccias, 429.
  Bone Caves, 429.
    „    „    H. W. Bristow on formation of, 475.
  _Bos_, 379, 414.
    „    Pallasii, 399.
    „    Primigenius, 184.
  Bracheux Sands, 332.
  Brachiopoda, 109.
      „        Abundance of, in Devonian Period, 126.
      „        in Upper Cretaceous Period, 300.
      „        Reign of, 126.
  Brachyphyllum, 249.
  Bracklesham Beds, 332.
  Bradford Clay, 250.
     „     Encrinites, 252.
  _Branch of Banksia_, 318.
       „     _Eucalyptus_, 317.
  Bray Head, 101.
  Breccia, Ossiferous, 432.
  Brecciated Limestone, 174, 176.
  Bridlington Beds, 460.
  Bristow, H. W., on Formation of Bone Caves, 475.
       „          on Brixham Bone-cave, 473.
       „          on Penarth or Rhætic Beds, 207.
  British Islands at close of Jurassic Period, 274.
  _British Strata_, Section of, 244.
          „         Table of, 493-499.
  Brixham Bone-cave, 473.
  Brongniart, Ad., on Upper Cretaceous Fauna, 301.
  Bronze Age, 478.
  Brumberg Cavern, 432.
  Buckland, Dr., on Kirkdale Cave, 380.
  Buffon and Voltaire, 6.
    „    on Man, 470.
    „    on Fossils, 6.
  Bunter Sandstone, 187.
  Burrh Stone, 355.
  Butterflies, 255.

  Caithness Flags, 128.
  Calamary, 215, 259.
  _Calamite restored_, 135.
  Calamites, 134, 152, 177, 193, 202.
      „      arenaceus, 194.
      „      _cannæformis_, 154.
      „      _Trunk of_, 136.
  Calcaire de la Beauce, 355.
      „    Grossier, 325, 332.
  Calceola Sandalina, 127.
  Calderas, 70.
  _Calymene Blumenbachii_, 110.
  Cambrian Period, 101.
     „     Fauna, 101.
  Camper, Pierre, on the Mosasaurus, 304.
    „       „     „  Œningen Skeleton, 368.
  Camptopteris crenata, 239.
  Canstadt Excavations, 386, 396.
  Cantal Group of Mountains, 43.
    „       „         „      _a peak of_, 40.
  Cape Wrath, Granite and Gneiss of, 32.
  Capitosaurus, 190.
  Caradoc Beds, 109.
  Carboniferous Flora, 151.
       „          „    compared with that of Islands in the Pacific, 151.
  Carboniferous Limestone, 130, 140.
       „        Period, 130.
       „        Vegetation of, 130.
       „        Climate of, 133.
       „        Foraminifera of, 143, 146.
       „        of France, 150.
       „        Crustaceans of, 141.
       „        Rocks, 149.
       „        Seas, 146.
  Cardiocarpon, 177.
  Cardium Rhæticum, 207.
     „    striatulum, 269.
  Carpinites arenaceus, 283.
  Carrara Marble, 65, 73, 76, 377.
  _Caryophylla cyathus_, 356.
  Causeways, Basaltic, 49.
  Cave Bear, 395, 473.
    „  Deposits, 468, 472.
    „  Hyæna, 398.
    „  Lion, 398.
  Caverns, their Origin, 129.
  Cellaria loriculata, 247.
  Central Heat of the Earth, 15.
     „    Increase of in Depth, 16.
  Central France, Puys of, 51.
  _Cephalaspis_, 125.
  Cephalopoda, 108, 127, 215, 301.
  Ceratites, 189.
  _Ceratites nodosus_, 189.
  Cerithium, 333, 334.
  _Cerithium plicatum_, 350.
       „     _telescopium_, 335.
  Cervus megaceros, 184, 400.
  Cestracion, 218.
  Cetaceans of Pliocene Period, 369.
  Cetiosaurus, 256, 265.
  Chæropotamus, 325.
  Chætetes, 146.
  Chalk Formation, 275, 309.
         „         _Foraminifera of_, 146.
  Chalk Marl, 309.
    „   White, 309.
    „   _of Cattolica, Sicily_, 280.
    „   _of Gravesend_, 278.
    „   _of Isle of Moën_, 279.
    „   _of Meudon_, 277.
  Chara, 315.
  Cheirotherium, 13, 21, 190.
  Chemical Theory of the Earth, 15.
  Chesil Bank, 270.
  Chillesford Beds, 372.
  Chimæra, 218.
  Chloë, Isle of, 151.
  Chondrites, 309.
  Chorda-filum, 124.
  Christiana Granite and Syenite, 38.
  Cinder Bed of Purbeck, 272.
  Cipoline Marble, 76.
  Cirripedes, 260.
  Clermont-Ferrand, 51.
  Climate of the Coal Period, 151.
          „      Permian Period, 174.
  _Climatius_, 126.
  Clinkstone, 43.
  _Clymenia Sedgwickii_, 127.
  Coal, 132.
    „   Formation of, 159.
    „   Origin of, 159.
    „   Theories Respecting Formation of, 159.
    „   _Stratification of Beds of_, 165.
    „   Quantities annually raised in different Countries, 166.
    „   Quantity of, in United Kingdom, 167.
  Coal Measures, 130, 150.
        „        Composition of, 164.
        „        Extent of, 166.
        „        Flora of, 150.
        „        of Scotland, 167.
        „        of South Wales, 167.
        „        of Belgium, 167.
        „        of France, 167.
        „        Time of Formation, 132.
        „        Composition of, 132.
  _Coal Mines of Treuil_, 160.
  _Coccosteus_, 125, 142.
  Cœlacanthus, 175.
  Composition of Air in Carboniferous Period, 133.
  Comptonia, 283.
  Confervæ of the Chalk, 309.
  Conglomerates, 129.
  Conifers of Jurassic Period, 249, 269.
     „     of Cretaceous Period, 283.
     „     of Eocene Period, 316.
     „     of Miocene Period, 336.
     „     of Pliocene Period, 358.
  _Contortions of Coal Beds_, 167.
  Conybeare’s Account of Plesiosaurus, 229.
  Copper Slate, Fossils of, 177.
        „            „      of Thuringia, 178.
  Coprolites, Petrified Excrements of Antediluvian Animals, 12, 207, 373.
      „       _of Ichthyosaurus, enclosing Bones_, 225.
      „       _of Ichthyosaurus, showing Cast of Intestines_, 225.
      „       Bed of Cambridge, 309.
  Coral Rag, 243, 264, 301.
  Coralline Crag, Corals of, 372.
  Corals, 141, 205, 240, 247, 263, 266, 301.
  Cornbrash, 243, 250, 252.
  Cornstone, 129.
  Cornwall, Granite of, 38.
  Coryphodon, 332.
  Cotham Marble, 208.
  _Coupe, la, d’Ayzac_, 46, 47.
  Crag, 372.
  Creation of Man, 464.
    „          „   Evidences of, 469.
    „         World, Scriptural Account of, Defended, 18.
  Credneria, 283, 297-300.
  Crematopteris, 163.
  Cretaceous Period, 275, 306.
         „           Fauna of, 282, 285, 300.
         „           Flora of, 282, 300.
         „           Reptiles of, 285.
         „           Fishes of, 285, 294.
  Crinoidea, 127.
  Crioceras, 288, 297.
      „      _Duvallii_, 274.
  Crocodile of Maestricht, 184, 303, 326.
  Crocodilus Toliapicus, 326.
  Croll, J., on Till, 457.
  Crust of the Earth, Composition of, 96.
           „          Thickness of, 87, 89.
           „          Temperature of, 88.
  Crustaceans, 107, 110, 141, 286.
       „       Predominance of, in Lower Silurian Seas, 107.
       „       Rarity of in Carboniferous Period, 141.
       „       of Eocene Period, 326.
       „       of Miocene Period, 350.
  Cryptogamia, 187, 194, 203.
  Crystalline Action, 71.
      „       Limestone, 174, 176.
      „       Rocks Defined, 28.
  Cucumites, 315.
  Cupanioides, 315.
  _Cupressocrinus crassus_, 128.
  Cuvier’s Account of Plesiosaurus, 233.
      „    Account of Pterodactyle, 33.
      „    on the Restoration of Extinct Animals, 7.
      „    on the Destruction of Species, 381.
      „    on the Mammoth, 396.
  Cyathophyllum, 146.
  Cycadeaceæ, 266.
  Cycads, 239, 249, 270, 283.
  _Cycas circinalis_, 168.
  Cypress, 240, 249.
  Cypris, 272.
     „    fasciculata, 272.
     „    _spinigera and C. Valdensis_, 298.
  _Cyrtoceras depressum_, 176.

  Damara, 194.
  Danian Beds, 309, 311.
  Danish Peat Mosses and Kjökken Mödden, 477.
  Dartmoor, Granite of, 36, 37, 79.
  Darwin, C., on Coral Formations, 263.
       „         Volcanoes of Quito, 55.
  Daubeny on Basalt, 44.
  Davidsonia Verneuilli, 127.
  Dawkins, W. B., Discoverer of Microlestes, 207.
  De la Beche on the Plesiosaurus, 229.
  De Rance, C. E., on Glacial Deposits, 458.
  Deer, 399.
  Deluge confirmed by traditions of all Ancient Races, 482.
  Denudation, 28.
  Descartes, 15.
  Destruction of Successive Creations, 184.
  Devon and Cornwall, Granite of, 38.
  Devonian Period, 119.
     „     System, 170.
     „     Flora, 120.
     „     _Fishes_, 125.
  Diameter of the Earth, 87.
  Diceras Limestone, 265.
  Dicotyledons, 182, 282.
  Diluvium, 422, 423.
  Dinornis, 134, 382.
  _Dinornis_, 414, 417.
  Dinotherium, 339, 356.
       „       _restored_, 340.
  Diorite, 35.
  _Diplacanthus_, 126.
  Dirt-bed, Fossils of, 271.
  Dodo, 184.
  Dolomite, 178.
  Domite, 43.
  Donati on Fossil Shells, 6.
  Downs, North and South, 278.
  Downton Sandstone, 112.
  _Draco volans_, 238.
  Draconidæ, 237.
  Dragon Fly, 243, 255.
  Dragons of Mythology, 237, 361.
  Drifted Rocks, 27.
  Drôme, the, 299.
  Dryopithecus, 350, 353.
  <DW18>s, 27.

  Early Geologists, 5.
  Earth, Cooling of the, 80.
    „    Theories of the Origin of the, 6.
    „    _in a Gaseous State_, 81.
  Earth’s Crust, Thickness of, 89.
     „    Surface, Changes of, 3.
  Earthy Limestone, 281.
  Ebur Fossile, 386.
  Echinoderms, 189, 213, 247, 261, 297, 300, 301, 326.
  Edentates, 382, 400, 407.
  Ehrenberg’s Microscopic Investigations, 277.
  Electric Currents, Action of, 79.
  Elephant of the Ohio, 343, 347.
  Elephants, Fossil, 386.
  Elephants’ Cemetery at Canstadt, 386.
  Elephas meridionalis, 372.
     „    primigenius, 347, 382, 383.
  Emys, 265, 319.
  Encrinites, 127, 173, 181, 196, 252.
      „       Abundance of during Devonian Period, 120.
  _Encrinus liliiformis_, 190, 261.
  Entalophora cellarioides, 246.
  Eocene Strata of France and England, 329.
  Eocene, 314.
     „    Period, 315.
     „    Vegetation, 315.
     „    Fauna, Seas, 319, 329.
     „    Characters of, 330.
     „    Table of Strata, 330.
  Epilogue, 489.
  Epiornis, 184, 382, 417.
  Equiseta (Horse-tails), 134, 202, 203, 239, 315.
  Erratic Blocks, 424.
         „        _of the Alps_, 448.
  _Eruption of Granite_, 92.
  Eruptive Rocks, 4, 27, 30, 31.
        „         Plutonic Eruptions, 31.
        „         Volcanic     „      51.
  _Eryon arctiformis_, 260.
  Erymanthean Boar, 184.
  Estimated Coal Measures of the World, 166.
  Etheridge, R., on Devonian and Old Red Sandstone, 129.
  Etna, Volcano of Mount, 56, 68.
  _Eucalyptus_, 317.
  Eunomia radiata, 247, 252.
  Europe at Close of Cretaceous Period, 311.
       „       „     Pliocene Period, 377.
  European Deluge, 378, 422.
  Eurypterus, 110.
       „      _remipes_, 111.
  _Exogyra conica_, 294, 311.
  Expansion of the Earth at the Equator, 84.
  Extinct Volcanoes of Auvergne, 51.
  Eye of Ichthyosaurus, 220.

  Falconer, Dr., on Brixham Cave, 473.
  Faluns, 355.
     „    of Paris Basin, 356.
  Fans, of Brecon, 128.
  Fault, a Dislocation of Strata, 71.
  Fauna, Definition of Term, 4.
    „    Devonian, 129.
    „    Neocomian, 287.
    „    of Permian Period, 183.
    „    of the Middle Oolite, 255.
    „    of the Upper Oolite, 265.
    „    of Cretaceous Period, 285, 294.
    „    of Eocene Period, 319.
    „    of Pliocene Period, 358.
    „    of Miocene Period, 339.
  Faxoe Beds, 309.
  Felis spelæa, 398.
  Felspar, composition of, 96.
  Fenestrella retiformis, 175.
  Ferns, 130, 134, 140, 176, 193, 239, 248, 282, 315.
  Fingal’s Cave, Staffa, 49, 50.
  Fisher, Rev. O., on Chillesford Clay, 372.
    „     on Warp and Trail, 461.
  Fishes, Silurian, 107.
     „    Bones of, 112.
     „    of Devonian Period, 125.
     „    of Carboniferous Period, 146.
     „    of Oolitic Seas, 266.
     „    of Cretaceous Seas, 285, 294.
     „    of Eocene Period, 326.
     „    of Miocene Period, 339.
  _Fissurella nembosa_, 463.
  _Fissures near Locarno_, 57.
  Flabellaria, 315, 329, 336.
       „       Chamæropifolia, 288.
  Flint-tools in peat-beds, 475.
  Flints, 281.
  Flora of Upper Cretaceous Period, 309.
    „   of Devonian Period, 120.
    „   of Cretaceous Period, 282.
    „   of Tertiary Period, 313.
    „   of Eocene Period, 329.
    „   of Triassic Period, 194.
    „   of Miocene Period, 326, 353, 381.
    „   of Carboniferous Period, 135.
    „   of Permian Period, 174, 183.
    „   of Pliocene Period, 381.
    „   of Upper Oolite Period, 266.
  Fluvio-marine Crag, 372.
  Foliation, Cause of, 77.
  Footprints in Rocks, 121, 173, 190, 196, 269.
    „        at Corncockle Moor, 13.
  Foraminifera, 146, 313, 326.
       „        _of the Chalk_, 146, 276, 286.
       „        _of the Mountain Limestone_, 146.
  Forbes (Professor Ed.) on the Pliocene Marine Fauna, 374.
  Forest-bed of Norfolk, 372, 418.
  Forest Marble, 243, 250, 252.
  _Formation of Primitive Granite_, 90.
  Fossil, Term Defined, 4.
    „     Bones, 4, 5.
    „     Uses of, 5.
    „     Condition of, 11.
    „     Footprints, 13.
    „     Species, relations of, to existing Species, 11.
    „     Ivory of Siberia, 388.
    „     _Palms restored_, 284.
    „     Shells, 4.
    „     Fishes, 175.
    „     Leeches, 217.
    „     Licorn, 398.
    „     Unicorn, 386.
  Fossils of Permian Formation, 173.
     „    of Keuper Formation, 201.
     „    of Upper Oolite, 265.
     „    of Neocomian Beds, 297.
     „    of Orgonian Beds, 297.
     „    of Aptien Beds, 297.
     „    of the Glauconie, 300.
     „    of Calcaire Grossier, 332.
     „    of Muschelkalk, 189.
     „    of New Red Sandstone, 187.
     „    of Argile Plastique, 332.
  Fournet on the Drôme, 299.
     „    on Eruptions of Granite, &c., 36.
     „    on Eruptions of Gas and Water, 64.
  Fox of Œningen, 338.
  _Fucoids_, 123.
  Fuller’s Earth, 243, 250.
  _Fusulina cylindrica_, 143.
  Future of the Earth and Man considered, 489.

  Gabian, Bituminous Springs of, 60.
  Gailenreuth, Caves of, 429, 430.
  Galacynus Œningensis, 339.
  Ganoid Fishes, 181, 217, 246.
  Garonne Valley, 428.
  Gastornis, 332.
  Gault, 281, 300, 309.
  Gavials of India, 259, 291.
  Geikie, Prof., on Till, 457.
  Gemerelli on Fossils, 6.
  _Geological humus_, 271.
       „      Inferences,  Hypothetical Nature of, 3.
  Geological Record, Complexity of, 30.
  Geology, Objects of, 2, 3.
    „      a Recent Science, 3.
    „      its  Influence  on  other Sciences, 3.
    „      How to be Studied, 3.
  Geosaurus, 256.
  Geoteuthis, 259.
  Gerilea protea, 318.
  _Geysers of Iceland_, 16, 67.
  Giants’ Causeways, 49.
     „        „      _in the Ardèche_, 48.
     „    Legends of, accounted for, 5.
  Gigantology, 384.
  Glacial Action during Permian Period, 174.
     „    Deposits of Northern England and Wales, 457.
     „    Period, 372, 378, 435.
     „    Evidences of, 463.
     „    Regions of Europe, 451.
     „    Theory of Martins, 462.
  Glacier System of Wales, 106.
     „    Systems, 440.
  Glaciers of Scotland, 454.
     „     of Switzerland, 449.
     „     of the British Isles, 457.
  Glauconie, or Glauconite, 300.
  Glaucous Chalk, 300, 310.
  Glenroy, Parallel Roads of, 456.
  Globe, Modification of Surface of, 26.
  Glyptodon, the, 401.
  Glyptolepis, 120.
  Gneiss of Cape Wrath, 32.
    „    Laurentian, 74.
    „    Composition of, 96.
  Goniatites, 127.
  _Goniatites evolutus_, 145.
  Goulet, Great and Little, 299.
  Granite, 182.
     „     Mineral Composition of, 32, 96.
     „     How Formed, 33.
     „     of St. Austell, 39.
     „     of Christiana, 36.
     „     of Dartmoor, 79.
     „     of Cornwall and Devon, 36, 38.
     „     Eruptions of, 90, 92, 98.
     „     Stratified or Foliated, 97.
     „     Qualities of, 32.
     „     How Formed, 33.
     „     _Veins of, at Cape Wrath_, 32.
  _Granitic Eruptions_, 92.
  Gran Seco, 410.
  Graptolites, 107.
  _Gravesend Chalk, under Microscope_, 278.
  Great Animal of Maestricht, 304.
  Great Oolite, 243, 250.
       „        Reptiles of, 250.
  Great Year, the, 436.
  Green, A. H., on Glacial Deposits, 458.
  Greensand, Upper and Lower, 275, 281, 297, 309.
  Greenstone, 35.
  Grès Bigarré, 37, 185.
  Grès de Beauchamp, 333.
  Grès des Vosges, 178.
  Grotta del Cane, 64.
  _Grotto des Demoiselles_, 433.
  Grotto of Cheeses, Trèves, 50.
  Gryphæa dilatata, 264.
     „    virgula, 269.
     „    _incurva_, 212.
  Gulf Stream, 435.
  Gymnogens, Plants with Naked Ovary, 152.
  Gymnosperms, 193, 283, 300.
  Gypseous Formation, 333.
  Gypsum Quarries of Montmartre, Fossils in, 73, 325.
  Gyroceras, 108.

  Haidingera speciosa, 194.
  Hakea, 318.
  Hallstadt Beds, 205.
  _Halysites catenularius_, 113.
  _Hamites_, 288, 297.
  Hannibal’s Elephants, 387.
  Harkness, Prof., on Glacial Deposits, 458.
  Harlech Sandstones, 101.
  Hastings Sands, 287.
  Hawaii, Volcanoes of, 59, 69.
  _Head of Cave-bear_, 398.
    „   _of Cave-hyæna_, 399.
    „   _of Mosasaurus Camperi_, 306.
    „   _of Rhinoceros tichorhinus_, 360.
  Headon Beds, 330, 332.
  _Hemicosmites pyriformis_, 108.
  Hennessey, on the Earth’s Crust, 89.
  Hepaticas, 315.
  _Herbaceous ferns_, 131.
  Herbivora, Eocene, 325.
  Heterocercal, 175.
  Hippopotamus, 360, 379.
  Hippurites, 301, 310.
  Holl, Dr., on Malvern Rocks, 78.
  Holoptychius, 154.
  <DW25> diluvii testis, 367.
  Homocercal, 175.
  Hopkins, Evan, on Earth’s Antiquity, 20.
     „       „   on  Terrestrial Magnetism, 22.
     „     W., Theory of Central Heat, 17.
     „      „  on the Earth’s Crust, 88.
  Horse, 379, 399, 417.
  Horse-tails, 134, 202.
  Hot Springs, 64.
  Hughes, T. McK., Discovery of Glutton by, 431.
  Hull, Prof., on Trias, 185.
        „      on Glacial Deposits, 458.
  Human Jaw, 472.
    „   Period, 474.
  Hunt, Rob., Electric Experiments of, 79.
    „   Prof. Sterry, on Formation of Crystalline Schists, 96.
  Hutton’s Theory of the Earth, 3.
  Hyæna Spelæa, 398, 417.
       „        _head of_, 399, 417.
  Hyænodon, 396.
  Hybodus, 217.
  Hyera, Island of, 70.
  Hylæosaurus, Lizard of the Woods, 205, 207, 225, 290.
  Hymenoptera, 225.

  Iceland, Geysers of, 16, 65, 67.
     „     Lava Streams in, 60.
     „     Volcanoes of, 60, 67.
  Ichthyodorulites, 217.
  Ichthyosaurus, 218, 229, 255, 256.
  Ichthyosaurus, Coprolites of, 12.
  _Ichthyosaurus communis_, 218.
        „        _platydon_, 219, 222.
  Igneous Rocks, 31, 182.
  Iguana, 293.
  Iguanodon, 292.
      „      Mantelli, 285.
      „      _Teeth of_, 293.
  _Illænus Barriensis_, 112.
  Incandescence of the Globe, 17.
        „       of the Sun, 17.
  Indian Traditions of the Father of the Ox, 347.
  Inferior Oolite, 249.
  Infra-Lias, 209.
  _Injected Veins of Granite_, 32.
  Insects, 157, 225, 334.
     „     of Coal-measures, 151.
     „     of Oolites, 255, 266.
  Iron Age, 478.
     „ Ore in Coal-measures, 165.
     „  „  in Orgonian Beds, 298.
  _Ischadites Kœnigii_, 118.
  Islands, Sudden Appearance of, 70.
  Isle of Bones, 388.
     „    Lächow, 388.
     „    Portland, 270.
     „    Purbeck, 271.
     „    Wight Alligator, 326.

  Jamieson, T. F., on Glenroy, 454.
  Jarrow Colliery, 139.
  Java, Volcanic Mountains of, 67, 69.
    „   Valley of Poison, 64.
  _Jaw and Tooth of Megalosaurus_, 291.
         „       _of Phascolotherium_, 245.
         „       _of Thylacotherium_, 245.
  Jet, 274.
  Juglandites elegans, 283.
  Jukes, J. B., on Devonian and Old Red Sandstone, 129.
  Jura Mountains, 243, 273.
  Jurassic Limestone, 243.
     „     Distribution of, 272.
     „     Reptiles of, 220.
     „     Plants of the, 238.
     „     Series, Distinguishing  Features of, 215.

  Kangaroo, 245.
  Kea, Mauna, 61, 69.
  Kellaways Rock, 264.
  Kent’s Hole, 380, 472.
  Kentish Rag, 287.
  Keuper, 199, 293.
     „    Rock Salt in, 199, 204.
  Kilauea, Volcano of, 56.
     „     Eruption of, 69.
     „     Crater of, 56, 59.
  Kimeridge Clay, 19, 243, 266, 269.
  King, Prof., on Permian System, 174.
  Kirkdale Cave, 380, 398, 429.
  Kjökken-Mödden, 477.
  Koessen Beds, 208.
  Kupfer Schiefer, 170.

  Labradorite, 44.
  Labyrinthodon, 190.
        „        _pachygnathus_, 12.
  _Labyrinthodon restored_, 193.
  La Coupe d’Ayzac, Crater of, 45.
  Lacunosus laciniatus, 184.
  Lacustrine Habitations, 472.
  Ladies’ Fingers, 216.
  Lake Dwellings, 472.
  Lamellibranchs, 266.
  Landscape Stone, 208.
  Land-turtles, 190.
  Laplace’s Theory of the Earth, 17, 80.
  Lasmocyathus, 146.
  Laurentian Formation in Britain, 10, 79.
      „      Gneiss, 74.
  Lava Formations, 39, 51, 59.
    „  Streams of, 59.
  Lecoq, on Triassic Vegetation, 194.
      „     Keuper Flora, 202.
      „     Cretaceous Flora, 282.
      „     Tertiary Flora, 316.
      „     Flora of Miocene Period, 336.
      „     the Vegetation of Pliocene Period, 357.
  Leibnitz’ Fossil Unicorn, 386.
  Lepidodendra, 134, 138, 157, 173.
  Lepidodendron carinatum, 134, 138.
        „       _elegans_, 140.
        „       _Sternbergii_, 139, 141.
        „       _Sternbergii restored_, 142.
  Lepidoptera, 255.
  _Lepidostrobus variabilis_, 140.
  Lepidotus, 266, 272.
     „       gigas, 217.
  Leptæna Murchisoni, 127.
  _Le Puy, Chain of_, 51.
  Lias, The, 211;
    „  Lower, Upper, and Middle, 212.
  Liassic Period, 211, 217.
     „    Fauna, 213.
     „    Flora, 239.
  Libellula, 243.
  Licorn Fossil, 386.
  Life, First Appearance of, 99.
   „    Abundance of, in Upper Silurian Times, 104.
  Lignite, 337, 354.
  Lima gigantea, 212.
   „   striata, 189.
   „   proboseilea, 246.
  Limestone, 212.
      „      of La Beauce, 355.
      „      of Solenhofen, 243, 273.
      „      Metamorphism of, 73, 75.
  Limnæa, 272, 334.
  Lingula, 107.
     „     Credneri, 175.
     „     Flags, 101, 107.
  Lions with Curly Manes, 184.
  Lipari Isles, 55, 68.
  Lithographic Limestone of Solenhofen, 343.
  _Lithostrotion_, 181.
         „         _basaltiforme_, 145.
  _Lituites cornu-arietis_, 108.
  Lizard of the Meuse, 305.
  Llanberis Slates, 101.
  Llandeilo Flags, 109.
  Llandovery Rocks, 107.
  Loa, Mauna, 55.
  _Locarno, Fissures of_, 57, 58.
  Logan, Sir W., on Laurentian Gneiss of Canada, 10, 74.
  Logan, Sir W., on Underclay of Coal Measures, 161.
  Lomatophloyos crassicaule, 134, 138.
  _Lonchopteris Bricii_, 134, 144.
  London Clay, Flora of, 331.
  Longmynd Hills, 101.
  _Lonsdalea floriformis_, 145.
  Lophiodon, 325, 333.
  Lower Cretaceous Period, 286, 297.
    „   Keuper Sandstone, 186, 204.
    „   Neocomian, 297.
    „   Lias, 212.
    „   Silurian Rocks, 104.
    „   Oolite Fauna, 244.
    „   Oolite Rocks, 249.
    „   Greensand, 281, 287.
  Lucerne, The Giant of, 385.
  Ludlow Bone-beds, 112.
    „    Rocks, 111.
  _Lupea pelagica_, 354.
  Lycopodiaceæ, 134, 151.
  Lycopods, 123, 134.
  Lyell, Sir Charles, on Formation of Granite, 33, 36.
  Lyell, Sir Charles, on the Upper Cretaceous Flora, 300.
  Lyme Regis, 219, 225.

  Machairodus, 379.
       „       _Tooth of_, 380.
  Macrorhynchus, 265, 272.
  Madrepores, 266.
  Maestricht Quarries, 285.
      „      Animal of, 302.
      „      Beds, 303, 304, 309.
  Magnesian Limestone, 170, 178.
  Magnetism, Terrestrial, Evan Hopkins on, 22.
  Malvern Hills, Dr. Holl on, 78.
  Mammals, First Appearance of, 207, 244.
     „     of Pliocene Period, 358.
  Mammaliferous Crag, 372.
  Mammiferous Didelphæ, 245.
  Mammoth, 347.
     „     of Ohio, 347.
     „     of the Unstrut, 386.
     „     Origin of Name, 388.
     „     Siberian Accounts of, 387-395.
     „     _restored_, 395.
     „     _Skeleton of the_, 383, 394.
     „     Teeth and Tusks of, 342.
     „     Tooth of the, 384.
  Man and Animals Compared, 465.
   „  First Appearance of, 382.
   „  Antiquity of, considered, 478.
   „  Age of St. Acheul Beds, 479.
   „  Morlot’s Calculation, 479.
  Mantell’s, Dr., Discoveries, 290.
  Marble, 74.
     „    Carrara, 73, 76.
     „    Cipoline, 76.
     „    of France, 76.
  Marbre de Flandres and M. de petit Granit, 150.
  Mare’s-tail, 134.
  Marl, 199.
  Marl-slate, 160.
  Marlstone of the Lias, 212.
  Marsupial Mammals, 207, 245, 250, 263.
  Martins, C., on Glaciers, 462.
  Mastodon, 341, 356, 360.
     „      its Discovery, 342.
     „      Opinions of Naturalists, 343.
     „      Difference from Mammoth, 341.
     „      Molar Tooth of, 346.
     „      Arvernensis, 372.
     „      angustidens, 347.
     „      _restored_, 345.
     „      _Skeleton of_, 344.
     „      _Skeleton of the Turin_, 359.
     „      _Teeth of_, 341, 342.
  Mauna Loa and Mauna Kea, 56, 69.
  Mazuyer’s Pretended Discovery, 348.
  _Meandrina Dædalæa_, 251.
  Mechanical Theory of the Earth, 15.
  Megaceros Hibernicus, 184, 400.
  Megalonyx, 371, 382, 400, 411.
  Megalosaurus, 291.
      „        _Jaw of_, 291.
      „        _Tooth of_, 291, 380.
  Megalichthys, 154.
  Megatherium, 382, 401, 418.
       „       _Pelvis of_, 407.
       „       _Restored_, 409.
       „       _Skeleton of_, 403.
       „           „     _foreshortened_, 406.
  Megatheroid Animals, Habits of, 413.
  Mendip Hills, Denudation of, 28.
  Mesopithecus, 339, 350.
       „        _restored_, 349.
       „        _Skeleton of_, 349.
  _Metallic veins_, 91.
  Metamorphic Rocks, 4, 71.
  Metamorphism, Special and General, 65, 71, 74.
       „        Action of, on Limestone, 71, 72, 75.
       „        of Combustible Materials, 14, 72.
       „        of Argillaceous Beds, 73.
       „        Cause of, 78.
  _Meudon Chalk under Microscope_, 277.
  Mexican Deluge, 485.
  Mezen, Le, Peak of, 44.
  Mica, Composition of, 96.
  Mica-schist, 77, 377.
  Microdon, 266.
  Microlestes, 207.
      „        Discovery of teeth of by Mr. C. Moore, 208.
  Middle Lias, 212.
     „   Oolite, 255.
  Miliola, 329.
  Millepora alcicornis, 240.
  Miller, Hugh, How he became a Geologist, 10.
    „     First Lesson in Geology, 124.
  Milliolites, 333.
  Mimosa, 318.
  Mineral Masses composing the Earth’s Crust, 27.
  Mines, Greatest Depths of, 88.
  Miocene, Meaning of, 314.
  Miocene Period, 336.
     „    Vegetation, 336, 339, 353, 381.
     „    Fauna, 339, 350.
     „    Volcanoes of, 51.
     „    Foraminifera, 356.
     „    Rocks of Greece, 339.
  Moel Tryfaen, 459.
  _Molar Teeth of Mastodon_, 346.
  Molasse, or Soft Clay, 338, 355.
  Mollusca, 245.
     „      of Pliocene, 371.
     „      of Eocene, 319.
     „      of Miocene, 350.
     „      of Crag, 373.
     „      Gasteropodous, 266.
  _Monitor Niloticus_, 305.
  Monocotyledons, 151, 266.
  Montmartre, Gypseous Series of, 333.
      „       Cuvier on Fossils of, 7.
  Mont Dore, 40, 43.
  Moraines, 444.
  Moro, Lazzaro, 6.
  Mortillet on Glaciers, 449.
  Mosaic Account of Creation, 24.
  Mosasaurus, 285, 302, 305.
       „      _Camperi_, 306.
  Mosses, 336.
  Moulin-Quignon, Chalk Beds of, 476.
  _Mount Ararat_, 480.
     „   Hecla, 67.
     „   Idienne, 64.
     „   Sion, 449.
  Mountain Limestone, 149.
  Mountains, First Appearance of, 90.
      „      Chains, Formation of, 28.
  Mud Volcanoes, 59.
         „       of Italy, 60, 63.
  Murchison, Sir R. I., Founder of Silurian System, 10, 102.
  _Murex Turonensis_, 350.
  Muschelkalk, 185, 188.
  Mussels, 189.
  Mylodon, 382, 400, 410, 413, 418.
      „    _Lower Jaw of_, 412.
      „    _restored_, 411.
  Mytilus, 189.

  Nabenstein, Cavern of, 432.
  Naïdaceæ, 266.
  Nantwich Salt-works, 204.
  Nasal Horn of Iguanodon, 292.
  Natica, 189.
  Nautilus, 215.
  Nebular Theory of the Earth, 15.
  Nenuphar, 316.
  Neocomian Beds, 287, 297.
     „       „    of France, 286, 287.
     „      Formation, 286.
     „      Fauna of, 287.
  Neptunian Rocks, 30.
      „     Theory, 6.
  Nereites Cambriensis, 108.
  Neuroptera, 250.
  Neuropteris elegans, 194.
      „       _gigantea_, 143, 176.
  New Red Marl, 186.
     „   Period, 185.
     „   Sandstone, 185, 187.
     „   Plants of, 193.
     „   Colour of, 201.
     „   Fauna of, 201.
  New Zealand, Birds of, 184.
  Newer Pliocene, 372.
    „       „     of Alps, 377.
    „       „     of Sicily, 374.
  Nicol, Prof., on Ben Nevis, 90.
  Nilssonia, 194, 239.
  Nöggerathia, 177.
  Norfolk Forest Bed, 372.
  Northern Deluge, 424.
  Norwich Crag, 372, 478.
  Nothosaurus, 190, 196.
  Nummulites, 313, 326, 333.
  Nummulitic Formation, 334.
       „     Limestone, 326.
  Nympheaceæ, 315.

  Odontaspis, 294.
  _Odontopteris Brardii_, 144.
        „       Cycades, 212.
  Œchmodus Buchii, 217.
  Œningen Formation, 338.
      „   Limestone, 367.
  _Ogygia Guettardi_, 107.
  Old Red Sandstone, 119.
   „   „  Colour of, 120.
   „   „  Period, Vegetation of, 120.
   „   „  Fishes of, 124.
   „   „  Rocks of, 128.
   „   „  Conglomerate of, 129.
  Older Pliocene, 372.
  Oldhamia, 101.
  Oldhaven Beds, 331.
  Olivine, 44.
  Oolite, 243, 272.
     „    of Solenhofen, 273.
     „    Upper, 243.
     „    Lower, 243, 244.
     „    Middle, 243.
     „    Great, 243.
     „    Conifers of, 249.
     „    Rocks, 249.
  Oolitic Fauna, 244.
     „    Mollusca, 246.
     „    Echinoderms, 247.
     „    Insects, 255, 266.
     „    Period, 243.
     „    Flora of, 248, 249, 255, 266.
     „    Mammals of, 255.
     „    Reptiles of, 256.
     „    Corals of, 247.
     „    Zoophytes of, 247.
  Ophiopsis, 246.
  Opossum, 245.
  Orgon Limestone, 297, 298, 299.
  Ornithorhynchus, 223, 245.
  Orthoceras, 141.
      „       Disappearance of, 205.
      „       _laterale_, 145.
  Orthoceratites, 104.
  Orthoclase, 33, 96, 418.
  Orthopithecus, 418.
  _Osmeroides Mantelli_, 294.
  Ossiferous Beds of Sansan, 350.
       „     Breccia, 2, 432.
  Ostrea deltoidea, 269.
     „   distorta, 272.
     „   liassica, 207, 212.
     „   _longirostris_, 350.
     „   Marshii, 246.
     „   virgula, 269.
  _Otopteris acuminata_, 248.
       „     _dubia_, 248.
       „     _obtusa_, 248.
       „     _cuneata_, 248.
  Ovid a geologist, 6.
  Owen, Prof., on Megatheroid Animals,   413.
       „       on Plesiosaurus, 228.
  Ox, 382, 399.
  Oxford Clay, 243, 264.
  Oysters, 175, 213.

  Pachyderms, 312, 319, 418.
  Pachypteris microphylla, 255.
  Palæocoma Furstembergii, 213.
  Palæoniscus, 175.
  Palæontology, the Study of Ancient Life, 5.
  Palæontology Defined, 14.
  _Palæophognos Gesneri_, 421.
  Palæotherium, 319.
       „        _magnum and P. minimum, Skeletons of_, 322.
       „        _Skull of_, 321.
  Palæoxyris Münsteri, 202.
  Palæozoic Fishes, 173.
  Palissy, Bernard, on Fossils, 5.
  Pallas on the Siberian Rhinoceros, 361.
    „    on the Siberian Mammoth, 386.
  Palmacites, 315.
  Palms, 282.
    „    absence of, in Pliocene Period,   358.
    „    of Tertiary Epoch, 336.
    „    of Cretaceous Period, 283, 297.
    „    _Fossil, restored_, 284.
  Paludina, 272.
  Pampean Formation, 411.
  Pandanaceæ, The, 249.
  Pandanus, 255.
  Pappenheim, Lithographic Stone of,   273.
  _Paradoxides Bohemicus_, 100.
  _Parallel Roads of Glenroy_, 456.
  Parian Marble, 76.
  Paris Basin, Sir C. Lyell on, 329.
  Parkfield Colliery, 159.
  _Patella vulgata_, 205.
  _Peaks of the Cantal Chain_, 40.
  Pear Encrinite, 250.
  Peat-deposits and Shell-mounds, 472.
  Pecopteris, 120, 202, 252, 315.
      „       _lonchitica_, 143.
  Pecten, 201, 272.
    „     _Jacobæus_, 371.
    „     _orbicularis_, 202.
    „     Valoniensis, 207.
  Penarth Beds, 186, 205, 207.
  Pennine Chain, 115.
  _Pentacrinites Briareus_, 183, 214.
  Perched Blocks, 449.
  Permian Flora, 174.
     „    Rocks, 177, 186.
     „    Ocean, 180.
     „    Period, 15, 170.
     „    Fauna and Flora of, 183.
  _Perna Mulleti_, 288.
  Phascolotherium, 245, 255.
  Philadelphia Museum, 346.
  Phillips, Prof. J., on Rate of Formation of Coal, 132.
  Phillips, Prof. J., on Thickness of Carboniferous Limestone, 130.
  Phonolite, 43.
  _Physa fontinalis_, 266.
  Phytosaurus, 190.
  Pic de Sancy, 41, 43.
  Pimpinellites zizioides, 337.
  Pinites, 239.
  Pisolitic Limestone, 311.
  Pithecus antiquus, 339, 350, 356.
  Placodus gigas, 189.
  Planorbis, 266, 272, 334.
      „      _corneus_, 488.
  Plants, First Appearance of, 99.
     „    _of Devonian Period_, 123.
     „    _of the Palæozoic Epoch_, 114.
  Plastic Clay, 330.
  Platemys, 255.
  Platycrinus, 146.
  Platysomus, 174.
  Pleistocene Period, 378.
  Plesiosaurus, 221, 226, 255.
        „       Cramptoni, 230.
        „       _Sternum of_, 228.
        „       _Skull of_, 226.
        „       _Skeleton of_, 229.
  Pleuronectes, 326.
  _Pleurotoma Babylonia_, 246.
  Pleurotomaria conoidea, 246.
  Pliocene, Meaning of, 314.
      „     Period, 357.
      „     Birds of, 369.
      „     Series, 372.
      „     Vegetation of, 357.
      „     Fauna of, 359, 369.
      „     Reptiles of, 367.
      „     Mollusca of, 371.
  Plombières, Alkaline Waters of, 64.
  Plutonic Rocks, 31.
     „     Theory, 6.
     „     Eruptions, 31.
     „     Ancient Granite, 31.
  _Podophthalmus vigil_, 353.
  Pœcilopleuron, 265.
  Poikilitic Series, 199.
  Polyphemus, Supposed Bones of, 384.
  Polypodium, 315.
  Polyps of Carboniferous Period, 141, 246, 255, 286, 301.
  Polyzoa, 141, 143, 175, 307.
  Pontgibaud Mines, 64.
  Porphyritic Granite, 33.
  Porphyry, 33, 37.
      „     Definition of, 37.
      „     Components of, 37.
  Portland Isle, 270.
     „     Dirt Bed, 271.
     „     Sand, 243, 266.
     „     Stone, 243, 269.
  Posidonia, 189.
  Post-pliocene Period, 378.
       „        Animals of the, 382.
       „        Birds of the, 417.
       „        Carnivora of, 417.
       „        Deposits in Britain, 417.
  Post-Tertiary Epoch, 378.
  Potamogeton, 315.
  Pravolta, 447.
  Pre-glacial deposits, 418.
  Preissleria antiqua, 202.
  Prestwich, J., on Glacial Deposits, 459.
  PRIMARY EPOCH, 99.
     „      „    Retrospective Glance at, 180.
     „      „    Vegetation of, 182.
  Proboscideans of Crag, 372.
  Producta, 173, 175.
      „     _horrida_, 149.
  _Producta Martini_, 145, 205.
      „     subaculeata, 127.
  Protogine, 35.
  Protopteris, 283.
  Psammodus, 141.
  Psaronius, 174.
  _Psilophyton_, 123.
  Pteraspis, 129.
  _Pterichthys_, 125.
  Pteroceras, 269.
  Pterodactyles, 221, 233, 240, 243, 245.
       „         _brevirostris_, 235.
       „         _crassirostris_, 234, 256.
  Pterophyllum, 239, 249, 255.
       „        Jägeri, 202.
       „        Münsteri, 202.
  Pterygotus, 110.
      „       _bilobatus_, 113.
  Ptylopora, 146.
  Purbeck Beds, 269, 271, 279.
     „    Marble, 272.
     „    Isle of, 271.
  Puy-de-Dôme, 40, 43.
  _Puy-de-Dôme, Extinct Volcanoes of_, 53.
  Puys, Chain of, in Central France, 51.
  Pycnodus, 190.
  Pygopterus, 174.

  Quadersandstein, 211.
  QUATERNARY EPOCH, 378.
      „        „    Animals of, 382.
  Quartz, 96.
  Quartziferous Porphyry, 33.
  Quartzite, 77.

  Rain, First Fall of, 95.
  _Raindrops, Impressions of, in Rocks_, 14, 102, 173.
  Raised Beaches, 488.
  _Ramphorynchus_, 255, 259, 269.
  Ramsay, A. C., on the Lower Oolite, 252.
     „      „    on Formation of Keuper Marls, 201.
     „      „    on Colour of Red Rocks, 101.
     „      „    on Denudation, 28.
     „      „    on Formation of Granite, 33.
     „      „    on Glacial Deposits, 458.
  Reading Beds, 330.
  Recent or Historical Period, 378.
  Re-construction of Fossil Animals from a Part, 7.
         „        Difficulties Attendant on, 8.
  Red Crag, 372.
  Reindeer, 379.
  _Relative Volume of the Earth_, 83.
  _Remains of Plesiosaurus macrocephalus_, 229.
  Reptiles, Prevalence of during Secondary Epoch, 201, 220.
      „           „       during Cretaceous Period, 285.
      „           „       during the Pliocene Period, 358, 366.
  Rhætic Strata, 180, 205, 267.
  Rhinoceros, 360.
      „       Discovery of, Entire, in Siberia, 361, 379.
      „       _Head of_, 360.
      „       tichorhinus, 360, 428.
  Rhombus minimus, 326.
  _Rhyncholites_, 181.
  Rio Chapura, Humidity of, 337.
  Ripple-marks, 15.
        „       on Sandstone, 173, 204, 252.
  River, Great, of Cretaceous Period, 279.
  Roc, 361.
  Roches moutonnées, 443, 447.
  Rock, in Geology, 28.
  Rocks composing the Earth’s Crust, 27.
    „   formed during the Carboniferous Limestone Period, 149.
    „   Crystalline, 28.
  Rock Salt, its Origin, 199.
      „      Quantity produced in England, 304.
  Rocking Stones, 35.
  Rosso Antico, 37.
  Rostellaria, 189.
  Rothliegende, 170, 174.
  Rudistes, 301.
  Runn of Cutch, 200.

  Sables Inférieurs, 331.
    „    Moyens, 333.
  Saccharoid Limestone, Minerals of, 76.
  St. Acheul Gravel Beds, 476.
  St. Acheul Gravel Beds, probable Age of, 479.
  St. Austell, Granite of, 39.
  St. Cassian Beds, 205.
  St. Christopher’s Tooth, 385.
  Salamander of Œningen, 367.
  Salicites, 283.
  Saliferous or Keuper Period, 186, 199.
        „            „         Fauna of, 201.
  Saline Springs, 23.
  Salses, 60.
  Salt Mines, 199, 204.
  Sandwich Islands, Volcanoes of, 56, 69.
  Sargassites, 309.
  Sargassum, 309.
  Saurians, 187.
      „     of Cretaceous Period, 285.
      „     of Lias, 229.
  Savoy Alps, 440.
  Scandinavian Continent, Upheaval and Depression of, 282.
  Scaphites, 288.
  Scelidotherium, 406, 412.
        „         _Skull of_, 413.
  _Scheuchzer’s Salamander_, 367.
  Schist, 77, 97.
  Schistopleuron typus, 401.
        „          „    _restored_, 402.
  Schizaster, 326.
  Scoriæ, Volcanic, 57.
  Sea-Pen, Virgularia Patagonia, 263.
  Sea Urchins, 205, 286.
  SECONDARY EPOCH, 185.
  _Section of a Volcano in Action_, 52.
  Sectional Appearance of the Earth, 2.
  Sedgwick, Prof. A., on Cambrian Rocks, 10.
           „          on Granite of Devon and Cornwall, 39.
           „          on Classification of Rocks, 102.
  Sedimentary Rocks, 28.
  Senonian Beds, 309, 310.
  Septaria, 331.
  Serpentine, 38.
  Serpents of Tertiary Epoch, 379.
  Serpulæ, 126, 272.
  Shell Mounds, 478.
  Shells, Marine, on Tops of Mountains, 5.
  Sheppey, Isle of, 331.
     „        „     Turtles of, 331.
  Siberia, Fossil Elephants in, 387.
  Sigillaria, 130, 136, 152, 157.
       „      _lavigata_, 138.
       „      _reniformis_, 157.
  Silex meulier, 356.
  Siliceous Limestone, 333.
  Silurian Period, 102.
      „    Divisions of, 109, 110.
      „    Characteristics of, 103.
      „    Fauna and Flora of, 104.
      „    Fishes of, 107.
      „    Mollusca of, 108.
      „    _Plants_ of, 103.
      „    System, 102.
  Sivatherium, 365.
      „        _restored_, 366.
  Skaptár Jokul, 60.
  _Skeleton of Ichthyosaurus_, 218.
      „    _of Plesiosaurus_, 227.
  _Skull of Plesiosaurus_, 226.
       „    _Palæotherium magnum_, 321.
       „    _Scelidotherium_, 413.
  Skye, Basalt of Isle of, 49.
  Smith, Dr. W., Labours of, 9.
  Smilax, 202.
  Solenhofen, Limestone of, 273.
  Solfataras, 63.
  Somma, Mount, 68.
  Somme, River, Valley of, 475.
     „   Peat-Beds of the, 475.
  South America, Depression and Upheaval of, 21.
  Spalacotherium, 265.
  Sphenophyllum, 154, 269.
        „        _restored_, 153.
  Sphenophyllites, 136.
  Sphenopteris, 136.
       „        _artemisiæfolia_, 144.
  Spirifera, 173, 175.
      „      concentrica, 127.
      „      undulata, 175.
  Sphœrodus, 190.
  _Staffa, Grotto of_, 50.
  Stag, gigantic Forest, 379.
  Stalactite, 430.
  Stalagmite, 430.
  Stellispongia variabilis, 205.
  Stenosaurus, 265.
  _Sternum and Pelvis of Plesiosaurus_, 228.
  Stigmaria, 130, 137, 157, 162.
  _Stigmaria_, 138.
  Stone Age, The, 478.
  Stone Lilies, 127.
  Stonesfield Slate, 243, 245, 250, 252.
  Strata, Disposition of, 2.
  Stratification, Order of, 29.
          „       _of Coal Beds_, 165.
  Strephodus, 266.
  Streptospondylus, 265.
  Stringocephalus Burtini, 127.
  Stromboli, Volcanic Island of, 55, 68.
  _Strophalosia Morrisiana_, 176.
  Struthionidæ, 193.
  Submarine Volcanoes, 70.
  Sub-Apennine Strata, 373.
  Suffolk Crag, 372.
  Sulphurous Streams from Mount Idienne, 64.
  Sun-cracks, 102, 173.
  Syenite, 34.

  Tæniopteris, 315.
  Taxoceras, 289.
  Taxodites, 239.
      „      Münsterianus, 202.
  Teeth of Mammoth, 384.
  _Teeth of Iguanodon_, 293.
       „    _Mastodon_, 346.
       „    _Megalosaurus_, 291, 380.
       „    _Machairodus_, 380.
  Teleosaurus, 245, 256, 259.
        „      cadomensis, 259.
  Temperature of the Earth, Increase of as we descend, 2, 16, 87.
       „            „       at Various Depths, 16.
       „            „       of Deep Mines, 16, 88.
       „            „       at the Centre, 16.
       „      of Planetary Regions, 86.
       „      uniform, in Carboniferous Period, 133.
       „      Gradual Alteration of, during Tertiary Period, 313.
       „      of Cretaceous Period, 283.
  _Terebellaria ramosissima_, 184.
  _Terebratula digona_, 246.
        „      decussata, 252.
        „      hastata, 141.
        „      _deformis_, 290.
        „      _subsella_, 266.
  _Terebrirostra lyra_, 290.
  Terrestrial Plants of Devonian Period, 120.
  Tertiary Period, 312.
         „         Vegetation of, 313.
         „         Animals of, 312.
  Tetragonolepis, 217.
  Teutobocchus Rex, 348.
  Thallogens, 123.
  Thanet Beds, 330.
  _Theoretical View of a Plateau_, 47.
  Theories of the Earth, 15.
  Theory, Hutton’s, 3.
     „    Laplace’s, 17.
  Thermal Springs, 23.
  Thickness of the Earth’s Crust, 89.
  Thomson, Sir William, on the Earth’s Crust, 89.
  _Thylacotherium_, 245.
  Tidal Wave, 22.
  Tile Stones, 110.
  Till Formation, 457.
  Tortoises, 401.
  Toxoceras, 289.
  Toxodon, 412.
  Trachyte, 39.
  Trachytic Formations, 39.
  Trail, 461.
  Transition, or Primary Epoch, 99.
  _Transported Blocks_, 449.
        „      Rocks, 27.
  Trapa natans, 315.
  _Trappean Grotto, Staffa_, 47.
  Travertin, 333.
  Tree Ferns, 174, 240.
  Tremadoc Slates, 109.
  _Treuil, Coal Mine at_, 160.
  Triassic Period, 185.
     „     Flora, 187, 193, 202.
  Trigonia, 12, 205.
      „     _margaritacea_, 314.
  _Trigonocarpum Nöggerathii_, 177.
  Trilobites, 104, 107, 110, 126, 141, 181.
  Trimmer, Joshua, on Moel Tryfaen, 459.
  _Trinucleus Lloydii_, 129.
  _Trionyx of Tertiary Period_, 326.
  Trionyx, a Turtle, 319, 326, 329.
  Tropical Vegetation, D’Orbigny on, 337.
  _Trunk of Calamites_, 136.
      „     _Sigillaria_, 136.
  Tunbridge Wells Sand, 286.
  Turbaco, Mud Volcanoes of, 61.
  Turonian Series, 309, 310.
  Turrilites, 289.
      „       _communis_, 290.
      „       _costatus_, 289.
  _Turritella terebra_, 289.
  Turtle, 187, 237, 272, 319, 326, 329, 331, 356.
  Tyndall’s, Professor, Theory of Heat, 24.

  Uncites Gryphus, 127.
  Under Clay, 161.
  Unicornu Fossile, 386.
  Unio, 266.
  Upper Cretaceous, 300-306.
    „   Greensand, 300, 309.
    „   Oolite, 265.
    „   Lias, 212, 273.
    „   Lias Clay, 212.
    „   Silurian Period, 110.
  Ursus spelæus, 184, 395, 417.
        „        _Head of_, 184.

  Vale of Wardour, 269.
  Valley of Poison, 64.
  Vallisneri on Marine Deposits of Italy, 6.
  Variegated Sandstone, 187.
  _Veins of Granite traversing Gneiss of Cape Wrath_, 32.
  Velay, Chain of the, 43.
  Vertebrata, First Appearance of, 107.
  Vespertilio Parisiensis, 326.
  Vesuvius, 56, 68.
     „      _Existing Crater of_, 56.
  Virgularia, 263.
  Vivarais, Valley of, 47.
  Volcanic Bombs, 59.
     „     Ashes, 58.
     „     Scoriæ, 57.
     „     Eruptions, 57.
     „     Formations, 51.
     „     Islands, 55.
     „     Rocks, 31, 39.
  _Volcano in Action_, 52.
  Volcanoes, 51.
      „      Action of, 57, 63.
      „      Active, 55, 67.
      „      Mud, 60, 63.
      „      Extinct, 63.
      „      Sandwich Islands, 56.
      „      Watery, 23, 59.
  Voltaire and Buffon, 6.
  Voltzia heterophylla, 194.
  _Voltzia restored_, 195.
  Vosges Mountains, 75.
     „       „      Submergence of in Permian Period, 180.

  Wadhurst Clay, 286.
  Walchia, 177.
      „    _Schlotheimii_, 176.
  Warp, 461.
  Water, First Cradle of Life, 100.
  Waterstones, 245.
  Watery Volcanoes, 23, 59.
  Weald Clay, 279, 281, 286, 298.
  Wealden Beds, 279.
     „    Shells, 281.
  Wenlock Rocks, 110.
  Whale of the Rue Dauphine, 370.
  White Chalk, Berthier’s Analysis, 298.
  White Lias, 208.
  Wild Man of Aveyron, 469.
  Williamsonia, 239.
  Wood, Searles V., Junr., on Glacial Deposits, 460.
  Wookey Hole, 474.
  Woolwich and Reading Beds, 330.
  Wright, Dr. Thos., on Penarth Beds, 209.

  Xiphodon, 320, 324, 329.
      „     _gracile_, 324.

  Ysbrants Ides’ Account of Discovery of Frozen Mammoth, 389.
  Yuccites, 194.

  Zamia, 249, 270.
    „    Moreana, 255.
  Zamites, 194, 239, 255, 297.
  Zechstein, 170.
  Zeolites, 44.
  Ziphius, 370.
  Zones of different density round the incandescent Earth, 85.
  Zoophytes of Lias, 238.
      „     Middle Oolite, 263.
      „     of Carboniferous Period, 141.
  _Zostera_, 123, 266.


THE END.


  CASSELL, PETTER, AND GALPIN, BELLE SAUVAGE WORKS, LONDON, E.C.
  773




MESSRS. CASSELL, PETTER, & GALPIN


Publish, uniform with “The World before the Deluge,” _New and Cheaper
Editions_ of the following Works, containing all the Original
Illustrations, with the Text revised and corrected:--

  _The Insect World._--A Popular Account of the Orders of Insects.
  By LOUIS FIGUIER. Revised and Corrected by P. MARTIN DUNCAN,
  M.D., F.R.S., Professor of Geology in King’s College, London.
  With 576 Illustrations                                   7s. 6d.

  _The Vegetable World._--A History of Plants, with their
  Botanical Descriptions and Peculiar Properties. With a Glossary
  of Botanical Terms. By LOUIS FIGUIER. Revised and Corrected by
  an eminent Botanist. With 470 Illustrations              7s. 6d.

  _The Ocean World._--A Descriptive History of the Sea and
  its Inhabitants. By LOUIS FIGUIER. Revised and Corrected by
  Professor E. PERCEVAL WRIGHT, M.D. With 427
  Illustrations                                            7s. 6d.

  _Reptiles and Birds._--By LOUIS FIGUIER. Newly Edited and
  Revised by PARKER GILLMORE, Author of “Gun, Rod, and Saddle,”
  &c. With 307 Illustrations. 664 pp.                      7s. 6d.

    “Admirable works of popularised science.”--_Daily Telegraph._


CASSELL, PETTER, & GALPIN,

LONDON, PARIS, AND NEW YORK.




The New and Cheaper Edition of

=FIGUIER’S WORKS=,

Containing all the Original Illustrations, with the Text Revised and
Corrected, extra crown 8vo, cloth lettered, price =7s. 6d.= each,
comprise

    _The World before the Deluge._ Newly Edited and Revised by H. W.
    BRISTOW, F.R.S. With 235 Illustrations. _Third Edition._

    _The Ocean World._ A Descriptive History of the Sea and its
    Inhabitants. Revised and Corrected by Professor E. PERCEVAL
    WRIGHT, M.D. With 427 Illustrations. _Third Edition._

    _The Vegetable World._ Revised and Corrected by an EMINENT
    BOTANIST. With 471 Illustrations. _Third Edition._

    _The Insect World._ Revised and Corrected by P. MARTIN DUNCAN,
    M.D., F.R.S., Professor of Geology in King’s College, London.
    With 576 Illustrations. _Third Edition._

    _Reptiles and Birds._ Revised and Corrected by Captain PARKER
    GILLMORE. With 307 Illustrations. _Second Edition._


POPULAR NATURAL HISTORY WORKS.

SECOND EDITION now ready, price 16s.

    _The Transformations of Insects._ By P. MARTIN DUNCAN, F.R.S.,
    M.D., Professor of Geology, King’s College, London. With 240
    highly-finished Engravings. Royal 8vo, 500 pp., handsomely bound
    in cloth gilt.

Now ready, complete in Four Vols., cloth. 7s. 6d.; cloth, gilt edges,
10s. 6d. each; or Two Vols., half-calf, £2 2s.

    _Cassell’s Brehm’s Book of Birds._ Translated from the Text of
    Dr. BREHM by Professor T. RYMER JONES, F.R.S. With upwards of
    400 Engravings on Wood, and numerous full-page Plates, printed
    in Colours, from Original Designs by F. W. KEYL.

SECOND EDITION, 256 pages, crown 8vo, cloth, price 5s.

    _The Dog_: with Simple Directions for his Treatment, and Notices
    of the Best Dogs of the Day, their Breeders and Exhibitors. By
    “IDSTONE.” With 12 full-page Portraits of Famous Dogs, Drawn
    from Life by GEORGE EARL.

Complete in Two Vols., crown 4to, 1,532 pp., cloth, 30s.

    _Cassell’s Popular Natural History._ Profusely Illustrated with
    about =2,000= splendid Engravings and Tinted Plates. Can also be
    had in Two Volumes, half-calf, 45s.; half-morocco, 50s.; also,
    with  Illustrations, in Four Volumes, cloth, 42s.

Complete in One Volume, 600 pages, demy 4to, 31s. 6d.

    _The Illustrated Book of Poultry._ By L. WRIGHT, Author of “The
    Practical Poultry-Keeper,” &c. With FIFTY FULL-PAGE 
    PLATES of Celebrated Prize Birds of Every Breed, recently
    Painted from Life expressly for this Work, and with numerous
    Woodcuts.


CASSELL, PETTER, & GALPIN, LUDGATE HILL, LONDON.




  +-------------------------------------------------------------------+
  |                        TRANSCRIBER'S NOTES:                       |
  |                                                                   |
  | The original text has been maintained, including inconsistencies  |
  | in spelling, hyphenation, lay-out, formatting, etc. and in the use|
  | of capitals, diacriticals and accents, except as described below  |
  | under Changes Made. Important inconsistencies include: Saarbruck/ |
  | Saarbrück, Coalbrookdale/Coalbrook Dale, Roth-liegende/           |
  | Rothliegende/Röthe-liegende, Westmorland/Westmoreland, blow-pipe/ |
  | blowpipe, cuttle-fish/cuttlefish, frame-work/framework,           |
  | fresh-water/freshwater, Kupfer-schiefer/Kupferschiefer,           |
  | rain-drops/raindrops, re-construct/reconstruct (and related       |
  | words), Roth-todt-liegende/Rothe-todte-liegende, sub-divide/      |
  | subdivide (and related words), tile-stones/tilestones, under-clay/|
  | underclay, water-stones/waterstones, aërial/aerial, Baikal/Baïkal,|
  | Ceteosaurus/Cetiosaurus, Colley Weston/Colleyweston, Cupanioides/ |
  | Cupanioïdes, Hoffman/Hoffmann (this is apparently the same person,|
  | it is not clear what the correct spelling should be); Kjökken-    |
  | Mödden/Kjökken Mödden/Kjökken-mödden, Mæstricht/Maestricht,       |
  | Néocomian/Neocomian, predaceous/predacious, proboscideans/        |
  | proboscidians, and Tunguragua/Tunguraqua.                         |
  |                                                                   |
  | There are slight differences in wording between the Table of      |
  | Contents, the Index and the text. Since the meaning is not        |
  | affected, this has not been standardised.                         |
  |                                                                   |
  | Textual remarks:                                                  |
  | - Page 109 (table): 12,060 should possibly be 12,000;             |
  | - Page 196 (table): Red and variegated sandstone (Collyhurst) ...:|
  |   there is a line missing in the original work that is not present|
  |   in other editions either. This line has been replaced by [...]; |
  | - Page 212: The Lias, in England, is generally in three groups:   |
  |   possibly there is a word (divided or similar) missing;          |
  | - Page 301: The invertebrate animals which characterise the       |
  |   Cretaceous age are among: possibly there is a word missing at   |
  |   the end of the sentence (others);                               |
  | - Page 339: not one-fifth the size of Switzerland should possibly |
  |   be not one-fifth the size of Great Britain;                     |
  | - Index: contrary to the remark at the top of the index, not all  |
  |   italic entries refer to illustrations.                          |
  |                                                                   |
  | Multi-page tables have been combined into single tables.          |
  |                                                                   |
  | Changes made to original text:                                    |
  | - Some obvious typographical errors (including punctuation) have  |
  |   been corrected silently.                                        |
  | - Table of Contents: entries Eruptive Rocks and The Beginning have|
  |   been indented one level less as in the text; entry Metamorphic  |
  |   Rocks has been indented one level less, in line with the other  |
  |   headings printed in small capitals.                             |
  | Page 11: Ancylyceras changed to Ancyloceras;                      |
  | Page 34: has disappeared changed to have disappeared; Strasburg   |
  | changed to Strasbourg as elsewhere;                               |
  | Page 36: Cevennes changed to Cévennes as elsewhere;               |
  | Page 37: bigarrè changed to bigarré; gres changed to grès as      |
  | elsewhere; porpyhries changed to porphyries;                      |
  | Page 57: diameter) changed to diameter (bracket removed);         |
  | Page 152: on page 155 changed to on page 157;                     |
  | Page 167: Liége changed to Liège;                                 |
  | Page 184: Cevennes changed to Cévennes as elsewhere; Rhone changed|
  | to Rhône as elsewhere;                                            |
  | Page 194: Nilsonia changed to Nilssonia as elsewhere;             |
  | Page 206: Cevennes changed to Cévennes as elsewhere;              |
  | Page 213: Pentatrinus changed to Pentacrinus;                     |
  | Page 225: Ichythyosaurus changed to Ichthyosaurus;                |
  | Page 239: Nilsonia changed to Nilssonia as elsewhere;             |
  | Page 240: Nilsonia changed to Nilssonia as elsewhere;             |
  | Page 247, caption fig 115: Polyzoa. changed to Polyzoa.) (bracket |
  | added);                                                           |
  | Page 248: O. cuneatea changed to O. cuneata;                      |
  | Page 250: first footnote anchor missing, inserted in most likely  |
  | place;                                                            |
  | Page 269: Gryphea changed to Gryphæa as elsewhere;                |
  | Page 305: represented in Fig. 146 changed to represented in Fig.  |
  | 145;                                                              |
  | Page 316: Nymphæea changed to Nymphæa;                            |
  | Page 319: πσχυς changed to παχυς; inférièure/inférièurs changed to|
  | inférieure/inférieurs;                                            |
  | Page 329: Nymphæeas changed to Nymphæas;                          |
  | Page 338: --astodon changed to Mastodon;                          |
  | Page 341: Fig. 161 changed to Fig. 160;                           |
  | Page 348: Rhone changed to Rhône as elsewhere;                    |
  | Page 401: chaneled changed to channelled as elsewhere; Fig 186    |
  | changed to Fig. 185;                                              |
  | Page 413: antedulivian changed to antediluvian;                   |
  | Page 429: Bauman's changed to Baumann's;                          |
  | Page 430: Gailenruth changed to Gailenreuth as elsehwere;         |
  | Page 452: Varese changed to Varèse;                               |
  | Page 462: Upsal changed to Upsala;                                |
  | Page 470, footnote 117: Epoques changed to Époques as elsewhere;  |
  | Page 479: Tiniêre changed to Tinière;                             |
  | Page 502: Archeopterix changed to Archeopteryx as in text;        |
  | Bathonean changed to Bathonian as in text; cervicornus changed to |
  | cervicornis as in text;                                           |
  | Page 503: second entry Carboniferous Flora aligned with Flora,    |
  | ditto marks added;                                                |
  | Page 504: ditto mark added under Man in Creation of Man for       |
  | clarity; Cerithium plicatum 250 changed to 350; Coccosteus 141    |
  | changed to 142; Coupe d'Ayzac 45, 47 changed to 46, 47;           |
  | Page 505: Danien changed to Danian as in text; Duvalii changed to |
  | Duvallii as in text (the modern spelling is Duvalii, Lyell used   |
  | Duvallii);                                                        |
  | Page 508: tichorhynus changed to tichorhinus as in text;          |
  | Page 509: Igneous, Iguana and Iguanodon moved to proper place in  |
  | alphabetical order; Kellaway's changed to Kellaways as in text;   |
  | Lachow changed to Lächow as in text; lacumosus changed to         |
  | lacunosus as in text; Leptœna changed to Leptæna as in text;      |
  | Page 510: Limnea changed to Limnæa as in text; Lithostrotion      |
  | cornu-arietis changed to Lituites cornu-arietis;                  |
  | Page 511: page numbers added after Mortillet on Glaciers and      |
  | Mosaic Account of Creation; page reference 737 changed to 73;     |
  | Page 512: Osmeroïdes changed to Osmeroides as in text;            |
  | Page 513: Pecopteris, page numbers placed in numerical order;     |
  | Fustembergii changed to Furstembergii as in text; second reference|
  | to Otopteris acuminata removed; Pecten obicularis changed to      |
  | Pecten orbicularis as in text;                                    |
  | Page 514: Podophtalmus changed to Podophthalmus as in text;       |
  | Purbeck Beds: 27 changed to 279.;                                 |
  | Page 515: Reptiles, Prevalence of: two entries combined into one; |
  | St. Cassian Beds moved to proper alphabetical order; tichorhynus  |
  | changed to tichorhinus as in text; entries on Sheppey Isle moved  |
  | to proper alphabetical order;                                     |
  | Page 516: Sphærodus changed to Sphœrodus and moved to proper      |
  | alphabetic place; Sun-Appenine changed to Sub-Apennine;           |
  | Terebellaria moved to proper place in alphabetical order.         |
  +-------------------------------------------------------------------+





End of Project Gutenberg's The World Before the Deluge, by Louis Figuier

*** 